24.04.2013 Views

Aeneid - Vergilian Society

Aeneid - Vergilian Society

Aeneid - Vergilian Society

SHOW MORE
SHOW LESS

Create successful ePaper yourself

Turn your PDF publications into a flip-book with our unique Google optimized e-Paper software.

Vergil<br />

3. Aeneis<br />

Eine Bibliographie<br />

München 2005


PHILIPPO HARDIE<br />

STEPHANO HARRISON<br />

HOMINIBUS VERGILIANISSIMIS<br />

2


Vorbemerkung<br />

Da ich auch diese Bibliographie nicht für die Publikation bestimmt habe – wieder folge ich<br />

einfach dem Grundsatz meines alten Freundes Willibald Pirckheimer, in dessen Exlibris das<br />

Motto sibi et amicis (seine Wiedergabe des Platonischen koinà tà tôn fílwn) zu lesen<br />

war –, bedarf es eigentlich keiner praefatio. Denn der nunmehr allgemein zugänglich<br />

gemachte Zettelkasten will als solcher behandelt sein, also einfach für die weitere Benutzung<br />

zur Verfügung stehen, ohne daß diejenigen, die sich seiner bedienen, das perfekte Sortiment<br />

erwarten dürfen. Doch im Gegensatz zu den anderen “weißen Riesen”, die ich schon seit über<br />

einem Jahrzehnt im Zusammenhang mit der eigenen Forschungsarbeit für Studenten und<br />

Kollegen produziere, ist das hier ein weißer Gigant geworden, und deswegen sage ich diesmal<br />

denn doch ein wenig vorweg.<br />

Zunächst Folgendes: Erneut knüpfe ich an eine bereits vorhandene Bibliographie an und<br />

verzeichne aus der Zeit vor dem Jahr, bis zu dem sie reicht, nur die “Klassiker” (und, was ich<br />

auch sonst immer tue, alles was ich persönlich an älteren Büchern und Sonderdrucken<br />

besitze). Es ist das Mammutwerk Werner Suerbaums, das ich fortsetze: seine systematische<br />

Arbeitsbibliographie mit besonderer Berücksichtigung der Aeneis, welche Hundert Jahre<br />

Vergil-Forschung, nämlich diejenige des Zeitraums von 1875 bis 1975, dokumentiert.<br />

Nicholas Horsfall hat dieses Opus einmal sehr treffend als “Suerbaum’s invaluable labyrinth”<br />

bezeichnet (Rez. Serpa 1987, CR 38, 1988, 411), doch wenn meine Bibliographie auch in<br />

gewisser Weise “Der neue Suerbaum” sein möchte, so ist sie doch weder “unschätzbar” noch<br />

ein “Irrgarten” – das erste nicht, weil sie nicht denselben Anspruch auf Vollständigkeit und<br />

Akuratesse erheben kann wie der Vorgänger, das zweite nicht, weil die Titel inhaltlich auf<br />

wesentlich einfachere Weise erschlossen sind als bei Suerbaum. Um gleich hierzu etwas zu<br />

sagen: Mir schien es besonders wichtig, dem Benutzer einen Index der loci zu bieten, die in<br />

den von mir aufgelisteten Büchern und Aufsätzen analysiert werden. Zwar habe ich die Titel<br />

darüber hinaus auch nach Forschungsschwerpunkten aufgeschlüsselt, aber da ich bei weitem<br />

nicht alles, was ich verzeichne, auch gelesen, ja nicht einmal alles in der Hand gehabt habe<br />

(wenn auch sehr, sehr, sehr viel!), darf man von diesem Index nicht mehr als erste Hilfe<br />

erwarten.<br />

Nun aber zu dem heiklen Stichwort “Vollständigkeit”! Suerbaum bietet für 1875 bis 1975<br />

rund 7000 Titel. Man sollte erwarten, daß die 29 Jahre, die seit 1975 vergangen sind,<br />

allerhöchstens ein Viertel dieser Masse an Forschungsleistung hervorgebracht haben (denn<br />

irgendwann muß doch der Markt mal erschöpft sein!), aber so ist es keineswegs: Im<br />

vorliegenden libellus findet man über 2600 Titel, wobei diese Zahl nicht die von mir zu den<br />

4


Büchern ad hoc aufgeführten Rezensionen (auf die Suerbaums Bibliographie verzichtet)<br />

berücksichtigt. Und sie ist lediglich aufgrund folgender Sammlertätigkeit zustande<br />

gekommen:<br />

1. Auswertung der Année philologique, der <strong>Vergilian</strong> Bibliography im Vergilius und der<br />

Bibliographischen Beilage des Gnomon, wobei zwar die Aeneis-Interpretationen<br />

möglichst vollständig erfaßt wurden, nicht aber die Literatur zu Überlieferung, antiker<br />

Kommentierung und zum Nachleben (hier wurde nur ausgewählt und der Schwerpunkt<br />

auf Jüngeres bzw. Repräsentatives gelegt; Übersetzungen verzeichne ich außer Götte<br />

1958 und Binder 1994ff. gar keine und an älteren Kommentaren wiederum nur die<br />

„Klassiker“).<br />

2. Auswertung der von mir gelesenen bzw. durchgesehenen Untersuchungen, soweit sie<br />

Literatur nennen, die meine drei anderen Quellen nicht aufführen. Außerdem<br />

Durchsicht der jüngsten Zeitschriften, die in den genannten Bibliographien noch nicht<br />

berücksichtigt sind.<br />

Es liegt auf der Hand, daß mir bei diesem Verfahren einiges entgangen ist, vor allem im<br />

Bereich von Arbeiten zu übergreifenden Themen, zu denen die Aeneis als Teilgebiet gehört,<br />

also z. B. Untersuchungen zur Gattung “Epos” oder zur Augusteischen Kultur (bewußt<br />

weggelassen habe ich alle Handbücher, Literaturgeschichten etc., wobei Ausnahmen wie<br />

Büchner 1955 die Regel bestätigen). Auch habe ich mich jeder allzu aufwendigen<br />

Detektivarbeit enthalten, einfach in dem Bewußtsein, daß ich dann in einer institution landen<br />

würde, wie es so besonders schön euphemistisch auf Englisch heißt. Um nur ein Beispiel zu<br />

nennen: Bei den Rezensionen ist Vollständigkeit lediglich im Bereich der speziell an Vergil<br />

orientierten Arbeiten der Jahre 1976-2003 angestrebt; d. h. ich biete weder alle<br />

Besprechungen der “Klassiker” (die, wie gesagt, auch Suerbaum nicht hat) noch diejenigen<br />

von Büchern, in denen die Aeneis nur ein Teilaspekt ist, sondern notiere lediglich, was mir<br />

zufällig begegnete.<br />

Genug der Präliminarien! Als Bibliograph ist man noch mehr ein einsamer Wolf denn als<br />

Interpret von Literatur, wo man ja immerhin auf Diskussionen im großen Kreis und im<br />

Gespräch mit Kollegen rekurrieren kann. Um so mehr habe ich mich darüber gefreut, daß ich<br />

von seiten auswärtiger <strong>Vergilian</strong>er, mit denen ich während des letzten halben Jahres in<br />

Kontakt stand, viel Unterstützung und Aufmunterung, ja oft sehr prompte Detailauskünfte<br />

bekommen habe. Zu danken habe ich besonders Philip Hardie und Stephen Harrison, den<br />

Widmungsadressaten dieses libellus – diesen beiden <strong>Vergilian</strong>ern fühle ich mich seit einem<br />

nützlichen “Vorgespräch” beim gemeinsamen Lunch in Corpus Christi im Mai 2003<br />

5


esonders verbunden –, ferner Francis Cairns, Karl Galinsky, Reinhold Glei, Wolfgang<br />

Kofler, Andrew Laird, Michael Putnam und Sarah Spence, sowie Karl Bayer, der durch die<br />

großzügige Schenkung der von ihm gesammelten Jahrgänge des Gnomon und des Gymnasium<br />

an die Petronian <strong>Society</strong> Munich Section (deren großzügigster Mäzen er ist) meine Arbeit<br />

ungemein erleichtert hat. Außerdem möchte ich hervorheben, daß in den letzten sechs<br />

Monaten immer wieder etwas geschah, was eigentlich nie geschieht: Ein Kollege an der<br />

eigenen Universität nahm Anteil an dem, was ich da trieb, indem er z. B. nette und lustige<br />

Bemerkungen machte, wenn ich wieder ein Fuder Bücher von der Institutsbibliothek in mein<br />

Büro rollte, ja sich sogar angelegentlich nach meinen Fortschritten erkundigte: Martin Hose.<br />

Auch ihm sei also herzlich gedankt.<br />

Wozu ich mich lieber gar nicht äußere, ist die schier unfaßliche Menge der von mir<br />

erfaßten Titel. Ich bin sicher, daß zu dem Zweikampf des Aeneas mit Turnus am Ende der<br />

Aeneis, also zu einer Handvoll Verse, mehr geschrieben worden ist als etwa zur gesamten<br />

Anthologia Graeca mit ihrer Fülle an Perlen antiker Poesie oder zu den Romanen, die uns aus<br />

dem Altertum überliefert sind. Aber wie ich darüber denke, weiß jeder, der mich kennt, nur<br />

allzu gut. Damit will ich nicht sagen, daß ich diese Art von Literatur höher schätze als die<br />

Aeneis. Gewiß, ich beschäftige mich vorzugsweise mit denjenigen Texten der griechisch-<br />

römischen Literatur, die gerade nicht dem Department für edle Einfalt und stille Größe<br />

zuzuordnen sind, doch Vergils Epos ist mir im letzten halben Jahr in einer Weise ans Herz<br />

gewachsen, wie ich es früher nie für möglich gehalten hätte. Nun ja, wie sagt Franz<br />

Bieberkopf so wunderbar in Rainer Werner Faßbinders Verfilmung von Berlin<br />

Alexanderplatz? “Am Ende wird sogar der Vernünftigste noch vernünftig.”<br />

München, Fasching 2004 Niklas Holzberg<br />

Vorbemerkung zur 2. Auflage<br />

Nach einem Jahr neun Seiten mehr – was soll man dazu sagen? Der Hoffnung Ausdruck<br />

verleihen, daß es nächstes Jahr vielleicht nur acht sind? Ach, schweigen wir lieber!<br />

München, Fasching 2005 Niklas Holzberg<br />

6


A. Alphabetisches Titelverzeichnis<br />

Abbamonte, Giancarlo (2000): “Nuove ricerche sugli ‘Scholia Veronensia’ a Virgilio”, RFIC<br />

128, 236-52.<br />

Abbot, James C. (2000): “The <strong>Aeneid</strong> and the Concept of dolus bonus”, Vergilius 46, 59-82.<br />

Acanfora Quintavalle, Silvana [et al.] (1981; edd.): Virgilio. Mostra di manoscritti e libri a<br />

stampa. Mostra e Catalogo. I quaderni della Biblioteca Nazionale di Napoli V 5 (Napoli)<br />

[W. Suerbaum, Gnomon 56, 1984, 208-28].<br />

Accademia Nazionale <strong>Vergilian</strong>a di Scienze Lettere ed Arti (1983): Nel bimillenario della<br />

morte di Virgilio (Mantova).<br />

Adamik, Tamás (1982-5): “The Function of Dido’s Figure in the Aeneis”, AUSB 9/10, 11-21.<br />

– (1994): “Die Struktur und die Funktion des sechsten Buches der Äneis”, AAntHung 35,<br />

107-15.<br />

– (1998): “Die zweite Botschaft der ‘Aeneis’”, AAntHung 38, 1-9.<br />

Adams, James Noel (1980): “Anatomical Terminology in Latin Epic”, BICS 27, 50-62.<br />

– /Mayer, Roland G. (1999; edd.): Aspects of the Language of Latin Poetry. Proceedings of<br />

the British Academy 93 (Oxford) [R. K. Gibson, JRS 91, 2001, 207-8; P. E. Knox, CR 51,<br />

2001, 89-90].<br />

Adema, S. (2004): “Van figurant tot hoofdrolspeler. Her gebruik van het imperfectum in de<br />

Aeneis van Vergilius”, Lampas 37, 333-46.<br />

Adkin, Neil (2001a): “‘I am tedious Aeneas’: Virgil, Aen. 1, 372ff.”, Arctos 35, 9-14.<br />

– (2001b): “A <strong>Vergilian</strong> Crux: <strong>Aeneid</strong> 8.342-43”, AJPh 122, 527-31.<br />

– (2001c): “<strong>Vergilian</strong> Etymologizing: The Case of Acestes”, AC 69, 205-7.<br />

– (2002): “Further <strong>Vergilian</strong> Etymologizing”: <strong>Aeneid</strong> 6, 432-433”, AC 71, 149-50.<br />

Adler, Eve (2003): Vergil's Empire. Political Thought in the <strong>Aeneid</strong> (Lanham, MD) [B. Catto,<br />

NECJ 31, 2004, 181-3; M. R. Gale, CR 54, 2004, 376-8; D. E. Hill, G&R 51, 2004, 114].<br />

Adrados, Francisco (1999/2000): “Όµηρος και Βεργίλιος”, Platon 51, 25-9.<br />

Ahl, Frederick (1985): Metaformations: Soundplay and Wordplay in Ovid and Other<br />

Classical Poets (Ithaca, NY/London) [S. J. Harrison, CR 36, 1986, 236-7; N. Horsfall, JRS<br />

76, 1986, 322-3; E. Doblhofer, Gnomon 60, 1988, 155-8].<br />

– (1989): “Homer, Vergil, and Complex Narrative Structures in Latin Epic”, ICS 14, 1-31.<br />

Alberte, Antonio (1993): “El concepto del abandono del hogar en Virgilio y Horacio”,<br />

Helmantica 44, 287-303.<br />

Albis, Robert V. (1993): “<strong>Aeneid</strong> 2.57-59: The Ennian Background”, HSPh 95, 319-22.<br />

Albrecht, Michael von (1965): “Die Kunst der Spiegelung in Vergils Aeneis”, Hermes 93, 54-<br />

64 = “The Art of Mirroring in Virgil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, in Hardie (1999b), iv, 1-12.<br />

– (1967): “Vergils Geschichtsauffassung in der ‘Heldenschau’”, WS 80, 156-82.<br />

– (1970a): “Zur Tragik von Vergils Turnusgestalt: Aristotelisches in der Schlußszene der<br />

Aeneis”, in id./Heck, Eberhard (1970; edd.): Silvae. Festschrift für Ernst Zinn (Tübingen),<br />

1-5 = Hardie (1999b), iv, 376-80.<br />

– (1970b): “Zu Vergils Erzähltechnik. Beobachtungen zum Tempusgebrauch in der Aeneis”,<br />

Glotta 48, 219-29.<br />

– (1972): “Die Kunst der Vorbereitung im Aeneis-Prooemium”, in Hanslik, Rudolf/Lesky,<br />

Albin/Schwabl, Hans (1972, edd.): Antidosis. Festschrift für Walther Kraus zum 70.<br />

Geburtstag. Wiener Studien Beiheft 5 (Wien), 7-20.<br />

– (1977): Römische Poesie. Texte und Interpretationen (Heidelberg; 2., ergänzte Auflage,<br />

Tübingen/Basel, 1995 = Uni-Taschenbücher 1845).<br />

– (1983a): “Einheit und Vielfalt von Vergils Lebenswerk”, Gymnasium 90, 123-43.<br />

– (1983b): “Virgilio y Homero”, in Atti del Convegno vergiliano di Brindisi (1983), 9-19 =<br />

“Vergil und Homer”, in Oliva, P./Frolíkova, A. (1983; edd.): Concilium Eirene XVI.<br />

8


Proceedings of the 16 th International Eirene Conference Prague 31. 8–4. 9. 1982 (Praha),<br />

iii, 7-12.<br />

– (1984): “Zur Funktion mythologischer Gleichnisse in augusteischer Dichtung”, Lampas<br />

17, 184-93.<br />

– (1995): “Some Types of Mirroring in Literature and Music”, IJM 4, 45-69.<br />

– (1997): “Vergil – bewundert, aber ungeliebt? Probleme der Poetologie, Anthropologie und<br />

Hermeneutik im Lichte der ‚Vergilrezeption’”, Jahrbuch für Internationale Germanistik<br />

29.1, 38-58.<br />

– (1999): Roman Epic: An Interpretative Introduction. Mnemosyne Supplementum 189<br />

(Leiden, etc.). [P. Desy, AC 68, 1999, 389-90; S. Goldberg, CW 93, 1999/2000, 545-6; A.<br />

J. Boyle, Gnomon 73, 2001, 720-2; P. Hardie, JRS 91, 2001, 214].<br />

Alessio, Maria (1993): Studies in Vergil: <strong>Aeneid</strong> Eleven: An Allegorical Approach. Collection<br />

Bibliothea Romanica (Québec) [V. J. Cleary, Vergilius 40, 1994, 145-6; S. J. Harrison, CR<br />

46, 1996, 19-21; A. Videau, RPh 70, 186-7; H. H. Huxley, Phoenix 51, 1997, 412-3; U.<br />

Gärtner, Gnomon 71, 1999, 13-7].<br />

Alfonsi, Luigi (1979): “<strong>Vergilian</strong>a”, in Studi su Varrone, sulla retorica, storiografia e poesia<br />

latina. Scritti in onore di Benedetto Riposati (Milano), 1-10.<br />

– (1982): “Virgilio e Calvo, il νεώτερος romano”, PP 37, 108-13.<br />

Alvar Ezquerra, A. (2003): “Historia y poesía en la Eneida: a propósito de la gens Sergia”, in<br />

Alonso del Real, C./García Ruiz, P./Sánchez-Ostiz, Á. (edd.): Urbs aeterna. Actas y<br />

colaboraciones del coloquio internacional ‘Roma entre la literatura y la historia’.<br />

Homenaje a la Profesora Carmen Castillo. Mundo antiguo N. S. 9 (Pamplona), 21-4.<br />

Alvis, John (1995): Divine Purpose and Heroic Response in Homer and Virgil: The Political<br />

Plan of Zeus (Lanham, MD) [C. J. Rowe, Phronesis 41, 1996, 220; M. Gale, CR 47, 1997,<br />

193-4].<br />

Ambrose, Z. Philip (1980): “The Etymology and Genealogy of Palinurus”, AJPh 101, 449-57.<br />

Ameye, G. (1983): “Impius Aeneas”, LF 106, 38-42.<br />

Amram, Peter (1991/2): “Degener Neoptolemus and the Death of Iliadic Romanticism”,<br />

NECN 19, 13-5.<br />

Anderson, William S. (1957): “Vergil’s Second Iliad”, TAPhA 88, 17-30 = S. J. Harrison<br />

(1990b), 239-52 = Hardie (1999b), iii, 74-86.<br />

– (1968): “Pastor Aeneas: On Pastoral Themes in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, TAPhA 99, 1-17.<br />

– (1969): The Art of the <strong>Aeneid</strong> (Englewood Cliffs, NJ; reprint Bristol 1989) [J. E. Rexine,<br />

Vergilius 36, 1990, 149-50].<br />

– (1980): “Vergil, the Best in the World for the Tragical-comical-historical-pastoral”,<br />

Vergilius 26, 10-17.<br />

– (1981): “Servius and the ‘Comic Style’ of <strong>Aeneid</strong> 4”, Arethusa 14, 115-25.<br />

– (1984): “From Reality to Image and from Image to Reality: Georgics and <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, in: Atti<br />

del Convegno mondiale (1984), i, 417-30.<br />

– (1993): “The Suppliant’s Voice and Gesture in Vergil and Ovid’s Metamorphoses”, ICS<br />

18, 165-77.<br />

– (1999a): <strong>Aeneid</strong> 11: The Saddest Book”, in Perkell (1999a), 195-209.<br />

– (1999b): “Five Hundred Years of Rendering the <strong>Aeneid</strong> in English”, in Perkell (1999a),<br />

285-302.<br />

– (2002): “Trojan, Dardanian, Roman: The Power of Epithets in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, in<br />

Anderson/Quartarone (2002), 53-9.<br />

– /Quartarone, Lorina N. (2002; edd.): Approaches to Teaching Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>. Approaches<br />

to Teaching World Literature (New York) [R. Masciantonio, BMCR 2003.02.15; D. E.<br />

Hill, G&R 51, 2004, 113-14].<br />

9


Andersson, Theodore M. (1976): Early Epic Scenery: Homer, Virgil, and the Medieval<br />

Legacy (Ithaca, NY) [R. Seagraves, Vergilius 23, 1977, 70-1; C. Segal, AJPh 98, 1977,<br />

436-8; P. Walcot, G&R 24, 1977, 211-2; J. Griffin, CR 28, 1978, 272-4].<br />

Ando, Clifford (2002): “Vergil’s Italy: Ethnography and Politics in First-century Rome”, in<br />

Levene, D. S./Nelis, D. P. (2002; edd.): Clio and the Poets: Augustan Poetry and the<br />

Traditions of Ancient Historiography. Mnemosyne Supplementum 224 (Leiden, etc.), 123-<br />

42.<br />

Andrae, Janine (2003): Vom Kosmos zum Chaos. Ovids Metamorphosen und Vergils Aeneis.<br />

BAC. Bochumer Altertumswissenschaftliches Colloquium 54 (Trier).<br />

Andreae, Bernard (1988): Laokoon und die Gründung Roms. Abh. Akad. Wiss. Lit. Mainz<br />

1979, 10, Wiesbaden [K. Galinsky, AJPh 94, 1990, 164-5; A. Geyer, GGA 243, 1991, 52-<br />

67; R. R. R. Smith, Gnomon 63, 1991, 351-8].<br />

Antony, Heinz (1976): Humor in der augusteischen Dichtung. Lachen und Lächeln bei<br />

Horaz, Properz, Tibull und Vergil (Hildesheim).<br />

Aretini, Paola (1995): “Gufi e pipistrelli: due prodigi nell’Eneide di Virgilio”, AFLS 16, 1-11.<br />

– (1999): “Ch. G. Heyne e la geografia infernale nel VI libro dell’Eneide”, QS 25.49, 179-<br />

98.<br />

Arkins, Brian (1986): “New Approaches to Virgil”, Latomus 45, 33-42.<br />

Armstrong, David/Fish, Jeffrey/Johnston, Patricia A./Skinner, Marylin (2004; edd.):<br />

Philodemus, Vergil and the Augustans (Austin, TX) [K. Galinsky, Vergilius 50, 2004, 190-<br />

5; L. N. Qartarone, BMCRev 2005.04.64 (vgl. auch 2005.05.47)].<br />

Armstrong, Rebecca (2002): “Crete in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>: Recurring Trauma and Alternative Fate”,<br />

CQ 52, 321-40.<br />

Arnstutz, Patrick (2002): “Cinq grandes étapes dans l’art de traduire l’Énéide en français”,<br />

REL 80, 13-24.<br />

Arrigoni, Giampiera (1982): Camilla Amazzone e sacerdotessa di Diana. Testi e Documenti<br />

per lo Studio dell’Antichità 69 (Milano) [N. Horsfall, CR 34, 1984, 61-2].<br />

– (1988): “Camilla: o i limiti dell’invenzione”, Athenaeum 66, 31-51.<br />

Ash, Rhiannon (2002): “Epic Encounters? Ancient Historical Battle and the Epic Tradition”,<br />

in Levene, D. S./Nelis, D. P. (2002; edd.): Clio and the Poets: Augustan Poetry and the<br />

Traditions of Ancient Historiography. Mnemosyne Supplementum 224 (Leiden, etc.), 253-<br />

73.<br />

Atti del Convegno mondiale scientifico di studi su Virgilio. Mantova, Roma, Napoli 19-24<br />

settembre 1981. A cura dell’Accademia Nazionale Virgiliana. 2 voll. (Milano, 1984) [A.<br />

Traina, RFIC 114, 1986, 251-2].<br />

Atti del Convegno nazionale di studio su Virgilio, Torino 1-2 maggio 1982, a cura di R.<br />

Uglione (Torino, 1984) [G. Garbarino, BStudLat 15, 1985, 136-8; F. Corsaro, Orpheus 7,<br />

1986, 218-20; D. Knecht, AC 56, 1987, 378-9].<br />

Atti del Convegno di studi virgiliani, Pescara 23-25 ottobre 1981. Annali Liceo-Ginnasio G.<br />

d’Annunzio Pescara (S. Gabriele Ed. ECO 1982) 1959-1982 II (Pescara, 1982)<br />

Atti del Convegno vergiliano di Brindisi nel bimillenario della morte. Brindisi 15-18 ottobre<br />

1981 (Perugia, 1983).<br />

Auerbach, Erwin (1958): “Camilla oder über die Wiedergeburt des Erhabenen”, in id.,<br />

Literatursprache und Publikum in der lateinischen Spätantike und im Mittelalter (Bern),<br />

135-76.<br />

Augello, Giuseppe (1988): “Considerazioni sulla morte di Palinuro” in Boldrini, Sandro [et<br />

al.] (1988; edd): Filologia e forme letterarie. Studi offerti a Francesco Della Corte<br />

(Urbino), ii, 411-21.<br />

Austin, Roland G. (1929): “Virgilian Assonance”, CQ 23, 46-55.<br />

– (1955): P. Vergili Maronis <strong>Aeneid</strong>os Liber Quartus. Edited with a Commentary (Oxford)<br />

[V. Pöschl, AAHG 12, 1959, 211-2; D. F. Bright, Mnemosyne 39, 1986, 513-4].<br />

10


– (1964): P. Vergili Maronis <strong>Aeneid</strong>os Liber Secundus. With a Commentary (Oxford) [G.<br />

Luck, Gnomon 37, 1965, 51-5; V. Pöschl, AAHG 22, 1969, 4].<br />

– (1971): P. Vergili Maronis <strong>Aeneid</strong>os Liber Primus. With a Commentary (Oxford) [G.<br />

Binder, Gnomon 46, 1974, 32-9].<br />

– (1977): P. Vergili Maronis <strong>Aeneid</strong>os Liber Sextus. With a Commentary (Oxford) [R.<br />

Lesueur, REL 55, 1977, 461-2; Carlson, CF 32, 1978, 264-6; A. G. McKay, Vergilius 24,<br />

1978, 77-80; T. Oksala, Arctos 12, 1978, 177-8; N. Horsfall, JRS 69, 1979, 231-4; E. A.<br />

McDermott, AJPh 100, 1979, 444-6; Moreland, CW 72, 1979, 312; R. D. Williams, CR 29,<br />

1979, 33-5; R. A. Hornsby, CW 76, 1980, 75-6; M. Pulbrook, Hermathena 128, 1980, 53-<br />

4; R. E. H. Westendorp Boerma, Mnemosyne 33, 1980, 199-201].<br />

Averna, Daniela (1991): “Donna in Virgilio”, in Studi di filologia classica in onore di Giusto<br />

Monaco (Palermo), ii, 943-61.<br />

Babcock, Charles L. (1992): “Sola ... multis e matribus: A Comment on Vergil’s Trojan<br />

Women”, in Wilhelm/Jones (1992), 39-50.<br />

Bacon, Helen H. (1986): “The <strong>Aeneid</strong> as a Drama of Election”, TAPhA 116, 305-34 = S.<br />

Quinn (2000), 123-41.<br />

– (2001): “Mortal Father, Divine Mother: <strong>Aeneid</strong> VI and VIII”, in Spence (2001b), 76-85.<br />

Bailey, Cyril (1935): Religion in Virgil (Oxford).<br />

Bajoni, Maria Grazia (2002): “Condere urbem: da Didone a Christine de Pizan”, AC 71, 141-<br />

7.<br />

Baker, Robert (1980): “Regius puer: Ascanius in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, in Marshall, Bruce (1980; ed.):<br />

Vindex humanitatis. Essays in Honour of John Huntly Bishop (Armidale), 129-45.<br />

Baldwin, Barry (1976): “Vergilius Graecus”, AJPh 97, 1976, 361-8.<br />

– (1982): “Vergil in Byzantium”, A&A 28, 81-93.<br />

– (1993): “Half-lines in Virgil: Old and New Ideas”, SO 68, 144-51.<br />

Bandera, Cesáreo (1981): “Sacrificial Levels in Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Arethusa 14, 217-39.<br />

Bandini, Michele (1987): “Didone, Enea, gli dei e il motivo dell’inganno in Virgilio, Eneide<br />

IV. Il poeta e i suoi personaggi”, Euphrosyne 15, 89-108.<br />

– (1991): “Un uso librario antico e la critica al testo di Virgilio”, A&R 36, 96-9.<br />

Barabino, Giovanna/Nazzaro, Antonio V./Scivoletto, Nino (1991-2000): Interpretationes<br />

<strong>Vergilian</strong>ae minores. vol. 1 (1991); 2.1-2 (1994/5); 3.1-1 (1998); Indices (2000).<br />

Pubblicazioni del D.AR.FI.CL.ET. n. s. 137. 156. 187 (Genova) [S. T. de Pinho,<br />

Humanitas 52, 2000, 345-6; B. Rochette, LEC 69, 2001, 210].<br />

Barabino, Giuseppina (1989): “Il tema del sangue in Virgilio”, in Vattioni, Francesco (1989;<br />

ed.): Sangue e antropologia nella teologia: Atti della VI settimana, Roma, 23-28 novembre<br />

1987. Sangue e antropologia 6 (Roma), i, 533-64.<br />

Barchiesi, Alessandro (1978): “Il lamento di Giurtuna”, MD 1, 99-121.<br />

– (1979): “Palinuro e Caieta. Due ‘epigrammi’ virgiliani (Aen. V 870 sg.; VII 1-4)”, Maia<br />

31, 3-11.<br />

– (1980): “Le molte voci di Omero. Intertestualità e trasformazione del modello epico nel<br />

decimo dell’Eneide”, MD 4, 9-58 ~ “La morte di Pallante. Intertestualità e trasformazione<br />

del modello epico”, in A. Barchiesi (1984), 11-54.<br />

– (1981): “Le armi nel cielo. Diffrazione di un tema narrativo in Virgilio”, MCSN 3, 117-30<br />

~ A. Barchiesi (1984), 74-90.<br />

– (1983): “Lettura del decimo libro dell’Eneide”, in Gigante (1983), 341-64 ~ “Struttura del<br />

decimo dell’Eneide”, in A. Barchiesi (1984), 55-73.<br />

– (1984): La traccia del modello. Effetti omerici nella narrazione virgiliana. Biblioteca di<br />

‘Materiali e discussioni per l’analisi dei testi classici’ 1 (Pisa) [L. Nicastri, Vichiana 14,<br />

1985, 171-6; E. Paratore, RCCM 27, 1985, 194-6; M. Squillante Saccone, BStudLat 15,<br />

11


1985, 135-6; L. Zurli, GIF 37, 1985, 289-90; H. Bardon, Latomus 45, 1986, 690-1; S. J.<br />

Harrison, JRS 76, 1986, 318-21; P. Venini, RFIC 115, 1987, 210-2].<br />

– (1993): “Unità e diffrazione: la rappresentazione del dolore nell’Eneide”, in Rosa, Fabio<br />

(1993; ed.): ‘Il mio nome è sofferenza’: le forme e la rappresentazione del dolore (Torino),<br />

101-25 [→ A. Barchiesi 1994b].<br />

– (1994a): “Immovable Delos: <strong>Aeneid</strong> 3.73-98 and the Hymns of Callimachus”, CQ 44, 438-<br />

43.<br />

– (1994b): “Rappresentazioni del dolore e interpretazione nell’Eneide”, A&A 40, 109-24 =<br />

“Representations of Suffering and Interpretation in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, in Hardie (1999b), iii,<br />

324-44.<br />

– (1995): “Figure dell’intertestualità nell’epica romana”, Lexis 13, 49-67. 281-4.<br />

– (1997a): “Poeti epici e narratori”, in Papponetti, Giuseppe (1997; ed.): Metamorfosi<br />

(Sulmona, 20-22 novembre 1994) (Sulmona), 121-41.<br />

– (1997b): “Virgilian Narrative: Ekphrasis”, in Martindale (1997a), 271-81.<br />

– (1998): “The Statue of Athena at Troy and Carthage”, in Knox, Peter, Foss, Clive (1998;<br />

edd.): Style and Tradition: Studies in Honor of Wendell Clausen. Beiträge zur<br />

Altertumskunde 92 (Stuttgart/Leipzig), 130-40.<br />

Barchiesi, Marino (1981): “Virgilio, Catone e la leggenda ancestrale”, in id. (1981): I moderni<br />

alla ricerca di Enea. Premessa di Della Corte, F. (Roma), 47-75.<br />

Bardon, Henry/Verdière, Raoul (1971; edd.): <strong>Vergilian</strong>a. Recherches sur Virgile. Roma<br />

aeterna 3 (Leiden).<br />

Barigazzi, Adelmo (1982): “Il vestibolo infernale di Virgilio e Lucrezio”, Prometheus 8, 97-<br />

116.<br />

– (1986): “Verg., Aen. 1.462 sunt lacrimae rerum”, Prometheus 12, 57-71.<br />

– (1990): “Verg. Aen. 2.255 tacitae per amica silentia lunae”, Prometheus 16, 1990, 227-37.<br />

– (1992): “Virgilio ‘padano’ e un hapax”, Prometheus 18, 69-74.<br />

– (1994): “La fuga di Enea e la morte di Didone (Verg. Aen. 4, 474 ss.)”, in Curti,<br />

Carmelo/Crimi, Carmelo (1994; edd.): Scritti classici e cristiani offerti a Francesco<br />

Corsaro (Catania), i, 17-28.<br />

Barnes, W. R. (1995): “Virgil: The Literary Impact”, in Horsfall (1995c), 257-92.<br />

– (1999): “Seeing Things: Ancient Commentary on the Iliad at the End of the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, in<br />

Morton Braund, Susanna/Mayer, Roland (1999; edd.): Amor: Roma. Love & Latin<br />

Literature. Eleven Essays (and One Poem) by Former Research Students Presented to E. J.<br />

Kenney on His Seventy-Fifth Birthday. Cambridge Philological <strong>Society</strong>. Supplementary<br />

Volume 22 (Cambridge), 60-70.<br />

– (2002): “<strong>Aeneid</strong> 6.826-35: Homer and Caesar’s Gallic Command”, in McKechnie, Paul<br />

(2002; ed.): Thinking Like a Lawyer: Essays on Legal History and General History for<br />

John Crook on His Eightieth Birthday. Mnemosyne Supplements. Subseries History and<br />

Archaeology of Classical Antiquity 231 (Leiden, etc.), 113-29.<br />

Baron, James R. (1997): “<strong>Aeneid</strong> XII and ‘Casey at the Bat’: Heroic Humanity and the<br />

Tragedy of Momentary Failure”, CB 73, 125-33.<br />

Barrow, Rosemary (2001): “Painting Virgil: Victorian Choices”, PVS 24, 81-101.<br />

Bartsch, Shadi (1998): “Ars and the Man: The Politics of Art in Virgil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, CPh 93,<br />

322-42.<br />

Baschera, Claudio (1999): Gli scolii veronesi a Virgilio. Introduzione, edizione critica e indici<br />

a cura di – (Verona). [A. Cozzolino, BStudLat 29, 1999, 646-8; A. Martucci Lanza, A&R<br />

44, 1999, 92-3; M. Petoletti, Aevum 75, 2001, 221-3; M. Negri 2002; A. Uhl Brunner,<br />

Gnomon 75, 2003, 23-6].<br />

– (2000a): “Chiose alla nuova edizione degli ‘Scholia Vergilii Veronensia’”, BStudLat 30,<br />

11-18.<br />

12


– (2000b): Ipotesi d’una relazione tra il Servio Danielino e gli scolii veronesi a Virgilio. Un<br />

testimone oculare narra la scoperta del palinsesto di Gaio presso la Biblioteca Capitolare<br />

di Verona. Studi filologici veronesi 1 (Verona).<br />

Basson, W. Philip (1975): Pivotal Catalogues in the <strong>Aeneid</strong> (Amsterdam) [A. Thill, REL 54,<br />

1976, 442-3; J. Gassner, Gnomon 49, 1977, 309-11; R. Lesueur, Latomus 36, 1977, 188-9;<br />

J. Perret, RPh 51, 1977, 158; G. B. Townend, CR 27, 1977, 21-2].<br />

– (1979a): “Die vredesmotief by Vergilius”, Akroterion 24, 1-9.<br />

– (1979b): “Vergil se siening van die Romeinse geskiedenis”, AC 22, 73-90.<br />

– (1982a): “Vergil’s Catalogue of Etruscan Forces: Some Observations”, AClass 25, 51-60.<br />

– (1982b): “Vergil on Malaria”, AClass 25, 131-3.<br />

– (1982c): “A Note on the Translation of Aen. 10.655”, AClass 25, 133-5.<br />

– (1984a): “Vergil’s Mezentius. A Pivotal Personality”, AClass 27, 57-70.<br />

– (1984b): “A Note on Aen. 10.846-856”, AClass 27, 133-5.<br />

– (1986): “Vergil’s Camilla: A Paradoxical Character”, AClass 29, 57-68.<br />

Basto, Ronald G. (1982): “The Grazing of Circe’s Shore: A Note on <strong>Aeneid</strong> 7.10, CW 76, 42-<br />

3.<br />

– (1984a): “Horace and the Helen Episode”, Vergilius 30, 20-4.<br />

– (1984b): “The Swords of <strong>Aeneid</strong> 4”, AJPh 105, 333-8.<br />

Baswell, Christopher (1995): Virgil in Medieval England: Figuring the <strong>Aeneid</strong> from the<br />

Twelfth Century to Chaucer. Cambridge Studies in Medieval Literature 24 (Cambridge)<br />

[R. Cormier, Vergilius 41, 1995, 149-52; K. Bate, Latomus 58, 1999, 437-8].<br />

Battegazzore, Antonio Mario (1983/4): “L’immagine del fuoco in Virgilio”, Sandalion 6/7,<br />

33-74.<br />

Bauzá, Hugo Francisco (1982): “Mito e historia en la leyenda de Eneas”, AHAM 23, 409-30.<br />

– (1993): “El arte poético de Virgilio como prefiguración de la historia”, Helmantica 44,<br />

205-13.<br />

Beare, Rhona (1964/5): “Invidious Success: Some Thoughts on the End of the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, PVS<br />

4, 18-30.<br />

– (2000): “What Did Virgil’s Swallows Eat?”, CQ 50, 618-20.<br />

Beck-Chauvard, Laurence (2001): “Plainte amoreuse et plainte maternelle dans l’Énéide”,<br />

REL 79, 104-25.<br />

Becker, Carl (1964): “Der Schild des Aeneas”, WS 77, 111-27.<br />

Becker, Trudy Harrington (1997/8): “Ambiguity and the Female Warrior: Vergil’s Camilla”,<br />

ElectronAnt 4.1<br />

Belfiore, Elizabeth S. (1984): “Ter frustra comprensa: Embraces in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Phoenix 38,<br />

19-30.<br />

Bell, Andrew J. E. (1999): “The Popular Poetics and Politics of the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, TAPhA 129, 263-<br />

79.<br />

Bellandi, Franco (1991): “Ganimede, Ascanio e la gioventù troiana”, in Studi di filologia<br />

classica in onore di Giusto Monaco (Palermo), ii, 919-30.<br />

Benario, Herbert W. (1967): “The Tenth Book of the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, TAPhA 98, 23-36 = S. Quinn<br />

(2000), 195-206.<br />

– (1978a): “Vergil and the River Tiber”, Vergilius 24, 4-14.<br />

– (1978b): “Vergil in Britannia Provincia”, Vergilius 24, 56-9 = Lawall (1979), 1-4.<br />

Bender, Henry V. (1991/2): “Princeps and Cosmos in Augustan Rome”, NECN 19, 14-21.<br />

– (1994): “De habitu vestis: Clothing in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, in Sebesta, Judith Lynn/Bonfante,<br />

Larissa (1994; edd.): The World of Roman Costume (Madison), 146-52.<br />

– /Califf, David J. (2004): Poet and Artist: Imaging the <strong>Aeneid</strong> (Wauconds, IL).<br />

Berényi-Révész, M. (1976): “Le prince ‘démocratique’ de l’Énéide”, AUB 4, 31-46.<br />

Bergh, A. (1987): “Vier vergelijkingen in Vergilius’ Aeneis”, Lampas 20, 265-91.<br />

13


Berlin, Netta (1998): “War and Remembrance: <strong>Aeneid</strong> 12.554-60 and Aeneas’ Memory of<br />

Troy”, AJPh 119, 11-41.<br />

Bernard, John D. (1986; ed.): Vergil at 2000: Commemorative Essays on the Poet and His<br />

Influence. AMS Ars Poetica 3 (New York) [S. J. Harrison, CR 37, 1987, 175-7].<br />

Berno, Francesca Romana (2004): “Un truncus, molti re. Priamo, Agamemnone, Pompeo<br />

(Virgilio, Seneca, Lucano) (1)”, Maia 56, 45-77.<br />

Berres, Thomas (1982): Die Entstehung der Aeneis. Hermes Einzelschriften 45 (Wiesbaden)<br />

[R. Lesueur, REL 61, 1983, 383-6; E. Paratore, BollClass 3.5, 1984, 169-77; J. Perret,<br />

Latomus 43, 1984, 639-41; W. Moskalew, AJPh 106, 1985, 527-30; S. J. Harrison, JRS 76,<br />

1986, 318-9; N. Horsfall, CR 37, 1987, 15-7; W. Suerbaum, Gnomon 60, 1988, 401-9].<br />

– (1992): Vergil und die Helenaszene. Mit einem Exkurs zu den Halbversen. Bibliothek der<br />

klassischen Altertumswissenschaften Neue Folge, 2. Reihe, 90 (Heidelberg) [D. Gall,<br />

Gnomon 67, 1995, 407-11].<br />

– (1993): “Vergil und Homer. Ein Beitrag zur Entmythologisierung des Verhältnisses”,<br />

Gymnasium 100, 342-69.<br />

Berry, D. H. (1992): “The Criminals in Virgil’s Tartarus: Contemporary Allusions in <strong>Aeneid</strong><br />

6.621-4”, CQ 42, 416-20.<br />

Bertalozzi, V. (2002): “Callimaco e Virgilio a confronto: l’apoteosi di Arsinoe e la morte di<br />

Didone”, InvLuc 24, 27-35.<br />

Bertman, Stephen (1976): “The Generation Gap in the Fifth Book of Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, in id.<br />

(1976; ed.): The Conflict of Generations in Ancient Greece and Rome (Amsterdam), 205-<br />

10.<br />

– (1983): “The Keeper of the Winds”, Vergilius 29, 48-50.<br />

– (2000): “Cleopatra and Antony as Models for Dido and Aeneas”. EMC N. S. 19, 395-8.<br />

Bertoli, E. (1978/9): “Notturno virgiliano (Aen. 4.522-8)”, Quaderni di lingue e lettere,<br />

Università di Padova, Facoltà di economia e commercio, Istituto di lingue e lettere<br />

straniere di Verona 3/4, 407-22.<br />

Bettenworth, Anja (2004): Gastmahlszenen in der antiken Epik von Homer bis Claudian.<br />

Diachrone Untersuchungen zur Szenentypik. Hypomnemata 153 (Göttingen).<br />

Bettini, Maurizio (1982): “L’ape e la farfalla”, Quaderni storici (Bologna Il Mulino) 51, 903-<br />

28.<br />

– (1983): “L’ape e il pipistrello. Una similitudine di Virgilio ed una di Omero”, in Atti del<br />

Convegno vergiliano di Brindisi (1983), 345-59.<br />

– (1988): “Turno e la rondine nera”, QUCC 59, 7-24.<br />

– (1997): “Ghosts of Exile: Doubles and Nostalgia in Vergil’s parva Troia (<strong>Aeneid</strong><br />

3.294ff.)”, ClAnt 16, 8-33.<br />

Bews, J. P. (1989): “Philosophical Relevation and Its Function in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 6“, in Bonanno,<br />

Anthony/Vella, H. C. R. (1989; edd.): Laurea Corona: Studies in Honour of Edward<br />

Coleiro (Amsterdam), 91-8.<br />

Beye, Charles Rowan (1993): Ancient Epic Poetry: Homer, Apollonius, Virgil (Ithaca,<br />

NY/London) [J. Farrell, BMCRev 94.02.09; R. Evans, Vergilius 41, 1995, 141-2; N. Gross,<br />

CW 88, 1995, 218-9].<br />

– (1999): “Vergil and Apollonius”, in Perkell (1999a), 271-84.<br />

Beyers, Rita (1991/2): “Acculturatie in Vergilius’ epos”, Kleio 21, 176-99.<br />

Bianco, Orazio (1980): “La protesta di Didone”, Quad. Inst. Lingue Lett. Class. Fac. Mag.<br />

Lecce 1980, 5-15.<br />

– (1986): “Coniugium uocat (Virgilio, Aen. 4.172)”, in Studi di filologia e letteratura<br />

(Lecce), 5-12.<br />

– (1988): “Portus curvatus in arcum (Virgilio, Aen. 3, 533)”, in Boldrini, Sandro [et al.]<br />

(1988; edd): Filologia e forme letterarie. Studi offerti a Francesco Della Corte (Urbino),<br />

ii, 423-6.<br />

14


Biffi, N. (2003): “L’enigma Machaon (Verg. Aen. 2, 261)”, InvLuc 25, 19-29.<br />

Binder, Edith/Binder, Gerhard (1994ff.): P. Vergilius Maro, Aeneis. Übers. u. hrsg. v. –.<br />

Universal-Bibliothek 9680-5 (Stuttgart) [bisher erschienen:] 1. und 2. Buch (1994); 3. und<br />

4. Buch (1997); 5. und 6. Buch (1998); 7. und 8. Buch (2001); 9. und 10. Buch (2003) [A.<br />

Kohl, Anregung 44, 1998, 274].<br />

Binder, Gerhard (1971): Aeneas und Augustus. Interpretationen zum 8. Buch der Aeneis.<br />

Beiträge zur Klassischen Philologie 38 (Meisenheim am Glan) [P. T. Eden, JRS 62, 1972,<br />

221-3; A. Wlosok, Gymnasium 80, 1973, 140-1; G. K. Galinsky, AJPh 95, 1974, 77-80; K.<br />

W. Gransden, CR 24, 1974, 51-3; F. A. Sullivan, CPh 70, 1975, 151-2].<br />

– (1975): “Äneas”, Enzyklopädie des Märchens I 2, 509-28.<br />

– (1985): “Lusus Troiae. L’Énéide de Virgile comme source archéologique”, BAGB 44, 349-<br />

56.<br />

– (1988): “Aitiologische Erzählung und augusteisches Programm in Vergils ‘Aeneis’”, in id.<br />

(1988; ed.): Saeculum Augustum II: Religion und Literatur. Wege der Forschung 512<br />

(Darmstadt), 255-87.<br />

– (1990): “Vom Mythos zur Ideologie. Rom und seine Geschichte vor und bei Vergil”, in<br />

id./Effe, Bernd (1990; edd.): Mythos. Erzählende Weltdeutung im Spannungsfeld von<br />

Ritual, Geschichte und Rationalität. BAC. Bochumer Altertumswissenschaftliches<br />

Colloquium 2 (Trier), 137-61.<br />

– (1995): “Grenzüberschreitungen: Von Rom nach Arkadien, vom Mythos zur Geschichte.<br />

Textorientierte Überlegungen zum Werk des P. Vergilius Maro”, Lampas 28, 82-101.<br />

– (1997): „Der brauchbare Held: Aeneas. Stationen der Funktionalisierung eines<br />

Ursprungsmythos“, in Horn, Hans-Jürgen/Walter, Hermann (1997): Die Allegorese des<br />

antiken Mythos. Wolfenbütteler Forschungen 75 (Wiesbaden), 311-30.<br />

– (2000a): “Amor omnibus idem: Liebeswahn als Konstante in Vergils Dichtung”, in: Effe,<br />

Bernd/Glei, Reinhold F. (2000; edd.): Genie und Wahnsinn. Konzepte psychischer<br />

‘Normalität’ und ‚Abnormität’ im Altertum. Bochumer Altertumswissenschaftliches<br />

Colloquium 46 (Trier), 123-148.<br />

– (2000b; ed.): Dido und Aeneas: Vergils Dido-Drama und Aspekte seiner Rezeption<br />

Bochumer Altertumswissenschaftliches Colloquium 47 (Trier) [M. Lobe, Gymnasium 109,<br />

2002, 455-6; W. Schubert, MH 59, 2002, 259-60; R. Martin, Latomus 62, 2003, 977-8].<br />

Biow, Douglas (1994): “Epic Performance on Trial: Virgil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong> and the Power of Eros in<br />

Song”, Arethusa 27, 223-46.<br />

Bird, T. A. (2000): “One Wedding and Two Funerals: An Undetected Aspect of <strong>Aeneid</strong> IV”,<br />

in Deroux, Carl (2000; ed.): Studies in Latin Literature and Roman History 10. Collection<br />

Latomus 254 (Bruxelles), 197-208.<br />

Bishop, J. David (1979): “<strong>Vergilian</strong> semper ‘at any time’ and et ‘even’”, CW 73, 175-6.<br />

Bishop, John Huntly (1988): The Cost of Power: Studies in the <strong>Aeneid</strong> of Virgil. University of<br />

New England Monographs 4 (Armidale) [S. J. Harrison, CR 40, 1990, 264-6].<br />

Biville, Frédérique/Dangel, Jacqueline/Videau, Anne (1997): “L’écriture latine: propositions<br />

pour une lecture stylistique”, Euphrosyne 25, 389-414.<br />

Blänsdorf, Jürgen (1982): “‘Unepische’ Szenenfolgen in der Aeneis”, WJA 8, 83-104.<br />

Blaive, Frédéric (1990): “Mézence le guerrier impier: mythologie indo-européenne et épopée<br />

romaine”, Latomus 49, 81-7.<br />

– (1992): “De Ravana à Mézence: dégradation du mythe indo-européen du Guerrier Impie à<br />

Rome”, Latomus 51, 73-8.<br />

Bleisch, Pamela Rolanda (1996): “On Choosing a Spouse: <strong>Aeneid</strong> 7.378-84 and Callimachus’<br />

Epigram 1”, AJPh 117, 453-72.<br />

– (1998): “Altars Altered: The Alexandrian Tradition of Etymological Wordplay in <strong>Aeneid</strong><br />

1.108-12”, AJPh 119, 599-606.<br />

15


– (1999) “The Empty Tomb at Rhoeteum: Deiphobus and the Problem of the Past in <strong>Aeneid</strong><br />

6.494-547”, ClAnt 18, 187-226.<br />

– (2001): “Nisus’ Choice: Bovillae at <strong>Aeneid</strong> 9.387-8”, CQ 51, 183-9.<br />

– (2003): “The ‘Regia’ of Picus: Ekphrasis, Italian Identity, and Artistic Definition in<br />

‘<strong>Aeneid</strong>’ 7.152-93”, in Thibodeau, Philip/Haskell, Harry (2003; edd.): Being There<br />

Together: Essays in Honor of Michael C. J. Putnam on the Occasion of His Seventieth<br />

Birthday (Afton, Minnesota), 88-109.<br />

Blessington, Francis (1998/9): “Paradise Lost and the Apothesis of the Suppliant”, Arion 6,<br />

83-97.<br />

Bliss, Francis (1996): “Ucalegon and the Scaean Gate”, Vergilius 42, 50-4.<br />

Block, Elizabeth (1980): “Failure to Thrive: The Theme of Parents and Children in the<br />

<strong>Aeneid</strong>, and Its Iliadic Models”, Ramus 9, 128-49.<br />

– (1981): The Effects of Divine Manifestation on the Reader’s Perspective in Vergil’s<br />

<strong>Aeneid</strong>. Monographs in Classical Studies (New York).<br />

– (1982): “The Narrator Speaks: Apostrophe in Homer and Vergil”, TAPhA 112, 7-22.<br />

– (1986): “Narrative Judgement and Audience Response in Homer and Vergil”, Arethusa 19,<br />

155-69.<br />

Bloom, Harold (1986; ed.): Modern Critical Views: Virgil (New York) [S. F. Wiltshire, CW<br />

81, 1988, 314-5].<br />

– (1987; ed.): Modern Critical Interpretations: Virgil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong> (New York).<br />

Bocciolini Palagi, Laura (1986): “Vulnus alit uenis et caeco carpitur igni (Verg. Aen. 4, 2)”,<br />

in Munus amicitiae. Scritti in memoria di Alessandro Ronconi, I (Firenze), 23-42.<br />

– (1990): “Enea come Orfeo”, Maia 42, 133-50.<br />

– (2001): “Amata e l’iniziazione dionisiaca”, Maia 53, 565-81.<br />

– (2004): “Simulatio numine Bacchi (Nota a Verg. Aen. VII 385)”, Maia 56, 17-43.<br />

Bodoh, John J. (1987): “Reading Laocoon in Vergil and Petronius”, AC 56, 269-74.<br />

Boeft, J. den (1995): “Ostia centum. De Aeneis in het recente onterzock”, Lampas 28, 3-18.<br />

Bömer, Franz (1951): “Vergil und Augustus”, Gymnasium 58, 26-55.<br />

– (1952): “Excudent alii … “, Hermes 80, 117-23.<br />

– (1957): “Beiträge zum Verständnis der augusteischen Dichtersprache”, Gymnasium 64, 1-<br />

21.<br />

– (1965): “Eine Stileigentümlichkeit Vergils: Vertauschen der Prädikate (Aen. VIII 3 und<br />

noch einmal: excudent alii ...)”, Hermes 93, 130-1.<br />

– (1986): “Aeneas landet bei Cumae. Zu Verg. Aen. VI 2 und Ov. Met. XIV 102ff.”,<br />

Gymnasium 93, 97-101.<br />

Boldrer, Francesca (2004): “Italiam quaero: Virgilio e le etimologie di ‘Italia’”, BStudLat 34,<br />

18-34.<br />

Bolkestein, A. Machtelt (1986): “Expressing the Causation of Emotion in Latin: A Note on<br />

Verg. Aen., 6, 876”, in Decreus, Freddy/Deroux, Carl (1986; edd.): Hommages à Jozef<br />

Veremans. Collection Latomus 193 (Bruxelles), 11-20.<br />

Bollók, J. (1976): “Die Tartaros-Szene in der Aeneis”, AUB 4, 47-61.<br />

– (1985): “Die Figur des Mezentius in Vergils Aeneis”, Klio 67, 234-7.<br />

Bonfanti, Marzia (1982ff.): “Bibliografia virgiliana italiana” [ab Nr. 55 “ … : schede e<br />

commenti”], AVM 50, 145-91; 52, 1984, 227-307; 53, 1985, 127-87; 54, 1986, 219-255;<br />

55, 1987, 241-63; 57, 1989, 215-40; 58, 1990, 141-66; “Bibliografia virgiliana: schede e<br />

commenti”, AVM 59, 1991, 235-51; 60, 1992, 239-54; 63, 1995, 163-89.<br />

– (1985): Punto di vista e modi della narrazione nell’Eneide. Biblioteca di ‘Materiali e<br />

discussioni per l’analisi dei testi classici’ 3 (Pisa) [E. Paratore, RCCM 27, 1985, 196; M.<br />

Squillante Saccone, BStudLat 15, 1985, 135-6; H. Bardon, Latomus 45, 1986, 417-8; S. J.<br />

Harrison, CR 37, 1987, 173-5].<br />

– (1988): “Virgilio, Aen. 3, 508-11 e Apollonio Rodio”, MD 20/1, 299-303.<br />

16


Bono, Barbara (1984): Literary Transvaluation from <strong>Vergilian</strong> Epic to Shakespearean<br />

Tragicomedy (Berkeley, etc.) [“The Dido Episode” in Bloom (1987), 103-26] [M. J. C.<br />

Putnam, Vergilius 31, 1985, 85-7].<br />

Borghini, Alberto (1980): “Un genitivo di inerenza, sunt lacrimae rerum”, MD 4, 187-98.<br />

Borgogno, A. (1986): “Sulla genesi di una coppia di similitudini virgiliane”, AFLS 7, 91-8.<br />

Borszák, Istvan (1983): “Innoxia flamma”, LF 106, 33-7.<br />

Botha, A. D. (1991): “The Stars as a Theme in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Akroterion 36, 11-24.<br />

– (1992): “Aspects of Prophecy in Virgil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Akroterion 37, 6-14.<br />

Bouquet, Jean (2001): Le songe dans l’épopée latine d’Ennius à Claudien. Collection<br />

Latomus 260 (Bruxelles) [S. Condorelli, BStudLat 31, 2002, 625-7; G. Weber, CR 116,<br />

2002, 297-9; D. Schmitz, Gymnasium 110, 2003, 582-4].<br />

Bowie, Angus M. (1990): “The Death of Priam: Allegory and History in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, CQ 40,<br />

470-81 = Hardie (1999b), iv, 85-100.<br />

– (1998): “Exuvias effigiemque: Dido, Aeneas and the Body as Sign”, in Montserrat,<br />

Dominic (1998; ed.): Changing Bodies, Changing Meanings: Studies on the Human Body<br />

in Antiquity (London/New York), 57-79.<br />

– /Cairns, F. [et al.] (1977): “Topics in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, LCM 2, 129-43.<br />

Bowra, C. Maurice (1933/4): “Aeneas and the Stoic Ideal”, G&R 3, 8-21 = S. J. Harrison<br />

(1990b), 363-77 = Hardie (1999b), iii, 204-17.<br />

Boyancé, Pierre (1963): La religion de Virgile (Paris) [H. Wagenvoort, Gnomon 41, 1969,<br />

276-82].<br />

Boyd, Barbara Weiden (1992): “Virgil’s Camilla and the Traditions of Catalogue and<br />

Ecphrasis (<strong>Aeneid</strong> 7.803-17)”, AJPh 113, 213-34.<br />

– (1995): “Non enarrabile textum: Ecphrastic Trespass and Narrative Ambiguity in the<br />

<strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Vergilius 41, 71-90.<br />

– (2002): “‘Tum Pectore Sensus Vertuntur Varii’: Reading and Teaching the End of the<br />

<strong>Aeneid</strong>”, in Anderson/Quartarone (2002), 80-6.<br />

– (2006): Vergil's <strong>Aeneid</strong> 8 & 11: Italy & Rome. Wauconda, IL.<br />

Boyle, A. J. (1986): The Chaonian Dove: Studies in the Eclogues, Georgics, and <strong>Aeneid</strong> of<br />

Virgil. Mnemosyne Supplementum 94 (Leiden), 36-84 [D. C. Feeney, CR 37, 1987, 171-3;<br />

D. Fowler, G&R 34, 1987, 218-9; S. J. Harrison, JRS 78, 1988, 234-6; P. A. Johnston,<br />

Vergilius 34, 1988, 184-5; D. G. Shaw, CW 82, 1988, 127-8; P. Tordeur, AC 57, 1988,<br />

396-7].<br />

– (1993): “The Canonic Text: Virgil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, in Boyle, A. J. (1993; ed.): Roman Epic<br />

(London/New York), 79-107.<br />

– (1999): “<strong>Aeneid</strong> 8: Images of Rome”, in Perkell (1999a), 148-61.<br />

Braccesi, Lorenzo (1997): “Il luccio aponense”, Patavium 5.10, 119-20.<br />

Brackert, Helmut (1962): “Zu einigen Gleichnissen in Vergils Aeneis“, Euphorion 56, 165-73.<br />

Braund, Susanna Morton (1997): “Virgil and the Cosmos: Religious and Philosophical Ideas”,<br />

in Martindale (1997a), 204-21.<br />

– (1998): “Speech, Silence and Personality: The Case of Aeneas and Dido”, PVS 23, 129-47.<br />

– (2002): Latin Literature. Classical Foundations (London/New York).<br />

Brazouski, Antoinette (1991): “Amata and Her Maternal Right”, Helios 18, 129-36.<br />

Breen, Carolyn Clark (1986): “The Shield of Turnus, the Swordbelt of Pallas, and the Wolf:<br />

<strong>Aeneid</strong> 7.789-92, 9.59-66, 10.497-99”, Vergilius 32, 63-71.<br />

Bremmer, Jan N./Horsfall, Nicholas M. (1987): Roman Myth and Mythography. University of<br />

London, Institute of Classical Studies, Bulletin Supplement 52 (London) [R. B. Lloyd,<br />

Vergilius 34, 1988, 185-8; T. P. Wiseman, JRS 79, 1989, 129-37].<br />

Brenk, Frederick E. (1979): “Most Beautiful Horror: Baroque Touches in Vergil’s<br />

Underworld”, CW 73, 1-7 = Brenk (1999a), 93-9.<br />

17


– (1980): “The Twofold Gleam – Vergil’s Golden Age Age and the Beginning of Empire”,<br />

in Thought 55, 81-97 = Brenk (1999a), 13-29.<br />

– (1984): “Unum pro multis caput: Myth, History, and Symbolic Imagery in Vergil’s<br />

Palinurus Incident”, Latomus 43, 776-801 = Brenk (1999a), 34-59.<br />

– (1986): “Aurorum spes et purpurei flores: The Eulogy for Marcellus in <strong>Aeneid</strong> VI”, AJPh<br />

107, 218-28 = Brenk (1999a), 76-86.<br />

– (1987): “Palinurus and Polites: Shades of Shades (Virgil, <strong>Aeneid</strong> 6.337-383)”, Latomus 46,<br />

571-4 = Brenk (1999a), 60-3.<br />

– (1988): “Wind and Waves, Sacrifice and Treachery. Diodoros, Appian and the Death of<br />

Palinurus in Virgil”, Aevum 62, 69-80 = Galvagno, E./Mole Ventura, C. (1991, edd.):<br />

Diodoro Siculo e la storiografia classica (Catania), 327-46 = Brenk (1999), 64-75.<br />

– (1990): “Purpureos spargam flores: A Greek Motif in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>?”, CQ 40, 218-23 =<br />

Brenk (1999a), 87-92.<br />

– (1992): “The Gates of Dreams and an Image of Life: Consolation and Allegory at the End<br />

of Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong> VI”, in Deroux, Carl (1992; ed.): Studies in Latin Literature and Roman<br />

History 6. Collection Latomus 217 (Bruxelles), 277-94 = Brenk (1999a), 100-17.<br />

– (1999a): Clothe in Purple Light: Studies in Vergil and in Latin Literature, Including<br />

Aspects of Philosophy, Religion, Magic, Judaism and the New Testament Background<br />

(Stuttgart) [P. B. Harvey Jr., BMCRev 2000.09.14; P. A. Johnston, Vergilius 46, 2000, 172-<br />

5].<br />

– (1999b): “Salus and sancio in Vergil” [engl. Fassung von id. s. v. salus und sancio in Della<br />

Corte (1984-91), v, 1989, 667-9. 672-3], in Brenk (1999a), 122-31.<br />

Breuker Jr., John (2002): “The Public and Private Aeneas: Observations on Complex<br />

Responsibility”, in Anderson/Quartarone (2002), 69-79.<br />

Briggs Jr., Ward W. (1975): “Augustan Athletics and the Games of <strong>Aeneid</strong> V”, Stadion 1,<br />

267-83.<br />

– (1977): “Amatory Impulses in Georgics III and the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, in Select Proceedings of the<br />

27 th Annual Mountain Interstate Foreign Language Conference, October 13-15, 1977<br />

(Johnson City, TE), 7-21.<br />

– (1979): “Eurydice, Venus and Creusa: A Note on Structure in Virgil”, Vergilius 25, 43-5.<br />

– (1980): Narrative and Simile from the Georgics in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>. Mnemosyne Supplementum<br />

58 (Leiden) [J. Griffin, CR 31, 1981, 23-37; M. C. J. Putnam, CO 59, 1981/2, 59; K. W.<br />

Gransden, JRS 72, 1982, 206-9; Parca, Latomus 41, 1982, 405-6].<br />

– (1981): “Virgil and the Hellenistic Epic”, ANRW ii 31.2, 948-84.<br />

– (1981/2): “Lines Repeated from the Georgics in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, CJ 77, 130-47.<br />

– (1992): “The Similes of <strong>Aeneid</strong> 5”, in Wilhelm/Jones (1992), 157-66.<br />

– (1999): “Petronius and Virgil in The Great Gatsby”, IJCT 6, 226-35.<br />

Bright, David F. (1981): “Aeneas’ Other Nekyia”, Vergilius 27, 40-7.<br />

– (1984): “Theory and Practice in the <strong>Vergilian</strong> Cento”, ICS 9, 79-90.<br />

Brioso Sánchez, Máximo (1998): “Observaciones sobre los proemios ‘programáticos’ y las<br />

tesis de Conte”, Habis 29, 87-100.<br />

Briquel, Dominique (1989): “À propos d’une inscription redécouverte au Louvre : remarques<br />

sur la tradition relative à Mézence”, REL 67, 78-92.<br />

– (1991): “Virgile et l’Etrusca disciplina”, in Guittard, Charles/Briquel, Dominique (1991;<br />

edd.): Les écrivains du siècle d’Auguste et l’Etrusca disciplina. Caesarodunum Suppl. 61.<br />

La divination dans le monde étrusco-italique 4 (Tours), 33-52.<br />

– (1992): “Virgile et les Aborigènes”, REL 70, 69-91.<br />

– (1994): “Haleso, eroe campano (Virgilio, Eneide 7, 723-730), e i Falisci, coloni calcidesi<br />

(Giustino 20, 1, 13)”, in Braccesi, Lorenzo (1994; ed.): Hesperia: studi sulla grecità di<br />

Occidente. 4 = Università di Venezia Dipartimento di antichità e tradizione classica.<br />

Sezione storico-archeologica Monografie 4 (Roma), 83-94.<br />

18


– (1995) “La fabrication d’un tyran: Mézence chez Virgile”, BAGB 1995, 173-85.<br />

Brisson, Jean-Paul (1966): Virgile. Son temps et le nôtre (Paris; 2 1980).<br />

– (1985): “Note de lecture, Énéide VIII, 424-443”, in Renard, M./Laurens, P. (1985; edd.):<br />

Hommages à Henri Bardon. Collection Latomus 187 (Bruxelles), 70-3.<br />

– (1992): Rome et l’âge d’or de Catulle à Ovide. Vie et mort d’un mythe. Textes à l’appui.<br />

Série histoire classique (Paris).<br />

Broccia, Giuseppe (1990): “Un frammento di Furio Anziate e un verso di Virgilio”, RFIC<br />

118, 43-4.<br />

Brooks, Robert A. (1953): “Discolor aura: Reflections on the Golden Bough”, AJPh 74, 260-<br />

80 = Commager (1966), 143-66.<br />

Brown, Robert D. (1990a): “The Homeric Background to a <strong>Vergilian</strong> Repetition (<strong>Aeneid</strong><br />

1.744 = 3.516)”, AJPh 111, 182-6.<br />

– (1990b): “The Structural Function of the Song of Iopas”, HSPh 93, 315-34.<br />

Brucia, Margaret A. (2001): “The Double Harpalyce, Harpies, and Wordplay at <strong>Aeneid</strong> 1.314-<br />

17”, CQ 51, 305-8.<br />

Bruck, Sabine (1993): Labor in Vergils Aeneis. Europäische Hochschulschriften R. 15 Nr. 61<br />

(Frankfurt am Main).<br />

Brückner, Thomas (1987): Die erste französische Aeneis. Untersuchungen zu Octavien de<br />

Saint-Gelais’ Übersetzung. Mit einer kritischen Edition des VI. Buches. Studia humaniora<br />

9 (Düsseldorf) [M. S. Armstrong, Vergilius 40, 1994, 148-53].<br />

– (1997): “‘Führen’ und ‘geführt werden’ in Vergils Aeneis und Dantes Commedia”,<br />

Deutsches Dante-Jahrbuch 72, 115-37.<br />

Brughera, C. E. (1979): “Rapporti fra alliterazione e verso saturnio nel III libro dell’Eneide<br />

virgiliana”, SRIL 2, 7-18.<br />

Brugnoli, Giorgio (1988): “Verg. Aen. 6, 871”, GIF 40, 229-30.<br />

– (1991): “Sedula nutrix”, in Studi di filologia classica in onore di Giusto Monaco<br />

(Palermo), ii, 931-42.<br />

– (1993): “Il sorriso di Cocito” in Pretagostini, Roberto (1993; ed.): Tradizione e<br />

innovazione nella cultura greca da Omero all’età ellenistica. Scritti in onore di Bruno<br />

Gentili (Roma), iii, 981-8.<br />

– (1996a): “Naves Ideae”, RCCM 38, 45-52.<br />

– (1996b): “Zoografie umbre nella letteratura latina”, in Bonamente, Giorgio/Coarelli,<br />

Filippo (1996; edd.): Assisi e gli Umbri nell’antichità. Atti del Convegno internazionale<br />

Assisi 18-21 dicembre 1991 (Assisi), 139-51.<br />

Bruno, L. (1984): “Rilettura del libro virgiliano degli sports”, QuadFoggia 4, 87-104.<br />

Buchheit, Vinzenz (1963): Vergil über die Sendung Roms. Untersuchungen zum Bellum<br />

Punicum und zur Aeneis. Gymnasium Beiheft 3 (Heidelberg) [V. Pöschl, AAHG 23, 1969,<br />

9-10; A. Wlosok, Gymnasium 80, 1973, 138-9].<br />

Buchheit, Vinzenz (1964a): “Aeneas vor Karthago (zu Aeneis I, 419f. 441ff.)”, Gymnasium<br />

71, 429-33 [V. Pöschl, AAHG 22, 1969, 21].<br />

– (1964b): “Von der Entstehung der Aeneis”, Nachrichten der Gießener<br />

Hochschulgesellschaft 33, 131-43.<br />

– (1973): “Vergilische Geschichtsdeutung”, GB 1, 23-50.<br />

– (1974): “Junos Wandel zum Guten, Verg. Aen. I 279-282”, Gymnasium 81, 499-503.<br />

Büchner, Karl (1955): “P. Vergilius Maro, der Dichter der Römer”, RE VIII A 1/2, 1021-1486<br />

= Stuttgart 1956, 243-315 = Virgilio. Il poeta dei Romani. Edizione italiana a cura di Maria<br />

Bonaria (Brescia, 1963; Seconda edizione a cura di Elisabetta Riganti, Brescia, 1986).<br />

Buisel de Sequeiros, María Delia (1985/6): “Amor y politica en la Eneide”, Argos 9/10, 7-22.<br />

Burck, Erich (1958): “Das Menschenbild im römischen Epos”, Gymnasium 65, 121-46 =<br />

Oppermann (1962), 233-69 = id. (1966): Vom Menschenbild in der römischen Literatur.<br />

Ausgewählte Schriften (Heidelberg), 283-304.<br />

19


– (1975): “Die Rolle des Dichters und der Gesellschaft in der augusteischen Dichtung”, A&A<br />

21, 12-35 = id. (1966): Vom Menschenbild in der römischen Literatur. Ausgewählte<br />

Schriften (Heidelberg), 307-34.<br />

– (1979): “Vergils ‘Aeneis’”, in id. (1979; ed.): Das römische Epos. Grundriß der<br />

Literaturgeschichte nach Gattungen (Darmstadt), 51-119.<br />

– (1980): “Optima cum pulchris animis Romana iuventas (Verg. Aen. 10, 362-79; Liv. 22,<br />

50, 4-12)”, Informationen zum Altsprachlichen Unterricht 2, 13-26; = id. (1981): Vom<br />

Menschenbild in der römischen Literatur: Ausgewählte Schriften. Zweiter Teil. Bibliothek<br />

der Klassischen Altertumswissenschaft NF 2. R. 72 (Heidelberg), 335-79.<br />

– (1981): “Epische Bestattungsszenen. Ein literar-historischer Versuch”, in id. (1981): Vom<br />

Menschenbild in der römischen Literatur: Ausgewählte Schriften. Zweiter Teil. Bibliothek<br />

der Klassischen Altertumswissenschaft NF 2. R. 72 (Heidelberg), 429-87.<br />

Burden, Michael (1998; ed.): A Woman Scorn’d: Responses to the Dido Myth (London) [L.<br />

Morgan, JRS 90, 2000, 240].<br />

Burgersdijk, Diederik (2003): “Enjambement in Aeneis 4”, Lampas 36, 167-87.<br />

Burian, J. (1985): “Die Vergangenheit Roms im Rahmen der Augusteischen<br />

Gegenwartspolitik”, Klio 67, 29-34.<br />

Burke, jr., Paul F. (1976): “Virgil’s Amata”, Vergilius 22, 24-9.<br />

– (1978): “Drances infensus: A Study in <strong>Vergilian</strong> Character Portrayal”, TAPhA 108, 15-20.<br />

– (1979): “Roman Rites for the Dead and <strong>Aeneid</strong> 6”, CJ 74, 220-8.<br />

Burkhardt, Friedrich (1971): “Zur doppelten Enallage”, Gymnasium 78, 407-21.<br />

Burnell, Peter (1982): “Aeneas’ Reaction to the Defeat of Troy (Aen. 2.298ff.)”, G&R 29, 63-<br />

70.<br />

– (1987): “The Death of Turnus and Roman Morality”, G&R 34, 186-200.<br />

Burrow, Colin (1993): Epic Romance: Homer to Milton (Oxford).<br />

– (1997a): “Virgil in English Translation”, in Martindale (1997a), 21-37.<br />

– (1997b): “Virgils, from Dante to Milton”, in Martindale (1997a), 79-90.<br />

Burzacchini, Gabriele (2002): “Flectere si nequeo superos, Acheronta movebo (Verg. Aen.<br />

VII 312): Furores e guerra nel Lazio (con osservazioni sull’influsso di Euripide nel VII<br />

canto dell’Eneide”, AVM n. s. 70, 19-61.<br />

Butler, George F. (1996/7): “Fathers and Sons in Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong> and Book 6 of Paradise<br />

Lost”, CML 17, 265-77.<br />

Cairns, Francis (1972): Generic Composition in Greek and Roman Poetry (Edinburgh).<br />

– (1977): “Geography and Nationalism in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, LCM 2, 109-16 [~ Cairns (1989),<br />

109-28].<br />

– (1985): “Concord in the <strong>Aeneid</strong> of Virgil”, Klio 67, 210-5 [~ Cairns (1989), 85-108].<br />

– (1989): Virgil’s Augustan Epic (Cambridge) [Brooke, JACT Review 1989, 27-8; A.<br />

Novara, REL 67, 1989, 297-8; A. Wankenne, LEC 57, 1989, 370; D. Fowler, G&R 37,<br />

1990, 106-8; P. Hardie, JRS 80, 1990, 209-10; N. Horsfall, CR 40, 1990, 28-31; J. F.<br />

Miller, Vergilius 36, 1990, 137-9; C. Renger-Zorn, Gymnasium 97, 1990, 268-70; P.<br />

Tordeur, AC 59, 1990, 359-60; N. Gross, CW 84, 1990/1, 428-9; S. Mack, CO 68, 1990/1,<br />

151; G. B. Conte, Gnomon 63, 1991, 486-97; P. Heuzé, Latomus 50, 1991, 886-7; D. O.<br />

Ross, CPh 86, 1991, 76-81; G. Vessey, PVS 20, 1991, 90-1; S. F. Wiltshire, AJPh 112,<br />

1991, 565-7; B. W. Boyd, CJ 87, 1991-2, 182-6; J. Ortall, Helmantica 47, 1996, 142-3].<br />

Calcante, Cesare Marco (1990): “Genus grave: strategie semiologiche dei genera dicendi”,<br />

SCO 40, 139-59.<br />

Caldini Montanari, Roberta (1993): “A proposito di Aen. 7, 543”, A&R 38, 210-3.<br />

Callaway, Cathy (1994): “The Typical Oath-Scene in Vergil: Pattern and Divergence”,<br />

Vergilius 40, 37-48.<br />

20


Cambronne, Patrice (1980): “Note sur le catalogue des hommes politiques dans le discours<br />

d’Anchises (Virgile, Én. VI. 756-854)”, Orphea voce 1980, 11-22.<br />

– (1985): “L’hydre de Lerne dans Virgile, Én. 6, 63”, Orphea voce 2, 9-20.<br />

– (1994): “Princeps: esquisse d’une histoire d’une idéologie: du principat au dominat”, in<br />

Balland, André/Dubois, Claude-Gilbert (1994; edd.): Imperium Romanum: images<br />

romaines du pouvoir. Eidôlon 43 (Bordeaux), 55-89.<br />

Campbell, Bruce G. (1991): “The Use of is for Semantic and Structural Foregrounding in the<br />

<strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Language and Style 24, 333-50.<br />

– (1996): “Textual Functions of Conjunction in Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, in Rosén, Hannah (1996;<br />

ed.): Aspects of Latin. Papers from the Seventh International Colloquium on Latin<br />

Linguistics, Jerusalem, April 1993. Innsbrucker Beiträge zur Sprachwissenschaft 86<br />

(Innsbruck), 577-84.<br />

– (2001): Performing and Processing the <strong>Aeneid</strong>. Berkeley Insights in Linguistics and<br />

Semiotics 48 (New York, etc.) [N. W. Bernstein, CR 52, 2002, 382; M. Lobe, Gymnasium<br />

110, 2003, 584-6; J.-Y. Maleuvre, LEC 71, 2003, 204-5].<br />

Campelo, María Florencia/Cardigni, Julieta (2001): “Muerte fundadora: la Eneida de<br />

Virgilio”. CFC 20, 57-65.<br />

Camps, William Anthony (1954): “A Note on the Structure of the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, CQ 4, 214-15.<br />

– (1959): “A Second Note on the Structure of the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, CQ 9, 53-6.<br />

– (1969): An Introduction to Virgil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong> (Oxford) [F. Loretto, Gymnasium 78, 1971,<br />

481-2.<br />

– (1983): “Lettura del primo libro dell’Eneide”, in Gigante (1983), 13-30.<br />

– (1986): “Some Personal Reflections on Virgilian and Homeric Narrative”, PVS 18, 133-41.<br />

Canali, Luca (1976): L’Eros freddo. Studi sull’Eneide. Filologia e critica 16 (Roma) [F.<br />

Capponi, Latomus 37, 1978, 309].<br />

Cancik, Hubert (1980): “Der Eingang in die Unterwelt. Ein religionswissenschaftlicher<br />

Versuch zu Vergil, Aeneis 6, 236-272”, AU 23.2, 55-69.<br />

– (2004): “Ein Volk gründen. Ein myth-historisches Modell in Vergils Aeneis”, in Bierl,<br />

Anton/Schmitt, Arbogast/Willi, Andreas (edd.): Antike Literatur in neuer Deutung.<br />

Festschrift für Joachim Latacz anlässlich seines 70. Geburtstages (München/Leipzig),<br />

307-23.<br />

Cantilena, M. (1983): “Una similitudine virgiliana (Aen. I 498-502)”, in Mastrocinque, A.<br />

(ed.): Omaggio a Piero Treves (Padova), 57-70.<br />

Capdeville, Gérard (1988): “Virgile, le labyrinthe et les dauphins”, in Hommages à Henri<br />

Bonniec. Res sacrae. Collection Latomus 201 (Bruxelles), 65-82.<br />

– (1992): “La jeunesse de Camille”, MEFRA 104, 303-38 = Moreau, Alain (1992; ed.):<br />

L’initiation. Actes du colloque international de Montpellier, 11-14 avril 1991<br />

(Montpellier), i, 143-56.<br />

Capozza, Maria (1997): “A proposito del Timavo ‘euganeo’”, Patavium 5.9, 61-4.<br />

Cappelli, R. (1993): “La legenda di Enea nel racconto figurato degli Aemilii”, Ostraka 2, 57-<br />

71.<br />

Capponi, Filippo (1982): “Nota a Virgilio (Aen., 5, 213-217)”, Helmantica 33, 235-43 = Oroz<br />

Reta (1982a), 31-9.<br />

– (1988): “Appunti sulla tecnica virgiliana del contrasto (Aen. V)”, GIF 40, 77-85.<br />

Caranci Alfano, L. (1981): “Virgilio poeta della felicità perduta”, in id. (1981): Studia<br />

humanitatis. Fra tradizione e modernità (Napoli), 19-30.<br />

Carbonero, Oreste (1989): “La figura di Elena di Troia nei poeti latini da Lucrezio a Ovidio”,<br />

Orpheus 10, 378-91.<br />

Cardinale, Philip (2002): “Lord Byron, Virgil, and Thyrza”, Vergilius 48, 55-66.<br />

Cardinali, Luca (1995): “Tradizione annalistica e versione virgiliana della figura di Amata”,<br />

Prometheus 21, 256-70.<br />

21


Cardwell, Richard/Hamilton, Janet (1986; edd.): Virgil in a Cultural Tradition: Essays to<br />

Celebrate the Bimillennium, University of Nottingham Monographs in the Humanities 4<br />

(Nottingham) [D. Fowler, G&R 34, 1987, 219; S. J. Harrison, CR 37, 1987, 175-7; J. E.<br />

Rexine, Vergilius 33, 1987, 127-30].<br />

Carney, Elizabeth D. (1986): “City-founding in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, in Deroux, Carl (1986; ed.):<br />

Studies in Latin Literature and Roman History. 4. Collection Latomus 196 (Bruxelles),<br />

422-30.<br />

– (1988): “Reginae in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Athenaeum 66, 427-45.<br />

Carrara, Paolo (1980): “Un’eco antimachea in Verg., Aen. VI 280 (ferrei Eumenidum<br />

thalami)”, Prometheus 6, 271-3.<br />

Carter, Matthew A. S. (2002): “Vergilium uestigare: <strong>Aeneid</strong> 12.587-8”, CQ 52, 615-7.<br />

Casadio, Valerio (1986/7): “Note a Virgilio”, MCr 21/2, 339-41.<br />

– (1988/9): “Verg. Aen. V 816 ss.”, MCr 23/4, 305-6<br />

Casali, Sergio (1995/6): “Aeneas and the Doors of the Temple of Apollo”, CJ 91, 1-9.<br />

– (1999): “Facta impia (Virgil, <strong>Aeneid</strong> 4.596-9), CQ 49, 203-11.<br />

– (1999/2000): “Staring at the Pun: <strong>Aeneid</strong> 4.435-36 Reconsidered”, CJ 95, 103-18.<br />

– (2000): “Il messagero Idmon e la consapevolezza di morte in Turno: una nota sulla poetica<br />

dei nomi in Virgilio”. Scholia 2, 39-48 = “The Messenger Idmon and Turnus’<br />

Foreknowledge of His Death: A Note on the Poetics of Names in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Vergilius<br />

46, 114-24.<br />

– (2003): “Impius Aeneas, impia Hypsipyle: narrazioni dall’Eneide alla Tebaide di Stazio”,<br />

Scholia 12, 60-68.<br />

Castagnoli, Ferdinando (1977): “Topografia dei Campi Flegrei”, Atti del Convegno<br />

internationale I campi flegrei nell’archeologia e nella storia (Roma), 41-79.<br />

– (1981): “Lazio virgiliano”, in Paratore (1981), 83-110.<br />

– (1982): “La leggenda di Enea nel Lazio”, Studi Romani 30, 1-15 ~ Atti del Convegno<br />

nazionale (1984), ii, 283-303.<br />

– (1983a): “Commentaires topographiques à l’Énéide”, CRAI 1983, 205-15.<br />

– (1983b): “Commento topografico a Virgilio, Eneide VIII, 720-2”, RAL 37, 121-5.<br />

Castellani, Victor (1987): “Anna and Juturna in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Vergilius 33, 49-57.<br />

Castresana, Ricardo (1982): “Cielo, mar y tierra en Virgilio”, Helmantica 33, 245-58.<br />

Catrein, Christoph (2003): Vertauschte Sinne: Untersuchungen zur Synästhesie in der<br />

römischen Dichtung. Beiträge zur Altertumskunde 178 (München/Leipzig) [E. J. Kenney,<br />

BMCR 2003.09.46].<br />

Catto, Bonnie A. (1988): “The Labyrinth on the Cumaean Gates and Aeneas’ Escape from<br />

Troy”, Vergilius 34, 71-6.<br />

– (1989): “<strong>Vergilian</strong> Inversion of Lucretius in Anchises’ Exposition of the Soul”, Vergilius<br />

35, 60-9.<br />

Cavarzere, Alberto (2002): “Il πολύτροπος Enea”, Lexis 20, 79-86 = Belloni, Luigi/de Finis,<br />

Lia/Moretti, Gabriella (edd.): L’officina ellenistica. Poesia dotta e popolare in Grecia e<br />

Roma. Labirinti. Collana del Dipartimento di Scienze Filologiche e Storiche (Trento,<br />

2003), 369-80.<br />

Ceccarelli, Lucio (1986): L’allitterazione a vocale interposta variabile in Virgilio. Collana di<br />

filologia classica 4 (L’Aquila/Roma) [F. Cupaiuolo, BStudLat 17, 1987, 133-4; J. Dangel,<br />

REL 65, 1987, 296-8; S. J. Harrison, CR 38, 1988, 411-2; Soubiran, RPh 62,, 1988, 165-6;<br />

J. Hellegouarc’h, Latomus 48, 1989, 685-6].<br />

Chambelland, I. (1983): “De l’ignorance à la connaissance. Énéide VI, un poème de<br />

l’initiation”, Recherches sur l’imaginaire 10, 27-40.<br />

Chausserie-Laprée, Jean-Pierre (1979): “Une lecture des organisations sonores dans la poésie<br />

dactylique”, REL 57, 355-82.<br />

– (1996): “Virgile et l’alexandrin”, Latomus 55, 1996, 591-604.<br />

22


Chênerie, Maurice (1984): “Elision et accent de mot au quatrième pied de l’hexamètre<br />

virgilien”, RBPh 58, 63-77.<br />

Chevallier, Raymond (1978; ed.): Présence de Virgile. Actes du Colloque des 9, 11 et 12<br />

Décembre 1976 (Paris E. N. S., Tours). Caesarodunum XIII bis. Numéro spécial (Paris)<br />

[A. Barchiesi, ASNP 8, 1978, 1543-8; C.-M. Ternes, REL 56, 1978, 513-5].<br />

Chew, Kathryn Sue (2002): “Inscius pastor: Ignorance and Aeneas’ Identity in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”,<br />

Latomus 61, 616-27.<br />

Chiarini, Gioacchino (1995): “Il viaggio nella letteratura greco-latina: da Ulisse ad Apollonio<br />

re di Tiro (con una nuova proposta di lettura del viaggio di Enea)”, in Rosa,<br />

Fabio/Zambon, Francesco (1995; edd.): Pothos: il viaggio, la nostalgia (Trento), 61-76.<br />

Christenson, D. (2002): Superbia in Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>: Who’s Haughty and Who’s not?”,<br />

Scholia 11, 44-54.<br />

Christmann, Eckhard (1976): “Der Tod des Aeneas und die Pforten des Schlafes”, in<br />

Görgemanns, Herwig/Schmidt, Ernst A. (1976; edd.): Studien zum antiken Epos. Beiträge<br />

zur klassischen Philologie 72 (Meisenheim am Glan), 251-79.<br />

Ciccone, Nancy (2002): “Look Who’s Talking: A Narratological Approach”, in<br />

Anderson/Quartarone (2002), 176-81.<br />

Cizek, Eugen (2002): “Virgile et Tacite: une onomatopée semblable”, in Defosse, Pol (2002;<br />

ed.): Hommages à Carl Deroux. I: Poésie. Collection Latomus 266 (Bruxelles), 123-6.<br />

Clark, Christine (1993/4): “Regina bacchatur: Sexual Roles and Politics in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 7”, NECN<br />

21, 62-7.<br />

Clark, Raymond J. (1977a): “Misenus and the Cumaean Landfall: Originality in Vergil’s Use<br />

of Topography and Tradition”, TAPhA 107, 63-71.<br />

– (1977b): “Vergil, <strong>Aeneid</strong>, 6, 40ff. and the Cumaean Sibyl’s Cave“, Latomus 36, 482-95.<br />

– (1979): Catabasis: Vergil and the Wisdom-Tradition (Amsterdam) [G. K. Galinsky,<br />

Vergilius 26, 1980, 80-1; J. Perret, REL 58, 1980, 602-3; P. Walcot, G&R 27, 1980, 203; P.<br />

Chuvin, RPh 55, 1981, 365-6; F. Graf, Gnomon 53, 1981, 545-8; D. E. Hill, Phoenix 35,<br />

1981, 98-100; N. Horsfall, JRS 71, 1981, 220-1; M. Pulbrook, Hermathena 130/31, 1981,<br />

123; C. Segal, AJPh 102, 1981, 237-9; D. Knecht, AC 51, 1982, 451-2; W. R. Johnson,<br />

CPh 78, 1983, 90-1; M. Scarsi, Sandalion 6/7, 1983/4, 287-9].<br />

– (1991): “Vergil’s Poetic Treatment of Cumaean Geography”, Vergilius 37, 60-8.<br />

– (1992): “Vergil, <strong>Aeneid</strong> 6: The Bough by Hades’ Gate”, in Wilhelm/Jones (1992), 167-78.<br />

– (1995): “Solamenque mali. The Hemistich at Vergil, <strong>Aeneid</strong> 3.661”, SO 70, 68-71.<br />

– (1996): “The Avernian Sibyl’s Cave: From Military Tunnel to Mediaeval Spa”, C&M 47,<br />

217-43.<br />

– (1998): “The Reality of Hector’s Ghost in Aeneas’ Dream”, Latomus 57, 832-41.<br />

– (2000): “P. Oxy. 2078, Vat. Gr. 2228, and Vergil’s Charon”, CQ 50, 192-6.<br />

– (2001): “How Virgil Expanded the Underworld in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 6”, PCPhS 47, 103-16.<br />

– (2003): “The Cerberus-like Function of the Gorgons in Virgil’s Underworld”, CQ 53, 308-<br />

9.<br />

Clarke, W. M. (1972): “Intentional Rhyme in Vergil and Ovid”, TAPhA 103, 49-77.<br />

– (1976): “Intentional Alliteration in Vergil and Ovid”, Latomus 35, 276-300.<br />

Clausen, Wendell (1964): “An Interpretation of the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, HSPh 68, 139-47 = Commager<br />

(1966), 75-88 = Hardie (1999b), iii, 65-73.<br />

– (1976): “Virgil and Parthenius”, HSPh 80, 179.<br />

– (1987): Virgil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong> and the Tradition of Hellenistic Poetry. Sather Classical Lectures<br />

51 (Berkeley, Los Angeles, London) [D. Fowler, G&R 34, 1987, 218; J. K. Newman,<br />

Vergilius 33, 1987, 114-8; A. Novara, REL 65, 1987, 329-30; G. A. Privitera, GIF 1987,<br />

246-50; N. Horsfall, BStudLat 18, 1988, 124-7; N. Gross, CW 82, 1988/9, 325-6; K.<br />

Galinsky, AJPh 110, 1989, 171-3; P. Hardie, CPh 84, 1989, 354-8; S. J. Harrison, JRS 79,<br />

1989, 205-6; A. Deremetz, Latomus 49, 1990, 493-5; A. Traina, RFIC 118, 1990, 211-14].<br />

23


– (1995a): “Decorum in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, AVM 63, 19-27.<br />

– (1995b): “The ‘Harvard School’”, in Horsfall (1995c), 313-4.<br />

– (2002): Virgil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>: Decorum, Allusion, and Ideology. Beiträge zur Altertumskunde<br />

162 (München und Leipzig) [B. W. Boyd, BMCR 2002.10.35; S. Casali, JRS 93, 2003,<br />

368-9; A. Novarra, REL 81, 2003, 382; L. Dechamps, Gnomon 76, 2004, 636-7; A. G.<br />

McKay, Vergilius 50, 2004, 170-5 ].<br />

Clauss, James J. (1988): “Vergil and the Euphrates Revisited”, AJPh 109, 309-20.<br />

– (2002): “Vergil’s Aeneas: The Best of the Romans”, in Anderson/Quartarone (2002), 87-<br />

98.<br />

Clay, Diskin (1988): “The Archeology of the Temple to Juno in Carthage (Aen. 1.446-93)”,<br />

CPh 83, 195-205.<br />

Cleary, Vincent J. (1976-87): “<strong>Aeneid</strong>a: Important Work on the <strong>Aeneid</strong> (1962-76) for<br />

Secondary School Teachers”, Vergilius 22, 1976, 2-13 [= CJ 74, 1978/9, 41-52 und Lawall<br />

(1979), 5-16]; “ … (1976-83)”, Vergilius 30, 1984, 32-7; “ … (1984-87)”, Vergilius 33,<br />

1987, 101-10.<br />

– (1982): “To the Victor Belong the spolia: A Study in <strong>Vergilian</strong> Imagery”, Vergilius 28, 15-<br />

29.<br />

– (1987): “The Music of the <strong>Aeneid</strong>: Poetry of Celebration, Song, Prophecy”, AugAge 6, 92-<br />

107.<br />

Clément, Séverine (2000): “Fama et le poète: pour une poétique de la monstuosité dans<br />

l’Énéide, BAGB 2000, 309-28.<br />

Closa Farrés, J. (1986): “Entorn la topografia mítica d’Hermes. A propòsit d’uns versos<br />

d’Horaci i Virgili”, in ΜΥΘΟΣ. Grup de recerca sobre l’imaginari i mitocrítica. Colloqui<br />

internacional sobre els valors heurístics de la figura mítica d’Hermes. Universitat de<br />

Barcelona, Facultat de Filologia, Departament de Filologia françesa i provençal,<br />

Barcelona, 21-22 de març de 1985 (Barcelona), 71-97.<br />

Cloud, Duncan (1993): “Roman Poetry and Anti-militarism”, in Rich, John/Shipley, Graham<br />

(1993; edd.): War and <strong>Society</strong> in the Roman World. Leicester-Nottingham Studies in<br />

Ancient <strong>Society</strong> 5 (London), 113-38.<br />

Cockburn, Gordon T. (1992): “Aeneas and the Gates of Sleep: An Etymological Approach”,<br />

Phoenix 46, 362-4.<br />

Codoñer, Carmen (1982): “Comentario a un pasaje de la Eneida”, Helmantica 33, 259-67.<br />

Coffey, Michael (1961): “The Subject Matter of Virgil’s Similes”, BICS 8, 63-75.<br />

Cohon, Robert (1991): “Vergil and Pheidias: The Shield of Aeneas and of Athena Parthenos”,<br />

Vergilius 37, 22-30.<br />

Colaizzi, Randall (2002): “Homer, Pietas, and the Cycle of Duels in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 10 and 12”, in<br />

Anderson/Quartarone (2002), 99-113.<br />

Coleiro, Edward (1979): “Punti focali nell’Eneide”, in Studi su Varrone, sulla retorica,<br />

storiografia e poesia latina. Scritti in onore di Benedetto Riposati (Milano), 85-99.<br />

– (1981): “Corrispondenze e parallelismi strutturali nella composizione tematica<br />

dell’Eneide”, in Avallone, R. (1981): Ricordo di Oreste Badellino 1896-1975 (Torino),<br />

133-41.<br />

– (1983): Tematica e struttura dell’Eneide di Virgilio (Amsterdam) [L. Deschamps, REA 86,<br />

1984, 359-60; K. Galinsky, Vergilius 31, 1985, 87-8; F. Robertson, G&R 32, 1985, 87; P.<br />

Tordeur, AC 54, 1985, 391-2; A. Traina, RFIC 113, 1985, 120; A. Vasaly, Latomus 44,<br />

1985, 667-8; M. Lausberg, Gnomon 58, 1986, 549-52; N. Horsfall, CR 37, 1987, 102].<br />

– (1991): “Il punto focale in Virgilio”, in Studi di filologia classica in onore di Giusto<br />

Monaco (Palermo), ii, 879-96.<br />

Coleman, Robert (1982): “The Gods in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, G&R 29, 143-68 = McAuslan/Walcot<br />

(1990), 39-64.<br />

24


Collart, J. (1980): “Aspects de l’expressivité métrique chez Virgile”, in Le Bonniec,<br />

Henri/Vallet, G. (1980; edd.): Mélanges de littérature et d’épigraphie latines, d’histoire<br />

ancienne et d’archéologie. Hommage à la mémoire de Pierre Wuilleumier. Collection<br />

d’Études Latines. Série Scientifique 35 (Paris), 99-106.<br />

Colonna, G. (1980): “Virgilio, Cortona e la leggenda etrusca di Dardano”, ArchClass 32, 1-<br />

15.<br />

Colucci, L. (1981): Prospettive per una interpretazione del dativo in Virgilio (Roma).<br />

– (1982): Strutture sintattiche e stilistiche in Virgilio. It clamor caelo. Corso di letter. lat. a.<br />

a. 1981-1982 (Chieti) [M. Squillante Saccone, BStud Lat 12, 1982, 256-8; F. Murru,<br />

Vichiana 14, 1985, 351-6].<br />

Commager, Steele (1966; ed.): Virgil: A Collection of Critical Essays (Englewood Cliffs, NJ).<br />

– (1981): “Fateful Words: Some Conversations in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 4”, Arethusa 14, 101-14.<br />

Comparetti, Domenico ( 2 1896): Virgilio nel medio evo. 2 voll. (Firenze); Nuova edizione a<br />

cura di G. Pasquali (Firenze, 1937-41) ~ Virgil im Mittelalter. Aus dem Italienischen<br />

übersetzt von Hans Dütschke (Leipzig, 1875) ~ Virgil in the Middle Ages (London/New<br />

York, 1895).<br />

Conington, J./Nettleship, H./Haverfield, F. (1883-1898): The Works of Virgil with a<br />

Commentary. 3 voll. (London) [Aeneis: ii = 1-6, 4 1884; iii = 7-12, 3 1883; reprint<br />

Hildesheim, 1963].<br />

Connors, Catherine (1992/3): “Seeing Cypresses in Virgil”, CJ 88, 1-17.<br />

Conte, Gian Biago (1970): “Il balteo di Pallante”, RFIC 98, 292-300 ~ “Il balteo di Pallante:<br />

modelli antropologici e retorica letteraria”, in Conte (1980), 96-108 = Conte (1984b), 97-<br />

107 ~ “The Baldric of Pallas: Cultural Models and Literary Rhetoric”, in Conte (1986),<br />

185-95 = Hardie (1999b), iv, 336-44.<br />

– (1976): “Proemi a mezzo”, RCCM 18, 263-73 = Conte (1980), 122-36 = Conte (1984b),<br />

121-33 ~ “Proems in the Middle”, YCS 29, 1992, 147-59.<br />

– (1978a): “L’episodio di Elena nel secondo dell’Eneide. Modelli strutturali e critica<br />

dell’autenticità”, RFIC 106, 53-62 = Conte (1980), 109-21 = Conte (1984b), 109-19 ~<br />

“The Helen Episode in the Second Book of the <strong>Aeneid</strong>: Structural Models and a Question<br />

of Authenticity”, in Conte (1986), 196-207.<br />

– (1978b): “Saggio d’interpretazione dell’Eneide: ideologia e forma del contenuto”, MD 1,<br />

11-48 = Conte (1980), 44-95 = Conte (1984b), 55-96 ~ “Virgil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>: Toward an<br />

Interpretation”, in Conte (1986), 141-84.<br />

– (1980): Il genere e i suoi confini. Cinque studi sulla poesia di Virgilio. Nuova cultura<br />

(Torino) [Fantuzzi, L&S 15, 1980, 722-5; R. Lesueur, REL 58, 1980, 540-2; Murru,<br />

Vichiana 9, 1980, 204-8; M. Squillante Saccone, BStudLat 10, 1980, 247-8; H. Bardon,<br />

Latomus 40, 1981, 846-8; R. O. A. M. Lyne, JRS 71, 1981, 221-2; E. Pianezzola, RFIC<br />

110, 1982, 329-33].<br />

– (1982a): “Istituti letterari e stili di ricerca: una discussione”, MD 8, 123-39.<br />

– (1982b): “Verso una nuova esegesi virgiliana: revisioni e propositi”, in Virgilio e noi<br />

(1982), 73-98 = Conte (1984b), 135-59.<br />

– (1983): “Fra ripetizione e imitazione. Virgilio, Eneide 10, 24”, RFIC 111, 150-7.<br />

– (1984a): “Aeneas patiens”, in Atti del Convegno nazionale (1984), 55-65<br />

– (1984b): Virgilio. Il genere e i suoi confini. Modelli del senso, modello della forma in una<br />

poesia colta e sentimentale. Coll. Saggi blu (Milano) [M. G. Parisi, QC 6, 1984, 635-45;<br />

A. Saccone, BStudLat 14, 1984, 130-1; E. Pianezzola, RFIC 113, 1985, 475-7; G.<br />

Puccioni, Orpheus 6, 1985, 481-4; Belletti, Aevum 60, 1986, 176-7; L. N. Quartarone<br />

Salanitro, Sileno 12, 1986, 169-70; R. Rieks, Gnomon 59, 1987, 696-701].<br />

– (1986): The Rhetoric of Imitation: Genre and Poetic Memory in Virgil and Other Latin<br />

Poets (Ithaca, NY) [N. Horsfall, CR 37, 1987, 304-5; J. F. Miller, Vergilius 33, 1987, 118-<br />

121; M. C. J. Putnam, AJPh 108, 1987, 787-93; W. Anderson, CLS 41, 1989, 100-2; W. W.<br />

25


Briggs, CO 66, 1989, 98-9; D. Feeney, JRS 79, 1989, 206-7; C. Kallendorf, Helios 18,<br />

1991, 75-6].<br />

– (1992): “La retorica dell’imitazione come retorica della cultura: qualche ripensamento”,<br />

FAM 2, 41-52 = “‘Rhetoric of Imitation’ as Rhetoric of Culture: Some New Thoughts”,<br />

Vergilius 38, 1992, 45-55.<br />

– (1999): “The Virgilian Paradox: An Epic of Drama and Sentiment”, PCPhS 45, 17-42.<br />

– (2002): Virgilio: l’epica del sentimento. Biblioteca Einaudi 144 (Torino).<br />

Conti, Marina (1982): “I discorsi di Giove a Venere e Giunone nei libri 1 e 12 dell’Eneide”,<br />

Helmantica 33, 269-79 = Oroz Reta (1982a), 65-75.<br />

Conway, Robert Seymour (1928): “The Architecture of the Epic”, in Harvard Lectures on the<br />

<strong>Vergilian</strong> Age (Cambridge, MA), 129-49.<br />

– (1935): <strong>Aeneid</strong>os liber I. Ed. with Notes (Cambridge).<br />

Cook, Patrick J. (2002): “Teaching the <strong>Aeneid</strong> with Milton’s Paradise Lost”, in<br />

Anderson/Quartarone (2002), 196-200.<br />

Cordier, A. (1939): Études sur le vocabulaire épique dans l’Enéide. Collection d’Études<br />

Latines. Série Scientifique 16 (Paris).<br />

Cormier, Raymond J. (1988): “Qui détient le rameau d’or devant Charon? (Énéide VI.405-<br />

407)”, RhM 131, 151-6.<br />

– (1991): “A Preliminary Checklist of Early Medieval Glossed <strong>Aeneid</strong> Manuscripts”,<br />

StudMed 3a ser. 32, 971-9.<br />

– (1993): “The Antlers of Silvia’s Stag: A Note on the Chronology of the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, CW 86,<br />

495-6.<br />

Cornell, T. J. (1977): “Aeneas’ Arrival in Italy”, LCM 2, 77-83.<br />

Costanza, Salvatore (1990): “Virgilio e Dorione metafrasti di Omero, Od. IX, 481-482 nel<br />

giudizio di Mezenate e di Seneca il Vecchio”, Sileno 16, 51-81.<br />

Courcelle, Pierre/Courcelle, Jean (1984): Lecteurs paiens et lecteurs chrétiens de l’Énéide. 1.<br />

Les témoignages littéraires; 2. Les manuscrits illustrés de l’Énéide du X e au XV e siècle.<br />

Mémoires de l’Académie des inscriptions et belles-lettres n. s. 4 (Paris) [B. Forte, Vergilius<br />

34, 1988, 189-90; B. Schneider, Gnomon 61, 1989, 253-5].<br />

Courtney, Edward (1981): “The Formation of the Text of Vergil”, BICS 28, 13-29.<br />

– (1988): “Vergil’s Military Catalogues and Their Antecedents”, Vergilius 34, 3-8.<br />

Cova, Pier Vincenzo (1963): L’omerismo alessandrinistico dell’Eneide (Brescia).<br />

– (1984a): “Arte allusiva e lettura di Virgilio”, CCC 5, 43-70.<br />

– (1984b): “L’episodio virgiliano di Elena”, in Atti del Convegno mondiale (1984), i, 123-47.<br />

– (1992) “Per una lettura narratologica del libro terzo dell’Eneide”, in id. [et al.] (1992;<br />

edd.): Letteratura latina dell’Italia settentrionale. Cinque studi. Scienze filologhiche e<br />

storia – Brescia – 5 (Milano), 87-139.<br />

– (1994; ed.): Il libro terzo dell’Eneide. Pubblicazioni dell’Università cattolica. Biblioteca di<br />

aevum antiquum 5 (Milano) [P. Fedeli, Aufidus 9, 1995, 150-1; R. Lesueur, REL 73, 1995,<br />

263-4; P. Rabozzi, BStudLat 25, 1995, 221-3; A. Traina, RFIC 123, 1995, 354-8; A.<br />

Videau, RPh 69, 1995, 394-5; D. Gagliardi, Orpheus 17, 1996, 171-4; P. Hamblenne, LEC<br />

64, 1996, 194-5; P. Hardie, CR 46, 1996, 241-2; N. Horsfall, Vergilius 42, 1996, 143-5; J.-<br />

Y. Maleuvre, RBPh 74, 1996, 208-10; M. G. Vallebella, Maia 48, 1996, 225-32; O.<br />

Devillers, LEC 65, 1997, 86-7; J. Dion, Latomus 56, 1997, 908-10; C. Moreschini,<br />

Humanitas 52, 1997, 152-3; P. Venini, Athenaeum 85, 1997, 341-2; D. Gall, Gnomon 70,<br />

1998, 401-4; F. Cupaiuolo, BStudLat 29, 1999, 224-5; G. Scarpat, Paideia 56, 2001, 210-<br />

2].<br />

– (1999): “Dal libro terzo all’ottavo dell’Eneide: dal passato verso il futuro”, Aevum(ant) 12,<br />

159-71.<br />

– (2004): “L’Eneide: il racconto di formazione contro le strutture epiche”, BStudLat 34, 7-<br />

17.<br />

26


Cowherd, Carrie (1986): “Dido sacerdos”, AugAge 5, 17-21.<br />

Cox, Fiona (1997): “Envoi: The Death of Virgil”, in Martindale (1997a), 327-36.<br />

Crabbe, Anna E. (1978-80): “Georgic IV and the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, PVS 17, 10-31.<br />

Cressey, J. (1978): “Two Notes on Epic: An Homeric Simile, Iliad 3.221-3; Life and Death in<br />

<strong>Aeneid</strong> 6”, LCM 3, 221-3.<br />

– (1981): “Opera in Vergil”, LCM 6, 139.<br />

– (1983): “A Nice Derangement of Epitaphs: Vergil, <strong>Aeneid</strong> 3.714”, LCM 8, 64.<br />

Creţia, Gabriela. (1984): “Un schéma narratif archaïque dans l’Énéide”, StudClas 22, 41-3.<br />

– (1992-4): “La triple initiation d’Énée”, StudClas 28-30, 39-47.<br />

– (1998-2000): “Virgile et le folklore roumain”, StudClas 34-36, 45-57.<br />

Cristante, Lucio (1990/1): “Nota a Virgilio, Eneide VIII 694-5”, AIV 149, 1-6.<br />

Cristóbal López, Vicente (1988): “Tempestades épicas”, CIF 14, 125-48.<br />

– (1988/9): “Camila: génesis, función y tradición de un personaje virgiliano”, ÉClas 31, 43-<br />

61.<br />

– (1993): “Virgilio, Troya, Roma y Eneas”, Polis 5, 59-72.<br />

– (1998): Héleno y Andrómaca en la Eneida (III 289-507): prospección y retrospección”,<br />

CFC(L) 14, 83-91.<br />

– (1999): “El episodio de Polidoro en la Eneida (III 19-68)”, CFC(L) 16, 27-44.<br />

– (2000): Virgilio. Biblioteca de la literatura latina: escritores y textos 8 (Madrid) [E.<br />

Fernández, EClás 43, 2001, 148-9].<br />

Cristofoli, Roberto (1993-5): “L’iniziazione inconsapevole: Camilla e la poetica della civiltà”,<br />

AFLPer(Class) 17, 27-45.<br />

– (1996): “Note di lettura agli episodi di Eurialo e Niso”, GIF 48, 1996, 261-8.<br />

Croisille, Jean-Michel (1994): “Didon et Énée dans la tradition manuscrite de Virgile”, in<br />

Ternes, Charles Marie (1994; ed.): Mélanges offerts à Raymond Chevallier. Caesarodunum<br />

28bis & Bulletin des antiquités luxembourgeoises 23 (Luxembourg), i, 133-46.<br />

Crookes, David Z. (1984): “A Note on the Gold in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 1”, LCM 9, 14-6.<br />

Crupi, Vincenzo (1991): “Vergilius, Aeneis 11, 703-724: Camilla e il figlio di Auno dentro ed<br />

oltre i confini del ‘genere’”, AAPel 67, 405-22.<br />

Cruttwell, Robert W. (1946): Virgil’s Mind at Work: An Analysis of the Symbolism of the<br />

<strong>Aeneid</strong> (Oxford).<br />

Cucchiarelli, Andrea (2001/2): “Vergil on Killing Parthenius (Aen. 10.748)”, CJ 97, 51-4.<br />

– (2002): “A Note on Vergil, <strong>Aeneid</strong> 12.941-3”, CQ 52, 620-2.<br />

Curiazi, Dalila (1988/9): “Note a Virgilio”, MCr 23/4, 307-9.<br />

Currie, Harry McLeod (1988): “Lucretius 1.101 and Virgil, <strong>Aeneid</strong> 1.33: Two of a Kind”,<br />

LCM 13, 96.<br />

– (1992): “Virgilius viator: du Jardin au Portique”, BAGB 1992, 262-72.<br />

– (1998): “Virgil and the Military Tradition”, PVS 23, 177-91.<br />

Daintree, David (1990): “The Virgil Commentary of Aelius Donatus – Black Hole or<br />

‘éminence grise’”, G&R 37, 65-79.<br />

Dales, Jacques (1985): “La troisième personne du pluriel du parfait actif chez Virgile”,<br />

Orphea voce 2, 1985, 33-80.<br />

Danek, Georg (1997): “Purpur und Elfenbein (Verg. Aen. 12, 64-69 und Hom. Il. 4, 141-<br />

147)”, WS 110, 91-104.<br />

Dangel, Jacqueline (1983): “Césures et pauses syntaxiques dans l’Énéide. Structures verbales<br />

et incidents métriques”, REL 61, 284-311.<br />

– (1985a): “Les enjambements dans l’Énéide. Lecture syntactique et incidences métriques”,<br />

Latomus 44, 72-100.<br />

27


– (1985b): “Intermots césurables et organisation syntagmatique dans la phrase oratoire de<br />

l’Énéide”, in Touratier, Chr. (1985; ed.): Syntaxe et latin. Actes du II e congrés international<br />

de linguistique latine, Aix-en-Provence, 28-31 mars 1983 (Aix-en-Provence), 385-406.<br />

– (1997): “Le carmen latin: rhétorique, poétique et poésie”, Euphrosyne 25, 113-31.<br />

– (2002): “Fama (‘Rumeur’): un emblème virgilien de rhétorique pervertie”, in Calboli<br />

Montefusco, Lucia (ed.): Papers on Rhetoric. IV. Università degli studi di Bologna.<br />

Dipartimento di filologia classica e medioevale. Papers on Rhetoric 6 (Roma), 89-110.<br />

D’Anna, Giovanni (1982): “Il Lazio e la concezione virgiliana dei Saturni regna”, in Lefévre,<br />

R. (1982; ed.): Il Lazio nell’antichità romana. Lunario Romano 12 (Roma), 21-34.<br />

– (1983): “Virgilio e le antiche tradizioni italiche”, in Atti del Convegno vergiliano di<br />

Brindisi (1983), 323-43.<br />

– (1983/4): “Virgilio e le recenti scoperte archeologiche a Lavinium”, Sandalion 6/7, 93-101.<br />

– (1987): “L’Amour selon Virgile”, LEC 55, 151-61.<br />

– (1988): “L’età augustea nel giudizio di Virgilio”, in Benedini, Eros (1988; ed.): L’età<br />

augustea vista dai contemporanei e nel giudizio dei posteri. Atti del convegno (Mantova,<br />

Palazzo Ducale, 21-22-23 maggio 1987) (Mantova), 39-59.<br />

– (1989): Virgilio. Saggi critici. Proposte 21 (Roma) [E. Paratore, RCCM 31, 1989, 89-91;<br />

A. Barchiesi, RFIC 118, 1990, 470-2; P. Grimal, REL 67, 1989, 296-7; M. F. Delpeyrou,<br />

RPh 64, 1990, 253-5; G. Garbarino, CCC 11, 1990, 101; A. Minervini, InvLuc 12, 1990,<br />

298-9; M. Squillante Saccone, BStudLat 20, 1990, 118-20; A. Wankenne, LEC 58, 1990,<br />

289-90; P. V. Cova, Athenaeum 69, 1991, 312-3; P.-J. Dehon, Latomus 50, 1991, 492; D.<br />

Gagliardi, Orpheus 12, 1991, 285-6; C. Trisoglio, Maia 44, 1992, 324-5].<br />

– (2003): “Il problema della composizione dell’Eneide: nuove considerazioni”, in Magnino,<br />

Domenico/Mazzoli, Giancarlo/Romano, Elisa (edd.): Per Paola Venini. Atti della giornata<br />

di studio (Pavia, 14 maggio 1999) (Pisa), 63-79.<br />

Daub, Susanne (2003): “Vergil und die Bibel als verschränkte Prätexte – ein poetisches<br />

Experiment”, RhM 146, 85-102.<br />

Dauge, I. A. (1983): “Circuits de la lumière: la transfiguration chez Virgile”, Eranos 52, 113-<br />

56.<br />

Daviault, André (1991): “La dimension politique de la légende virgilienne d’Élissa-Didon”,<br />

CEA 25, 183-8.<br />

Davidson, John F. (1992): “Tragic Daughter of Atlas?”, Mnemosyne 45, 367-71.<br />

Davies, Martin/Golfinch, John (1992): Vergil: A Census of Printed Editions 1469-1500.<br />

Introd. by R. C. Alston. Foreword by Lotte Hellinga. Occasional Papers of the<br />

Bibliographical <strong>Society</strong> 7 (London) [C. Davies, CR 43, 1993, 427-8; E. Barbieri, Aevum<br />

68, 1994, 462-8].<br />

Day, Leslie Preston (1984): “Deceptum errore: Images of Crete in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, in Bright,<br />

David F./Ramage, Edwin S. (1984; edd.): Classical Texts and Their Traditions. Studies in<br />

Honor of C. R. Trahman. Scholars Press Homage Series (Chico, CA), 25-40.<br />

De Callataÿ, Godefroid (1993): “Le zodiaque de l’Énéide”, Latomus 52, 318-49.<br />

– (1995): “Les quatre arts d’Apollon dans l’Énéide”, Latomus 54, 812-21.<br />

– (1997): “Du chaos au cosmos: l’allégorie des éléments dans l’‘Énéide’”, BIBR 67, 1997,<br />

153-97.<br />

– (1998): “Les trois grandes projections historiques de l’Énéide”, AC 67, 183-92.<br />

– (2001): “La géographie zodiacale de Manilius (Astr. 4, 744-817), avec une note sur<br />

l’Énéide virgilienne”, Latomus 60, 35-66.<br />

De Castro, M. C./Sousa Pimentel, M. (1985): “Eneias ou o homen em busca de si mesmo”,<br />

Classica 12, 5-63.<br />

De Grassi, A. (1945): “Virgilio e il foro di Augusto”, Epigraphica 7, 88-103.<br />

De Grummond, W. W. (1977): “Aeneas Despairing”, Hermes 105, 224-34.<br />

– (1981): “Saevus dolor: The Opening and the Closing of the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Vergilius 27, 48-52.<br />

28


– (1997): “The ‘Diana Experience’: A Study of the Victims of Diana in Virgil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, in<br />

Deroux, Carl (ed.): Studies in Latin Literature and Roman History 8. Collection Latomus<br />

239 (Bruxelles), 158-94.<br />

De Kock, A. (2002): “B X de Wet Essay. Die herder en die wolf: ‘n vergelyking tussen die<br />

karakters van Aeneas en Turnus”, Akroterion 47, 89-99.<br />

Delbey, Évrard (1996): “Des dieux et des hommes pathétiques: les raisons de la colère dans<br />

l’Énéide”, in Dubrocard, Michel/Kircher, Chantal (1996; edd.): Hommage au doyen<br />

Weiss. Publications de la Faculté des Lettres, Arts et Sciences Humaines de Nice n. s. 27<br />

(Nice), 273-9.<br />

Delcourt, Anouk (2001): “Évandre à Rome: réflexions autour de quatre interprétations de la<br />

légende”, Latomus 60, 829-63.<br />

D’Elia, Salvatore (1983): “Lettura del sesto libro dell’Eneide”, in Gigante (1983), 187-231.<br />

– (1990): “Virgilio e Augusto (Funzione e rilievo della figura del principe nell’Eneide”, in<br />

Gigante (1990), 23-53.<br />

Della Corte, Francesco (1980): “L’action de Junon dans l’Éneide”, BAGB 1980, 49-58.<br />

– (1981): “Spazio/tempo narrativo nell’Eneide”, MCSN 3, 15-26 = Della Corte (1985), 159-<br />

70.<br />

– (1982): “Il catalogo dei grandi dannati”, Vichiana 11, 95-9 = Della Corte (1985), 223-7.<br />

– (1983): “Giunone, come personaggio e come dea, in Virgilio”, A&R 28, 21-30 = Della<br />

Corte (1985), 75-84.<br />

– (1983/4): “Genesi e palingenesi dell’allegoria virgiliana”, Maia 36, 111-22 = Della Corte<br />

(1985), 199-211.<br />

– (1984-91; ed.): Enciclopedia Virgiliana. 5 voll. (Roma) [W. Suerbaum, Gnomon 60, 1988,<br />

303-13 (ad A bis IN); F. Cupaiuolo, BStudLat 20, 1990, 120-1 (ad vol. 3-4); A. Traina,<br />

RFIC 120, 1992, 111-23; W. Suerbaum, Gnomon 69, 1997, 498-508 (ad voll. 3-5.2].<br />

– (1985): Opuscula IX (Genova).<br />

Delvigo, Maria Luisa (1985): “Varianti virgiliane di tradizione indiretta. Revisioni e proposte,<br />

I”, MD 15, 137-64 ~ Delvigo (1987), 69-96.<br />

– (1987): Testo virgiliano e tradizione indiretta. Le varianti probiane. Biblioteca di<br />

‘Materiali e discussioni per l’analisi dei testi classici’ 5 (Pisa) [R. Lesueur, REL 66, 1988,<br />

257-8; S. J. Harrison, JRS 79, 1989, 205; H. D. Jocelyn, CR 39, 1989, 27-8; M. Squillante,<br />

BStudLat 19, 1989, 159-60].<br />

– (1989): “Verg. Aen. 3.204A-C (con un problema di lessico filologico antico)”, RFIC 117,<br />

297-315.<br />

– (1999): “Il ‘trionfo’ di Pallante (e l’esegesi di Virg. Aen. 11, 72 ss.)”, MD 42, 199-209.<br />

– (2001): “Litus ama: linguaggio e potere nella regata virigiliana”, MD 47, 9-33.<br />

– (2004): “Mythici vs physici: l’esegesi tardoantica e l’interpretazione dell’Eneide”, in<br />

Marcone, Arnaldo (ed.): Società e cultura in età tardoantica. Atti dell’incontro di studi<br />

Udine 29-30 maggio 2003. Studi udinesi sul mondo antico (SUSMA) 1 (Grassina), 1-22.<br />

De Medeiros, Walter/André, Carlos Ascenso/Pereira, Virginía Soares 1992; edd.): A Eneida<br />

em contraluz (Coimbra) [M. C. de Sousa Pimentel, Euphrosyne 21, 1993, 498-9].<br />

Demeyere, G. (1978): “Het drama Turnus in de Aeneis”, Kleio 8, 32-45. 90-104.<br />

Den Adel, Raymond (1983): “Apollo’s Prophesies at Delos”, CW 76, 288-90.<br />

De Neubourg, Leo (1989): “L’hexamètre latin à bacchée au 4 e pied. Structure verbale du 2 e<br />

hémistiche”, Latomus 48, 45-62.<br />

Deramaix, M. (1994): “Spiritus intus alit: la poétique de la lumière dans l’Énéide”, REL 72,<br />

90-112.<br />

Deremetz, Alain (1987): “D’Homère à Virgile, ou le retour aux trois fonctions”, RHR 204,<br />

115-28.<br />

– (1993): “Virgile et le labyrinthe du texte”, Uranie 3, 45-67.<br />

29


– (1994): “Fatum et Fortuna ou La métaphysique du récit virgilien”, in Thomas, Joël (1994;<br />

ed.): L’imaginaire réligieux gréco-romain. Coll. Études Peripignan (Peripignan), 151-66.<br />

– (1995): Le miroir des Muses: poétiques de la réflexivité à Rome (Villeneuve d’Asq).<br />

– (2000): “Le livre II de l’Énéide et la conception virgilienne de l’épopée: épopée et tragédie<br />

dans l’Énéide”, REL 78, 76-92.<br />

– (2001): “Énée aède: tradition auctoriale et (re)fondation d’un genre”, in Schmidt, Ernst<br />

August (2001; ed.): L’histoire littéraire immanente dans la poésie latine: Vandœuvres-<br />

Genève 21-25 août 2000. Huit exposés suivis de discussions. Entretiens sur l’antiquité<br />

classique 47 (Vandœuvres-Genève), 143-75.<br />

De Rosalia, A. (1983): “Il lavoro nella poesia virgiliana”, QTCT 1, 15-32.<br />

– (1984): “Il virgiliano sentimento della giovinezza e del suo destino”, Orpheus 5, 188-96.<br />

De Saint-Denis, E. (1978): “Sur un vers obscur de Virgile (Aen. 8, 693), REL 56, 216-25.<br />

Deschamps, Lucienne (1986): “Échos varroniens dans Virgile, ou De la poésie de<br />

l’étymologie”, in Decreus, Freddy/Deroux, Carl (1986; edd.): Hommages à Jozef<br />

Veremans. Collection Latomus 193 (Bruxelles), 86-100.<br />

– (1988): “Virgile, Énéide, VI, 453-454 et la lune obscure du début du mois”, Kentron 4, 59-<br />

63.<br />

– (1990): “Comment comprendre Campi? (Virg., Aen. III, 334)”, Kentron 6, 77-80.<br />

–(1997): “Le rôle du dieu Sommeil dans l’épisode de Palinure de l’Énéide”, Euphrosyne 25,<br />

261-71.<br />

Desy, Ph. (1997): “De απόλεµος à imbellis. Valeur militaire et interprétation virgilienne“,<br />

LEC 65, 117-36.<br />

– (2002): “L’épisode des Harpyies et la composition du chant III de l’Énéide”, in Defosse,<br />

Pol (ed.): Hommages à Carl Deroux. I: Poésie. Collection Latomus 266 (Bruxelles), 148-<br />

57.<br />

Deuling, J. K. (1999): “Allusions to Structures and Works of Art in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>: A Revised<br />

Approach for Roman Epic”, in Docter, Roald F./Moorman, Eric M. (1999; edd.):<br />

Proceedings of the XVth International Congress of Classical Archaeology, Amsterdam,<br />

July 12-17, 1998. Classical Archaeology Towards the Third Millennium: Reflections and<br />

Perspectives (Amsterdam), 142-4.<br />

Devallet, Georges (1997): “Perfidia plus quam Punica: l’image des Carthaginois dans la<br />

littérature latine, de la fin de la République à l’époque des Flaviens”, in Lalies. Actes des<br />

sessions de linguistique et de littérature. 16 (Carthage, 21 août-2 septembre 1995) (Paris),<br />

17-28.<br />

De Vivo, A. (1985): “Motivi proemiali nell’Eneide”, Vichiana 14, 259-78.<br />

De Vries, S. F./Diom, S. (1979): “Suicide of Dido”, Akroterion 24, 14-7.<br />

Dewar, Michael (1988a): “Mezentius’ Remorse”, CQ 38, 261-2.<br />

– (1988b): “Turning the Tables: Varius, Vergil and Lucan”, CQ 38, 561-2.<br />

De Witt, Norman W. (1907): “The Dido Episode as Tragedy”, CJ 2, 283-8.<br />

– (1923): “The Influence of the Saviour Sentiment Upon Virgil”, TAPhA 54, 39-50.<br />

– (1924/5): “Vergil’s Tragedy of Maidenhood”, CW 18, 107-8.<br />

Diáz de Bustamente, J. M. (1978/9): “A cerca de un articulo de un sueño y de la<br />

responsibilidad de Eneas”, Euphrosyne 9, 19-38.<br />

Di Benedetto, Vincenzo (1995): “La consapevolezza di morte in Turno”, RFIC 123, 45-72.<br />

– (1996a): “I paragoni del cervo e del sogno nel XII dell’Eneide”, RFIC 124, 290-9.<br />

– (1996b): “Pathos e ideologia nel finale dell’Eneide”, RFIC 124, 149-74.<br />

Di Cesare, Mario A. (1974): The Altar and the City: A Reading of Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong> (New<br />

York/London) [C. Fantazzi, CW 70, 1977, 345-8; A. McKay, CJ 72, 1977, 270-1; W. S.<br />

Anderson, Vergilius 22, 1976, 45-6; J. P. Bews, EMC 20, 1976, 38-9; J.-P. Brisson,<br />

Latomus 37, 1978, 554; J. Foster, CR 28, 1978, 350].<br />

30


Dickie, Matthew (1986): “The Speech of Numanus Remulus (<strong>Aeneid</strong> 9, 598-620)”, PLLS 5,<br />

165-221.<br />

Dietz, David B. (1995): “Historia in the Commentary of Servius”, TAPhA 125, 61-97.<br />

Di Lorenzo, E. (1981): “Su una similitudine virgiliana”, GIF 33, 227-9.<br />

Dingel, Joachim (1995): “Corythus bei Vergil und Silius Italicus”, Philologus 139, 89-96.<br />

– (1997): Kommentar zum 9. Buch der Aeneis Vergils. Wissenschaftliche Kommentare zu<br />

griechischen und lateinischen Schriftstellern (Heidelberg) [J.-P. Borle, MH 55, 1998, 230;<br />

P. Hardie, CR 49, 1999, 385-6; J. Poucet, LEC 67, 1999, 99; N. Horsfall, Vergilius 45,<br />

1999, 123-6; A. Barchiesi, Gnomon 74, 2002, 260-1].<br />

– (2000): “Non petit impossibile. Gebete und ihr Erfolg in der Aeneis“, Gymnasium 107,<br />

281-93.<br />

– (2001): “Ilus erat … Vergils Redaktion der Überlieferungen zu Ascanius-Iulus”,<br />

Philologus 145, 324-36.<br />

Dinzelbacher, Peter (1982): “Über Troiaritt und Pyrrhiche”, Eranos 80, 151-61.<br />

Dion, Jeanne (1984): “La grandeur dans l’Énéide. Problèmes d’esthétique et de morale”,<br />

BAGB 1984, 279-94.<br />

– (1990a): “Les aspects du bonheur virgilien”, in Tarugi, Giovannangiola (1990; ed.): Homo<br />

sapiens, homo humanus, I: La cultura italiana tra il passato ed il presente in un disegno di<br />

pace universale. Atti del XXVII convegno internazionale del Centro di Studi Umanistici:<br />

Montepulciano, Palazzo Tarugi, 1985. La pianezza del significato ‘homo sapiens’ e la<br />

necessaria ricerca del significato ‘homo humanus’. Atti del XXVIII convegno<br />

internazionale del Centro di Studi Umanistici: Montepulciano, Palazzo Tarugi, 1986<br />

(Firenze), 25-43.<br />

– (1990b): “Quelques aspects de la crainte dans l’œuvre de Virgile”, in Tarugi,<br />

Giovannangiola (1990; ed.): Homo sapiens, homo humanus, II: Letteratura, arte e scienza<br />

nella seconda metà del Quattrocento. Atti del XXIX convegno internazionale del Centro di<br />

Studi Umanistici: Montepulciano, Palazzo Tarugi, 1987. Individuo e società nei secoli XV<br />

e XVI. Atti del XXX convegno internazionale del Centro di Studi Umanistici:<br />

Montepulciano, Palazzo Tarugi, 1988 (Firenze), 63-74.<br />

– (1990c): “La colère chez Virgile”, in Tarugi, Giovannangiola (1990; ed.): Homo sapiens,<br />

homo humanus, II [wie Dion 1990b], 245-60.<br />

– (1992): “L’expérience du sacré chez Virgile: l’exemple de l’aegritudo”, BAGB 1992, 297-<br />

306.<br />

– (1993): Les passions dans l’œuvre de Virgile: poétique et philosophie. Travaux et<br />

mémoires Études anciennes 8 (Nancy) [L. Deschamps, REA 96, 1994, 607-8; R. Lesueur,<br />

REL 72, 1994, 292-3; J.-Y. Maleuvre, RBPh 73, 1995, 196-8].<br />

– (1996a): “Virgile et la tranquillité de l’âme”, in André, J.-M./Dangel, J./Demont, P. (1996;<br />

edd.): Les losirs et l’héritage de la culture classique. Collection Latomus 230 (Bruxelles).<br />

– (1996b): “Virgile et les miroirs du fanatisme”, in id. (1996): Culture antique et fanatisme<br />

Préf. de Arrabal, Fernando (Nancy/Paris), 47-52.<br />

– (1999): “Un songe d’immortalité: l’Énéide de Virgile”, Helmantica 50, 331-44.<br />

Diouf, E. (1985): “Les faits magiques du chant IV de l’Énéide”, AFLD 15, 37-58.<br />

D’Ippolito, G. (1985): L’approccio intertestuale alla poesia. Sondaggi da Virgilio e dalla<br />

poesia cristiana greca di Gregorio e di Sinesio. Quad. dell’Ist. di filos. greca Univ. di<br />

Palermo 14 (Palermo).<br />

Disandro, Carlos A. (1987): Vergili regeneratio lyrica (La Plata) [A. Novara, REL 67, 1989,<br />

297].<br />

Dobbin, Robert F. (1995): “Julius Caesar in Jupiter’s Prophecy, <strong>Aeneid</strong>, Book 1”, ClAnt 14, 5-<br />

40.<br />

– (2002): “An Ironic Allusion at <strong>Aeneid</strong> 1.374”, Mnemosyne 55, 736-7.<br />

Dognini, Cristiano (1996): “Una critica a Cesare: Verg. Aen. 6, 815-816”, RIL 130, 467-73.<br />

31


– (1996/7): “Virgilio e la memoria di Cesare”, InvLuc 18/9, 139-51.<br />

– (2001): La via del corallo e l’influenza dell’Eneide di Virgilio sulla Tabula Iliaca del<br />

Gandhara”, Aevum 75, 101-9.<br />

Dominici, D. (1985): Epicureismo e stoicismo nella Roma antica. Lucrezio, Virgilio, Orazio<br />

(Odi civili), Seneca (Roma).<br />

Dominik, William J. (1996): “Reading Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>: The Gates of Sleep (VI 893-898)”,<br />

Maia 48, 129-38.<br />

Donaldson, Sarah (1988): “‘Direness’ and Its Place in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, LCM 13, 100-1.<br />

Donlan, Walter (1978; ed.): The Classical World Bibliography of Vergil (New York).<br />

Dopico Caínzos, María Dolores (1999): “¿Aeternitas o desaparicíon de Roma?”, QUCC 63,<br />

139-61.<br />

Doukelis, Panagiotis (2001): “L’image des îles et de la mer Égée dans la littérature du Haut<br />

Empire: quelques réflections”, REA 103, 49-59.<br />

Dräger, Paul (1994): “Zu Gliederung und Syntax des Aeneis-Proömiums (1,1-33)”, Anregung<br />

40, 239-47.<br />

– (1998): “Zeus/Juppiter und Apollo(n). Die Parallelität in der Handlungsstruktur bei Homer,<br />

Vergil, Apollonios und Valerius”, in Eigler, Ulrich/Lefèvre, Eckard (1998; edd.): Ratio<br />

omnia vincet. Neue Untersuchungen zu den Argonautica des Valerius Flaccus. Zetemata<br />

98 (München), 193-211.<br />

Draheim, Joachim (1983): “Vergil in der Musik”, in Pöschl (1983), 197-221.<br />

Drake, Harold A. (2000): “Why Dido?”, AncW 31, 38-47.<br />

Drew, Douglas Laurel (1927): The Allegory of the <strong>Aeneid</strong> (Oxford; repr. New York, 1978).<br />

Dubois, Page (1976): “The φαρµακός of Virgil: Dido as Scapegoat”, Vergilius 22, 14-23.<br />

– (1982): History, Rhetorical Description and the Epic: From Homer to Spenser<br />

(Cambridge) [28-51: “Vergil: The Path from East to West”].<br />

Dubrocard, Michel (1990): “Des Bucoliques à l’Énéide: quelques remarques sur l’évolution<br />

du vocabulaire caratéristique de Virgile”, in Granarolo, Jean/Biraud, Michèle (edd.):<br />

Hommage à René Braun. I: De la préhistoire à Virgile: philologie, littérature et histoire<br />

ancienne. Publ. de la Fac. des Lettres de Scieneces Humaines de Nice 56.1 (Nice), 261-80.<br />

Duckworth, George Eckel (1933): Foreshadowing and Suspense in the Epics of Homer,<br />

Apollonius, and Vergil (Princeton; repr. New York, 1966).<br />

– (1954): “The Architecture of the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, AJPh 75, 1-15 = Hardie (1999b), iv, 13-25 = S.<br />

Quinn (2000), 148-54.<br />

– (1957): “The <strong>Aeneid</strong> as Trilogy”, TAPhA 88, 1-10.<br />

– (1962): Structural Patterns and Proportions in Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>: A Study in Mathematical<br />

Composition (Ann Arbor) [W. Wimmel, Gnomon 36, 1964, 56-60; V. Pöschl, AAHG 23,<br />

1969, 30-1].<br />

– (1967): “The Significance of Nisus and Euryalus for <strong>Aeneid</strong> IX-XII”, AJPh 88, 129-50 =<br />

Hardie (1999b), iv, 304-21.<br />

– (1969): Vergil and Classical Hexameter Poetry: A Study in Metrical Variety (Ann Arbor)<br />

[J. Hellegouarc’h, Gnomon 44, 1972, 131-5].<br />

Duclos, Gloria Shaw (1993/4): “The Concept of Responsibility in Virgil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, NECN 21,<br />

58-61.<br />

Dudley, D. R. (1969; ed.): Virgil. Studies in Latin Literature and Its Influence (London) [M.<br />

v. Albrecht, Gnomon 42, 1970, 731-2].<br />

Duhn, Magdalena von (1957): “Die Gleichnisse in den Allectoszenen des 7. Buches von<br />

Vergils Aeneis”, Gymnasium 64, 59-83.<br />

Duke, T. T. (1977): “Metabus of Privernum”, Vergilius 23, 34-8.<br />

Dumézil, Georges (1976): “Virgile, Mézence et les Vinalia”, in L’Italie préromaine et la<br />

Rome républicaine. Mélanges offerts à Jacques Heurgon. Coll. Éc. franç. de Rome 27<br />

(Paris), 253-63.<br />

32


Dunkle, J. Roger (1973): “The Hunter and Hunting in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Ramus 2, 127-42.<br />

Dury-Moyaers, Geneviève (1981): Énée et Lavinium: À propos des découvertes<br />

archéologiques récentes. Avec une préface de F. Castanoli. Collection Latomus 174<br />

(Bruxelles) [N. Horsfall, JRS 73, 1983, 204-5; P. G. Gierow, Gnomon 58, 1986, 436-40].<br />

Dutra, John A. (1987): “The Fortunes of War: The Birth of a Legacy”, AugAge 6, 80-91.<br />

Dyck, Andrew R. (1983): “Sychaeus”, Phoenix 37, 239-44.<br />

Dyer, Robert Rutherford (1989): “Vergil’s Fama: A New Interpretation of <strong>Aeneid</strong> 4.173ff.”,<br />

G&R 36, 28-32.<br />

– (1995): “Cicero at Caieta in Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Latomus 54, 290-7.<br />

– (1995/6): “Timavus and the Supine at Vergil, Aen. 1.246”, CW 89, 403-8.<br />

Dyson, Julia Taussig (1995/6): “Caesi iuvenci and pietas impia in Virgil”, CJ 91, 277-86.<br />

– (1996a): “Dido the Epicurean”, ClAnt 15, 203-21.<br />

– (1996b): “Septima aetas: The Puzzle of Aen. 1.755-6 and 5.626”, CW 90, 41-3.<br />

– (1997a): “Birds, Grandfathers, and Neoteric Sorcery in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 4.254 and 7.412”, CQ 47,<br />

314-5.<br />

– (1997b): “Fluctus irarum, fluctus curarum: Lucretian religio in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, AJPh 118,<br />

449-57.<br />

– (2001): King of the Wood: The Sacrificial Victor in Virgil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>. Oklahoma Series in<br />

Classical Culture 27 (Norman, OK) [L. Kronenberg, BMCRev 2002.07.06; T. Habinek,<br />

Vergilius 49, 2003, 159-65; A. Keith, AJPh 124, 2003, 317-20; L. Fulkerson, CJ 99,<br />

2003/4, 81-3].<br />

Dyson, Michael (1990a): “Palinurus and His Rudder: Vergil, <strong>Aeneid</strong> 5.858-9”, Antichthon 24,<br />

70-8.<br />

– (1990b): “Verg. <strong>Aeneid</strong> 4.543, CQ 40, 214-7.<br />

– (1998): “A Note on Vergil, <strong>Aeneid</strong> 5.315-19”, CQ 48, 569-72.<br />

Ebersbach, Volker (1985): “Vergil oder Die Dialektik von Mythos und Geschichte”, in id.<br />

(1985): Rom und seine unbehausten Dichter. Essays (Halle/Leipzig), 84-111.<br />

Eco, Umberto (1979): “Per un analisi componenziale dei tropi”, in Goldin, D. (1979; ed.):<br />

Retorica e poetica. Atti del III Convegno Italo-tedesco (Bressanone 1975). Quad. del Circ.<br />

Filol. Ling. Padov. 10 (Padova), 3-8.<br />

Eden, P. T. (1975): A Commentary on Virgil: <strong>Aeneid</strong> VIII (Leiden) [G. Jäger, Gnomon 52,<br />

1980, 237-45; G. B. Townend, CR 27, 1977, 20-1].<br />

– (1986): “Virgil, <strong>Aeneid</strong> VIII: A Reconsideration”, in Deroux, Carl (1986; ed.): Studies in<br />

Latin Literature and Roman History. 4. Collection Latomus 196 (Bruxelles), 431-50.<br />

Edgeworth, Robert J. (1977): “The Death of Dido”, CJ 72, 129-33.<br />

– (1978): “What Color Is ‘ferrugineus’”, Glotta 56, 297-305.<br />

– (1979a): “Associative Use of Color in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, CW 73, 167-70.<br />

– (1979b): “Epithets for Honey”, Vergilius 25, 41-2 = Edgeworth (1992), 251-3.<br />

– (1981): “‘Inconsistency’ in Vergil and in Homer”, Glotta 59, 140-2 = Edgeworth (1992),<br />

237-9.<br />

– (1983a): “The Purple Flower Image in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Philologus 127, 143-8.<br />

– (1983b) “Vergil’s Furies”, HThR 76, 365-7.<br />

– (1986a): “The Dirae of <strong>Aeneid</strong> XII”, Eranos 84, 133-43.<br />

– (1986b): “The Ivory Gate and the Threshold of Apollo”, C&M 37, 145-60.<br />

– (1986c): “Pictures on Temple Doors: Virgil, <strong>Aeneid</strong> 6.9-41”, LCM 11, 137.<br />

– (1987): “Off-colour Allusions in Roman Poetry”, Glotta 65, 134-7.<br />

– (1992): The Colors of the <strong>Aeneid</strong>. American University Studies Ser. 17 Nr. 12 (New York,<br />

etc.) [M. C. J. Putnam, Vergilius 36, 1993, 69-73; A. Flett, AUMLA 82, 1994, 115-6; S. J.<br />

33


Harrison, CR 44, 1994, 277-8; J. Clarke, ElectronAnt 2.3, 1994/5; P. Heuzé, Latomus 55,<br />

1996, 466-7].<br />

– (2001): “Ascanius’ Mother”, Hermes 129, 246-50.<br />

Edlund, Ingrid E. M. (1981): “The Archeology of Rome and Latium in Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>”,<br />

Vergilius 27, 1-7.<br />

Edmunds, Lowell (2001): Intertextuality and the Reading of Roman Poetry<br />

(Baltimore/London) [P. Hardie, CR 116, 2002, 296-7; D. J. Kuyat, BMCRev 2002.08.37; S.<br />

Goldhill, CW 96, 2002/3, 331-2; J. Fabre-Serris, Gnomon 75, 2003, 449-51).<br />

Edwards, Catherine (1996): Writing Rome: Textual Approaches to the City (Cambridge).<br />

Edwards, Mark J. (1991): “Invitus, regina”, AC 60, 260-5.<br />

Edwards, M. W. (1960): “The Expression of Stoic Ideas in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Phoenix 14, 151-65.<br />

Effe, Bernd (1983): “Epische Objektivität und auktoriales Erzählen. Zur Entfaltung<br />

emotionaler Subjektivität in Vergils Aeneis”, Gymnasium 90, 171-86.<br />

– (2002): “Hercules fervidus ira: Ein Motiv der ‘Aeneis’ und seine Rezeption bei Properz<br />

und Ovid”, Hermes 130, 164-75.<br />

– (2004): Epische Objektivität und subjektives Erzählen. ‘Auktoriale’ Narrativik von Homer<br />

bis zum römischen Epos der Flavierzeit. BAC. Bochumer altertumswissenschaftliches<br />

Colloquium 56 (Trier).<br />

Egan, Rory B. (1980): “Euryalus’ Mother and <strong>Aeneid</strong> 9-12”, in Deroux, Carl (1980; ed.):<br />

Studies in Latin Literature and Roman History 2. Collection Latomus 168 (Bruxelles),<br />

157-76.<br />

– (1983): “Arms and Etymology in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 11”, Vergilius 29, 19-26.<br />

– (1996): “A Reading of the Helen-Venus Episode in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 2”, EMC 15, 379-95.<br />

– (1998): “The Signs of the Horse’s Head: <strong>Aeneid</strong> 1.442-5”, PVS 23, 193-207.<br />

Eggenberger, Christoff (1977): “Die Miniaturen des Vergilius Romanus, Codex Vat. Lat.<br />

3867”, ByzZ 70, 58-90.<br />

Eggerding, Fritz (1952): “Parcere subiectis: Ein Beitrag zur Vergilinterpretation”, Gymnasium<br />

59, 31-52.<br />

Eidinow, J. S. C. (2003): “Dido, Aeneas, and Iulus: Heirship and Obligation in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 4“, CQ<br />

53, 260-7.<br />

Eigler, Ulrich (1994): “Non enarrabile textum (Verg. Aen. 8, 625): Servius und die römische<br />

Geschichte bei Vergil”, Aevum 68, 147-63.<br />

– (1998): “Augusteische Repräsentationskunst als Text? Zum Problem der Erzählbarkeit von<br />

bildender Kunst in augusteischer Dichtung am Beispiel des Schildes des Aeneas”,<br />

Gymnasium 105, 289-305.<br />

Elftmann, G. (1979): “Aeneas in His Prime: Distinctions in Age and the Loneliness of<br />

Adulthood in Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Arethusa 12, 175-202.<br />

Elwert, W. Theodor (1982): “Vergil und Petrarca”, WJA 8, 117-27.<br />

Engar, Ann (2002): “Tragedy and Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, in Anderson/Quartarone (2002), 182-9<br />

Erbse, Hartmut (2001): “Zwei umstrittene Abschnitte in der ‘Aeneis’ Vergils”, Hermes 129,<br />

431-8.<br />

Erdmann, Martina (1998): “Die Bilder am Apollotempel von Cumae und ihre Bedeutung im<br />

Kontext der Aeneis”, Gymnasium 105, 481-506.<br />

– (2000): Überredende Reden in Vergils Aeneis. Studien zur klassischen Philologie 120<br />

(Frankfurt am Main, etc.) [I. Gildenhard, JRS 92, 2002, 241-2].<br />

Erler, Michael (1992): “Der Zorn des Helden: Philodems ‘De Ira’ und Vergils Konzept des<br />

Zorns in der ‘Aeneis’”, GB 18, 103-26.<br />

Erren, Manfred (1994): “Vergils Aeneis: Die Ideologie einer neuen Nation”, Eirene 30, 51-<br />

69.<br />

Esposito, Paolo (1993): “La bella morte e la memoria letteraria di Enea”, Vichiana 4, 111-4.<br />

– (2000): “Scene di battaglia in Virgilio”, in Gioseffi (2000), 73-99.<br />

34


L’essenza del ripensamento su Virgilio (Mantova, 1983).<br />

Estefanía Álvarez, Dulce Nombre (1991): “Analisi narratologica e autenticità del testo (Aen.<br />

II, 566-589)”, Aufidus 13, 29-37.<br />

– (1995a): “Dido: historia de un abandono”, CFC(L) 8, 89-110.<br />

– (1995b): “Las naves de Eneas”, Fortunatae 7, 187-201.<br />

– (1998): “Sobre la interpretación de Virgilio, Aen. IV, 110-12, y las Interpretationes<br />

<strong>Vergilian</strong>ae de Tiberio Claudio Donato”, CFC(L) 15, 139-46.<br />

Estevez, Victor A. (1978/9): “Capta ac deserta: The Fall of Troy in <strong>Aeneid</strong> IV”, CJ 74, 97-<br />

109.<br />

– (1981): “<strong>Aeneid</strong> 2.624-631 and the Helen and Venus Episodes”, CJ 76, 318-35.<br />

– (1982): “Oculos ad moenia torsit: On <strong>Aeneid</strong> 4.220”, CPh 77, 22-34.<br />

Eubanks, Lyn Ellen (1982): “The Role of Achates. Comes fidus Achates”, Vergilius 28, 59-<br />

61.<br />

Evans, James Allan Stewart (1992): “The <strong>Aeneid</strong> and the Concept of the Ideal King: The<br />

Modification of an Archetype”, in Wilhelm/Jones (1992), 146-56.<br />

– (2003): “‘Self’ and ‘Other’: The Ideology of Assimilation in Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Scholia 12,<br />

45-59.<br />

Fabbroni, Mario [et al.] (1983): “Fortuna di Vergilio nei secoli”, in Accademia …(1983), 143-<br />

220<br />

Faber, Riemer (2000): “Vergil’s Shield of Aeneas (<strong>Aeneid</strong> 8.617-731) and the Shield of<br />

Heracles”, Mnemosyne 53, 49-57.<br />

Fabre-Serris, Jacqueline ((1998): Mythologie et littérature à Rome. La réécriture des mythes<br />

aux 1 ers siècles avant et après J.-C. (Lausanne) [F. Cupaiuolo, BStudLat 29, 1999, 223-4;<br />

B. Powell, BMCRev 99.09.06].<br />

– (2001) “Deux réponses de Tibulle à Virgile: les élégies II, 1 et II, 5”, REL 79, 140-51.<br />

Facchini Tosi, Claudia (1985/6): “La ripetizione fonolessicale nell’Eneide di Virgilio”,<br />

Rassegna Frignanese, Riv. di cultura e di studi regionali 25, 73-85.<br />

– (2000): Euphonia (Virgilio, Orazio, Apuleio). Testi e manuali per l’insegnamento<br />

universitario de latino 69 (Bologna).<br />

Faessler, P. Franz (1987): “Manibus date lilia plenis (Vergil, Aeneis 6, 883)”, MH 44, 55-60.<br />

Faggiano, C. (2001/2): “De Vergilii epithetis in Dantis comoedia”, Rudiae 13/14, 387-400.<br />

Fagiolo, Marcello (1981; ed.): Virgilio nell’ arte e nella cultura europea. Roma – Biblioteca<br />

Nazionale 24 settembre – 24 novembre 1981. Catalogo della mostra (Roma) [W.<br />

Suerbaum, Gnomon 56, 1984, 208-28].<br />

Fahr, Rainer (1983): “‘Lacrimans exsul feror’. Eine psychoanalytisch-biologistische<br />

Interpretation von Vergils Aeneis, Anregung 29, 377-82.<br />

Fajardo-Acosta, Fidel (1990): “The Character of Anchises and Aeneas’ Escape from Troy:<br />

Virgil’s Criticism of Heroic Values“, SyllClass 2, 39-44.<br />

Falkner, Thomas M. (1981): “Hector and Deiphobus: An Interpretation of <strong>Aeneid</strong> 6.494-547”,<br />

CB 57, 33-7.<br />

Fantazzi, Charles (1983): “Homage to Virgil”, Vergilius 29, 1-11 = S. Quinn (2000), 285-93.<br />

Fantham, Elaine (1990): “Nymphas … e navibus esse: Decorum and Poetic Fiction in <strong>Aeneid</strong><br />

9.77-122 and 10.215-59”, CPh 85, 102-19.<br />

– (1990-2): “Metamorphoses Before the Metamorphoses: A Survey of Transformations<br />

Before Ovid”, AugAge 10, 7-18.<br />

– (1998): “Allecto’s First Victim: A Study of Vergil’s Amata: <strong>Aeneid</strong> 7.341-405 and 12.1-<br />

80”, in Stahl (1998b), 135-154.<br />

– (1999): “Fighting Words: Turnus at Bay in the Latin Council (<strong>Aeneid</strong> 11.234-446)”, AJPh<br />

120, 259-80.<br />

35


Farrell, Joseph (1990): “Which <strong>Aeneid</strong> in Whose Nineties?” [80-1: Response by William S.<br />

Anderson], Vergilius 36, 74-81.<br />

– (1993/4): “Allusions, Delusions and Confusions: A Reply”, ElectronAnt 1.6.<br />

– (1997): “The Virgilian Intertext”, in Martindale (1997a), 222-38.<br />

– (1999): “<strong>Aeneid</strong> 5: Poetry and Parenthood”, in Perkell (1999a), 96-110.<br />

– (2001): “The <strong>Vergilian</strong> Century”, Vergilius 47, 11-28 [Response by Michèle Lowrie:<br />

“Literature Is a Latin Word”, 29-38].<br />

– (2004): “Ovid’s Virgilian Career”, MD 52, 41-55.<br />

Farrington, B. (1963): “Polemical Allusions to the De Rerum Natura of Lucretius in the<br />

Works of Vergil”, in Varcl, L./Willetts, R. F. (edd.): GERAS. Studies Presented to G.<br />

Thomson on the Occasion of His Sixtieth Birthday (Prague), 87-94 = Hardie (1999b), i, 18-<br />

26 [V. Pöschl, AAHG 21, 1968, 202].<br />

Farron, Steven G. (1977): “The furor and violentia of Aeneas”, AClass 20, 204-8.<br />

– (1979): “Dido as Seen by Readers from the Augustans to the Nineteenth Century”,<br />

Akroterion 24.2, 8-13.<br />

– (1979/80): “The Roman Invention of Evil”, StudAnt 1, 12-46.<br />

– (1980a): “The Aeneas – Dido Episode as an Attack on Aeneas’ Mission and Rome”, G&R<br />

27, 34-47.<br />

– (1980b): “<strong>Aeneid</strong> 6.826-835 (The Vision of Julius Caesar and Pompey) as an Attack on<br />

Augustan Propaganda”, AClass 23, 53-68.<br />

– (1981): “The Death of Turnus Viewed in the Perspective of Its Historical Background”,<br />

AClass 24, 97-106.<br />

– (1982): “The Abruptness of the End of the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, AClass 25, 136-41.<br />

– (1983): “The Sentimentality, Romanticism and Emotionalism of the Ancient Greeks and<br />

Romans, with Specific Reference to <strong>Aeneid</strong> 4”, AClass 26, 83-94.<br />

– (1984): “Dido ‘aversa’ in <strong>Aeneid</strong> IV, 362 and VI, 465-471”, AClass 27, 83-90.<br />

– (1985): “Aeneas’ Human Sacrifice”, AClass 28, 21-33.<br />

– (1986): “Aeneas’ Revenge for Pallas as a Criticism of Aeneas”, AClass 29, 69-83<br />

– (1989): “The Introduction of Characters in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, AClass 32, 107-10.<br />

– (1992): “Pius Aeneas in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 4.393-6”, in Deroux, Carl (1992; ed.): Studies in Latin<br />

Literature and Roman History 6. Collection Latomus 217 (Bruxelles), 260-76.<br />

– (1993): Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>: A Poem of Grief and Love. Mnemosyne Supplementum 122<br />

(Leiden, etc.) [N. Horsfall, Vergilius 36, 1993, 73-6; W. Dominik, Scholia 3, 1994, 138-9;<br />

S. J. Harrison, CR 45, 1995, 161-2; D. Hershkowitz, JRS 85, 1995, 323; D. F. Kennedy,<br />

G&R 41, 1994, 227; V. J. C. Hunink, Mnemosyne 49, 1996, 485-9; J. Thomas, Latomus 55,<br />

1996, 177-80].<br />

Fasciano, Domenico (1983): “Le numen dans la poésie de Virgile”, RCCM 25, 13-35.<br />

– (1984): “Il concetto di fatum nell’Énéide”, RCCM 26, 65-76.<br />

– /Castor, Kesner (1996): “La trifonction indo-européenne à Rome”, RCCM 38, 7-43.<br />

Fauth, Wolfgang (1965): “Die Fama bei Vergil und Ovid: Vergleichende Kurzinterpretation”,<br />

Anregung 11, 232-8.<br />

– (1971): “Funktion und Erscheinung niederer Gottheiten in Vergils Aeneis”, Gymnasium<br />

78, 54-75.<br />

Feeney, Denis C. (1983): “The Taciturnity of Aeneas”, CQ 33, 204-19 = S. J. Harrison<br />

(1990b), 167-90 = Hardie (1999b), iii, 183-203.<br />

– (1984): “The Reconciliations of Juno”, CQ 34, 179-94 = S. J. Harrison (1990b), 339-62 =<br />

Hardie (1999b), iv, 392-413.<br />

– (1986a): “Following After Hercules, in Virgil and Apollonius”, PVS 18, 47-85.<br />

– (1986b): “History and Revelation in Vergil’s Underworld”, PCPhS 32, 1-24 = Hardie<br />

(1999b), iv, 221-43 = S. Quinn (2000), 108-22.<br />

– (1986c): “How the <strong>Aeneid</strong> Ends”, Omnibus 12, 11-3.<br />

36


– (1991): The Gods in Epic (Oxford) [M. J. Dewar, CR 42, 1992, 61-3; D. Fowler, G&R 39,<br />

1992, 87-93; J. H. Gaisser, BMCRev 03.02.08; P. Hardie, JRS 82, 1992, 252-6; C. R. Beye,<br />

CW 86, 1992/3, 176; Ward, CO 70, 1992/3, 73-4; J. O’Hara, Vergilius 39, 1993, 87-96].<br />

– (1998a): “Leaving Dido: The Appearance(s) of Mercury and the Motivations of Aeneas”,<br />

in Burden (1998), 105-127.<br />

– (1998b): Literature and Religion at Rome. Cultures, Contexts, and Beliefs. Roman<br />

Literature and Its Contexts (Cambridge) [M. Gale, G&R 45, 1998, 240; J. Zetzel, Phoenix<br />

53, 1999, 171-3; Dubourdieu, Latomus 59, 2000, 477-9; W. Fitzgerald, CPh 95, 2000, 214-<br />

6; J. B. Rives, CR 50, 2000, 106-7].<br />

– (1999): “Epic Violence, Epic Order: Killings, Catalogues, and the Role of the Reader in<br />

<strong>Aeneid</strong> 10”, in Perkell (1999a), 178-94.<br />

– (2004): “Tenui … latens discrimine: Spotting the Differences in Statius’ Achilleid”, MD<br />

52, 85-105.<br />

Feldherr, Andrew (1995): “Ships of State: <strong>Aeneid</strong> 5 and Augustan Circus Spectacle”, ClA 14,<br />

245-65.<br />

– (1999): “Putting Dido on the Map: Genre and Geography in Vergil’s Underworld”,<br />

Arethusa 32, 85-122.<br />

– (2002): “Stepping out of the Ring: Repetition and Sacrifice in the Boxing Match in <strong>Aeneid</strong><br />

5”, in Levene, D. S./Nelis, D. P. (2002; edd.): Clio and the Poets: Augustan Poetry and the<br />

Traditions of Ancient Historiography. Mnemosyne Supplementum 224 (Leiden, etc.), 61-<br />

79.<br />

Felgentreu, Fritz (2002): “Ovid weiss es besser: Met. 13, 730f. und Verg. Aen. 3, 420f.”, RhM<br />

145, 305-13.<br />

Fenik, Bernard (1959): “Parallelism of Theme and Imagery in <strong>Aeneid</strong> II and IV”, AJPh 80, 1-<br />

24 = Hardie (1999b), iii, 363-83 [V. Pöschl, AAHG 12, 1959, 209.<br />

Ferenczi, Attila (1996/7): “Ein Traum des Aeneas (Aeneis, IV.554-570)”, AAntHung 37, 225-<br />

33.<br />

– (1998/9): “The Double-faced Hercules in the Cacus-episode of the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, ACD 34/5,<br />

327-34.<br />

– (2000): “The End of Latinus’ World: The Wild Olive Episode of the <strong>Aeneid</strong> (12.766-790)”,<br />

AAntHung 40, 93-100.<br />

Ferguson, John (1970/1): “Fire and Wound: The Imagery of <strong>Aeneid</strong> IV.1ff.”, PVS 10, 57-63.<br />

– (1971/2): “Catullus and Virgil”, PVS 11, 25-47.<br />

– (1988): “Vergil and Philosophy”, PVS 19, 17-29.<br />

Fernandelli, Marco (1986): “Il compito della Musa. Sul proemio di Eneide VII”, QFC 5, 85-<br />

104.<br />

– (1996a): “Invenzione mitologica e tecnica del racconto nell’episodio virgiliano di Polidoro<br />

(Aen. 3.1-68)”, Prometheus 22, 247-73.<br />

– (1996b): “Presenze tragiche nell’Ilioupersis virgiliana: su Aen. 2, 768-794 e Eur. Andr.<br />

1231-1238”, MD 36, 187-96.<br />

– (1997a): “Il prologo divino dell’Eneide (il prologo delle ‘Troiane’ di Euripide e Aen. 1.34-<br />

52)”, Lexis 15, 99-115.<br />

– (1997b): “‘Serpent imagery’ e tragedia greca nel II libro dell’‘Eneide’”, Orpheus 18, 141-<br />

56.<br />

– (1998a): Noctem non amplius unam: eros e tempo nell’episodio cartaginese dell’Eneide”,<br />

in Quaderni del Dipartimento di filologia, linguistica e tradizione classica 1997<br />

(Bologna), 185-205.<br />

– (1998b): “La similitudine della caldaia in Virgilio, Omero e Quinto Smirneo”, in Quaderni<br />

del Dipartimento di filologia, linguistica e tradizione classica 1998 (Bologna), 103-19.<br />

– (1998c): “Virgilio imitatore: quattro ipotesi a proposito di Eneide I”, Lexis 16, 163-99.<br />

37


– (1999a): “Aletto e Discordia (su ‘Eneide’ VII 325-6 e Enn. ‘Annales’ fr. X Skutsch)”,<br />

Maia 51, 23-7.<br />

– (1999b): “Due note all’‘Eneide’: 3.19-46 e 7.286-92”, Prometheus 25, 166-76.<br />

– (1999c): “‘Sic pater Aeneas … fata renarrabat diuom’: esperienza del racconto e<br />

esperienza nel racconto in ‘Eneide’ II e III”, MD 42, 95-112.<br />

– (1999d): “Sum pius Aeneas. Eneide 1 e l’umanizzazione della pietas”, Quaderni del<br />

Dipartimento di filologia linguistica e tradizioneclassica (Torino) 1999, 197-231.<br />

– (2002a): “Banchetto a teatro a banchetto: presenze dello Ione di Euripide nel libro I<br />

dell’Eneide, Orpheus 23, 2-28.<br />

– (2002b): “Come sulle scene. Eneide 4 e la tragedia”, Dipartimento di filologia linguistica e<br />

tradizione classica ‘Augusto Rostagni’. Quaderni 19, n. s. 1, 141-211.<br />

– (2003): “Virgilio e l’esperienza tragica. Pensieri fuori moda sul libro libro IV dell’Eneide”,<br />

Cristante, Lucio (2003; ed.): Incontri triestini di filologia classica II – 2002-2003.<br />

Polymnia. Studi di Filologia Classica 4 (Trieste), 1-54.<br />

Ferraro, Salvatore (1982): La presenza di Virgilio nei graffiti pompeiani (Napoli) [S. Martin,<br />

Vergilius 29, 1983, 81-2].<br />

Ferraro, Vittorio (1983): “Nostrae iniuria caedis (Verg. Aen. 3, 256)”, GFF 6, 103-6.<br />

– (2000): “Metonimie d’arte nell’Eneide”, Aufidus 41, 35-47.<br />

Firpo, Giulio (1995a): “Casperia”, Athenaeum 83, 512-7.<br />

– (1995b): “Super et Garamantes et Indos/proferet imperium (Verg. Aen. 6.794-5): alcuni<br />

aspetti della politica africana di Augusto”, QIASA 5, 49-60.<br />

Fish, Jeffrey (2004): “Anger, Philodemus’ Good King, and the Helen Episode of <strong>Aeneid</strong><br />

2.567-589: A New Proof of Authenticity from Herculaneum”, in<br />

Armstrong/Fish/Johnston/Skinner (2004), 111-38.<br />

Fitzgerald, William (1984): “Aeneas, Daedalus, and the Labyrinth”, Arethusa 17, 51-65 =<br />

Hardie (1999b), iv, 207-20.<br />

– (2004): “Fatalis Machina: Berlioz’s Les Troyens”, MD 52, 199-210.<br />

Fladerer, L. (1998): “Vergil, ein materialistischer Stoiker. Die Anchisesrede in Aen. 6, 724-<br />

751 in semiotisch-philosophiehistorischer Perspektive”, Latomus 57, 336-61.<br />

Fleck, Michael (1977): “Helena und Venus im zweiten Aeneisbuch”, Hermes 105, 68-79.<br />

Fleißner, Ulrike (1993): “Dido und Aeneas –‘Liebe’ und ‘Liebesverrat’ im Nationalepos der<br />

Römer“, in Neukam, Peter (1993; ed.): Motiv und Motivation. Dialog Schule-<br />

Wissenschaft. Klassische Sprachen und Literaturen 27 (München), 26-46.<br />

Flores Gomez, María Esperanza (1999a): “Dido enamorada: metrica e contenido”, in Moreno,<br />

J. Luque/Diaz y Diaz, P. R. (1999; edd.): Estudios de metrica latina (Granada), 371-90.<br />

– (1999b): “¿Un uso particular del moloso?: el libro cuarto de la Eneida”, CFC(L) 17, 37-<br />

55.<br />

Florio, Rubén (2002): “La Eneida: reinvención de la épica”, QUCC 70, 107-23.<br />

Fontaine, Michael (2004): “Propertius 3.4, 1.1 and the <strong>Aeneid</strong> Incipit”, CQ 54, 649-50.<br />

Fontanier, Jean-Michel (1998): “Enquête sur la mort de Didon”, LEC 66, 245-58.<br />

Fontes, J. Brasil (2002): “O destierro de Enéias”, Phaos 2, 85-93.<br />

Fordyce, C. J. (1977): P. Vergili Maronis <strong>Aeneid</strong>os Libri VII-VIII with a Commentary.<br />

Introduction by P. G. Walsh. Edited by John D. Christie (Oxford; repr. with minor<br />

corrections Bristol, 1985) [H. M. Currie, PVS 16, 1976/7, 44; R. J. Clark, Phoenix 32,<br />

1978, 353-6; J. Perret, REL 56, 1978, 479-81; M. C. J. Putnam, Vergilius 24, 1978, 80-2;<br />

N. Horsfall, CR 29, 1979, 219-23; D. H. Mills, CO 56, 1979, 88-9; T. Woodman, G&R 26,<br />

1979, 89; G. Binder, Gymnasium 87, 1980, 105-6; R. A. Hornsby, CJ 75, 1980, 73-5; E. A.<br />

McDermott, AJPh 101, 1980, 220-1; M. Pulbrook, Hermathena 128, 1980, 54-5; J. den<br />

Boeft, Mnemosyne 34, 1981, 179-81].<br />

Fores, Enrico (1983): “L’Eneide, ‘lo spirito del tempo’ e Virgilio”, in Nazzaro (1983), 29-45.<br />

38


Formica, Francesca (2002): “Il riuso di Virgilio nel centone cristiano De Ecclesia”, VetChr<br />

39, 235-55.<br />

Formicola, Creszenzo (1989): “Allusione e simbolismo in Virgilio (Aen. IV 143 sq.; 246<br />

sq.)”, Vichiana 18, 1989, 272-96.<br />

– (1992): “Modelli greci e stilemi virgiliani nell’episodio di Elena (Aen. II 657-88)”, in<br />

Fores, Enrico [et al.] (1992; edd.): Miscellanea di studi in onore di Armando Salvatore.<br />

Pubblicazioni del Dipartimento di Filologia classica dell’Università degli Studi Federico II<br />

7 (Napoli), 57-78.<br />

Forsyth, Neil (1999/2000): “Paradise Lost and the Origin of ‘Evil’: Classical or Judeo-<br />

Christian?”, IJCT 6, 516-48.<br />

Fortassier, P. (1979): “L’hypermètre dans l’hexamètre dactylique latin”, REL 57, 383-414.<br />

Fortuny, F. (1983): “Nota a Virgilio, Eneida VI. 802”, Emérita 51, 315-21.<br />

Foss, Rainer (1997): Griechische Jenseitsvorstellungen von Homer bis Plato. Mit einem<br />

Anhang über Vergils sechstes Buch der Aeneis (Aachen).<br />

Foster, Jonathan C. B. (1977): “Divine and Demonic Possession in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, LCM 2, 117-<br />

28.<br />

– (1991): “Three Passages in Virgil”, SO 66, 109-113.<br />

– (1996): “Some Interactive Instances of the Hero’s Name in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, PVS 22, 101-5.<br />

Foucher, A. (1997): “Formes et sens des aristies épiques”, Euphrosyne 25, 9-23.<br />

Foucher, Louis (1978): “Les Phéniciens à Carthage ou la geste d’Élissa”, in Chevallier<br />

(1978), 1-15.<br />

Fourcade, J. (1980): “Typologie trochée + iambe au pied 1 de l’hexamètre, d’Ennius à Lucain.<br />

Analyse et essai d’interprétation”, Pallas 27, 39-55.<br />

– (1984): “Un aspect particulier de la misericordia dans l’Énéide”, Pallas 31, 29-39.<br />

Fowler, Don P. (1982): “Vergil, <strong>Aeneid</strong> 6.392-4”, LCM 7, 76.<br />

– (1983a): “An Acrostic in Vergil (<strong>Aeneid</strong> 7.601-4)?”, CQ 33, 298.<br />

– (1983b): “Vergil, <strong>Aeneid</strong> 6.392-4 Again”, LCM 8, 77-8.<br />

– (1987a): “The Rhetoric of Desperation”, HSPh 91, 5-38.<br />

– (1987b): “Vergil on Killing Virgins” in Whitby, Michael/Hardie, Philip/Whitby, Mary<br />

(edd.): Homo Viator: Classical Essays for John Bramble (Bristol), 185-98.<br />

– (1990): “Deviant Focalisation in Virgil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, PCPhS 36, 42-63 = Hardie (1999b), iii,<br />

302-23 = D. Fowler (2000b), 40-63.<br />

– (1991): “Narrate and Describe: The Problem of Ekphrasis”, JRS 81, 25-35 = D. Fowler<br />

(2000b), 64-85.<br />

– (1996): “God the Father (Himself) in Virgil”, PVS 22, 35-52 = D. Fowler (2000b), 218-34.<br />

– (1997a): “Epicurean Anger”, in Morton Braund, Susanna, Gill/Christopher (1997; edd.):<br />

The Passions in Roman Thought and Literature (Cambridge), 16-35.<br />

– (1997b): “The Virgil Commentary of Servius”, in Martindale (1997a), 73-8.<br />

– (1997c): “Virgilian Narrative: Story-Telling”, in Martindale (1997a), 259-70.<br />

– (1998): “Opening the Gates of War: <strong>Aeneid</strong> 7.601-40”, in Stahl (1998b), 155-74 = D.<br />

Fowler (2000b), 173-92.<br />

– (2000a): “Epic in the Middle of the Wood: Mise en Abyme in the Nisus and Euryalus<br />

Episode”, in Sharrock, Alison, Morales, Helen (edd.): Intratextuality: Greek and Roman<br />

Relations (Oxford), 89-113.<br />

– (2000b): Roman Constructions: Readings in Postmodern Latin (Oxford) [W. S. Anderson,<br />

BMCR 00.11.26; A. Laird, CR 53, 2003, 244-6].<br />

Fowler, W. Warde ( 2 1918): Virgil’s ‘Gathering of the Clans’ Being Observations on <strong>Aeneid</strong><br />

VII. 601-817 (Oxford).<br />

Fraenkel, Eduard (1945): “Some Aspects of the Structure of <strong>Aeneid</strong> 7”, JRS 35, 1-14 = id.,<br />

Kleine Beiträge zur klassischen Philologie (Roma), ii, 145-71 = S. J. Harrison (1990b),<br />

253-76.<br />

39


Fraga Montero, Lorenzo (2000): “Las variantes Lauiniaque, Lauinaque en Eneida I 2”, in<br />

Alvar Ezquerra/García Jurado (edd.): Actas del X Congreso español de estudios clásicos<br />

(21-25 de septiembre de 1999). II: Lingüistica latina, literatura latina, filologia clásica<br />

(Madrid), 559-66.<br />

Franchi, Barbara (1995): “L’epos virgiliano e l’eziologia”, MD 34, 95-106.<br />

François, P. (2002): “Énée et Fabius Cunctator: une influence de Virgile sur Tite-Live? (à<br />

propos de Virg. Én. II, 596-600 et Liv. XXII, 23, 4)”, in Defosse, Pol (2002; ed.):<br />

Hommages à Carl Deroux. I: Poésie. Collection Latomus 266 (Bruxelles), 208-20.<br />

Frangoulidis, Stavros A. (1992): “Duplicity and Gift-Offerings in Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong> 1 and 2”,<br />

Vergilius 38, 26-37.<br />

Fredericksmeyer, E. A. (1984): “On the Opening of the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Vergilius 30, 10-19.<br />

– (1985): “Structural Perspectives in <strong>Aeneid</strong> VII”, CJ 80, 228-37.<br />

Freund, Stefan (2000): Vergil im frühen Christentum. Untersuchungen zu den Vergilzitaten<br />

bei Tertullian, Minucius Felix, Novatian, Cyprian und Arnobius. Studien zur Geschichte<br />

und Kultur des Altertums NF 1. Reihe, 16 (Paderborn, etc.) [F. Chapot, REAug 47, 2001,<br />

370-1; J. Filée, LEC 69, 2001, 209-10; T. Fuhrer, MH 58, 2001, 246; R. Henke, JbAC 44,<br />

2001, 207-10; E. Perotto, Augustinianum 41, 2001, 551-7; F. Pizzimenti, Maia 54, 2002,<br />

507-9; G. Schickler, Gymnasium 109, 2002, 242-4; E. Heck, IJCT 9, 20002/3, 423-9; V.<br />

Hunink, Mnemosyne 56, 2003, 368-70; M. Zelzer, WS 116, 2003, 308-9; P. Mattei,<br />

Gnomon 76, 2004, 72-4].<br />

Friedrich, Wolf-Hartmut (1982): Libyco cursu. Über Anfang und Schluß des 5. Buchs der<br />

Aeneis. NAGW 1982.2 (Göttingen).<br />

Froesch, Hartmut (1991): “Arma virumque cano: Beobachtungen zu den Eingangswörtern der<br />

Aeneis”, Anregung 37, 309-12.<br />

Fry, G. (2002): “Interactions métrico-linguistiques chez quelques poètes : de la césure chez<br />

Virgile, Lucain et Avit”, in Defosse, Pol (2002; ed.): Hommages à Carl Deroux. I: Poésie.<br />

Collection Latomus 266 (Bruxelles), 221-36.<br />

Fucecchi, Marco (1999): “‘Cavalli al pascolo’ nella notte di Eurialo e Niso: rovesciamento e<br />

reimpiego di un scolio omerico nell’‘Eneide’ (con un’appendice su Stazio)”, RFIC 127,<br />

206-22.<br />

Fuhrer, Therese (1989): “Aeneas: A Study in Character Development”, G&R 36, 63-72.<br />

Fuhrmann, Manfred (1968): “Die Funktion grausiger und ekelhafter Motive in der<br />

lateinischen Dichtung”, in Jauß, H. R. (1968; ed.): Die nicht mehr schönen Künste.<br />

Grenzphänomene des Ästhetischen. Poetik und Hermeneutik 3 (München), 23-66. 531-47.<br />

Funke, Hermann (1985): “Sunt lacrimae rerum. Komposition und Ideologie in Vergils<br />

Aeneis”, Klio 67, 224-33.<br />

– (1990): “parcere subiectis … ”, AU 33.6, 53-64.<br />

Fuqua, Charles (1982): “Hector, Sychaeus, and Deiphobus: Three Mutilated Figures in <strong>Aeneid</strong><br />

1-6”, CPh 77, 235-40.<br />

Fuzier, Hélène (1999): “La biche transpercée par Hercule avait-elle des pieds d’airain?” (à<br />

propos de Virgile, Én. VI, 802)”, Latomus 58, 99-108.<br />

Gabelmann, H. (1986): “Zur Schlußszene auf dem Schild des Aeneas. Vergil, Aeneis VIII<br />

720-728”, MDAI(R) 93, 281-300.<br />

Gärtner, Ursula (2005): Quintus Smyrnaeus und die Aeneis. Zur Nachwirkung Vergils in der<br />

griechischen Literatur der Kaiserzeit. Zetemata 123 (München).<br />

Gagé, Jean (1978): “ases de migration ‘dardanienne’ et escales ‘troyennes’ dans le mer<br />

ionienne”, REL 55, 84-112.<br />

Gagliardi, Donato (1980): “Un stilema virgiliano”, Orpheus 1, 123-5.<br />

40


– (1985): “Due morti disperate. Camilla e Turno (a proposito di Aen. 10, 831 e 12, 952)”,<br />

Orpheus 6, 404-7.<br />

– (1988): “La preghiera di Turno ad Aen. X, 668-679. Considerazioni eterodosse sulla<br />

Innenwelt del personaggio”, Vichiana 17, 109-19.<br />

Gagliardi, P. (2003): “Pallante, Lauso e l’ira di Enea”, Aufidus 16=49, 21-59.<br />

Gale, Monica R. (1997): “The Shield of Turnus (<strong>Aeneid</strong> 7.783-92)”, G&R 44, 176-96.<br />

– (2003): “Poetry and the Backward Glance in Virgil’s Georgics and <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, TAPhA 133,<br />

323-52.<br />

Galinsky, Gotthard Karl (1966): “The Hercules-Cacus Episode in <strong>Aeneid</strong> VIII”, AJPh 87, 18-<br />

51 = Hardie (1999b), iv, 274-303.<br />

– (1968): “<strong>Aeneid</strong> V and the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, AJPh 89, 157-85 = Hardie (1999b), iv, 182-206.<br />

– (1969): Aeneas, Sicily, and Rome (Princeton) [G. B. Philipp, Gymnasium 78, 1971, 161-4;<br />

R. Bloch, Gnomon 44, 1972, 41-7].<br />

– (1972): The Herakles Theme (Oxford) [131-49: “Hercules in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>” = S. J. Harrison<br />

(1990b), 277-94].<br />

– (1974): “Troiae qui primus ab oris … (Aen. I 1)”, Gymnasium 81, 182-200.<br />

– (1981): “Vergil’s Romanitas and His Adaptation of Greek Heroes”, ANRW ii 31.2, 985-<br />

1010.<br />

– (1983): “Aeneas in Latium: Archäologie, Mythos und Geschichte”, in Pöschl (1983), 37-<br />

62.<br />

– (1984): “Vergil and the Formation of the Augustan Ethos”, in Atti del Convegno nazionale<br />

(1984), 240-54.<br />

– (1987): “The <strong>Aeneid</strong> as a Guide to Life“, AugAge 7, 161-73.<br />

– (1988): “The Anger of Aeneas”, AJPh 109, 321-48 = Hardie (1999b), iv, 434-55.<br />

– (1992a): “Aeneas at Rome and Lavinium”, in Wilhelm/Jones (1992), 93-108.<br />

– (1992b): “Reading Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong> in Modern Times”, in id. (1992): Classical and Modern<br />

Interactions. Postmodern Architecture, Multiculturalism, Decline and Other Issues<br />

(Austin, TX), 74-92 [R. Glei, Gymnasium 101, 1994, 478-80].<br />

– (1994): “How to Be Philosophical About the End of the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, ICS 19, 191-201.<br />

– (1996): Augustan Culture: An Interpretive Introduction (Princeton) [T. R. Stevenson,<br />

Prudentia 28, 1996, 52-7; J. A. Crook, JRS 87, 1997, 287-8; E. Fantham, EMC 16, 1997,<br />

515-20; T. Habinek, Vergilius 43, 1997, 156-60; M. Jager, NECN 24, 1997, 115-7;<br />

Keaveney, G&R 44, 1997, 97-8; A. Smith, BMCRev 97.2.24; J.-M. André, Latomus 57,<br />

1998, 930-2; J. Booth, CR 48, 1998, 396-8; J. Henderson, Hermathena 164, 1998, 101-16;<br />

F. Hinard, REG 111, 1998, 354; L. A. Hughes, CO 75, 1998, 119-21; E. A. Schmidt, MH<br />

55, 1998, 247; J. B. Solodow, BMCRev 98.1.2; K. Wacker, Gymnasium 105, 1998, 79-81;<br />

R. J. Evans, Mnemosyne 52, 1999, 628-34; J. Filée, LEC 67, 1999, 119-20; A. La Penna,<br />

Athenaeum 87, 1999, 330-40; P. Walcot, G&R 46, 1999, 117; P. Hardie, Gnomon 72,<br />

2000, 49-53].<br />

– (2003a): “Clothes for the Emperor”, Arion 10, 143-69.<br />

– (2003b): “Greek and Roman Drama and the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, in Braund, David/Gill, Christopher<br />

(2003; edd.): Myth, History and Culture in Republican Rome: Studies in Honour of T. P.<br />

Wiseman (Exeter), 275-94.<br />

Gall, Dorothea (1993): Ipsius umbra Creusae – Creusa und Helena. AAWM 1993.6<br />

(Stuttgart) [D. F. Kennedy, G&R 41, 1994, 226-7; R. Lesueur, REL 72, 1994, 295-6; N.<br />

Horsfall, CR 45, 1995, 162-3; S. J. Harrison, Gnomon 68, 1996, 457-9].<br />

Gallais, Pierre/Thomas, Joël (1997): L’arbre et la forêt dans l’Éneide et l’Eneas. De la psyché<br />

antique à la psyché médiévale (Paris).<br />

Galli, Lucia (1999): “Dicta tyranni: Verg. Aen. 10.443 e la tragedia latina”, Prometheus 25,<br />

61-76.<br />

41


Gamberale, Leopoldo (1991): “Il cosidetto ‘preproemio’ dell’Eneide”, in Studi di filologia<br />

classica in onore di Giusto Monaco (Palermo), ii, 963-80.<br />

Garbarino, Giovanna (1992): L’Eneide nella tradizione epica greca e latina. Corso di<br />

letteratura latina (Torino).<br />

– (1993): “Omero nel I libro dell’Eneide”, in Amato, Biagio (1993; ed.): Cultura e lingue<br />

classiche, 3: 3 o convegno di aggiornamente e di didattica: Palermo, 29 ottobre-1<br />

novembre 1989 (Roma), 309-22.<br />

– (1994): “Mitici cantori: Iopa nel I libro dell’Eneide”, in Voce di molte acque. Miscellanea<br />

di studi offerti a Eugenio Corsini (Torino), 183-97.<br />

García Lopez, Yolanda (2001): “Reflexividad literaria y modelos de sociedad (Dido y la<br />

Magna Grecia), in Alvar Ezquerra, Antonio/García Jurado, Francisco (edd.): Actas del X<br />

Congreso español de estudios clásicos (21-25 de septiembre de 1999). II: Lingüistica<br />

latina, literatura latina, filologia clásica (Madrid), 383-90.<br />

García Pradas, R. (2004): “Hacia una nueva interpretación de la Eneida en el medievo<br />

literario francés: de la pasión al erotismo cortés en los rostros de la feminidad del Roman<br />

d’Énéas”, in García Pinilla, Ignacio J./Talavera Cuesta, Santiago (edd.): Charisterion<br />

Francisco Martín García oblatum. Homenajes 9 (Cuenca), 587-605.<br />

García Zapata, Begoña (1994): “Novissima verba de los personajes de la Eneida”, CFC(L) 6,<br />

71-83.<br />

Gardiner, Jill (1987): “Virgil, <strong>Aeneid</strong> 2.349-50”, CQ 37, 454-7.<br />

Garrison, James (1992): Pietas from Vergil to Dryden (University Park, PA).<br />

Garstad, Benjamin (2003): “The Assyrian Hero’s Romantic Interlude in Libya: A topos from<br />

Virgil in Pisander of Laranda, the Picus-Zeus Narrative, and Nonnus of Panoplis”, Eranos<br />

101, 6-16.<br />

Garstang, J. B. (1950): “The Tragedy of Turnus”, Phoenix 9, 47-58.<br />

Gaskin, Richard (1992): “Turnus, Mezentius and the Complexity of Virgil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, in<br />

Deroux, Carl (1992; ed.): Studies in Latin Literature and Roman History 6. Collection<br />

Latomus 217 (Bruxelles), 295-316.<br />

– (1994): “Aeneas Ultor and the Problem of pietas”, Eirene 30, 70-96.<br />

Gasparotto, Giovanni (1987): Presagi, previsioni e predizioni nel lessico di Virgilio (Verona)<br />

[Puccioni, CCC 9, 1988, 386; M. Pulbrook, Hermathena 146, 1989, 75].<br />

– (1989): “La mantica componente nella poesia di Virgilio”, AVM 57, 135-56.<br />

Gaßner, Jacob (1972): Kataloge im römischen Epos. Vergil, Ovid, Lucan (Diss. München) [E.<br />

Burck, Gnomon 46, 1974, 470-5].<br />

Gasser, Franziska (1999): Germana Patria: Die Geburtsheimat in den Werken römischer<br />

Autoren der späten Republik und der frühen Kaiserzeit. Beiträge zur Altertumskunde 118<br />

(Stuttgart/Leipzig).<br />

Gasti, Fabio (2002): “Serv. auct., Aen. IX, 257 Thilo”, Latomus 61, 964-6.<br />

Gaunt, D. M. (1977): “The Creation-Theme in Epic Poetry”, CompLit 29, 213-20.<br />

Gehring, Thomas (2003): “Infelix – en felix (eine Konjektur zu Aen. 12, 641)”, MH 60, 165-6.<br />

Gély, Suzanne (1987): “Noms de personnes et noms de lieux. Espace de temps du mythe dans<br />

le chant III de l’Énéide”, VL 107, 17-24.<br />

– (1992a): “Le nom et l’imagination de la personne chez Virgile”, in Thomas, Joël (1992;<br />

ed.): Les imaginaires des Latins. Actes du colloque international de Perpignan (12-13-14<br />

novembre 1991). Coll. Études Perpignan (Perpignan), 61-76.<br />

– (1992b): “Poiésis: l’expérience de la métamorphose et l’approche poétique du divin chez<br />

Virgile; la modification par le nom”, BAGB 1992, 181-94.<br />

George, Eward Vincent (1974): <strong>Aeneid</strong> VIII and the Aitia of Callimachus. Mnemosyne<br />

Supplementum 27 (Leiden) [J. Perret, REL 53, 1975, 491-2; N. Horsfall, JRS 65, 228-9; G.<br />

K. Galinsky, Latomus 35, 1976, 900-2; K. W. Gransden, CR 26, 1976, 183-4; K. J.<br />

McKay, Mnemosyne 30, 1977, 446-7].<br />

42


– (1978): “Acestes, Acastus: <strong>Aeneid</strong> 5.35-41”, AC 47, 553-6.<br />

Georgii, Heinrich (1891): Die antike Aeneiskritik aus den Scholien und anderen Quellen<br />

hergestellt (Stuttgart; repr. Hildesheim, 1971).<br />

Gesztelyi, Tamás (1987): “Vergil und die Politik”, ACD 23, 51-6.<br />

– (2000): “Abschied von der Gattin. Eine Aeneis-Szene auf einem norischen Grabrelief”,<br />

AAntHung 40, 123-31.<br />

Geyer, Angelika (1989): Die Genese narrativer Buchillustration. Der Miniaturenzyklus zur<br />

Aeneis im Vergilius Vaticanus. Frankfurter wissenschaftliche Beiträge.<br />

Kulturwissenschaftliche Reihe 17 (Frankfurt am Main) [F. Rickert, Gnomon 64, 1992,<br />

507-10].<br />

Geymonat, Mario (1973): P. Vergili Maronis Opera. Post Remigium Sabbadini et Aloisium<br />

Castiglioni recensuit M. G. Corpus Scriptorum Latinorum Paravianum (Torino) [D. A.<br />

West, CR 26, 1976, 35-6].<br />

– (1987): “Some Textual Problems in Virgil”, MPhL 8, 45-61.<br />

– (1989): “Per un commento iconografico all’Eneide”, AVM 57, 95-133.<br />

– (1993): “Callimachus at the End of Aeneas’ Narration”, HSPh 95, 323-31.<br />

– (1995): “The Transmission of Virgil’s Works in Antiquity and the Middle Ages”, in<br />

Horsfall (1995c), 293-312.<br />

– (2000): “Immagini letterarie e reali del paesaggio di montagna in Virgilio”, Philologus<br />

144, 81-9.<br />

Gharbi, Brahim (1997): “Virgile et Aristote ou De l’‘Énéide’ à la ‘Poétique’: ‘infelix amor’:<br />

de [sic] la tragédie de Didon dans l’Énéide IIV de Virgile”, Parnassos 39, 255-64.<br />

Giacomelli, Roberto (1992): “Virgilio e la libertà espressiva”, Acme 45, 21-32.<br />

Giancotti, Francesco (1983): “Lettura del dodicesimo libro dell’Eneide”, in Gigante (1983),<br />

389-524.<br />

– (1993a): “Aen. XII 605: flavos o floros?, in Giancotti (1993b), 123-47.<br />

– (1993b): Victor tristis: lettura dell’ultimo libro dell’Eneide. Testi e manuali per<br />

l’insegnamento universitario del latino 37 (Bologna) [R. Lesueur, REL 71, 1993, 288-9; M.<br />

Tartari Chersoni, RFIC 121, 1993, 452-4; F. Corsaro, Orpheus 15, 1994, 498-500; F. P. De<br />

Lemos, Euphrosyne 22, 1994, 484; N. Horsfall, Vergilius 40, 1994, 155; J.-Y. Maleuvre,<br />

RBPh 72, 1994, 161-3; S. Viarre, AC 63, 1994, 394-5; H. Bardon, Latomus 54, 1995, 162-<br />

3].<br />

– “Su Enea victor tristis”, Paideia 58, 313-44.<br />

Giardina, G. C. (1984/5): “Verg. Aen. IX 172”, MCr 19/20, 199-200.<br />

Gibson, Craig Allan (1999): “Punitive Blinding in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 3”, CW 92, 359-66.<br />

Gibson, Roy K. (1999): “Aeneas as hospes in Vergil, <strong>Aeneid</strong> 1 and 4”, CQ 49, 184-202.<br />

Giebel, Marion (1986): Vergil. Mit Selbstzeugnissen und Bilddokumenten. Rowohlts<br />

Monographien 353 (Reinbek) [F. X. Herrmann, Gymnasium 95, 1988, 436].<br />

Giesche, Maria (1980): Die Differenzierung des Rhythmus als Gliederungsprinzip bei Vergil.<br />

Europäische Hochschulschriften 15. Reihe 16 (Frankfurt am Main).<br />

Giesecke, Annette Lucia (2000): Atoms, Ataraxy, and Allusion: Cros-generic Imitation of the<br />

De Rerum Natura in Early Augustan Poetry. Spudasmata 76 (Hildesheim).<br />

– (2002): “Framing Virgil’s Ghosts: Allusion and the Illusion of Rothko’s Door”, Helios 29,<br />

127-48.<br />

Gigante, Marcello (1983; ed.): Lecturae <strong>Vergilian</strong>ae. III: L’Eneide (Napoli) [N. Horsfall, CR<br />

37, 1987, 101; H. Eisenberger, GB 15, 1988, 275-83].<br />

– (1986; ed.): La Fortuna di Virgilio. Atti del Convegno internazionale (Napoli 24-26<br />

ottobre 1983). Premessa di –. Società nazionale di scienze lettere e arti in Napoli (Napoli,<br />

1986) [N. Horsfall, CR 38, 1988, 151-2; M. Squillante Saccone, Orpheus 9, 1988, 145-8;<br />

L. Deschamps, REA 90,1988, 271-2; Meillier, REG 101, 1988, 573-4].<br />

43


– (1988; ed.): Coronide Virgiliana. Società nazionale di scienze lettere e arti in Napoli<br />

(Napoli).<br />

– (1990; ed.): Virgilio e gli Augustei (Napoli) [A. Foulon, Kentron 7, 1991, 31-8; N.<br />

Horsfall, CR 41, 1991, 483-4; J.-P. Brisson, Latomus 51, 1992, 905-6; R. Dimundo,<br />

Aufidus 17, 1992, 143-4; F. Gasti, Athenaeum 80, 1992, 552-5; P.-J. Dehon, AC 62, 193,<br />

318-21; G. Dobesch, Tyche 8, 1993, 244].<br />

– (1994): “Virgilio e le stelle”, Curti, Carmelo/Crimi, Carmelo (1994; edd.): Scritti classici e<br />

cristiani offerti a Francesco Corsaro (Catania), i, 319-25.<br />

– (1996): “Lucio Vario Rufo e Virgilio”, SO 71, 100-1.<br />

– (2001): “Virgilio all’ombra del Vesuvio”, CErc 31, 5-26 ~ Vergil in the Shadow of<br />

Vesuvius, in Armstrong, David/Fish, Jeffrey/Johnston, Patricia A./Skinner, Marilyn<br />

(Hrsgg.): Philodemus, Vergil and the Augustans (Austin, TX, 2002), 85-99.<br />

Gigante Lanzara, Valeria (1999): “Echi dell’Alessandra nella poesia latina”, Maia 51, 331-47.<br />

Gijsel, J. (1978): “Lenibat dictis animum lacrimasque ciebat (Verg. Aen. VI 468)”, Lampas<br />

11, 212-7.<br />

Gill, Christopher (1997): “Passion as Madness in Roman Poetry”, in Morton Braund,<br />

Susanna, Gill/Christopher (1997; edd.): The Passions in Roman Thought and Literature<br />

(Cambridge), 213-41.<br />

– (2003): “Reactive and Objective Attitudes: Anger in Virgil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong> and Hellenistic<br />

Philosophy”, in Braund, Susanna/Most, Glenn W. (2003; edd.): Ancient Anger:<br />

Perspectives from Homer to Galen. Yale Classical Studies 32 (Cambridge), 229-49.<br />

Gillis, Daniel (1983): Eros and Death in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>. Centro ricerche e documentazione<br />

sull’antichitá classica. Monografie (Roma) [V. J. Cleary, Vergilius 30, 1984, 68-70; M.<br />

Lausberg, Gymnasium 93, 1986, 394-6; M. Squillante Saccone, BStudLat 16, 1986, 108; S.<br />

F. Wiltshire, CO 1986/7, 64-6; Curletto, Maia 39, 1987, 85-6; D. Nardo, Paideia 42, 1987,<br />

121-3; A. Traina, RFIC 115, 1987, 90-1].<br />

– (1984): “The Heroism of Anchises”, PP 39, 321-41.<br />

Gioseffi, Massimo (1991): Studi sul commento a Virgilio dello Pseudo-Probo. Pubblicazioni<br />

della Facoltà di lettere e filosofia dell’Università di Milano 143. Sezione a cura dell’Istituto<br />

di Filologia Classica 3 (Firenze) [M. D. Reeve, CR 43, 1993, 47-8].<br />

– (1999/2000): “Spigolaturae Claudianee (Virgilio, Claudiano e la tradizione di commento a<br />

Virgilio)”, Voces 10/11, 101-14.<br />

– (2000; ed.): E io sarò tua guida. Raccolta di saggi su Virgilio e gli studi virgiliani (Milano)<br />

[R. Lesueur, LEC 81, 2003, 381-2; S. Casali, Vergilius 50, 2004, 175-81].<br />

Girod, Roger (1978): “Virgile et l’histoire dans l’Énéide”, in Chevallier (1978), 17-33.<br />

Glei, Reinhold (1989): “Krieg und Frieden in der Sicht des Dichters Vergil”, in Binder,<br />

Gerhard/Effe, Bernd (1989; edd.): Krieg und Frieden im Altertum. BAC. Bochumer<br />

Altertumswissenschaftliches Colloquium 1 (Trier), 171-90.<br />

– (1990): “Von Probus zu Pöschl: Vergilinterpretation im Wandel”, Gymnasium 97, 321-40.<br />

– (1991): Der Vater der Dinge: Interpretationen zur poetischen, literarischen und<br />

kulturellen Dimension des Krieges bei Vergil. BAC. Bochumer<br />

Altertumswissenschaftliches Colloquium 7 (Trier 2 1997) [O. Devillers, LEC 61, 1993, 374-<br />

5; L. Voit, Gymnasium 100, 1993, 181-4; J.-P. Brisson, Latomus 53, 1994, 644-6; S. J.<br />

Harrison, Gnomon 68, 1996, 300-2].<br />

– (1998): “The Show Must Go on: The Death of Marcellus and the Future of the Augustan<br />

Principate: <strong>Aeneid</strong> 6.860-86”, in Stahl (1998b, 119-134.<br />

Glenn, Justin (1981): “Odyssean Echoes in Aen. 10.880-82”, AJPh 102, 43-9.<br />

Glücklich, H. J. (1984a): Interpretationen und Unterrichtsvorschläge zu Vergils Aeneis.<br />

Consilia 6 (Göttingen).<br />

– (1984b): “Leidenschaft, Vernunft und der Sinn des Lebens. Vergils Aeneis als<br />

Schullektüre”, Gymnasium 91, 40-60.<br />

44


Görler, Woldemar (1975): “Aeneas’ Ankunft in Latium. Beobachtungen zu Vergils epischer<br />

Technik”, WJA 2, 165-79.<br />

– (1979): “Ex verbis communibus κακοζηλία. Die augusteischen ‘Klassiker’ und die<br />

griechischen Theoretiker des Klassizismus”, in Flashar, Hellmut (1979; ed.): Le<br />

classicisme à Rome aux 1 ers siècles avant et après J.-C. Entretiens sur l’Antiquité classique<br />

25 (Vandœuvres/Genève), 175-211.<br />

– (1982a): “Beobachtungen zu Vergils Syntax”, WJA 8, 69-81.<br />

– (1982b): “From Sea to Shining Sea: Some Remarks on Virgil’s Syntax”, in McKay (1982),<br />

48-79.<br />

– (1986): “Kontrastierende Szenenpaare: Indirekte ‘Präsenz des Autors’ in Vergils Aeneis”,<br />

RhM 129, 285-305.<br />

– (1999): “Rowing Strokes: Tentative Considerations on ‘Shifting’ Objects in Virgil and<br />

Elsewhere”, in Adams, J. N., Mayer, Roland (edd.): Aspects of the Language of Latin<br />

Poetry. Proceedings of the British Academy 93 (Oxford), 269-86.<br />

– (2002): “Rhetorisches in der Aeneis. Zu zwei wenig beachteten Argumentationsschemata”,<br />

Hyperboreus 8, 302-13.<br />

Götte, Johannes (1958): Vergil: Aeneis. Lateinisch-Deutsch. Tusculum-Bücherei (München;<br />

9 Zürich, 1997. Mit einem Nachwort von Kytzler, Bernhard. Sammlung Tusculum).<br />

Goins, Scott (1992/3): “Two Aspects of Vergil’s Use of labor in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, CJ 88, 375-84.<br />

– (2001): “Boethius Consolation of Philosophy 1.2.6 and Virgil <strong>Aeneid</strong> 2: Removing the<br />

Clouds of Mortal Anxieties”, Phoenix 55, 124-36.<br />

Goldberg, Sander M. (1995): Epic in Republican Rome (New York/Oxford) [J. Dangel, REL<br />

73, 1995, 281-3; O. Phillips, BMCRev 95.09.08; D. F. Kennedy, G&R 43, 1996, 85;<br />

Svarlien, CJ 92, 1996, 84-6; P. Hardie, CR 47, 1997, 37-8; M. Geymonat, Gnomon 70,<br />

1998, 454-5].<br />

Gómez Pallarèz, Joan (1993): “Otros ecos en la Eneida de Virgilio: la ‘evidenza’ de los<br />

Carmina Latina Epigraphica“, Helmantica 44, 267-80.<br />

– (2000): “Latro in Virgil, A. 12, 7: An Alternative Explanation”, Mnemosyne 53, 218-21.<br />

– /Fernández Martínez, C. (2003): “Dearum mulierumque incessus: CLE 52, 7 y Virg. Aen.<br />

1, 404-5”, Latomus 62, 311-20.<br />

González Delgado, R. (2003): “Virgilio y las heroínas griegas: paralelismo en la construcción<br />

de dos figuras míticas”, Emérita 71, 245-58.<br />

González Vázquez, José (1979/80): “Mezencio. Su caracterización a través de las imagenes,<br />

Aen. X, 689-772”, CFC 16, 127-38.<br />

– (1980): La imagen en la poesía de Virgilio (Granada) [Fontaine, REL 59, 1981, 382-3; J.<br />

Perret, RPh 57, 1983, 164].<br />

– (1981/2): “En torno a una imagen virgiliana. Aen. XII, 710 y ss.”, CFC 17, 185-92.<br />

– (1981-3): “En torno a una imagen virgiliana. Estudio estilístico y literario de Aen. IX, 47-<br />

76”, EClás 25, 95-110.<br />

– (1982): “Las duras ... auris de Eneas (Aen., IV, 428)”, Latomus 41, 577-83.<br />

– (1986/7): “‘Modernidad’ de algunas imágenes virgilianas”, CFC 20, 329-37.<br />

– (1987): “La imagen-comparación de Neptuno (Aen. 1, 148-156)”, Latomus 46, 363-8.<br />

Goold, George P. (1970): “Servius and the Helen Episode”, HSPh 74, 101-68 = S. J. Harrison<br />

(1990b), 60-126.<br />

– (1992): “The Voice of Virgil: The Pageant of Rome in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 6”, in Woodman,<br />

Tony/Powell, Jonathan (1992; edd.): Author and Audience in Latin Literature<br />

(Cambridge), 110-23.<br />

– (2002): “Hypermeter and Elision in Virgil”, in Miller, John F./Damon, Cynthia/Myers, K.<br />

Sara (2002; edd.): Vertis in usum. Studies in Honor of Edward Courtney. Beiträge zur<br />

Altertumskunde 161 (München/Leipzig), 76-89.<br />

45


Gordesiani, Rismag (1999): “Prinzipien der Individualisierung der Helden im antiken Epos<br />

(Homer, Apollonios Rhodios, Vergil)”, in Kazazis, John N./Rengakos, Antonios (1999;<br />

edd.): Euphrosyne: Studies in Ancient Epic and Its Legacy in Honor of Dimitris N.<br />

Maronitis (Stuttgart), 124-31.<br />

Gordon, A. E. (1990): “Vergil’s Funeral Game for Anchises”, CW 84, 46.<br />

Gordon, Pamela (1998): “Dido the Phaeacian: Lost Pleasures of an Epicurean Intertext”,<br />

ClAnt 17, 188-211.<br />

Gossage, A. J. (1969): “Virgil and the Flavian Epic”, in Dudley (1969), 67-93.<br />

Gotoff, Harold C. (1984): “The Transformation of Mezentius”, TAPhA 114, 191-218.<br />

– (1985): “The Difficulty of the Ascent from Avernus”, CPh 80, 35-40.<br />

Gottlieb, Gunther (1998): “Religion in the Politics of Augustus: <strong>Aeneid</strong> 1.278-91; 8.714-23;<br />

12.791-842, in Stahl (1998b), 21-36.<br />

Goud, T. E./Yardley, J. C. (1988): “Dido’s Burning Effigy: <strong>Aeneid</strong> 4.508”, RhM 131, 386-8.<br />

Grafton, A. J./Swerdlow, N. M. (1986): “Greek Chronography in Roman Epic: The<br />

Calendrical Date of the Fall of Troy in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, CQ 36, 212-8.<br />

Grandazzi, Alexandre (1979): “Virgile et le Latium archaïque”, BAGB 1979, 301-11.<br />

Gransden, Karl Watts (1973/4): “Typology, Symbolism and Allegory in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, PVS 13,<br />

14-27.<br />

– (1976; ed.): Virgil <strong>Aeneid</strong> Book VIII. Cambridge Greek and Latin Classics (Cambridge) [J.<br />

Perret, REL 54, 1976, 396; M. Pulbrook, Hermathena 122, 1977, 85-6; A. C. F. Verity,<br />

G&R 24, 1977, 83-4; G. Binder, Gymnasium 85, 1978, 538-40; J. Griffin, CR 28, 1978, 33-<br />

5; R. A. Hornsby, CJ 73, 1978, 258-9; E. A. McDermott, AJPh 99, 1978, 513-6; N.<br />

Horsfall, JRS 69, 1979, 231-4; G. Jäger, Gnomon 52, 1980, 244-5].<br />

– (1983): “Virgil’s Iliad”, in Winnifrith, T./Murray, P./Gransden, K. W. (1983; edd.):<br />

Aspects of the Epic (New York), 46-63.<br />

– (1984): Virgil’s Iliad: An Essay on Epic Narrative (Cambridge) [P. Heuzé, REL 62, 1984,<br />

482-4; F. Muecke, Classicum 27, 1985, 35-6; M. C. J. Putnam, CO 63, 1985, 33; F.<br />

Robertson, G&R 32, 1985, 213-4; Woodman, DUJ 78, 1985, 174-6; A. Wankenne, LEC<br />

53, 1985, 483-4; M. M. Willcock, JACT Review 2, 1985, 22; W. W. Briggs, Vergilius 32,<br />

1986, 103-4; R. J. Clark, EMC 30, 1986, 90-3; R. Egan, Phoenix 40, 1986, 473-5; S. J.<br />

Harrison, CR 36, 1986, 38-40; M. Lausberg, Gymnasium 93, 1986, 552-4; S. Quinn Katz,<br />

CW 79, 1986, 415; A. Traina, RFIC 114, 1986, 208-9; T. Van Nortwick, AJPh 107, 1986,<br />

293-6; H. C. Gotoff, CPh 82, 1987, 168-74; R. Lesueur, Latomus 46, 1987, 872-3].<br />

– (1985): “The Fall of Troy”, G&R 32, 60-72 = McAuslan/Walcot (1990), 121-33.<br />

– (1990): Virgil, The <strong>Aeneid</strong> Landmarks of World Literature (Cambridge; 2 2004; ed. S. J.<br />

Harrison) [T. L. Calder, Vergilius 36, 1990, 134-5; R. Lesueur, 68, 1990, 209; P. Hardie,<br />

CR 41, 1991, 482; M. C. J. Putnam, CW 84, 1990/1, 477-8; Devine, CB 67, 1991, 49-50;<br />

D. Fowler, G&R 38, 1991, 89-90; S. Viarre, AC 61, 1992, 381-2; S. G. Nugent, CO 70,<br />

1992/3, 75; P. A. Roche, BMCRev 2004.05.20].<br />

– (1991; ed.): Virgil <strong>Aeneid</strong> Book XI. Cambridge Greek and Latin Classics (Cambridge) [T.<br />

L. Calder, Vergilius 38, 1992, 144-6; D. Fowler, G&R 39, 1992, 225-6; A. A. Alves de<br />

Sousa, Euphrosyne 21, 1993, 475-6; J. Farrell, BMCRev 04.01.14; P. Hardie, JRS 83, 1993,<br />

212-3; D. E. Hill, CR 43, 1993, 261-3; A. Novara, REL 71, 1993, 274-5; S. Viarre, AC 62,<br />

1993, 317; J. Glazewski, CW 87, 1993/4, 252; H. Perdicoyanni, EMC 62, 1994, 400; D.<br />

Ross, CJ 90, 1994/5, 81-6; P. L. Smith, EMC 38, 1994, 84-7].<br />

Grassmann-Fischer, Brigitte (1966): Die Prodigien in Vergils Aeneis. Studia et Testimonia<br />

Antiqua 3 (München) [G. Binder, Gymnasium 76, 1969, 121-4; V. Pöschl, AAHG 23,<br />

1969, 14; A. Wlosok, Gnomon 45, 1973, 245-9].<br />

Grebe, Sabine (1989): Die vergilische Heldenschau. Tradition und Fortwirken. Studien zur<br />

klassischen Philologie 47 (Frankfurt am Main) [C. Ratkowitsch, WS 103, 1990, 275-7; R.<br />

Glei, Gymnasium 98, 1991, 278-80; P. Hardie, CR 41, 1991, 232; W. Hofmann, DLZ 112,<br />

46


1991, 135-8; I. Opelt, Deutsches Dante-Jahrbuch 66, 1991, 141-2; A. Buck,<br />

Wolfenbütteler Renaissance Mitteilungen 16, 1992, 68-9; C. Reitz, AAHG 45, 1992, 220-<br />

3].<br />

– (2001): “Die Schildbeschreibung in Vergils Aeneis und Tassos Gerusaleme Liberata”, in<br />

Korenjak, Martin/Töchterle, Karlheinz (edd.): Pontes I: Akten der Ersten Innsbrucker<br />

Tagung zur Rezeption der Klassischen Antike. Comparanda 2 (Innsbruck), 131-48.<br />

– (2004): “Augustus’s Divine Authority and Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Vergilius 50, 35-62.<br />

Green, Carin M. C. (1999/2000): “The Slayer and the King: rex nemorensis and the Sanctuary<br />

of Diana”, Arion 3 rd ser. 7, 24-63.<br />

Green, R. P. H. (1982): “Ausonius to the Rescue? (Vergil, A. 1.455-6 artificumque manus<br />

inter se operumque laborem/miratur)”, LCM 7, 116-8.<br />

– (1986): “Conubium in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, in Deroux, Carl (1986, ed.): Studies in Latin Literature<br />

and Roman History 4. Collection Latomus 196 (Bruxelles), 393-421.<br />

Greenberg, N. A. (1980): “Aspects of Alliteration: A Statistical Study”, Latomus 39, 585-611.<br />

– (1981): “Vocalic Initials in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 12”, in Grotjahn, R. (1981; ed.): Hexameter Studies.<br />

Quantitative Linguistics 11 (Bochum), 151-67.<br />

Greenwood, M. (1989): “Venus Intervenes: Five Episodes in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, LCM 14, 132-6.<br />

Griffin, Alan H. F. (1989): “Virgil’s Unfinished <strong>Aeneid</strong>“, Pegasus 32, 3-10.<br />

– (1993): “Pius Aeneas or Aeneas the Wimp?”, Akroterion 38, 81-5.<br />

Griffin, Jasper (1982): “The Creation of Characters in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, in Gold, Barbara K. (1982;<br />

ed.): Literary and Artistic Patronage (Austin, TX), 118-34 = Griffin, Jasper: Latin Poets<br />

and Roman Life (London, 1985), 183-97 = Hardie (1999b), iii, 287-301.<br />

– (1984): “Augustus and the Poets: ‘Caesar qui cogere posset’”, in Millar, Fergus/Segal,<br />

Erich (1984; edd.): Caesar Augustus: Seven Aspects (Oxford), 189-218.<br />

– (1986): Virgil (Oxford) [D. Fowler, G&R 34, 1987, 218; Astbury, Hermathena 144, 1988,<br />

120-1; J. E. Rexine, Vergilius 34, 1988, 182-4; De Angeli, CW 82, 1988/9, 473; E. A.<br />

Schmidt, Gnomon 61, 1989, 251-3].<br />

– (1995): “Regalis inter mensas laticemque Lyaeum: Wine in Virgil and Others (Intervento<br />

by M. C. J. Putnam)”, in Murray, Oswyn, Tecuşan (1995; edd.): In vino veritas (London),<br />

283-96.<br />

Griffith, John G. (1988): “A New View of Virgil, <strong>Aeneid</strong> IV. 550-2”, in id. (1988): Festinat<br />

Senex or An Old Man in a Hurry, Being an Assortment of Unpublished Essays on<br />

Problems in Greek and Latin Literature and Archaeology, Together with Reprints of Three<br />

Articles (Oxford), 70-4.<br />

Griffith, Mark (1985): “What Does Aeneas Look Like?”, CPh 80, 309-19.<br />

Griffith, R. Drew (1985): “Literary Allusion in Virgil, <strong>Aeneid</strong> 9.435ff.”, Vergilius 31, 40-4.<br />

– (1995): “Catullus’ Coma Berenices and Aeneas’ Farewell to Dido”, TAPhA 125, 47-59.<br />

Grilli, Alberto (1995): “Dall’epica didascalica all’epica eroica”, in Reggi, Giancarlo (1995;<br />

ed.): Aspetti della poesia epica latina. Atti del corso d’aggiornamento per docenti di latino<br />

e greco del Canton Ticino, Lugano 21-22-23 ottobre 1993 (Lugano), 27-39.<br />

Grimal, Pierre (1985) Virgile ou la seconde naissance de Rome (Paris) [L. Jansem, REL 63,<br />

1985, 316-9; A. Wankenne, LEC 53, 1985, 484-5; P. Flobert, RBPh 60, 1986, 147-8; E.<br />

Paratore, RCCM 28, 1986, 67-70; A. Novara, REA 90, 1988, 272-3] = Virgilio. La seconda<br />

nascita di Roma. Tradutto di Silva, A. (Milano, 1986) [M. Squillante Saccone, BStudLat<br />

17, 1987, 132; J. Thomas, Latomus 47, 1988, 442-4] = Vergil. Biographie. Übersetzt von<br />

Fuhrmann, Eva Beate (Zürich, 1987) [B. Kytzler, JAC 2, 1987, 135-8].<br />

– (1986): “Virgile aux sources de la spiritualité romaine”, BAGB 1986, 241-52.<br />

– (1989): “Jupiter, Anchise et Vulcain. Trois révélations sur le destin de Rome”, in Diggle,<br />

J./Hall, J. B./Jocelyn, H. D. (1989); edd.): Studies in Latin Literature and Its Tradition in<br />

Honour of C. O. Brink. Cambridge Philological <strong>Society</strong> Supplement 15 (Cambridge), 1-13.<br />

47


– (1992): “Les amours de Didon ou les limites de la liberté”, in Wilhelm/Jones (1992), 51-<br />

63.<br />

Grimm, Richard E. (1967): “Aeneas and Andromache in <strong>Aeneid</strong> III”, AJPh 88, 151-62.<br />

Grisé, Yolande (1980): “Du sort des suicidés aux enfers”, BAGB 1980, 295-304.<br />

Gross, Nicholas P. (1985a): Amatory Persuasion in Antiquity: Studies in Theory and Practice<br />

(Newark/London/Toronto).<br />

– (1985b): “Gaza and Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, AugAge 4, 26-30.<br />

– (2003/4): “Mantles Woven with Gold: Pallas’ Shroud and the End of the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, CJ 99,<br />

135-56.<br />

Gruen, Peter (1980): “Facta impia and Dido’s Soliloquy (Aen. 4.590-629)”, CB 56, 65-9.<br />

Günther, Hans-Christian (1996a): Überlegungen zur Entstehung von Vergils Aeneis.<br />

Hypomnemata 113 (Göttingen) [J. P. Brisson, Latomus 56, 1997, 875-7; N. Horsfall, RFIC<br />

125, 1997, 468-72; R. Lesueur, REL 75, 1997, 323-5; D. Gall, Gymnasium 105, 1998, 353-<br />

5; J.-Y. Maleuvre, LEC 66, 1998, 170; P. Tordeur, AC 67, 1998, 348; P. Hardie, CR 49,<br />

1999, 49-50; T. Berres, Gnomon 72, 2000, 178-80].<br />

– (1996b): “Zwei Binneninterpolationen im zehnten Buch der ‘Aeneis’ und das Problem der<br />

Konkordanzinterpolation”, Hermes 124, 205-19.<br />

Gugliardi, D. (1980): “Uno stilema virgiliano”, Orpheus N. S. 1, 123-5.<br />

Gurval, Robert Alan (1995): Actium and Augustus: The Politics and Emotions of Civil War<br />

(Ann Arbor); 209-47 [“‘No, Virgil, No’: The Battle of Actium on the Shield of Aeneas”] =<br />

S. Quinn (2000), 169-84.<br />

Guzmán Arias, Carmen (2003): “Los fuegos del Etna”, CFC(L) 23, 45-61.<br />

Habinek, Thomas N. (1985): “Prose Cola and Poetic Word Order: Observations on Adjectives<br />

and Nouns in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Helios 12.2, 51-66.<br />

– (1989): “Science and Tradition in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 6”, HSPh 92, 223-55.<br />

Haecker, Theodor (1931): Vergil. Vater des Abendlandes (Leipzig) = Virgil, Father of the<br />

West (London, 1934) = Virgile, père de l’Occident (Genève, 1994) [A. Harvengt, NRTh<br />

121, 1999, 333-4].<br />

Häußler, Reinhard (1976): Das historische Epos der Griechen und Römer bis Vergil. Studien<br />

zum historischen Epos der Antike I. Teil: Von Homer zu Vergil. Bibliothek der klassischen<br />

Altertumswissenschaften Neue Folge, 2. Reihe, 59 (Heidelberg).<br />

Hahn, István (1984): “Trojanitas, Latinitas, Tuscitas, Graecitas in der Aeneis”, in Tar (1984b),<br />

43-74.<br />

Hainsworth, John B. (1991): The Idea of Epic (Berkeley/Los Angeles) [K. W. Gransden, CR<br />

42, 1992, 198-9; Jutras, CW 86, 1992/3, 71; King, CJ 88, 1992/3, 281-3; A. Keith, Phoenix<br />

47, 1993, 365-7].<br />

Hall, John F. (1992): “The Original Ending of the Aeneas Tale: Cato and the<br />

Historiographical Tradition of Aeneas”, SyllClass 3, 13-20.<br />

Hallett, Judith P. (2002): “Feminae Furentes: The Frenzy of Noble Women in Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong><br />

and the Letter of Cornelia, Mother of the Gracchi”, in Anderson/Quartarone (2002), 159-<br />

67.<br />

Halperin, David M. (1977): “Men’s Fate in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Virginia Quarterly Review 53, 58-72.<br />

Halter, Thomas (1963): Form und Gehalt in Vergils Aeneis. Zur Funktion sprachlicher und<br />

metrischer Stilmittel (München) [V. Buchheit, Gnomon 36, 1964, 47-52; V. Pöschl, AAHG<br />

23, 1969, 8].<br />

Hamilton, Colin I. M. (1993): “Dido, Tityos and Prometheus”, CQ 43, 249-54.<br />

Hannah, Brent (2004): “Manufacturing Descent: Virgil’s Genealogical Engeneering”,<br />

Arethusa 37, 141-64.<br />

Hannah, Robert (1993): “The Stars of Iopas and Palinurus”, AJPh 114, 123-35.<br />

48


Hansen, G. C. (1997): “Sane in Vergil and Ovid: An Unpoetisches Wort Revisited”, CQ 47,<br />

316-9.<br />

Hardie, Philip Russell (1983a): “Atlas and Axis”, CQ 33, 220-8.<br />

– (1983b): “Some Themes from Gigantomachy in the ‘<strong>Aeneid</strong>’”, Hermes 111, 311-26.<br />

– (1984): “The Sacrifice of Iphigeneia: An Example of ‘Distribution’ of a Lucretian Theme<br />

in Virgil”, CQ 34, 406-12.<br />

– (1986a): “Cosmological Patterns in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, PLLS 5, 85-97.<br />

– (1986b): Virgil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>: Cosmos and Imperium (Oxford) [D. Fowler, G&R 33, 1986,<br />

207-8; J. E. Rexine, CB 63, 1987, 59-60; W. R. Johnson, CJ 83, 1988, 269-71; K. W.<br />

Gransden, CR 38, 1988, 24-6; J. Griffin, JRS 78, 1988, 229-33; E. A. Schmidt, Gnomon<br />

61, 1989, 672-7; T. Privitera 1989; J. Thomas, Latomus 48, 1989, 212-4; A. Novara, REL<br />

68, 1990, 210-1; K. Reckford, CPh 85, 1990, 72-7; A. Wankenne, LEC 58, 1990, 290].<br />

– (1987a): “Aeneas and the Omen of the Swans (Verg. Aen. 1.393-400)”, CPh 82, 145-50.<br />

– (1987b): “Ships and Ship-names in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, in Whitby, Michael/Hardie,<br />

Philip/Whitby, Mary (edd.): Homo Viator: Classical Essays for John Bramble (Bristol),<br />

163-71.<br />

– (1991): “The <strong>Aeneid</strong> and the Oresteia”, PVS 20, 29-45.<br />

– (1992a): “Augustan Poets and the Mutability of Rome”, in Powell, Anton (1992; ed.):<br />

Roman Poetry and Propaganda in the Age of Augustus (Bristol), 59-82.<br />

– (1992b): “Tales of Unity and Division in Imperial Latin Epic”, in Molyneux, John H.<br />

(1993; ed.): Literary Responses to Civil Discord. Nottingham Classical Literature Studies 1<br />

(Nottingham), 57-76 [73-6: Response by Don Fowler].<br />

– (1993): The Epic Successors of Virgil: A Study in the Dynamics of a Tradition. Roman<br />

Literature and Its Contexts (Cambridge) [J. Farrell, BMCR 04.01.08].<br />

– (1994): Virgil, <strong>Aeneid</strong>. Book IX. Cambridge Greek and Latin Classics (Cambridge) [D. F.<br />

Kennedy, G&R 42, 1995, 229-30; J. O’Hara, BMCRev 95.07.11; V. J. C. Hunink,<br />

Mnemosyne 49, 1996, 485-9; N. Horsfall, Vergilius 42, 1996, 145-7; P. Properzio, CW 90,<br />

1996/7, 292; R. Lesueur, Latomus 56, 1997, 670; C. Muñoz, Habis 28, 1997, 371-2; P.<br />

Tordeur, AC 66, 1997, 440-1; P. Schenk, Gnomon 70, 1998, 599-602; M. Havelange, LEC<br />

67, 1999, 97-9].<br />

– (1995): “Virgil’s Epic Technique: Heinze Ninety Years Later”, CPh 90, 267-76 = Hardie<br />

(1999b), iii, 1-13.<br />

– (1996): “Virgil: A Paradoxical Poet?”, PLLS 9, 103-21.<br />

– (1997a): “Closure in Latin Epic”, in Roberts, Deborah H./Dunn, Francis M./Fowler, Don<br />

(1997; edd.): Classical Closure: Reading the End in Greek and Latin Literature<br />

(Princeton), 139-62.<br />

– (1997b): “Virgil and Tragedy”, in Martindale (1997a), 312-26.<br />

– (1998a): “Fame and Defamation in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>: The Council of Latins. <strong>Aeneid</strong>: 11.225-<br />

467”, in Stahl (1998b), 243-70.<br />

– (1998b): Virgil. Greece & Rome. New Surveys in the Classics 28 (Oxford) [M. Garelli,<br />

Argos 23, 1999, 127-32; J. Godwin, JRS 89, 1999, 239; R. T. Ganiban, CR 50, 2000, 42-5].<br />

– (1999a): “Metamorphosis, Metaphor, and Allegory in Latin Epic”, in Beissinger, Margaret<br />

[et al.] (1999; ed.): Epic Traditions in the Contemporary World. The Poetics of Community<br />

(Berkeley, etc.), 89-107.<br />

– (1999b; ed.): Virgil: Critical Assessments of Classical Authors. 4 voll. (London/New York)<br />

[D. West, G&R 47, 2000, 232-5].<br />

– (2002a): “Another Look at Virgil’s Ganymede”, in: Wiseman, T. P. (2002; ed): Classics in<br />

Progress: Essays on Ancient Greece and Rome (London), 333-61.<br />

– (2002b): “‘Why Is Rumour Here?’ Tracking Virgilian and Ovidian Fama”, Ordia Prima.<br />

Revista de Estudios Clásicos 1, 67-80.<br />

– (2004): “In the Steps of Sibyl”, MD 52, 143-56.<br />

49


Hardy, Clara Shaw (1996/7): “Antiqua mater: Misreading Gender in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 3.84-191”, CJ 92,<br />

1-8.<br />

Harries, Byron (1989): “Back to the Horse: Symbol and Narrative in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 2”, LCM 14, 136-<br />

41.<br />

Harrison, Edward L. (1970a): “Cleverness in Virgilian Imitation”, CPh 65, 241-3 = S. J.<br />

Harrison (1990b), 445-8.<br />

– (1970b): “Divine Action in <strong>Aeneid</strong> Book Two”, Phoenix 24, 320-32 = (revised) S. J.<br />

Harrison (1990b), 46-59.<br />

– (1972/3): “Why Did Venus Wear Boots? Some Reflections on <strong>Aeneid</strong> 1.314f.”, PVS 12,<br />

10-25 = Robertson (1988), 197-214 = Hardie (1999b), iv, 59-75.<br />

– (1976): “Virgil’s Location of Corythus”, CQ 26, 293-5.<br />

– (1977): “Structure and Meaning in Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, PLLS 2, 101-12.<br />

– (1978): “Metempsychosis in <strong>Aeneid</strong> Six”, CJ 73, 193-7.<br />

– (1979): “Snakes and Buskins”, Eranos 77, 51-6.<br />

– (1980): “The Structure of the <strong>Aeneid</strong>: Observations on the Links Between Books”, ANRW<br />

ii 31.1, 359-93.<br />

– (1981): “Vergil and the Homeric Tradition”, PLLS 3, 209-25.<br />

– (1982a): “<strong>Aeneid</strong> 9.240: An Emendation”, Vergilius 28, 62.<br />

– (1982b): “Vergil’s Mercury”, in McKay (1982), 1-47.<br />

– (1982c): “Vergil’s Use of the Substitution Motif”, LCM 7, 127-8.<br />

– (1984): “The <strong>Aeneid</strong> and Carthage”, in Woodman, Tony/West, David (1984; edd.): Poetry<br />

and Politics in the Age of Augustus (Cambridge), 95-115.<br />

– (1986a): “Achaemenides’ Unfinished Account: Vergil <strong>Aeneid</strong> 3, 588-691”, CPh 81, 146-7<br />

– (1986b): “Foundation Prodigies in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, PLLS 5, 131-64.<br />

– (1988): “Virgil’s Introduction of Mezentius. <strong>Aeneid</strong> 7.647-8”, PVS 19, 70-7.<br />

– (1989): “The Tragedy of Dido”, EMC 33, 1-21.<br />

– (1992): “Aeneas at Carthage: The Opening Scenes of the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, in Wilhelm/Jones<br />

(1992), 109-28.<br />

– (1995): “The Metamorphosis of the Ships (<strong>Aeneid</strong> 9.77-122)”, PLLS 8, 143-64.<br />

Harrison, Stephen J. (1984): “Evander, Jupiter and Arcadia”, CQ 34, 487-8.<br />

– (1986): “<strong>Vergilian</strong> Similes: Some Connections”, PLLS 5, 99-107.<br />

– (1987): “Vergil and the Cult of Athene”, Hermes 115, 124-6.<br />

– (1988a): “Vergil as a Poet of War”, PVS 19, 46-68.<br />

– (1988b): “Vergil on Kingship: The First Simile of the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, PCPhS 34, 55-9.<br />

– (1989): “Augustus, the Poets, and the spolia opima“, CQ 39, 408-14.<br />

– (1990a): “Dictamnum and Moly: Vergil, <strong>Aeneid</strong> 12.411-19”, PLLS 6, 45-7.<br />

– (1990b; ed.): Oxford Readings in Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong> (Oxford/New York) [T. L. Calder,<br />

Vergilius 36, 135-6; D. F. Kennedy, Hermathena 149, 1990, 136-40; G. Defossé, LEC 59,<br />

1991, 88-9; J. Farrell, BMCRev 02.02.11; D. Fowler, G&R 38, 1991, 88-9; C. Martindale,<br />

CR 41, 1991, 56-8; M. C. J. Putnam, CO 69, 1991/2, 74-6; P. V. Cova, Athenaeum 80,<br />

1992, 551-2; J. Oroz Reta, Augustinus 37, 1992, 443-4].<br />

– (1990c): “Some Views of the <strong>Aeneid</strong> in the Twentieth Century”, in S. J. Harrison (1990b),<br />

1-20.<br />

– (1991a): “Discordia taetra: The History of a Hexameter-Ending”, CQ 41, 138-49.<br />

– (1991b): Vergil <strong>Aeneid</strong> 10. With Introduction, Translation, and Commentary. Oxford<br />

Classical Monographs (Oxford; [revised] paperback edition 1997) [D. Fowler, G&R 39,<br />

1992, 224-6; G. Korzeniowski, RPL 15, 1992, 206-11; R. Thomas, Vergilius 38, 1992,<br />

134-44; J. O’Hara, CW 86, 1992/3, 246-7; J. Farrell, BMCRev 04.01.14; G. B. Conte, JRS<br />

83, 1993, 208-12; D. E. Hill, CR 43, 1993, 261-3; A. Traina, RFIC 121, 1993, 367-78; D.<br />

Ross, CJ 90, 1994-5, 81-6; A. Perutelli, Gnomon 67, 1995, 311-5].<br />

– (1996): “<strong>Aeneid</strong> 1.286: Julius Caesar or Augustus?”, PLLS 9, 127-33.<br />

50


– (1997): “The Survival and Supremacy of Rome: The Unity of the Shield of Aeneas”, JRS<br />

87, 70-6.<br />

– (1998): “The Sword-Belt of Pallas: Moral Symbolism and Political Ideology: <strong>Aeneid</strong><br />

10.495-505”, in Stahl (1998b), 223-42.<br />

– (2001): “Picturing the Future: The Proleptic Ekphrasis from Homer to Vergil”, in id.<br />

(2001; ed.): Texts, Ideas, and the Classics: Scholarship, Theory, and Classical Literature<br />

(Oxford), 70-92.<br />

Harrison, Tony (1999/2000): “The Tears and the Trumpets”, Arion 3 rd ser. 9, 1-22 = PVS 24,<br />

103-20.<br />

Haß, Petra (1998): Der locus amoenus in der antiken Literatur: Zu Theorie und Geschichte<br />

eines literarischen Motivs (Bamberg) [J. F. Miller, CR 50, 2000, 312-3; A. Kledt,<br />

Göttinger Forum für Altertumswissenschaft 3, 2000, 1001-11].<br />

Haury, A. (1981): “La faute de Didon. Extremum hunc, Arethusa, mihi concede laborem (Ecl.<br />

X, 1)”, REA 83, 227-54.<br />

Hawkins, J. (2004): “The Ritual of Therapy: Venus the Healer in Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, in<br />

Barchiesi, Alessandro/Rüpke, Jörg/Stephens, Susan (edd.): Rituals in Ink: A Conference on<br />

Religion and Literary Production in Ancient Rome Held at Stanford University in<br />

February 2002. Potsdamer Altertumswissenschaftliche Beiträge 10 (Stuttgart), 77-97.<br />

Haywood, R. M. (1977): “Varium et mutabile semper femina (<strong>Aeneid</strong> 4.569-70)”, CW 71,<br />

130.<br />

Heck, Eberhard (1990): “Von der Geringschätzung Vergils”, MH 47, 103-20.<br />

Heiden, Bruce (1987): “Laudes Herculeae: Suppressed Savagery in the Hymn to Hercules,<br />

Verg. A. 8.285-305, AJPh 108, 661-71.<br />

Heil, Andreas (2002): Alma Aeneis. Studien zur Vergil- und Statiusrezeption Dante Alighieris.<br />

Studien zur klassischen Philologie 135 (Bern, etc.).<br />

Heil, Swantje (2001): Spannungen und Ambivalenzen in Vergils Aeneis. Zum Verhältnis von<br />

menschlichem Leid und der Erfüllung des fatum. Altsprachliche Forschungsergebnisse 1<br />

(Hamburg).<br />

Heilmann, Willibald (1971): “Aeneas und Euander im achten Buch der Aeneis”, Gymnasium<br />

78, 76-89.<br />

Heinze, Richard ( 3 1915): Virgils epische Technik (Leipzig/Berlin; repr. Stuttgart/Leipzig,<br />

8 1995) = Virgil’s Epic Technique. Transl. by Harvey, Hazel, Harvey, David & Robertson,<br />

Fred. With a Preface by Wlosok, Antonie (Berkeley, Calif., 1993; Bristol 1999) [D. F.<br />

Kennedy, G&R 41, 1994, 226-7; A. Novara, REL 72, 1994, 296-7; L. T. Pearcy, BMCRev<br />

94.10.05; M. C. J. Putnam, CJ 90, 1994/5, 206-8; M. Gale, CR 45, 1995, 163; S. Viarre,<br />

AC 64, 1995, 317; Hardie 1995; A. Barchiesi, JRS 86, 1996, 229-31; F. Cupaiuolo,<br />

BStudLat 26, 1996, 622-3] = La tecnica epica di Virgilio. Trad. a cura di Martina, Mario;<br />

pref. di Conte, Gian Biagio [“Defensor Vergilii: considerazioni su Richard Heinze”]<br />

(Bologna, 1996) [L. Paganelli, Paideia 53, 1998, 366-7; I. Torzi, Aevum 73, 1999, 204-7].<br />

Hellegouarc’h, Joseph (1987): “Les yeux de la Marquise ... Quelques observations sur les<br />

commutations verbales dans l’hexamètre latin”, REL 65, 261-81.<br />

– (1988): “Pius Aeneas. Une retractatio”, in Hommages à Henri Bonniec. Res sacrae.<br />

Collection Latomus 201 (Bruxelles), 267-74.<br />

Helzle, Martin (1996): Der Stil ist der Mensch. Redner und Reden im römischen Epos.<br />

Beiträge zur Altertumskunde 73 (Stuttgart/Leipzig) [W. Dominik, BMCRev 98.1.03; P.<br />

Hardie, Gnomon 71, 1999, 114-17; A. Zissos, CR 49, 1999, 64-5].<br />

Henderson, John (2000): “The Camillus Factory: Per Astra ad Ardeam”, Ramus 29, 1-26.<br />

Hendry, Michael (1997-2000): “Verg. Aen. X 362-8, 439-48”, MCr 32-5, 145-9.<br />

Henrichs, Albert (1989): “Zur Perhorreszierung des Wassers der Styx bei Aischylos und<br />

Vergil”, ZPE 78, 1-29.<br />

Henry, Elisabeth (1986): “Virgil and the Monuments”, PVS 18, 19-45.<br />

51


– (1989): The Vigour of Prophecy: A Study of Virgil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong> (Bristol) [T. L. Calder,<br />

Vergilius 35, 1989, 137-9; J. Farrell, BMCRev 1.2.10; D. Fowler, G&R 37, 1990, 108-9; P.<br />

Hardie, CR 40, 1990, 263-4; E. Block, CW 85, 1991/2, 47].<br />

Henry, James (1873-92): <strong>Aeneid</strong>a, or Critical, Exegetical, and Aesthetical Remarks on the<br />

<strong>Aeneid</strong>. 4 Bde. (London etc.).<br />

Hershkowitz, Debra (1991): “The <strong>Aeneid</strong> in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 3”, Vergilius 37, 69-76.<br />

– (1998): The Madness of Epic: Reading Insanity from Homer to Statius (Oxford) [F. Ripoll,<br />

REL 76, 1998, 345-6; M. C. J. Putnam, JRS 89, 1999, 220; A. Hardie, CR 50, 2000, 109-<br />

11; P. Schenk, Gnomon 74, 2002, 385-90].<br />

Herter, Hans (1982): “Aeneas im brennenden Troja. Zu Vergils Aeneis Buch 2“, WS 16, 237-<br />

44.<br />

Herzog, Reinhart (1993): “Aeneas’ episches Vergessen: Zur Poetik der memoria”, in<br />

Haverkamp, Anselm/Lachmann, Renate (1993; edd.): Memoria. Vergessen und Erinnern.<br />

Poetik und Hermeneutik 15 (München), 81-116.<br />

Heuzé, Philippe (1976): “Longum Elissae dolorem”, in Chevallier, Raymond (1976; ed.):<br />

Aiôn. Le temps chez les Romains. Caesarodunum Xbis (Paris), 93-7.<br />

– (1979a): “Approche des images dans l’Énéide”, BAGB 1979, 205-14.<br />

– (1979b): “Rhétorique et poétique. Réflexions sur une métonymie de Virgile”, in La<br />

rhétorique à Rome. Colloque des 10-11 décembre 1977. Caesarodunum XIVbis Calliope I<br />

(Paris), 51-9.<br />

– (1985a): “Cadeaux et dépouilles. Variations sur le jeu du sens et du destin dans l’Énéide”,<br />

REL 63, 87-100.<br />

– (1985b): L’image du corps dans l’œuvre de Virgile. Collection de l’école francaise de<br />

Rome 86 (Paris) [A. Michel, REL 64, 1986, 32-7; E. Paratore, RCCM 28, 1986, 70-2; M.<br />

Squillante Saccone, BStudLat 16, 1986, 111-2; D. Fowler, G&R 34, 1987, 91; F. Gasti,<br />

Athenaeum 65, 1987, 598-9; A. Novara, RPh 61, 1987, 328-30; F. Della Corte, Gnomon<br />

60, 1988, 154-5; P. Hardie, JRS 78, 1988, 269-70; J. Thomas, Latomus 48, 1989, 212-4; L.<br />

Deschamps, REA 92, 1990, 159-60].<br />

– (1990): “Miratur – Sur quelques nuances de l’admiration virgilienne”, Cahiers des Études<br />

Anciennes 24, 397-403.<br />

– (1991): “La mort et l’agonie d’Élissa-Didon”, CEA 25, 189-93.<br />

– (1992): “Sens et figures dans l’Énéide”, BAGB 1992, 295-6.<br />

– (1993): “Regarde!: quand le poète révèle les choses”, Europe (Paris) 71. 765-6, 45-53.<br />

– (1997): “Quelques évidences, vraies ou fausses, chez Horace et Virgile”, in Lévy,<br />

Carlos/Pernot, Laurent (1997; edd.): Dire l’évidence (philosophie et rhétorique antiques<br />

(Paris/Montréal), 197-206.<br />

– (1999): ‘L’Énéide’, Virgile. Textes fondateurs (Paris).<br />

– (2000): “Aeneas on the Path to Tolerance”, Études littéraires 32, 2000, 37-43.<br />

Hexter, Ralph (1989/90): “What Was the Trojan Horse Made of?: Interpreting Vergil’s<br />

<strong>Aeneid</strong>”, YJC 3, 109-31.<br />

– (1992): “Sidonian Dido”, in Hexter, Ralph/Selden, Daniel (1992; edd.): Innovations of<br />

Antiquity (New York), 332-84.<br />

– (1999): “Imitating Troy: A Reading of <strong>Aeneid</strong> 3”, in Perkell (1999a), 64-79.<br />

Heyworth, Stephen J. (1993): “Deceitful Crete: <strong>Aeneid</strong> 3.84 and the Hymns of Callimachus”,<br />

CQ 43, 255-7.<br />

Hickson, Frances V. (1993): Roman Prayer Language: Livy and the <strong>Aeneid</strong> of Vergil.<br />

Beiträge zur Altertumskunde 30 (Stuttgart) [C. Kraus, CR 45, 1995, 458-9; D. Nelis, JRS<br />

85, 1995, 322; P. Schenk, Gnomon 69, 1997, 22-6; N. Horsfall, Vergilius 45, 1999, 121-3].<br />

Hickson-Hahn, Frances V. (1997): “The Oath of Aeneas: Vergil, <strong>Aeneid</strong> 12.176-94”, in Kiley,<br />

Mark [et al.] (1997; edd.): Prayer from Alexander to Constantine (London/New York),<br />

144-8.<br />

52


– (1999): “<strong>Vergilian</strong> Transformation of an Oath Ritual: <strong>Aeneid</strong> 12.169-174, 213-215”,<br />

Vergilius 45, 22-38.<br />

Higgins, John (1991/2): “Aeneas: Augustan Hero in the Heroic Age”, NECN 19, 21-3.<br />

– (1994): “Arma virumque cano: A Note”, CW 88, 41-2.<br />

Highet, Gilbert (1972): The Speeches in Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong> (Princeton) [A. G. McKay, AHR 3,<br />

1973, 193; F. A. Sullivan, CPh 71, 1976, 290-1].<br />

– (1974): “Speech and Narrative in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, HSPh 78, 189-229.<br />

– (1976): “A Lacuna in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, CPh 71, 337-8.<br />

Hinckley, Lois V./Thorne, Michelle (1993/4): “The Shields of Achilles and Aeneas in<br />

Dialogue”, NECN 21, 149-55.<br />

Hinds, Stephen (1998): Allusion and Intertext: Dynamics of Appropriation in Roman Poetry.<br />

Roman Literature and Its Contexts (Cambridge) [M. Gale, G&R 46, 1998, 239-40; C.<br />

Nappa, BMCRev 98.9.8; M. Lowrie, CW 92, 1998/9, 384-5; G. Conte, JRS 89, 1999, 217-<br />

20; J. F. Miller, CPh 94, 1999, 351-5; P. A. Miller, CPh 94, 1999, 351-5; J. J. O’Hara, CR<br />

n. s. 49, 1999, 97-8; P. Tordeur, AC 68, 1999, 395; G. Tronchet, REA 101, 1999, 226-8; J.<br />

Zetzel, Phoenix 53, 1999, 171-2; S. Raimondi, Faventia 22, 2000, 165-7; A. Deremetz,<br />

Latomus 60, 2001, 783-4].<br />

– (2004): “Petrarch, Cicero, Virgil: Virtual Community in Familiares 24, 4”, MD 52, 157-75.<br />

Hine, Harry (1987): “Aeneas and the Arts (Vergil, <strong>Aeneid</strong> 6.847-50)”, in Whitby,<br />

Michael/Hardie, Philip/Whitby, Mary (edd.): Homo Viator: Classical Essays for John<br />

Bramble (Bristol), 173-83.<br />

Holford-Strevens, Leofranc (1999): “Sophocles at Rome”, in Griffin, Jasper (1999; ed.):<br />

Sophocles Revisited: Essays Presented to Sir Hugh Lloyd-Jones (Oxford/New York), 219-<br />

59.<br />

Holleman, A. W. J. (1989): “Virgil and the Etruscans”, LCM 14, 4-7.<br />

– (1995): “Pius Aeneas Punicus?”, AC 64, 237-8.<br />

Hollis, Adrian S. (1992): “Hellenistic Colouring in Virgil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, HSPh 94, 269-85.<br />

– (1996): “Virgil’s Friend Varius Rufus”, PVS 22, 19-33.<br />

– (2000): “The Reputation and Influence of Choerilus of Samos”, ZPE 130, 13-5.<br />

Holoka, James P. (1999): “Heroes cunctantes – Hesitant Heroes: Aeneas and Some Others”,<br />

in Kazazis, John N./Rengakos, Antonios (1999; edd.): Euphrosyne: Studies in Ancient Epic<br />

and Its Legacy in Honor of Dimitris N. Maronitis (Stuttgart), 143-53.<br />

Holt, P. (1980): “<strong>Aeneid</strong> v: Past and Future“, CJ 75, 110-21.<br />

– (1982): “Who Understands Vergil’s Prophecies?”, CJ 77, 303-14.<br />

Hommel, Hildebrecht (1954): “Secum tenere c. acc. Zu Vergil, Aeneis I, 675”, Hermes 82,<br />

375-8.<br />

Hooley, Daniel M. (2002): “Twentieth-Century Critical Perspectives”, in<br />

Anderson/Quartarone (2002), 22-31.<br />

Horbury, William (1999): “Der Tempel bei Vergil und im herodianischen Judentum”, in Ego,<br />

Beate [et al.] (1999; edd.): Gemeinde ohne Tempel (Tübingen), 149-68.<br />

Hornsby, Roger A. (1964): “The <strong>Vergilian</strong> Simile as Means of Judgement”, CJ 60, 337-44 =<br />

S. Quinn (2000), 80-9<br />

– (1970): Patterns of Action in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>: An Interpretation of Vergil’s Epic Similes (Iowa<br />

City) [M. v. Albrecht, Gnomon 45, 1973, 305-7].<br />

– (1984): “Maior nascitur ordo”, in Evjen, Harold D. (1984; ed.): Mnemai. Classical Studies<br />

in Memory of Karl K. Hulley. Scholars Press Homage Series (Chico, CA), 103-20.<br />

– (1987): “The Refracted Past”, Vergilius 33, 6-13.<br />

Horsfall, Nicholas M. (1971): “Numanus Remulus: Ethnography and Propaganda in <strong>Aeneid</strong><br />

9.598ff.”, Latomus 30, 1108-16 = S. J. Harrison (1990b), 305-15.<br />

– (1973/4): “Dido in the Light of History”, PVS 13, 1-13 = S. J. Harrison (1990b), 127-44.<br />

– (1974): “Turnus ad portas”, Latomus 33, 80-6.<br />

53


– (1976a): “Mr. Harrison and Corythus: A Reply”, CQ 26, 296-7.<br />

– (1976b): “Virgil, History, and the Roman Tradition”, Prudentia 8, 73-89.<br />

– (1979): “Some Problems in the Aeneas Legend”, CQ 29, 372-90.<br />

– (1980): “Virgil, Varro’s Imagines and the Forum of Augustus”, Ancient <strong>Society</strong> 10, 20-3.<br />

– (1981a): “From History to Legend: M. Manlius and the Geese”, CJ 76, 298-311.<br />

– (1981b): “Virgil and the Conquest of Chaos”, Antichthon 15, 141-50 = S. J. Harrison<br />

(1990b), 466-77.<br />

– (1982): “The Structure and Purpose of Vergil’s Parade of Heroes”, Ancient <strong>Society</strong> 12, 12-<br />

8.<br />

– (1984): “Aspects of Virgilian Influence in Roman Life”, in Atti del Convegno mondiale<br />

(1984), ii, 47-63.<br />

– (1985): “Illusion and Reality in Latin Topographical Writing”, G&R 32, 197-208.<br />

– (1986a): “The Aeneas-legend and the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Vergilius 32, 8-17 = Hardie (1999b), iii,<br />

265-77.<br />

– (1986b): “Virgil and the Inscriptions: A Reverse View”, LCM 11, 45-8.<br />

– (1987): “Non viribus aequis: Some Problems in Virgil’s Battle-scenes”, G&R 34, 48-55.<br />

– (1988): “Camilla, o i limiti dell’invenzione”, Athenaeum 66, 31-51.<br />

– (1989a): “Aeneas the Colonist”, Vergilius 35, 8-27.<br />

– (1989b): “Barbara tegmina crurum”, Maia 41, 251-4.<br />

– (1989c): “I pantaloni di Cloreo”, RFIC 117, 57-61.<br />

– (1989d): “Virgil and Marcellus’ Education”, CQ 39, 266-7.<br />

– (1990a): “The <strong>Aeneid</strong> and the Social Structures of Primitive Italy”, Athenaeum 68, 523-7.<br />

– (1990b): “Virgil and the Illusory Footnote”, PLLS 6, 49-63 [~ Horsfall (1991c), 117-33].<br />

– (1991a): “Virgil and the Poetry of Explanations”, G&R 38, 203-11 = Hardie (1999b), iii,<br />

278-86.<br />

– (1991b): “Externi duces”, RFIC 119, 188-92<br />

– (1991c): Virgilio: L’epopea in alambicco. Forme materiali e ideologie del mondo antico 31<br />

(Napoli) [M. F. Buffa Giolito, CCC 13, 1992, 358-9; F. Corsaro, Orpheus 14, 1993, 189-<br />

91; C. Di Giovine, A&R 38, 1993, 123-4; R. Lesueur, REL 71, 1993, 289-90; R. Thomas,<br />

Vergilius 36, 1993, 76-80; L. Voit, Gymnasium 100, 1993, 462-3; M. Geymonat, RFIC<br />

122, 1994, 375-80; W. Görler, Gnomon 66, 1994, 403-10; J. Gómez Pallarèz, Faventia 16,<br />

1994, 118-24; P. Hardie, CR 44, 1994, 41-3; J. Poucet, AC 63, 1994, 392-4; W. R. Barnes,<br />

JRS 85, 1995, 323-4].<br />

– (1991d): “Virgil, Parthenius and the Art of Mythological Reference”, Vergilius 37, 31-6.<br />

– (1991e): “L’Eneide e le strutture dell’Italia primitiva”, AION(ling) 13, 1991, 17-25.<br />

– (1993a): “<strong>Aeneid</strong> 6.852: A Replay”, SO 68, 38-9.<br />

– (1993b): “Il lessico del poeta epico”, A&R 38, 203-10.<br />

– (1993c): “Mythological Invention and poetica licentia”, in Graf, Fritz (1993; ed.): Mythos<br />

in mythenloser Gesellschaft. Das Paradigma Roms. Colloquium Rauricum 3 (Stuttgart),<br />

131-41.<br />

– (1993d): “Odoratum lauris nemus (Virgil, <strong>Aeneid</strong> 6.658)”, SCI 12, 156-8.<br />

– (1993e): “P. Bonon. 4 and Virgil, Aen. 6, yet Again”, ZPE 96, 17-8.<br />

– (1995a): “<strong>Aeneid</strong>”, in Horsfall (1995c), 101-216.<br />

– (1995b): “Autograph Mss. of Virgil: A Note”, Vergilius 41, 57-9.<br />

– (1995c): A Companion to the Study of Virgil. Mnemosyne Supplementum 151 (Leiden,<br />

etc.) [E. Fantham, CJ 92, 1996/7, 190-3; J. Filée, LEC 65, 1997, 86; J. Gómez Pallarèz,<br />

Faventia 19, 1997, 181-3; J. Pucet, AC 66, 1997, 441-2; B. W. Boyd, Vergilius 44, 1998,<br />

131-44; F. Gasti, Athenaeum 86, 1998, 338-9; F. Grewing, AAHG 51, 1998, 44-7; R. O. A.<br />

M. Lyne, CR 49, 1999, 383-4; C. Walde, MH 56, 1999, 248].<br />

– (1995d): “Style, Language and Metre”, in Horsfall (1995c), 217-48.<br />

54


– (1995e): “Virgil’s Impact at Rome: The Non-literary Evidence”, in Horsfall (1995c), 249-<br />

55.<br />

– (1999): “Two Virgilian Notes”, SCI 18, 45-8.<br />

– (2000): Vergil, <strong>Aeneid</strong> 7. A Commentary. Mnemosyne Supplementum 198 (Leiden, etc.) [J.<br />

Gómez Pallarès, Faventia 22, 2000, 152-4; C. Walde, MH 57, 2000, 291-2; J. Champeaux,<br />

REL 79, 2001, 270-1; P.-J. Dehon, AC 70, 2001, 304-5; J. E. G. Zetzel, CPh 96, 2001, 438-<br />

42; A. Barchiesi, CW 95, 2001/2, 81-3; J. den Boeft, Mnemosyne 55, 2002, 373-6; P.<br />

Dräger, Gymnasium 109, 2002, 426-9; E. Fantham, BMCRev 2002.03.04; Traina 2002; A.<br />

La Penna, Maia 55, 2003, 405-15; W. Suerbaum, Gnomon 75, 2003, 213-218; D. Nelis, CJ<br />

99, 2003/4, 83-5 ; J. Farrell, Vergilius 50, 2004, 182-9].<br />

– (2002): “Sallustian Politician and <strong>Vergilian</strong> Villain”, SCI 21, 79-81.<br />

– (2003): Vergil, <strong>Aeneid</strong> 11. Mnemosyne Suppl. 244 (Leiden, etc.) [A. Hardie, BMCRev<br />

2004.05.03].<br />

Houriez, Annie (1992): “La catabase d’Énée: épopée et apocalypse”, in Woronoff, Michel<br />

(1992; ed.): L’universe épique: rencontres avec l’Antiquité classique, II. Annales littéraires<br />

de l’Université de Besançon 460 (Paris), 201-15.<br />

– (1993): “L’espace infernal dans la catabase d’Énée au chant VI de l’Énéide”, Uranie 3, 69-<br />

86.<br />

Houston, George W. (1982): “The Lusus Troiae and Augustan Patriotism”, AugAge 1, 8-12.<br />

Hudson-Williams, A. (1978): “Lacrimae illae inanes”, G&R 25, 16-23 = McAuslan/Walcot<br />

(1990), 149-56.<br />

Hübner, Ulrich (1968): Elegisches in der Aeneis (Diss. Gießen).<br />

Hübner, Wolfgang (1970): Dirae im römischen Epos. Über das Verhältnis von Vogeldämonen<br />

und Prodigien. Spudasmata 21 (Hildesheim/New York).<br />

– (1994): “Die Dira im zwölften Buch der Aeneis: eine Klarstellung”, Eranos 92, 23-8.<br />

– (1995): “Poesie der Antipoesie: Überlegungen zum dritten Buch der Aeneis”, GB 21, 95-<br />

120.<br />

– (1997): “Noch einmal ‘ruit Oceano Nox’ (Verg. Aen. 2, 250)”, ACD 33, 1997, 189-201.<br />

Hügi, Markus (1952): Vergils Aeneis und die Hellenistische Dichtung. Noctes Romanae 4<br />

(Bern/Stuttgart) [V. Pöschl, AAHG 6, 1953, 7-9]<br />

Hughes, Lisa B. (1997): “Vergil’s Creusa and Iliad 6”, Mnemosyne 50, 401-23.<br />

– (2002): “Dido and Aeneas, an Homeric Homilia?”, Latomus 61, 339-51.<br />

– (2003): “Euripidean Vergil and the Smoke of a Distant Fire”, Vergilius 49, 69-83.<br />

Hunt, J. William (1973): Forms of Glory: Structure and Sense in Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>. Literary<br />

Structures [2] (Carbondale and Edwardsville) [J. Foster, CR 26, 1976, 181-2].<br />

Hunter, Richard L. (1989): “Bulls and Boxers in Apollonius and Vergil”, CQ 39, 557-61.<br />

– (1993): The Argonautica of Apollonius: Literary Studies (Cambridge).<br />

Huskey, Samuel J. (1999): “Turnus and Terminus in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 12”, Mnemosyne 52, 77-82.<br />

– (2002): “Ovid and the Fall of Troy in Tristia 1.3”, Vergilius 48, 88-104.<br />

Huss, Werner (1982): “Der Name der Byrsa von Karthago”, Klio 64, 403-6.<br />

Huttner, Ulrich (1997): “Hercules und Augustus”, Chiron 27, 369-91.<br />

Huxley, Herbert Henry (1983): “The Unique Rhythm of <strong>Aeneid</strong> 4.372”, Vergilius 29, 50.<br />

– (1987): “Significant Diaeresis in Vergil and Other Hexameter Poets”, Vergilius 33, 23-8.<br />

– (1993): “‘Wielder of the Stateliest Measure’”, LCM 18, 132-41.<br />

Iannucci, Amilcare A. (1982): “Vergil and the Tragedy of the Virtuous Pagans in Dante’s<br />

Commedia”, in McKay (1982), 145-78.<br />

Indelli, Giovanni (2001): “Filodemo e Virgilio sull’ira”, CErc 31, 31-5.<br />

– (2004): “TheVocabulary of Anger in Philodemus’ De ira and Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, in<br />

Armstrong/Fish/Johnston/Skinner (2004), 103-10.<br />

55


Ingallina, Sergio (1995): “Lettura del libro di Didone: struttura di una morte annunciata”, in<br />

Belloni, Luigi/Milanese, Guido/Porro, Antonietta (1995; edd.): Studia classica Johanni<br />

Tarditi oblata. Biblioteca di Aevum antiquum 7 (Milano), 229-63.<br />

Irmscher, Johannes (1985): “Vergil in der griechischen Antike”, Klio 67, 281-5.<br />

– (1995): Vergil: Antike Weltliteratur in ihrer Entstehung und Nachwirkung. Eine<br />

Aufsatzsammlung (Amsterdam) [G. Lieberg, Latomus 56, 1997, 401-4; J. M. Ziolkowski,<br />

IJCT 4, 1997/8, 92-9].<br />

Jackson Knight, W. F. ( 3 1966): Roman Vergil. Revised Edition (Harmondsworth) [V. Pöschl,<br />

AAHG 3, 1950, 75-9].<br />

Jacobson, Howard (1987): “Vergil’s Dido and Euripides’ Helen”, AJPh 108, 167-8.<br />

– (1989): “Cacus and the Cyclops”, Mnemosyne 42, 101-2.<br />

– (1994): “<strong>Aeneid</strong> 9.566”, LCM 19, 146.<br />

– (1998a): “<strong>Aeneid</strong> 4.622-3”, CQ 48, 313-4.<br />

– (1998b): “Violets and Violence: Two Notes”, CQ 48, 314-5.<br />

– (1999): “Vergil, <strong>Aeneid</strong> 5.458-60”, CQ 49, 329-30.<br />

– (2001): “<strong>Aeneid</strong> 12.391-2: iamque aderat Phoebo ante alios dilectus Iapyx/Iasides”, CQ<br />

51, 308-9.<br />

– (2002): “<strong>Aeneid</strong> 11.45-8”, Mnemosyne 55, 94.<br />

– (2004): “<strong>Aeneid</strong> 1.567-8”, CQ 54, 299-300.<br />

Jacoff, Rachel (2002): “Dante’s Vergil”, in Anderson/Quartarone (2002), 190-5.<br />

Jaeger, Mary (2002): “Vergil and the Monuments”, in Anderson/Quartarone (2002), 131-7.<br />

Jahn, Andrea (1995): “Alcune proposte per una lettura al liceo della ‘catabasi’ virgiliana”, in<br />

Reggi, Giancarlo (1995; ed.): Aspetti della poesia epica latina. Atti del corso<br />

d’aggiornamento per docenti di latino e greco del Canton Ticino Lugano 21-22-23 ottobre<br />

1993. Attualità e Studi (Lugano), 41-73.<br />

James, Sharon L. (1995): “Establishing Rome with the Sword: condere in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, AJPh<br />

116, 623-37.<br />

– (2002): “Perfect Feminine: Woman Past and Present in Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, in<br />

Anderson/Quartarone (2002), 138-146.<br />

Janko, Richard (1988): “Vergil, <strong>Aeneid</strong> 1.607-9 and Midas’ Epitaph”, CQ 38, 259-60.<br />

Janson, Tore (1990): “Malorum”, in Teodorsson, Sven-Tage (1990; ed.): Greek and Latin<br />

Studies in Memory of Caius Fabricius. Studia Graeca et Latina Gothoburgensia 54<br />

(Göteborg), 171-2.<br />

Jeanneret, René (1973): Recherches sur l’hymne et la prière chez Virgile. Essai d’application<br />

de la méthode d’analyse tagmémique à des textes littéraires de l’Antiquité. Études<br />

linguistiques 11 (Bruxelles) [H. Koch, Gymnasium 82, 1975, 480-2; J.-P. Borle, MH 34,<br />

1977, 258; J. Evrard-Gillis, Latomus 36, 1977, 186-7; W. S. Maguinness, CR 27, 1977,<br />

112].<br />

Jefferis, Bernice (1990-2): “Interpreting Vergil: Across the Arts, Across the Curriculum”,<br />

AugAge 10, 80-4.<br />

Jenkyns, Richard (1985): “Pathos, Tragedy and Hope in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, JRS 75, 60-77.<br />

– (1993): “Virgil and the Euphrates”, AJPh 114, 115-21.<br />

– (1998): Virgil’s Experience: Nature and History, Times, Names, and Places (Oxford) [J.-<br />

C. Richard, REL 76, 1998, 337-8; J. Poucet, Latomus 58, 1999, 927-8; M. Gale, G&R 47,<br />

2000, 107-8; N. Rudd, Hermathena 168, 2000, 77-93; K. Galinsky, Arion 3 rd ser. 9,<br />

2001/2, 138-56; W. W. Briggs, IJCT 7, 2000, 82-90; J. S. C. Eidinow, CR 50, 2000, 440-1;<br />

L. Fladerer, Latomus 59, 2000, 437-41; W. W. Briggs, CW 94, 2000/1, 290-1; J. Farrell,<br />

JRS 91, 2001, 237-8].<br />

56


Jocelyn, Henry David (1981): “Servius Daniel ‘ad Aen.’ IV 219, Macrobius ‘Sat’ III 2.7-9,<br />

and Varro, ‘Res. Div.’ fr. 66 (Cardauns)”, GIF 12, 107-16.<br />

– (1984): “The Annotations of M. Valerius Probus”, CQ 34, 464-72.<br />

– (1989): “Some Notes on Virgil, Probus, Servius and Servius Danielinus”, Sileno 15, 5-25.<br />

– (1990): “The Ancient Story of the Imperial Edition of the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Sileno 16, 263-78.<br />

– (1991): “Virgil and Aeneas’ Supposed Italian Ancestry”, Sileno 17, 77-100.<br />

Jönsson, Arne/Roos, Bengt-Arne (1996): “A Note on <strong>Aeneid</strong> 6.893-8”, Eranos 94, 21-8.<br />

Johnson, W. R. (1976): Darkness Visible: A Study of Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong> (Berkeley, etc.) [D. H.<br />

Porter, Arion 3, 1976, 493-506; A. Dalzell, Phoenix 32, 1978, 361-3; H. C. Rutledge,<br />

Vergilius 23, 1977, 71-4; A. C. F. Verity, G&R 24, 1977, 200; K. W. Gransden, CR 28,<br />

1978, 247-9; R. A. Hornsby, CJ 73, 1978, 355-7; N. Horsfall, JRS 69, 1979, 231-4; H. H.<br />

Huxley, EMC 23, 1979, 110; G. Williams, CPh 75, 1980, 164-7].<br />

– (1981): “The Broken World: Virgil and His Augustus”, Arethusa 14, 49-56 = Bloom<br />

(1986), 173-80.<br />

– (1986): “The Figure of Laertes: Reflections on the Character of Aeneas”, in Bernard<br />

(1986), 85-105.<br />

– (1992): “Dismal Decorations: Dryden’s Machines in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 12, in Wilhelm/Jones (1992),<br />

433-47.<br />

– (1999): “Dis aliter visum: Self-Telling and Theodicy in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 2, in Perkell (1999a), 50-<br />

63.<br />

– (2001): “Imaginary Romans: Vergil and the Illusion of National Identity”, in Spence<br />

(2001b), 3-16.<br />

– (2004): “Robert Lowell’s American Aeneas”, MD 52, 227-39.<br />

Johnston, Patricia A. (1977): “Vergil’s Conception of Saturnus”, CSCA 10, 57-70.<br />

– (1981): “The Storm in <strong>Aeneid</strong> VII”, Vergilius 27, 23-30.<br />

– (1987): “Dido, Berenice, and Arsinoe: <strong>Aeneid</strong> 6.460”, AJPh 108, 649-654.<br />

– (1989): “Recent Structural Studies on Vergil”, AugAge 9, 16-26.<br />

– (1996): “Under the Volcano: Volcanic Myth and Metapher in Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Vergilius<br />

42, 55-65.<br />

– (1998): “Juno’s Anger and the Sibyl at Cumae”, Vergilius 44, 13-23.<br />

– (2002): “The Anger of Juno in Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, in Anderson/Quartarone (2002), 123-130.<br />

– (2004): “Piety in Vergil and Philodemus”, in Armstrong/Fish/Johnston/Skinner (2004),<br />

159-73.<br />

Jones, F. M. A. (2001): “Virgil’s Inheritors”, PVS 24, 1-9.<br />

Jones, Christopher P. (1995): “Graia pandetur ab urbe”, HSPh 97, 233-41.<br />

Jones, Julian Ward (1977): “Mezentius the Isolated Hero”, Vergilius 23, 50-4.<br />

– (1986): “The Allegorical Traditions of the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, in Bernard (1986), 107-32.<br />

– (1987): “<strong>Aeneid</strong> 4.238-278 and the Persistence of an Allegorical Interpretation”, Vergilius<br />

33, 29-37.<br />

– (1996): An <strong>Aeneid</strong> Commentary of Mixed Type: The Glosses in MSS Harley 4946 and<br />

Ambrosianus G111 inf.. A Critical Edition. Studies and Texts 126 (Toronto) [C. E.<br />

Fantazzi, Vergilius 44, 1998, 162-4; C. E. Murgia, Speculum 73, 1998, 199-201].<br />

Jouanno, Sophie (2003); “Les prophéties en acte dans l’Énéide”, in Lachenaud, Guy/Longrée,<br />

Dominique (edd.): Grecs et Romains aux prises avec l’histoire. Réprésentations, récits et<br />

idéologie. Colloque de Nantes et Angers. 2 voll. Collection ‘Histoire’ (Rennes), 437-46.<br />

Kailuweit, Thomas (2005): Dido-Didon-Didone. Eine kommentierte Bibliographie zum Dido-<br />

Mythos in Literatur und Musik (Frankfurt a. M.).<br />

Kakridis, Fanis I. (2000): “Η καταρά του απαρνηµένου: Αρχίλοχος, Έπωδοι 79a D. =<br />

Ιππόναξ αποσπ. 115 W. Ρήµατα κόρης και νέου 734-747: δηµοτικά τραγουδία της<br />

57


απαρνηµένης”, in Kakridis, F. I. [et al.]: Κτηρίσµατα Φιλολογικά µελετήµατα αφιερώµενα<br />

στον Ιω. Σ. Καµπίτση (1938-1990) (Iraklio), 73-89.<br />

Kallendorf, Craig (1989): In Praise of Aeneas: Virgil and Epideictic Rhetoric in the Early<br />

Renaissance (Hanover/London) [J. E. Rexine, Vergilius 35, 1989, 140-4].<br />

– (1990): “Nachleben”, Vergilius 36, 82-100 [with a reply by Alexander McKay].<br />

– (1991a): A Bibliography of Venetian Editions of Virgil, 1470-1599. Biblioteca di<br />

Bibliografia Italiana 123 (Firenze) [D. Robin, Vergilius 38, 1992, 152-4; P. Fedeli, Aufidus<br />

10, 1996, 152].<br />

– (1991b): “Recent Trends in <strong>Vergilian</strong> Scholarship”, Helios 18, 73-82.<br />

– (1993; ed.): Vergil. The Classical Heritage 2 (New York) [K. Castor, CW 89, 1995/6, 426].<br />

– (1994): A Bibliography of Renaissance Italian Translations of Virgil. Biblioteca di<br />

bibliografia italiana 136 (Firenze) [G. Marconi, RCCM 37, 1995, 321-2; P. Fedeli, Aufidus<br />

10, 1996, 152; P. Tordeur, AC 65, 1996, 621; T. Brückner, Gymnasium 106, 1999, 564-7].<br />

– (1999a): “Historicizing the ‘Harvard School’: Pessimistic Readings of the <strong>Aeneid</strong> in Italian<br />

Renaissance Scholarship”, HSPh 99, 391-403.<br />

– (1999b): Virgil and the Myth of Venice: Books and Readers in the Italian Renaissance<br />

(Oxford/New York) [E. Irace, PPol 33, 2000, 345-6; J. Van Sickle, CW 94, 2000/1, 211-2;<br />

M. Davies, CR 51, 2001, 367-9; J. H. Gaisser, Vergilius 46, 2000, 215-9; M. Leathers<br />

Kuntz, IJCT 9, 2002/3, 333-5].<br />

– (2001): “The <strong>Aeneid</strong> Transformed: Illustration as Interpretation”, in Spence (2001b), 121-<br />

48.<br />

Karamalengou, Hélène (2003): “Musa ou Musae? Poétique ou poétiques chez les poètes<br />

augustéens?“, REL 81, 133-56.<br />

Kaster, Robert A. (1988): Guardians of Language: The Grammarian and <strong>Society</strong> in Late<br />

Antiquity (Berkeley/Los Angeles).<br />

– (1990): The Tradition of the Text of the <strong>Aeneid</strong> in the Ninth Century. Harvard Dissertations<br />

in Classics (New York) [M. D. Reeve, CR 41, 1991, 59-60; R. Lesueur, REL 70, 1992,<br />

309-10; J. Meyers, Latomus 52, 1993, 470-2.].<br />

Kehoe, Patrick E. (1977): “Aeneas and the Libyan Harbor (1.159-69)”, CB 53, 71-6.<br />

– (1989): “Was Book 5 Once in a Different Place in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>?”, AJPh 110, 246-63.<br />

Keith, Alison (1991): “Etymological Play on ingens in Ovid, Vergil and Octavia”, AJPh 112,<br />

73-6.<br />

– (2000a): Engendering Rome: Women in Latin Epic. Roman Literature and Its Contexts<br />

(Cambridge) [D. Nelis, Vergilius 46, 2000, 192-6; S. Raval, BMCRev 00.06.23; Ripoli,<br />

REL 78, 2000, 291-3; Augoustakis, CJ 97, 2001, 93-6; M. Gale, G&R 48, 2001, 95; E.<br />

Hemelrijk, AC 70, 2001, 303-4; P. Salzmann-Mitchell, JRS 91, 2001, 214-5; S. Spence,<br />

CO 79, 2002, 163-4].<br />

– (2000b): “Ovid on <strong>Vergilian</strong> War Narrative”, Vergilius 48, 105-22.<br />

Kennedy, Duncan F. (1997a): “Modern Receptions and the Interpretative Implications”, in<br />

Martindale (1997a), 38-55.<br />

– (1997b): “Virgilian Epic”, in Martindale (1997a), 145-54.<br />

Kenney, E. J. (1979): “Iudicium transferendi: Virgil, <strong>Aeneid</strong> 2.469-505 and Its Antecedents“,<br />

in West, David/Woodman, Tony (1979; edd.): Creative Imitation and Latin Literature<br />

(Cambridge, etc.), 103-20.<br />

Kepple, Laurence R. (1976): “Arruns and the Death of Aeneas”, AJPh 97, 344-60.<br />

Ketterer, Robert C. (1992a): “The Perils of Dido: Sorcery and Melodrama in Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong><br />

IV and Purcell’s Dido and Aeneas”, in Redmont, James (1992; ed.): Melodrama. Themes<br />

in Drama 14 (Cambridge), 31-46.<br />

– (1992b): “The Rainbow at the End of <strong>Aeneid</strong> 4”, SyllClass 3, 21-23.<br />

Khan, H. Akbar (1986): “Marriage Motifs in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, in Cardwell/Hamilton (1986), 43-<br />

51.<br />

58


– (1996a): “Demonizing Dido: A Rebounding Sequence of Curses and Dreams in <strong>Aeneid</strong>, 4”,<br />

in Sommerstein, Alan H. (ed.): Religion and Superstition in Latin Literature. Nottingham<br />

Classical Literature Studies 3, 1994 (Bari), 1-28 (29-37: Response by S. J. Harrison).<br />

– (1996b): “The Harpies Episode in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 3”, Prometheus 22, 131-44.<br />

– (1998): “Anchises, Achaemenides and Polyphemus: Character, Culture and Politics in<br />

<strong>Aeneid</strong> 3, 588f.”, in Deroux, Carl (1998; ed.): Studies in Latin Literature and Roman<br />

History 9. Collection Latomus 244 (Bruxelles), 231-67.<br />

– (2001): “Exile and the Kingdom: Creusa’s Revelations and Aeneas’ Departure from Troy”,<br />

Latomus 60, 906-15.<br />

– (2002a): “The Boy at the Banquet: Dido and Amor in Vergil Aen. I”, Atheneum 90, 187-<br />

205.<br />

– (2002b): “Doctissima Dido: Etymology, Hospitality and the Construction of a Civilized<br />

Identity”, in Defosse, Pol (2002; ed.): Hommages à Carl Deroux. I: Poésie. Collection<br />

Latomus 266 (Bruxelles), 6-12.<br />

– (2003): “Venus’ Intervention in the Dido-Affair: Controversies and Considerations”, in<br />

Deroux, Carl (ed.): Studies in Latin Literature and Roman History 11. Collection Latomus<br />

272 (Bruxelles), 244-74.<br />

Kilpatrick, Ross Stuart (1995): “The Stuff of Doors and Dreams (Vergil, <strong>Aeneid</strong> 6.893-98)”,<br />

Vergilius 41, 63-70.<br />

King, Katherine Callen (1982): “Foil and Fusion: Homer’s Achilles in Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, MD<br />

9, 31-57.<br />

Kinsey, Thomas Edmund (1979a): “The Achaemenides Episode in Virgil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong> III”,<br />

Latomus 38, 110-24.<br />

– (1979b): “The Meaning of interea in Virgil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Glotta 57, 259-65.<br />

– (1979c): “The Song of Iopas”, Emerita 47, 77-86.<br />

– (1979d): “Virgil, <strong>Aeneid</strong> VI 88-90”, Maia 31, 267.<br />

– (1979e): “Vergil, <strong>Aeneid</strong> 6.201”, LCM 4, 59.<br />

– (1981a): “Tyre and Sidon in Virgil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Philologus 125, 149-51.<br />

– (1981b): “Virgil, <strong>Aeneid</strong> 1.286-8”, LCM 6, 27.<br />

– (1982): “Virgil, <strong>Aeneid</strong> 4.550-1; 6.392-4”, LCM 7, 14. 155.<br />

– (1983a): “Virgil, <strong>Aeneid</strong> 6.392-4 yet Again”, LCM 8, 96.<br />

– (1983b): “Virgil, <strong>Aeneid</strong> IV 435-6”, Maia 35, 29-30.<br />

– (1984a): “The Song of Iopas (II)”, Emérita 52, 69-76.<br />

– (1984b): “Virgil, <strong>Aeneid</strong> IV.65-66”, PP 38, 300-1.<br />

– (1984c): “Was there a Treaty Between the Trojans and the Latins?”, SIFC 2, 240-2.<br />

– (1985): “The Death of Palinurus”, PP 40, 379-80.<br />

– (1986): “Pictures on Temple Doors: Virgil, <strong>Aeneid</strong> 6.9-41”, LCM 11, 137.<br />

– (1987a): “Helen at the Sack of Troy”, PP 42, 197-8.<br />

– (1987b): “Virgil, <strong>Aeneid</strong> VII.109-134”, PP 42, 296-7.<br />

– (1987c): “Virgil, Aen. VI, 69-70”, Maia 29, 41.<br />

– (1988): “Virgil, <strong>Aeneid</strong> 9.578-80”, LCM 13, 80.<br />

– (1989a): “Virgil, <strong>Aeneid</strong> VII, 8”, Latomus 48, 189-90.<br />

– (1989b): “Virgil, <strong>Aeneid</strong> XII.51-3”, Maia 41, 59.<br />

– (1990): “Virgil, <strong>Aeneid</strong> VIII, 497-504”, RBPh 68, 84-5.<br />

Klause, Günter (1993): Die Periphrase der Nomina propria bei Vergil. Studien zur<br />

klassischen Philologie 76 (Frankfurt am Main) [R. Bracchi, Salesianum 58, 1996, 629].<br />

Klecker, Elisabeth (1996): “Divisum imperium. ‘Vergils’ Augustus-Epigramme in der<br />

neulateinischen Panegyrik”, WS 109, 257-75.<br />

– (2001): “Vergilimitation und christliche Geschichtsdeutung in Petrarcas Africa”, WS 114,<br />

645-76.<br />

Kleinknecht, Hermann (1944): “Laokoon”, Hermes 79, 66-111 = Oppermann (1962), 426-88.<br />

59


Klemke, Gisela (1990): Beobachtungen zur Vergilischen Parataxe: Das Phänomen der<br />

Entfaltung in der Aeneis. Europäische Hochschulschriften. Reihe 15, Nr. 48 (Frankfurt am<br />

Main, etc.) [M. Jiménez, Helmantica 42, 1991, 362; W. Erdt, Gymnasium 99, 1992, 94; J.<br />

Granarolo, Latomus 52, 1993, 693].<br />

Kleywegt, A. J. (1995): “Anne Latinum? Vergilius en het Latijn”, Lampas 28, 55-66.<br />

Klingner, Friedrich (1930): “Die Einheit des Virgilischen Lebenswerkes”, MDAI (R) 45, 43-<br />

58 = id., Römische Geisteswelt (Stuttgart, 1979 = München, 5 1965), 274-92 = Hardie<br />

(1999b), i, 3-17.<br />

– (1942): “Virgil. Wiederentdeckung eines Dichters”, in Berve, Helmut (1942; ed.): Das<br />

neue Bild der Antike 2 (Leipzig), 219-45 = id., Römische Geisteswelt (Stuttgart, 1979 =<br />

München, 5 1965), 239-74.<br />

– (1943): “Vergil und die geschichtliche Welt”, in Römische Geisteswelt (Leipzig), 91-112 =<br />

München, 5 1965 = Stuttgart 1979, 293-311.<br />

– (1967): Virgil: Bucolica, Georgica, Aeneis (Zürich/Stuttgart), 365-597 [C. J. Classen,<br />

Literature, Music, Fine Arts 2, 1969, 144-6; B. Otis, Gnomon 41, 1969, 554-74; A.<br />

Wlosok, Gymnasium 80, 1973, 135-8].<br />

Klodt, Claudia (2001): Bescheidene Größe: Die Herrschergestalt, der Kaiserpalast und die<br />

Stadt Rom: Literarische Reflexionen monarchischer Selbstdarstellung. Hypomnemata 137<br />

(Göttingen) [S. Lorenz, BMCRev 2002.09.33].<br />

Knauer, Georg Nicolaus (1964a): Die Aeneis und Homer. Studien zur poetischen Technik<br />

Vergils mit Listen der Homerzitate in der Aeneis. Hypomnemata 7 (Göttingen; repr. 1979)<br />

[M. L. Clarke, Gnomon 37, 1965, 687-90; V. Buchheit, Gymnasium 74, 1967, 470-3; V.<br />

Pöschl, AAHG 23, 1969, 17-9; V. Buchheit, GGA 222, 1970, 79-94; A. Wlosok,<br />

Gymnasium 80, 1973, 139-40].<br />

– (1964b): “Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong> and Homer”, GRBS 5, 61-84 = S. J. Harrison (1990b), 390-412<br />

= Hardie (1999b), iii, 93-113 [~ Knauer (1981), 871-90].<br />

– (1981): “Vergil and Homer”, ANRW ii 31.1, 870-918 [871-90 ~ Knauer (1964b)].<br />

Knoche, Ulrich (1952): “Die Augusteische Ausprägung der Dea Roma”, Gymnasium 59, 324-<br />

49 = id., Vom Selbstverständnis der Römer. Gymnasium Beiheft 2 (Heidelberg, 1962),<br />

145-73 = Oppermann (1962; ed.): Römertum. Wege der Forschung 18 (Darmstadt), 359-<br />

99.<br />

Knox, Bernard M. W. (1950): “The Serpent and the Flame: The Imagery of the Second Book<br />

of the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, AJPh 71, 379-400 = Commager (1966), 124-42 = Hardie (1999b), iii, 345-<br />

62 = S. Quinn (2000), 65-79.<br />

Knox, Peter E. (1984): “A Note on <strong>Aeneid</strong> 1.613”, CPh 79, 304-5.<br />

– (1989): “Ruit oceano nox”, CQ 39, 265.<br />

– (1997): “Savagery in the <strong>Aeneid</strong> and Virgil’s Ancient Commentators”, CJ 92, 225-33.<br />

Kobakhidze, E. (2003): “Etruscans in <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Phasis. Greek and Roman Studies 5/6, 141-50.<br />

Koch, Carl (1952): “Roma aeterna”, Gymnasium 59, 128-43. 196-209 = id., Religio. Studien<br />

zu Kult und Glauben der Römer (Nürnberg, 1960), 142-75 = Klein, Richard (1969; ed.):<br />

Prinzipat und Freiheit. Wege der Forschung 135 (Darmstadt), 23-67.<br />

Koch, Hans (1966): “Zur Gliederung von Aeneis I und IV”, Gymnasium 73, 506-13.<br />

Koch, Klaus-Dietrich (1990): Die Aeneis als Opernsujet. Dramaturgische Wandlungen vom<br />

Frühbarock bis zu Berlioz. Xenia. Konstanzer Althistorische Vorträge und Forschungen 26<br />

(Konstanz) [W. Plenio, Gymnasium 97, 1990, 578-80; E. Rabbie, Mnemosyne 49, 1996,<br />

489-90].<br />

Köhnken, Adolf (1981): “Der Endspurt des Odysseus. Wettkampfdarstellung bei Homer und<br />

Vergil”, Hermes 109, 129-48.<br />

Köves-Zulauf, Thomas (1978): “Camilla”, Gymnasium 85, 182-205. 408-36.<br />

60


– (1998): “Apollo in der Aeneis: epischer ‘Götterapparat’ wozu?”, in Tar, Ibolya (1998; ed.):<br />

Epik durch die Jahrhunderte. Internationale Konferenz Szeged 2.-4. Oktober 1997. Acta<br />

antiqua et archaeologica 27 (Szeged), 108-16.<br />

– (1998/9): “Die Steuermänner im Gesamtrahmen der Aeneis: Leucaspis, Menoetes,<br />

Palinurus”, ACD 34/5, 303-25.<br />

– (2000): “Virtus und pietas”, AAntHung 40, 247-62.<br />

Kofler, Wolfgang (2003): Aeneas und Vergil. Untersuchungen zur poetologischen Dimension<br />

der Aeneis. Bibliothek der Klassischen Altertumswissenschaften Neue Folge, 2. Reihe,<br />

111 (Heidelberg) [S. Casali, JRS 94, 2004, 241].<br />

Kohn, Thomas D. (1998): “<strong>Aeneid</strong> 6.713-723: Who is Speaking?”, Vergilius 44, 28-30.<br />

Kollmann, E. D. (1978): “Zu Vergil, Aeneis 2, 49”, Hermes 106, 503-4.<br />

– (1982): “Zum Enjambement in der lateinischen Hexameterdichtung”, RhM 125, 117-34.<br />

Konstan, David (1986): “Venus’s Enigmatic Smile”, Vergilius 32, 18-25.<br />

– (2000): “A Pun in Virgil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong> (4.492-93)?”, CPh 95, 74-6.<br />

Kopff, E. Christian (1977): “Dido and Penelope”, Philologus 121, 244-8.<br />

– (1981): “Virgil and the Cyclic Epics”, ANRW ii 31.2, 919-47.<br />

– /Kopff, Nanno Marinatos (1976): “Aeneas: False Dream or Messenger of the Manes?<br />

(<strong>Aeneid</strong> 6, 893ff.)”, Philologus 120, 246-50.<br />

Koppenfels, Werner von (1983): “Parva componere magnis: Vergil und die ‘mockheroische’<br />

Perspektive des Klassizismus in England”, in Pöschl (1983), 153-73; auch [erweitert] in:<br />

id.: Bild und Metamorphose. Paradigmen einer europäischen Komparatistik (Darmstadt,<br />

1991), 223-44.<br />

Korenjak, Martin (1997): “Pallas, Athene und der Schluß der Aeneis“, Mnemosyne 50, 337-<br />

42.<br />

– (2004): “Italiam contra Tiberinaque longe/Ostia: Virgil’s Carthago and Erathostenian<br />

Geography”, CQ 54, 646-9.<br />

Korpanty, J. (1985): “Furor in der augusteischen Literatur”, Klio 67, 248-57.<br />

Koster, Severin (1988): “Ille ego qui oder Arma virum?”, in id. (1988): Ille ego qui. Dichter<br />

zwischen Wort und Macht. Erlanger Forschungen. Reihe A. Geisteswissenschaften 42<br />

(Erlangen), 31-47.<br />

– (1990): “Vergil und Augustus”, in Görler, Woldemar/Koster, Severin (1990; edd.): Pratum<br />

Saraviense. Festgabe für Peter Steinmetz (Stuttgart), 127-46.<br />

– (1994): “Streit um Laokoon. Vergil und das Marmorstandbild”, Gymnasium 101, 43-57.<br />

Krafft, Peter (1986): “Nochmals Vergils Laokoon”, in Stache, Ulrich Justus/Maaz,<br />

Wolfgang/Wagner, Fritz (1986; edd.): Kontinuität und Wandel. Lateinische Poesie von<br />

Naevius bis Baudelaire. Franco Munari zum 65. Geburtstag (Hildesheim), 43-62.<br />

Kragelund, Patrick (1976): Dream and Prediction in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>: A Semiotic Interpretation of<br />

the Dreams of Aeneas and Turnus. Opuscula Graecolatina. Museum Tusculanum Suppl. 7<br />

[J. Perret, REL 54, 1976, 444-5; M. C. J. Putnam, CW 70, 1977, 482; A. C. F. Verity, G&R<br />

24, 1977, 85; A. Crabbe, CR 28, 1978, 249-51; N. Horsfall, JRS 69, 1979, 231-4; A. H. M.<br />

Kessels, Mnemosyne 33, 1980, 420-2; J. Granarolo, Latomus 41, 1982, 867-70; Fasce,<br />

Maia 34, 1982, 319-21].<br />

Kraggerud, Egil (1968): Aeneisstudien. Symbolae Osloenses Fasc. Suppl. 22 (Oslo) [M. v.<br />

Albrecht, Gnomon 41, 1969, 822-4; H. Koch, Gymnasium 77, 1970, 82-4].<br />

– (1987a): “<strong>Aeneid</strong> 1.603-605 and mens sibi conscia recti”, SO 62, 89-94.<br />

– (1987b): “Perusia and the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, SO 62, 77-87.<br />

– (1989): “Three Problematic Passages in Vergil: Ecl. 4,8; Ge. 4, 453-456; Aen. 1,1-7”, SO<br />

44, 110-24.<br />

– (1991): “On the Text of Aen. 6.852”, SO 66, 115-7.<br />

– (1992): “Which Julius Caesar? On Aen. 1.286-296”, SO 67, 103-12.<br />

– (1994): “Caesar versus Caesar Again: A Reply”, SO 69, 83-93.<br />

61


– (1995): “Notes on Anchises’ Speech in Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>, Book VI”, in Asztalos, Monika,<br />

Gejrot, Claes (1995; edd.): Symbolae Septentrionales. Latin Studies Presented to Jan<br />

Öberg (Stockholm), 59-71.<br />

– (1996): “Against the Consensus: Some Problems of Text and Interpretation in Vergil”, SO<br />

71, 102-14.<br />

– (1997): “Disiectorum voces poetarum: On Imitation in Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, SO 72, 105-17.<br />

– (1998): “<strong>Vergilian</strong>a. 1. On Text and Exegesis in Aen. IX”, SO 73, 94-115.<br />

– (1999): “Samson Eitrem and the Death of Dido: A Literary Reappraisal of a Magical<br />

Scene”, in Jordan, David A./Montgomery, Hugo/Thomassen, Einar (1999; edd.): The<br />

World of Ancient Magic: Papers from the First International Samson Eitrem Seminar at<br />

the Norwegian Institute at Athens, 4-8 May 1997 (Athens/Bergen), 103-13.<br />

– (2002): “<strong>Vergilian</strong>a (II): What Is Wrong with the somni portae? (Aen. 6.893-898)”, SO 77,<br />

128-44.<br />

– (2003): “<strong>Vergilian</strong>a (III): On the Proem of the <strong>Aeneid</strong> (I, 1 and I, 8)”, SO 78, 5-18.<br />

Krevans, Nita (1993): “Ilia’s Dream: Ennius, Virgil, and the Mythology of Seduction”, HSPh<br />

95, 257-71.<br />

Krischer, Tilman (1979): “Unhomeric Scene-Patterns in Vergil”, PLLS 2, 143-54.<br />

Kristol, Susan Scheinberg (1990): Labor and Fortuna in Virgil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>. Harvard<br />

Dissertations in Classics (New York) [J. O’Hara, CW 84, 1990/1, 503].<br />

Krummen, Eveline (2001): “Totam incensa per urbem bacchatur … Liebe und bacchantischer<br />

Wahnsinn. Zur Bild- und Tragödientradition in Vergils Didoerzählung”, Ianus.<br />

Informationen zum altsprachlichen Unterricht 22, 7-16.<br />

– (2004): “Dido als Mänade und tragische Heroine. Dionysische Thematik und<br />

Tragödientradition in Vergils Didoerzählung“, Poetica 36, 25-69.<br />

Kubusch, Klaus (1986): Aurea Saecula: Mythos und Geschichte: Untersuchung eines Motivs<br />

in der antiken Literatur bis Ovid. Studien zur klassischen Philologie 28 (Frankfurt am<br />

Main, etc.) [Bartol, Eos 76, 1988, 365-9; P. Hamblenne, LEC 56, 1988, 315; P. Tordeur,<br />

AC 57, 1988, 379-80; J. den Boeft, Mnemosyne 43, 1990, 496-7; R. Häußler, Gnomon 69,<br />

1997, 211-25].<br />

Kühn, Werner (1957): “Rüstungsszenen bei Homer und Vergil”, Gymnasium 64, 28-59 [V.<br />

Pöschl, AAHG 12, 1959, 213-4].<br />

– (1971): Götterszenen bei Vergil (Heidelberg) [H. Koch, Gymnasium 81, 1974, 13-5; A.<br />

Wlosok, Gnomon 51, 1979, 537-44].<br />

Kyriakidis, Stratis (1992a): “Aeneas’ Narrative and the Epic Reality Developed During the<br />

Night”, in Επιστηµονική επητερίδα της φιλοσοφικής Σχολής του Αριστοτελείου<br />

Πανεπιστηµίου Θεσσαλονίκης. Περίοδος β τµήµα φιλολογίας 2, 17-37.<br />

– “Eve and Mary: Proba’s Technique in the Creation of Two Different Female Figures”, MD<br />

29, 121-53.<br />

– (1993): “<strong>Aeneid</strong> 6.268: ibant obscuri sola sub nocte per umbram”, PLLS 7, 97-100.<br />

– (1994a): “Invocatio ad Musam (Aen. 7, 37)”, MD 33, 197-206.<br />

– (1994b): “Proba, Faltoniia Betitia”, Kleos 1, 185-200.<br />

– (1994c): “‘Pulchro pectore virgo’: Μεταµορφώσεις σε στίχους του Βεργιλίου”, in Η<br />

γυναίκα στη λατινική γραµµατεία. Δ’ Πανελλήνιο Συµπόσιο Λατινικών Σπουδών<br />

(Ρέθυµνο 2-4 Νοεµβρίου 1990). Πανεπιστηµιο Κρήτης. Τµήµα Φιλολογίας 2 (Retimno),<br />

119-30.<br />

– (1997): “Το επεισόδιο της Καιήτης: (Aen. 6.900-7.6): µία προσέγγησι”, in<br />

Φιλερήµουαγάπησις Τιµητικός τόµος για τόν καθηγηθή Αγάπητο Γ. Τσοπαάκι. Στέγη<br />

γραµµάτων και τεχνών δωδωκανήσου.Σείρα αυτοτέλων εκδόσεων 20 (Rhodos), 283-93.<br />

– (1998): Narrative Structure in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>: The Frame of Book 6. “le Rane”. Studi 23<br />

(Bari) [C. G. Perkell, BMCRev 1999.11.10; P. Aretini, Orpheus 21, 2000, 263-6; A. Borgo,<br />

62


BStudLat 30, 2000, 715-6; J. M. Nishimura-Jensen, Vergilius 46, 2000, 175-80; R.<br />

Lesueur, Latomus 61, 2002, 746-7].<br />

– (2000): “‘<strong>Aeneid</strong> V 822-826: A <strong>Vergilian</strong> Catalogue”, Eikasmos 11, 269-76.<br />

– (2001): “Fractasque ad litora voces: Aen. 3.556”, REA 103, 481-4.<br />

– (2001/2): “Women and Love in Vergil”, Archaiognosia 11, 233-47.<br />

– (2004): “Οι κατάλογοι στον Βεργίλιον: δοµή και αφηγήση, in Δηµητρίω Στέφανος.<br />

Τιµητικός τόµος για τόν καθηγηθή Δηµήτρη Λιπουρλή (Thessaloniki), 305-22.<br />

Kyriakidou, Helen (2003): “Homers Etymologising in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>: Simile and the Point of<br />

Concentration”, in Nifadopoulos, Christos (ed.): Etymologia: Studies in Ancient<br />

Etymology. Proceedings of the Cambridge Conference on Ancient Etymology 25-27<br />

September 2000 (Münster), 131-41.<br />

Kyriakou, Poulheria (1999): “Aeneas’ Dream of Hector”, Hermes 127, 317-27.<br />

Kytzler, Bernhard (1990): “In medio mihi Caesar erit: II. Zur Struktur der Aeneis”, JAC 5,<br />

179-86.<br />

Laage, Karl Ernst (1959): “Zur Vergillektüre im altsprachlichen Unterricht”, Gymnasium 66,<br />

539-56.<br />

Labate, Mario (1987): “Poesia cortigiana, poesia civile, scrittura epica (a proposito di Verg.<br />

Aen. 1, 257 ss. e Theocr. 24, 73 ss.)”, MD 18, 69-81.<br />

La Bua, Giuseppe (1999): L’inno nella letteratura poetica latina. Prefazione di Leopoldo<br />

Gamberale. Drion. Studi sul mondo classico 1 (San Severo).<br />

Lacroix, Léon (1993): “Le périple d’Énée de la Troade à la Sicile: thèmes légendaires et<br />

réalités géographiques”, AC 62, 131-55.<br />

Ladewig, T./Schaper, K./Jahn, P./Deuticke, P. (1904-15): Vergils Gedichte erklärt. 3 voll.<br />

(Berlin; Aeneis: ii = 1-6, 13 1912; iii = 7-12, 9 1904; reprint 1973].<br />

La Fico Guzzo, María Luisa (1999): “El movimento y la luz en el libro 3 de la Eneida”, Argos<br />

23, 41-52.<br />

– (2000a): “Estatismo y movimiento, orden cosmico y desequilibrio en el libro 4 de ‘La<br />

Eneida’”, Minerva 14, 61-9.<br />

– (2000b): “Una estructura espacial recurrente en el libro I de la Eneida”, REC 29, 93-105.<br />

Laigneau, Sylvie (2001) “Épopée et tragédie dans le chant II de l’Énéide”, BAGB 2001, 379-<br />

89.<br />

Laird, Andrew (1996): “Vt figura poesis: Writing Art and the Art of Writing in Augustan<br />

Poetry”, in Elsner, Jás (1996; ed.): Art and Text in Roman Culture (Cambridge), 75-102.<br />

– (1997): “Approaching Characterisation in Virgil”, in Martindale (1997a), 282-93.<br />

– (1999): Powers of Expression, Expressions of Power: Speech Presentation and Latin<br />

Literature (Oxford), 153-208 [J. T. Chlup, BMCR 00.07.25; B. Gibson, PVS 24, 2001, 139-<br />

46; A. D. Morrison, JRS 93, 2003, 336-7].<br />

– (2000): “Design and Designation in Virgil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>, Tacitus’ Annals, and Michelangelo’s<br />

Conversion of Saint Paul”, in Sharrock, Alison, Morales, Helen (edd.): Intratextuality:<br />

Greek and Roman Relations (Oxford), 143-70.<br />

– (2001): “The Poetics and Afterlife of Virgil’s Descent to the Underworld: Servius, Dante,<br />

Fulgentius and the Culex”, PVS 24, 49-80.<br />

– (2002a): “Authority and Ontology of the Muses in Epic Reception”, in Spentzou,<br />

Efrossini/Fowler, Don (2002): “Cultivating the Muse: Struggles for Power and Inspiration<br />

in Classical Literature (Oxford), 117-40.<br />

– (2002b): “Da Virgilio a Góngora: istruzione e innovazione nel commentario di Juan Luis<br />

De La Cerda”, StudUmanist Piceni 22, 219-25.<br />

63


– (2003a): “Figures of Allegory from Homer to Latin Epic”, in Boys-Stones, G. R. (ed.):<br />

Metaphor, Allegory, and the Classical Tradition: Ancient Thought and Modern Revisions<br />

(Oxford), 151-75.<br />

– (2003b): “Roman Epic Theatre? Reception, Performance, and the Poet in Virgil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>”,<br />

PCPhS 49, 19-39.<br />

Lamacchia, Rosa (1964): “Ciceros Somnium Scipionis und das sechste Buch der Aeneis”,<br />

RhM 107, 261-78.<br />

Lana, Italo (1983): “Lettura del terzo libro dell’Eneide”, in Gigante (1983), 99-128.<br />

– (1989): “Studi sull’idea della pace nel mondo antico”, MAT Ser. 5, 13.1-2, 1-68.<br />

La Penna, Antonio (1967): “Amata e Didone”, Maia 19, 309-18.<br />

– (1971): “Spunti sociologici per l’interpretazione dell’Eneide”, in Bardon, Henri/Verdière,<br />

Raoul (edd.): <strong>Vergilian</strong>a. Recherches sur Virgile (Leiden), 283-93 = “Sociological<br />

Approaches to the Interpretation of the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, in Hardie (1999b), iii, 173-82.<br />

– (1978): “Deifobo e Enea (Aen. VI 494-547), RCCM 20, 987-1006<br />

– (1980): “Mezenzio: una tragedia della tirannia e del titanismo antico”, Maia 32, 3-30 =<br />

“Mezentius: A Tragedy of Tyranny and of Ancient Titanism”, in Hardie (1999b), iv, 345-<br />

75.<br />

– (1981a): “Mezenzio, il tiranno dell’Eneide nelle recenti interpretazioni”, C&S 20, 23-9.<br />

– (1981b): “I proemi del ‘come’ e i proemi del ‘che cosa’, ovvero i futili giochi della<br />

filologia strutturalistica”, Maia 33, 217-23.<br />

– (1983): “Lettura del nono libro dell’Eneide”, in Gigante (1983), 299-340.<br />

– (1985): “Ille ego qui quondam e i raccordati editoriali nell’antichità”, SIFC 3, 76-91.<br />

– (1988): “Gli archetipi epici di Camilla”, Maia 40, 221-50.<br />

– (1994): “Me, me, adsum qui feci, in me convertite ferrum …! Per la storia di una scena<br />

tipica dell’epos e della tragedia”, Maia 46, 123-34.<br />

– (1996): “L’arrivo di Enea alla foce del Tevere (Aen. VII 25-36). Saggio di analisi letteraria<br />

dell’Eneide”, SIFC 14, 102-22.<br />

– (1997): “La stanchezza del lungo viaggio (Verg. Aen. 5, 604-679)”, RFIC 125, 52-69.<br />

– (2000): “L’ordine delle raffigurazioni della guerra troiana nel tempio di Cartagine (Aen. I<br />

469-493)”, Maia 52, 1-8.<br />

– (2002a): “La collana di Armonia e il bàlteo di Pallante: Una nota su Virgilio e Accio”,<br />

Maia 54, 259-62.<br />

– (2002b): “Note sulla lingua e lo stile dell’Eneide”, Paideia 57, 192-215.<br />

– (2002c): “Omnia tuta timens (nota su Aen. 4.298)”, Lexis 20, 87-9.<br />

– (2003a): “Qualche problema nell’interpretazione della rassegna storica nel VI<br />

dell’Eneide”, Maia 55, 231-47.<br />

– (2003b): “Selezione e organizzazione nelle due rassegne storiche dell’Eneide”, in<br />

Casanova, Angelo/Desideri, Paolo (edd.): Evento, racconto, scrittura nell’antichità<br />

classica. Atti del Convegno internazionale di studi Firenze, 25-26 novembre 2002. Studi e<br />

testi 23 (Firenze), 143-63.<br />

– (2004): “Fasto e povertà nell’Eneide”, Maia 56, 225-48.<br />

Laroche, Roland A. (1998): “Proper Names in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>: Their Mystical Numerical<br />

Dimension”, Pallas 48, 145-56.<br />

– (2002): “The Symbolic Number 3: Its Role in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, in Defosse, Pol (2002; ed.):<br />

Hommages à Carl Deroux. I: Poésie. Collection Latomus 266 (Bruxelles), 287-304.<br />

Lassandro, Domenico (1981/2): “Le porte di guerra del dio Giano in Virgilio (nota a Aen. 7,<br />

601-623)”, InvLuc 3/4, 187-95.<br />

– (1990): “Pulchra mors in Virgilio”, in Sordi, Marta (1990; ed.): Contributi dell’Istituto di<br />

storia antica 16: Dulce et decorum pro patria mori: la morte in combattimento<br />

nell’antichità. Pubblicazioni dell’Università cattolica del Sacro Cuore Scienze storiche 45<br />

(Milano), 181-6.<br />

64


– (1997): “Vendetta e perdono nell’Eneide: note di lettura”, in Sordi, Marta (1997; ed.):<br />

Amnistia, perdono e vendetta nel mondo antico. Scienze storiche 63. Contributi<br />

dell’Istituto di Storia antica 23, 293-301.<br />

Laudizi, Giovanni (1988): “Palinuro (Verg. Aen. V, 827 ss; VI, 337 ss.)”, Maia 40, 57-73.<br />

– (1990a): “L’episodio di Marcello (Verg. Aen. 6, 860-886)”, Quaderni di Sandalion 6, 47-<br />

61.<br />

– (1990b): “Proxima sorte tenet lucis loca (Verg. Aen. 6, 761)”, BStudLat 20, 10-3.<br />

– (1992): “Enea e Deifobo nell’Ade (Verg. Aen. 6, 494-547)”, Orpheus 13, 245-60.<br />

Laurens, Pierre (2001): “Trois lectures du vers virgilien. Coluccio Salutati, Giovanni Pontano,<br />

Jules-César Scaliger”, REL 79, 215-35.<br />

Lausberg, Marion (1983): “Iliadisches im ersten Buch der Aeneis”, Gymnasium 90, 203-39.<br />

Lawall, Gilbert (1979; ed.): Vergil at Sarasota. Papers by Graves H. Thompson, Grace S.<br />

West, Herbert W. Benario, Vincent J. Cleary, Harry C. Rutledge (Amherst).<br />

Lawler, Sharyn (1988): “The Significance of Acestes’ Flaming Arrow, <strong>Aeneid</strong> 5.522-28”,<br />

Vergilius 34, 102-11.<br />

Laycock, Anitra (1999): “In the Service of Rome: Stoic Spirit in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Dionysius n. s.<br />

17, 27-56.<br />

Lázaro García, Eugenio (2001): “Valor sémantico de tectum en la Eneida”, in Alvar Ezquerra,<br />

Antonio/García Jurado, Francisco (edd.): Actas del X Congreso español de estudios<br />

clásicos (21-25 de septiembre de 1999). II: Lingüistica latina, literatura latina, filologia<br />

clásica (Madrid), 137-44.<br />

Lazzarini, Caterina (1982): “Audax-fortis. Due oppositi paradigmi eroici (a proposito di Aen.<br />

10, 284)”, MD 9, 157-66.<br />

– (1984): “Historia/fabula: forme della costruzione poetica virgiliana nel commento di<br />

Servio all’Eneide”, MD 12, 117-44.<br />

– (1989): “Elementi di una poetica serviana”, SIFC 82, 56-109. 240-60.<br />

Leach, Eleanor Winsor (1977): “Sedes apibus: From the Georgics to the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Vergilius<br />

23, 2-16.<br />

– (1988): The Rhetoric of Space: Literary and Artistic Representations of Landscape in<br />

Republican and Augustan Rome (Princeton NJ) [V. J. Cleary, Vergilius 35, 1989, 124-7;<br />

Sparkes, G&R 36, 1989, 248; P. Hardie, CR 40, 1990, 306-7; Laidlaw, AJPh 111, 1990,<br />

115-7; A. G. McKay, CO 67, 1990, 97-8; Adam, CPh 86, 1991, 158-63; J.-M. Croisille,<br />

Latomus 51, 1992, 231-4; Hurwit, CompLit 44, 1992, 84-6].<br />

– (1997/8): “Venus, Thetis and the Social Construction of Maternal Behavior”, CJ 92, 347-<br />

71.<br />

– (1999): “Viewing the Spectacula of <strong>Aeneid</strong> 6”, in Perkell (1999a), 111-27.<br />

Lebek, Wolfgang D. (1982): “Sinnbezug und Hexametergestalt im Aeneisproömium”,<br />

Hermes 110, 195-211.<br />

Lebrun, R. F. (1976): “La notion de fatum dans l’œuvre de Virgile”, LEC 44, 35-44.<br />

Lee, Guy (1981): “Imitation and the Poetry of Virgil“, G&R 28, 10-22 = McAuslan/Walcot<br />

(1990), 1-13.<br />

Lee, Hugh M. (1977): “Purcell’s Dido and Aeneas: Aeneas as Romantic Hero”, Vergilius 23,<br />

21-9.<br />

Lee, M. Owen (1979): Fathers and Sons in Virgil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>. Tum Genitor Natum (Albany,<br />

NY) [J. M. Benario, CO 57, 1980, 117; R. Boughner, CJ 76, 1980, 178-9; A. G. McKay,<br />

Vergilius 26, 1980, 77-9; I. DuQuesnay, G&R 28, 1981, 96-7; W. R. Johnson, Phoenix 35,<br />

1981, 97-8].<br />

– (1981/2): “The Sons of Iasus and the End of the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, AugAge 1, 13-6 = S. Quinn<br />

(2000), 207-10.<br />

– (1988): “Per nubila lunam: The Moon in Virgil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Vergilius 34, 9-14.<br />

65


– (1992): “Seven Suffering Heroines and Seven Surrogate Sons”, in Wilhelm/Jones (1992),<br />

82-92.<br />

– (1997): “The Golden Bough”, in id. (1997): The Olive-Tree Bed and Other Quests<br />

(Toronto), 41-69.<br />

Leeman, A. D. (1985a): “Aeneas’ Abstieg in das Totenreich. Eine Läuterungsreise durch<br />

Vergangenheit und Zukunft”, in id. (1985): Form und Sinn. Studien zur römischen<br />

Literatur (1954-1984). Studien zur klassischen Philologie 15 (Frankfurt am Main, etc.),<br />

187-202.<br />

– (1985b): “Bäumefällen – Vergil als Glied in der antiken epischen Tradition”, id. (1985):<br />

Form und Sinn. Studien zur römischen Literatur (1954-1984). Studien zur klassischen<br />

Philologie 15 (Frankfurt am Main, etc.), 203-11.<br />

– (1985c): “The Lonely Vigil”, id. (1985): Form und Sinn. Studien zur römischen Literatur<br />

(1954-1984). Studien zur klassischen Philologie 15 (Frankfurt am Main, etc.), 213-30.<br />

Lefèvre, Eckard (1976): “Didos Geschenke an Aeneas”, SicGymn 29, 265-72.<br />

– (1978a): “Aeneas’ Antwort an Venus”, WS 12, 97-110.<br />

– (1978b): Dido und Aias. AAWM 1978.2 (Wiesbaden).<br />

– (1983): “Vergil: propheta retroversus”, Gymnasium 90, 17-40 [29-33 ~ Lefèvre (1998)].<br />

– (1998): “Vergil as Republican: <strong>Aeneid</strong> 6.815-35”, in Stahl (1998b), 101-118.<br />

Lefèvre, R. (1982): “Il Lazio e la concezione virgiliana dei Saturni regna”, in id. (1982; ed.):<br />

Il Lazio nell’antichità romana. Lunario Romano 12 (Roma), 21-34.<br />

Lehman, Christopher (2004): “Offend the Gods and Love Obey”, Vergilius 50, 108-30.<br />

Leigh, Matthew (1993): “Hopelessly Devoted to You: Traces of the Decii in Virgil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>”,<br />

PVS 21, 89-110.<br />

Lelièvre, F. J. (1997): “Aeneas amens: Sound, Metre, Thought in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 4”, Vergilius 43, 19-<br />

21.<br />

Lelli, Emanuele (1998/9): “Note virgiliane (Aen. 12, 647; 743; 928-929)”, Orpheus 19/20, 63-<br />

73.<br />

Lenoir, G. (1981): “L’aristie d’Énée au livre XII (Én., XII, 505-567)”, in Chevallier,<br />

Raymond (1981; ed.): L’épopée gréco-latine et ses prolongements européens.<br />

Caesarodunum XVIbis Calliope II (Paris), 93-9.<br />

Lennox, Peter G. (1977): “Virgil’s Night-Episode Re-Examined (<strong>Aeneid</strong> IX, 176-449)”,<br />

Hermes 105, 331-42.<br />

Lenssen, José G. A. M. (1990): “Hercules exempli gratia: de Hercules-Cacus-episode in<br />

Vergilius Aeneis 8.185-305”, Lampas 23, 50-73.<br />

Lentini, Rosa Maria (1989): “Macrobius, Sat. 3, 5, 9-11”, AAPel 65, 153-64.<br />

– (1998): “Scolii inediti al VII libro dell’Eneide di Virgilio”, AAPel 74, 61-5.<br />

Lentini Merlino, Rosa Maria (1989): “Ispirati da Apollo e figli di Asclepio in Omero e<br />

Virgilio”, MedSec n. s. 1, 251-72.<br />

Lesky, Albin (1970): “Zu den Katalogen der Aeneis”, in Wimmel, Walter (1970; ed.):<br />

Forschungen zur römischen Literatur. Festschrift zum 60. Geburtstag von Karl Büchner<br />

(Wiesbaden), 189-96.<br />

Lesueur, Roger (1975): L’Énéide de Virgile: Étude sur la composition rythmique d’une<br />

épopée. Publications de l’Université de Toulouse-Le Mirail A 26 (Toulouse) [Liénard, AC<br />

45, 1976, 691-3; Stégen, Latomus 35, 1976, 618-20; P. Venini, RFIC 104, 1976, 346-9;<br />

Ogawa, JCS 27, 1979, 96-9; Horingh, Mnemosyne 34, 1981, 434-5].<br />

– (1978): “Civitas et patria: unité ou dualité du message virgilien dans l’Énéide?”, in<br />

Chevallier (1978), 35-47.<br />

– (1979): “Latinus ou la paternité manquée (Énéide, VII-XII)”, REL 57, 231-53.<br />

– (1981): “Iter et ire dans l’Énéide. Quelques réflexions sur la représentation du<br />

mouvement”, Pallas 28, 15-29.<br />

66


– (1983/4): “Quelques réflexions sur l’épisode d’Héléne (Énéide 2.567-88)”, BSTEC 185/6,<br />

1-13.<br />

– (1987): “État récent des études sur l’Énéide”, IL 39, 199-206.<br />

– (1988): “Les déguisements des dieux dans l’Énéide. Quelques observations”, REL 66, 92-<br />

102.<br />

– (1993): “Fautes et justiciers: réflexions sur la genèse de l’Énéide”, REL 71, 138-53.<br />

– (1996): “Sur la structure rhythmique du récit de quelques épisodes de la Thébaïde de Stace<br />

et de l’Énéide”, REL 74, 231-46.<br />

– (1998): “Pour une lecture tragique du livre VII de l’Énéide”, Pallas 49, 289-96.<br />

– (2002): “Énée, l’histoire et son histoire”, in Defosse, Pol (2002; ed.): Hommages à Carl<br />

Deroux. I: Poésie. Collection Latomus 266 (Bruxelles), 305-15.<br />

Leube, Eberhard (1969): Fortuna in Karthago. Die Aeneas-Dido-Mythe Vergils in den<br />

romanischen Literaturen vom 14. bis zum 16. Jahrhundert. Studien zum Fortwirken der<br />

Antike 1 (Heidelberg).<br />

Levi, Peter (1998a): Vergil: His Life and Times (London) [M. Gale, G&R 46, 1999, 238-9; J.-<br />

Y. Maleuvre, RBPh 78, 2000, 215-7; K. Volk, Gymnasium 107, 2000, 340-1].<br />

– (1998b): “The Whole Note: A Presidential Address Given to the <strong>Society</strong> on 20 May 1995”,<br />

PVS 23, 25-49.<br />

Levitan, William (1993): “Give Up the Beginning? Juno’s Mindful Wrath (<strong>Aeneid</strong> 1.37)”,<br />

LCM 18, 14.<br />

Levy, B. E. (1961): “Homer, Apollonius and the Origins of Aeneas”, Vergilius 7, 25-9.<br />

Levy, D. J. (1985): “The Trojans and the Hegemon, or the Culture Heros as Slave of Duty”,<br />

CLS 22, 136-46.<br />

Lewuillon, S. (1979): “La piété d’Énée et Caton le Censeur. Un probème d’idéologie et de<br />

propagande impériales”, Latomus 38, 125-46.<br />

Lidov, Joel B. (2004): “Hera in Sappho, fr. 17 L-P; V – and <strong>Aeneid</strong> I?”, Mnemosyne 57, 387-<br />

406.<br />

Lieberg, Godo (1994): “Aeneas und der sterbende Lausus (Aen. 10.821-832): Einzelerklärung<br />

und Gesamtbetrachtung (mit Erwägungen zum doppelten literarischen Statut)“, RPL 17,<br />

61-79.<br />

Liebermann, Wolf-Lüder (1976): “Aeneas – Schicksal und Selbstfindung”, in Görgemanns,<br />

Herwig/Schmidt, Ernst A. (1976; edd.): Studien zum antiken Epos. Beiträge zur<br />

klassischen Philologie 72 (Meisenheim am Glan), 173-207.<br />

Lillo Redonet, Fernando (2003): “Virgilio e Catulo en el cine y la televisión”, CFC(L) 23,<br />

437-52.<br />

Linderski, Jerzy (1992): “Vergil and Dionysius”, Vergilius 38, 3-11.<br />

Lippi, D. (1984): “Magalia, magaria, mapalia (Verg. Aen. IV. 259)”, Prometheus 10, 241-2.<br />

Little, Douglas A. (1982): “Politics in Augustan Poetry”, ANRW ii.30.1, 254-370.<br />

– (1992): “The Song of Iopas: <strong>Aeneid</strong> 1.740-46”, Prudentia 24, 16-36.<br />

Liversidge, Michael J. H. (1997): “Virgil in Art”, in Martindale (1997a), 91-103.<br />

Lloyd, Charles (1999): “The Evander-Anchises Connection: Fathers, Sons, and Homoerotic<br />

Desire in Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Vergilius 45, 3-21.<br />

Lloyd, Robert B. (1957a): “<strong>Aeneid</strong> III: A New Approach”, AJPh 78, 133-51 = Hardie<br />

(1999b), iv, 101-16.<br />

– (1957b): “<strong>Aeneid</strong> III and the Aeneas Legend”, AJPh 78, 382-400.<br />

– (1976/7): “Humor in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, CJ 72, 250-7.<br />

– (1992): “Plautus and Terence in Vergil: A Servian Perspective”, in Wilhelm/Jones (1992),<br />

244-53.<br />

Lloyd-Jones, H./Parsons, P. (1978): “Iterum de Catabasi Orphica”, in Kyklos: Festschrift R.<br />

Keydell (Berlin), 88-100.<br />

67


Lobe, Michael (1999): Die Gebärden in Vergils Aeneis. Zur Bedeutung und Funktion von<br />

Körpersprache im römischen Epos. Classica et Neolatina 1 (Frankfurt am Main, etc.) [I.<br />

Gildenhard, JRS 91, 2001, 238; H. Heckel, Gymnasium 108, 2001, 255-6; B. Rochette,<br />

LEC 69, 2002, 441; P. Hardie, Gnomon 74, 2002, 405-8; F. G. Naerebout, Mnemosyne 55,<br />

2002, 740-3].<br />

Lombardi, M. (1986): “Interazione formulare ed echi allusivi nelle Argonautiche di Apollonio<br />

Rodio e nell’Eneide di Virgilio”, RCCM 28, 91-116.<br />

Lonsdale, Steven (1990): “Simile and Ecphrasis in Homer and Vergil: The Poet as Craftsman<br />

and Choreographer”, Vergilius 36, 7-30.<br />

Lopez de Vega, L./Granados de Arena, D. (1998): “La figura de Ascanio en la ‘Eneida’”,<br />

REC 27, 83-109.<br />

Losada, Luis A. (1983): “Maple, Fir, and Pine: Vergil’s Wooden Horse”, TAPhA 113, 301-10.<br />

– (1984): “Discludere morsus roboris: A Note on <strong>Vergilian</strong> Diction”, Vergilius 30, 38-40.<br />

Lossau, Manfred (1980): “Elpenor und Palinurus”, WS 14, 102-24.<br />

– (1987): “Achates, Symbolfigur der ‘Aeneis’”, Hermes 115, 89-99.<br />

Loupiac, Annic (1992): “Le labor chez Virgile: essai d’interprétation”, REL 70, 92-106.<br />

– (1999): Virgile, Auguste et Apollon: mythes et politique à Rome. L’arc et la lyre. La<br />

philosophie en commun (Paris/Montreal) [L. Deschamps, REA 102, 2000, 558-9; F.<br />

Hinard, REG 113, 2000, 705; J.-Y. Maleuvre, LEC 68, 2000, 260-1; G. Tronchet, RPh 73,<br />

1999, 326-9; J.-P. Brisson, Latomus 60, 2001, 1016-7].<br />

– (2001): “Orphée-Gallus: figure de l’évolution morale et poétique de Virgile: des<br />

Bucoliques à l’Énéide”, REL 79, 93-103.<br />

– (2002): “Improbus amor, labor improbus, une retractatio virgilienne?”, in Defosse, Pol<br />

(2002; ed.): Hommages à Carl Deroux. I: Poésie. Collection Latomus 266 (Bruxelles),<br />

327-35.<br />

Lowenstam, Steven (1993): “The Pictures on Juno’s Temple in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, CW 87, 37-49.<br />

Lowrie, Michèle (1999): “Telling Pictures: Ecphrasis in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Vergilius 45, 111-20.<br />

– (2001): “Literature is a Latin Word”, Vergilius 47, 29-38.<br />

– (2004): “Blanchot and the Death of Virgil”, MD 52, 211-25.<br />

Lucherini, Olga (1989): “Echi lucreziani nel discorso di Anchise (En. VI, 721-751)”,<br />

Athenaeum 67, 296-305.<br />

Luciani, Sabine (1997): “ … dulcis moriens reminiscitur Argos (En. X, 782): quelques<br />

remarques sur le vocabulaire du temps chez Virgile”, BAGB 1997, 17-37.<br />

Luck, Georg (1973): “Virgil and the Mystery Religions”, AJPh 94, 147-66.<br />

– (1983): “Naevius and Virgil”, ICS 8, 267-75.<br />

Lühken, Maria (2002): Christianorum Maro et Flaccus. Zur Vergil- und Horazrezeption des<br />

Prudentius. Hypomnemata 141 (Göttingen).<br />

Luisi, Aldo (1987): “Significato politico di confine in Orazio e Virgilio”, InvLuc 9, 89-103.<br />

Lundström, Sven (1977): Acht Reden in der Aeneis. Acta Universitatis Upsaliensis. Studia<br />

Latina Upsaliensia 10 (Uppsala) [A. Primmer, WS 14, 1980, 242].<br />

Lynch, John P. (1980): “Laocoön and Sinon: Virgil <strong>Aeneid</strong> 2.40-198”, G&R 27, 170-9 =<br />

McAuslan/Walcot (1990), 112-20 = Hardie (1999b), iv, 76-84.<br />

Lyne, R. O. A. M. (1983a): “Lavinia’s Blush: Vergil, <strong>Aeneid</strong> 12.64-70”, G&R 30, 55-64 =<br />

McAuslan/Walcot (1990), 157-66.<br />

– (1983b): “Vergil and the Politics of War”, CQ 33, 188-203 = S. J. Harrison (1990b), 316-<br />

38.<br />

– (1984): “Diction and Poetry in Virgil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, in Atti del Convegno nazionale (1984), ii,<br />

64-88<br />

– (1987): Further Voices in Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong> (Oxford) [D. Fowler, G&R 34, 1987, 218; M.<br />

Squillante Saccone, BStudLat 17, 1987, 133; S. J. Harrison, JRS 78, 1988, 234-6; N.<br />

Horsfall, CR 38, 1988, 243-5; A. Wankenne, LEC 56, 1988, 128; E. Block, CW 82, 1988-9,<br />

68


320-1; H. Dettmer, CO 66, 1989, 99; K. Galinsky, AJPh 110, 1989, 174-7; W. Moskalew,<br />

Vergilius 35, 1989, 127-33; P. Tordeur, AC 58, 333; A. Traina, RFIC 118, 1990, 490-99;<br />

B. Stenuit, Latomus 51, 1992, 461].<br />

– (1989): Words and the Poet: Characteristic Techniques of Style in Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong><br />

(Oxford) [J. Farrell, Vergilius 36, 1990, 140-42; D. Hill, G&R 37, 1990, 227-9; E. J.<br />

Kenney, JRS 80, 1990, 211; P. Hardie, CR 41, 1991, 55-6; S. Hinds, Hermathena 151,<br />

1991, 86-7; A. K. Michels, BMCRev 02.03.13; W. Moskalew, CW 85, 1991-2, 60-1; A.<br />

Traina, RFIC 120, 1992, 490-8; N. Horsfall, A&R 38, 1993, 203-10; M. L. Delvigo,<br />

Gnomon 67, 1995, 211-17].<br />

– (1992): “Words and the Poet: Characteristic Techniques of Style in Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, SIFC<br />

10, 255-70.<br />

– (1994): “Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>: Subversion by Intertextuality. Catullus 66.39-40 and Other<br />

Examples, G&R 41, 187-204.<br />

McAuslan, Ian/Walcot, Peter (1990; edd.): Virgil. Greece and Rome Studies (Oxford) [T. L.<br />

Calder, Vergilius 36, 1990, 135-6; J. Griffin, Hermathena 149, 1990, 140-1; J. Farrell,<br />

BMCRev 02.02.11; D. Fowler, G&R 38, 1991, 88; P. Hardie, CR 41, 1991, 482-3; R.<br />

Lesueur, REL 68, 1990, 209; G. Defossé, LEC 59, 1991, 297].<br />

MacCormack, Sabine (1998): The Shadows of Poetry. Vergil in the Mind of Augustine. The<br />

Transformation of the Classical Heritage 26 (Berkeley, etc.) [R. Thomas, Vergilius 45,<br />

1999, 127-34; S. Freund, Gymnasium 108, 2001, 458-60; A. A. R. Bastiaensen, Gnomon<br />

74, 2002, 450-2].<br />

McDermott, E. A. (1980): “The Unfair Fight: A Significant Motif in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, CJ 75, 153-<br />

4.<br />

McDermott, William C. (1980): “Drances/Cicero”, Vergilius 26, 34-8.<br />

Macdonald, Ronald R. (1987): The Burial-Places of Memory: Epic Underworlds in Vergil,<br />

Dante, and Milton (Amherst) [M. C. J. Putnam, Vergilius 33, 1987, 122-6; Corse, CJ 84,<br />

1988-9, 369-70; Mandell, CB 64, 1988, 99-100].<br />

McDonough, Christopher M./Prior, Richard E./Stansbury, Mark (2004): Servius’<br />

Commentary on Book Four of Vergil's <strong>Aeneid</strong> (Wauconda, IL).<br />

McGill, Scott (2001): “Poeta arte Christianus: Pomponius’s Cento Versus ad gratiam Domini<br />

as an Early Example of Christian Bucolic”, Traditio 56, 15-26.<br />

– (2002): “Tragic Vergil: Rewriting Vergil as a Tragedy in the Cento Medea”, CW 95, 143-<br />

61.<br />

– (2003): “Other <strong>Aeneid</strong>s: Rewriting Three Passages of the <strong>Aeneid</strong> in the Codex Salmasianus<br />

McGlashan, Len (2003): “Reversal and Epiphany in the Games for Anchises”, Vergilius 49,<br />

42-68.<br />

McGowan, Matthew M. (2002): “On the Etymology and Inflection of Dares in Vergil’s<br />

Boxing Match, <strong>Aeneid</strong> 5.362-484”, CPh 97, 80-8.<br />

McGushin, Patrick (1964): “Virgil and the Spirit of Endurance”, AJPh 85, 225-53 = Hardie<br />

(1999b), iii, 218-43.<br />

Mack, Sara (1978): Patterns of Time in Vergil (Hamden, Conn.) [W. S. Anderson, Vergilius<br />

24, 1978, 83-4; G. Binder, Gymnasium 86, 1979, 565-8; J. Glenn, AJPh 100, 1979, 585-6;<br />

M. C. J. Putnam, CW 73, 1979, 41; P. Holt, CO 57, 1980, 116-7; W. R. Johnson, CPh 75,<br />

1980, 174-5; A. G. McKay, Phoenix 34, 1980, 379; A. Crabbe, CR 31, 1981, 290-1].<br />

– (1980a): “‘The Single Supplie’: Some Observations on Zeugma with Particular Reference<br />

to Vergil”, Ramus 9, 101-11.<br />

– (1980b): “Vergil, <strong>Aeneid</strong> 2.250-2”, CQ 30, 153-8.<br />

– (1999): “The Birth of War: A Reading of <strong>Aeneid</strong> 7”, in Perkell (1999a), 128-47.<br />

69


McKay, Alexander G. (1963ff.): “<strong>Vergilian</strong> Scholarship” bzw. [ab Nr. 10] “<strong>Vergilian</strong><br />

Bibliography”, Vergilius 9, 1963ff. [genaue Nachweise für 9, 1963–24, 1978: Suerbaum<br />

(1980), 21] 25, 1979, 46-50; 26, 1980, 56-73; 27, 1981, 57-71; 28, 1982, 65-80; 29, 1983,<br />

55-76; 30, 1984, 44-60; 31, 1985, 62-80; 32, 1986, 79-97; 33, 1987, 77-100; 34, 1988,<br />

139-78; 35, 1989, 89-120; 36, 1990, 104-28; 37, 1991, 77-111; 38, 1992, 89-112; 39, 1993,<br />

39-67; 40, 1994, 94-114; 41, 1995, 93-111; 42, 1996, 103-32; 43, 1997, 101-21; 44, 1998,<br />

85-109; 45, 1999, 77-110; 46, 2000, 131-54; 47, 2001, 194-218; 48, 2002, 131-52; 49,<br />

2003, 114-34; 50, 2004, 132-57.<br />

– (1966): “The Achaemenides Episode”, Vergilius 12, 31-8.<br />

– (1969): “Virgilian Landscape Into Art: Poussin, Claude and Turner”, in Dudley (1969),<br />

139-60.<br />

– (1970): Vergil’s Italy (Greenwich, Conn., und Bath).<br />

– (1982; ed): <strong>Vergilian</strong> Bimillenary Lectures 1982. With a Foreword by William R.<br />

Nethercut. Vergilius Suppl. 2 (College Park, Md.).<br />

– (1983): “Aristaeus and Camilla”, LF 106, 20-3.<br />

– (1984): “<strong>Vergilian</strong> Heroes and Toponym. Palinurus and Misenus”, in Evjen, Harold D.<br />

(1984; ed.): Mnemai. Classical Studies in Memory of Karl K. Hulley. Scholars Press<br />

Homage Series (Chico, CA), 121-37.<br />

– (1987): “The Vitality of Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, AugAge 6, 6-14.<br />

– (1989): “Vergil’s Aeolus Episode”, in Sutton, Robert F. (1989; ed.): Daidalion: Studies in<br />

Memory of Raymond Schoder (Wauconda, IL), 249-56.<br />

– (1994): “Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, in Tragedy, Love and Change: Roman Poetic Themes and<br />

Variations. Concordia University Lecture Series (Montreal), 17-36.<br />

– (1998): “Non enarrabile textum? The Shield of Aeneas and the Triple Triumph in 29 BC:<br />

<strong>Aeneid</strong> 8.630-728”, in Stahl (1998b), 199-221.<br />

– (2004): “Dido’s Court Philosopher”, in Egan, Rory B./Joyal, Mark (edd.): Daimonopylai.<br />

Essays in Classics and the Classical Tradition Presented to Edmund G. Berry (Manitoba),<br />

297-307.<br />

Mackay, L. A. (1957): “Achilles as Model for Aeneas”, TAPhA 88, 11-16 = Hardie (1999b),<br />

iii, 87-92.<br />

Mackie, Christopher John (1988): The Characterisation of Aeneas. Scottish Classical Studies<br />

4 (Edinburgh) [G. K. Galinsky, Vergilius 36, 1990, 129-32; S. J. Harrison, CR 41, 1991,<br />

54-5; A. Traina, RFIC 120, 1992, 340-1; W. Kißel, Gnomon 65, 1993, 673-7].<br />

– (1990): Quisquis in arma vocas: Turnus and Jupiter in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Antichthon 24, 79-85.<br />

– (1991a): “Nox erat …: Sleep and Visions in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, G&R 38, 59-61.<br />

– (1991b): “Turnus and His Ancestors”, CQ 41, 261-5.<br />

– (1992): “Vergil’s Dirae, South Italy, and Etruria”, Phoenix 46, 352-61.<br />

– (1992/3): “A Note on Dido’s Ancestry in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, CJ 88, 231-3.<br />

McLeish, Kenneth (1972): “Dido, Aeneas, and the Concept of pietas”, G&R 19, 127-35 =<br />

McAuslan/Walcot (1990), 134-41.<br />

Maclennan, Keith (2003): Virgil, <strong>Aeneid</strong> VI. A Commentary (Bristol) [D. E. Hill, G&R 51,<br />

2004, 258].<br />

Macleod, M. D. (1964/5): “Humour in Virgil”, PVS 4, 53-67.<br />

Mafra, J. J. (1983/4): “Sonho, mito e realidade. A proposito do sonho profético de Enéias”,<br />

ELF 4, 9-24.<br />

Maggiulli, Gigliola (1995): Incipiant silvae cum primum surgere. Mondo vegetale e<br />

nomenclatura della flora di Virgilio. Bibliotheca Athena 5 (Roma) [J. C. Dumont, REL 74,<br />

1996, 351; F. Capponi, Latomus 56, 1997, 678-80; M. Gale, CR 47, 1997, 421-2; S. Rosa,<br />

Orpheus 18, 1997, 619-20; I. Mazzini, RFIC 126, 1998, 96-8; M. G. Carilli, Maia 52,<br />

2000, 215-7].<br />

70


Magno, Pietro (1982): Virgilio e la civiltà mediterranea (Fasano di Puglia) [P. Heuzé, REL<br />

61, 1983, 386; L. Deschamps, REA 86, 1984, 360-2].<br />

Maguiness, W. S. (1953): Virgil: <strong>Aeneid</strong> XII. Edited with Introduction, Notes and Vocabulary<br />

(London; repr. Bristol, 1992).<br />

Makowski, John F. (1989/90): “Nisus and Euryalus: A Platonic Relationship”, CJ 85, 1-15.<br />

Malamud, Martha (1998): “Gnawing at the End of the Rope: Poets on the Field in Two<br />

<strong>Vergilian</strong> Catalogues”, Ramus 27, 95-126.<br />

Malavolta, Mariano (1996): “Attualità ed erudizione antiquaria nel lessico militare dell’opera<br />

virgiliana”, MGR 20, 115-79.<br />

Maleuvre, Jean-Yves (2003): “Ille ego qui quondam … (Aen., I, *1-4) revisité”, LEC 71, 379-<br />

83.<br />

Mallon, J. (1979): “Les fautes du Virgile Augusteus”, in Cockshaw, P./Garand, M.<br />

C./Jodogne, P. (1979; edd.): Miscellanea codicologica F. Masai dicata MCMLXXIX. Les<br />

Publ. de Scriptorium 8 (Gand), 7-10.<br />

Maltby, Robert (1993): “The Limit of Etymologising”, Aevum(ant) 6, 257-75.<br />

Mambwini Kivuila-Kiaku, Joseph (1997): “Poésie, prophétie et rêve dans l’‘Énéide’ VI ou La<br />

‘philosophie du destin romain’ dans l’imaginaire virgilien”, LEC 65, 49-64.<br />

Manfredi, V. (1982): “Il consulente navale di Virgilio per l’Eneide”, Aevum 56, 3-18.<br />

Manning, Craig (1988): “Nemean X and the Juturna-episode in <strong>Aeneid</strong> XII”, CW 81, 221-2.<br />

Manning, Stuart W. (1988): “Augustus and the Araxes (Virgil, <strong>Aeneid</strong> 8.728 … et pontem<br />

indignatus Araxes)”, LCM 13, 27-9.<br />

Mannsperger, Brigitte (1995): “Das Stadtbild von Troia in Vergils Aeneis”, AW 26, 463-71.<br />

Mansilla, Angélica Margarita (1986): “Eneas, un personaje injustamente olvidado”, REC 18,<br />

123-37.<br />

Manson, M. (1981): “Un personnage d’enfant dans l’épopée antique, Ascagne”, in Chevallier,<br />

Raymond (1981; ed.): L’épopée gréco-latine et ses prolongements européens.<br />

Caesarodunum XVIbis Calliope II (Paris), 53-70.<br />

Mantke, J. (1985): “Aeneis als Epostitel”, Klio 67, 238-47.<br />

Manuwald, Bernd (1985): “Improvisi aderunt. Zur Sinon-Szene in Vergils Aeneis (2, 57-<br />

198)”, Hermes 113, 183-208.<br />

Manzoni, Gianenrico (2002): Pugnae maioris imago. Intertestualità e rovesciamento nella<br />

seconda esade dell’Eneide. Strumenti. Contributi. Letteratura greca e latina (Milano) [J.-Y.<br />

Maleuvre, LEC 71, 2003, 297-8; P. A. Roche, CR 54, 2004, 569-70].<br />

Marangoni, Claudio (2003): “Huic uni forsan potui succumbere culpae (Verg. Aen. 4, 19).<br />

Storia e significati di un verso”, in Cristante, Lucio (2003; ed.): Incontri triestini di<br />

filologia classica I – 2001-2002. Polymnia. Studi di Filologia Classica 2 (Trieste), 11-23.<br />

Marchetta, A. (1994): “Valenza ideologico-letteraria dell’interiezione ‘a’ in Virgilio”, RCCM<br />

36, 317-41.<br />

Marchetti, P./Marin, V. (1991): “Le chant IV de l’Énéide ou Virgile poète tragique”, LEC 59,<br />

247-65.<br />

Marin, Vincent (1993): “Coniugium uocat, hoc praetexit nomine culpam (Énéide, IV, 172)”,<br />

LEC 61, 131-8.<br />

Marinčič, Marko (2002): “Roman Archaeology in Vergil’s Arcadia (Vergil Eclogue 4; <strong>Aeneid</strong><br />

8; Livy 1.7)” , in Levene, D. S./Nelis, D. P. (2002; edd.): Clio and the Poets: Augustan<br />

Poetry and the Traditions of Ancient Historiography. Mnemosyne Supplementum 224<br />

(Leiden, etc.), 143-61.<br />

Marino, Rosalia (2000): “L’‘uso’ dell’epica in età augustea”, Hormos 2, 111-24.<br />

Mariotti, I. (1981): “Il secondo proemio dell’Eneide”, in Letterature comparate. Problemi e<br />

metodo. Studi in onore di E. Paratore (Bologna), 459-66.<br />

Maris, Paul (1988): “Dido versus Aeneas (Aen. 4, 305-361). Vergilius’ metrick en zinsbouw<br />

in functie van een stilistisch commentaar”, Kleio 17, 167-92.<br />

71


– (1990/1): “De spanning tussen vers en zin in Vergilius’ Aeneis”, Kleio 20, 187-207.<br />

Markus, Donka D. (2000): “Performing the Book: The Recital of Epic in First-Century C. E.<br />

Rome”, ClAnt 19, 138-79.<br />

Maróti, Egon (1987): “Die Parodie bei Vergil”, ACD 23, 57-61.<br />

Marshall, Peter K. (1997): Servius and Commentary on Virgil. Occasional Papers / University<br />

of North Carolina at Ashville 5 (Ashville, NC).<br />

Martin, Michel (1985): “La recontre du deuxième jour a-t-elle eu lieu?”, Orphea voce 2, 197-<br />

216.<br />

Martin, Paul-M. (1978): “L’image et la fonction du roi-tyran dans l’Énéide”, in Chevallier<br />

(1978), 63-72.<br />

Martin, René (1990; ed.): Énée et Didon. Naissance, fonctionnement et survie d’un mythe.<br />

Préface de Jean Sirinelli (Paris) [Balty, AC 62, 1993, 608-9].<br />

Martindale, Charles (1984; ed.): Virgil and His Influence. Bimillennial Studies (Bristol) [A. G.<br />

McKay, Vergilius 32, 1986, 100-1].<br />

– (1993a): “Descent Into Hell: Reading Ambiguity, or Virgil and the Critics”, PVS 21, 111-<br />

50 = Hardie (1999b), iii, 14-48.<br />

– (1993b): Redeeming the Text: Latin Poetry and the Hermeneutics of Reception. Roman<br />

Literature and Its Contexts (Cambridge) [D. Fowler, G&R 40, 1993, 227-8; J. Farrell,<br />

BMCR 04.01.08; L. Edmunds, CR 44, 1994, 38-40; G. K. Galinsky, CJ 89, 1994, 297-301;<br />

E. B. Roots, Vergilius 40, 1994, 135-41; M. Heath, Latomus 54, 1995, 418-21; J. C.<br />

Relihan, CW 89, 1995, 73].<br />

– (1997a; ed.): The Cambridge Companion to Virgil (Cambridge) [W. S. Anderson,<br />

Vergilius 44, 1998, 110-3; M. Gale, G&R 45, 1998, 241; K. Galinsky, Phoenix 52, 1998,<br />

381-3; D. Hooley, BMCRev 98.3.17; A. Novara, REL 76, 1998, 332-4; G. De Callataÿ,<br />

Latomus 58, 1999, 436-7; L. Deschamps, REA 101, 1999, 231-3; P. Heslin, Classics<br />

Ireland 1999; J. Poucet, AC 68, 1999, 402; C. Walde, MH 56, 1999, 248; R. F. Glei, IJCT<br />

6, 1999/2000, 610-3; R. T. Ganiban, CR 50, 2000, 42-5; M. Kajava, Arctos 35, 2001, 253-<br />

4; J.-Y. Maleuvre, LEC 70, 2002, 200-1].<br />

– (1997b): “Introduction: ‘The Classic of All Europe”, in Martindale (1997a), 1-18.<br />

– (2005): Latin Poetry and the Judgement of Taste: An Essay (Oxford).<br />

Martorana, Giuseppe (1997): “Pacique imponere morem (Aen. VI 852): Mos e Imperium”,<br />

Mythos 9, 73-84.<br />

Mascialino, Lorenzo (1982): “Enea y Roma en Licofrón y Virgilio”, Helmantica 33, 401-5.<br />

Maselli, Giorgio (1976/7): “Alcuni aspetti del cromatismo virgiliano”, Annali Fac. di Lingue<br />

e Lett. straniere Univ. di Bari n. s. 7/8, 249-70.<br />

– (1989): “Venere e Vulcano (Aen. VIII, 369-406). Stratigrafia e diffrazione semica”,<br />

Aufidus 7, 31-50.<br />

Massaro, D. (1982/3): “Virgilio poeta della pace”, QuadFoggia 2/3, 113-30.<br />

Matt, Peter von (1989): Liebesverrat. Die Treulosen in der Literatur (München/Wien).<br />

Matthiessen, Kjeld (1997): “Überlegungen zur Helenaepisode der Aeneis”, in Czapla, Beate/<br />

Lehmann, Tomas/Liell, Susanne (1997; edd.): Vir bonus dicendi peritus. Festschrift für<br />

Alfons Weische zum 65. Geburtstag (Wiesbaden), 291-7.<br />

Matz, David (1994): “Expectorating Blood and Teeth: Vergil, Aen. 5.469-470”, CW 87, 310-<br />

11.<br />

Maurach, Gregor (1968): “Der Pfeilschuß des Ascanius. Zum 9. Buch der Aeneis”,<br />

Gymnasium 75, 355-70 = Hardie (1999b), iv, 322-35 [V. Pöschl, AAHG 22, 1969, 29-30].<br />

– (1992): “Der vergilische und der vatikanische Laokoon. Mit einem Anhang zu<br />

Michelangelos Laokoon-Zeichnung und Tafeln I-VIII”, Gymnasium 99, 227-47.<br />

Maurer, Karl (1998): “Gallus’ Parthian Bow”, Latomus 57, 578-88.<br />

Mayer, Roland G. (1986): “Geography and Roman Poets”, G&R 33, 47-54.<br />

– (1988): “<strong>Aeneid</strong> 8.573 and Callimachus’ Hymn to Zeus”, CQ 38, 260-1.<br />

72


Mazzini, Innocenzo (1995): “Didone abbandonata: innamorata o pazza? La psichiatria antica,<br />

una chiave di lettura per il IV libro dell’Eneide”, Latomus 54, 92-105.<br />

Mazzocchini, Paolo (1992): “Motivi tragici nell’androctasie minori dell’Eneide”, Euphrosyne<br />

20, 31-46.<br />

– (1997/8): “Cataloghi degli uccisi e androctasie minori nell’‘Eneide’”, RAAN 67, 65-75.<br />

– (2000): Forme e significati della narrazione bellica nell’epos virgiliano. I catalogo degli<br />

uccisi e le morti minori nell’Eneide. Biblioteca della Ricerca. Philologica 3 (Fasano, Br.)<br />

[M. Sbardella, Aufidus 15.43/4, 2000, 269-70; A. Borgo, BStudLat 31, 2001, 195-6; F.<br />

Corsaro, Orpheus 22, 2001, 374-7; P. V. Cova, Paideia 56, 2001, 203-6; R. Lesueur, REL<br />

79. 2001, 294-5; J.-Y. Maleuvre, LEC 69, 2001, 326-7; A. Rossi, BMCRev 2002.08.20; M.<br />

M. Willcock, CR 52, 2002, 61-3; P. Knox, Gnomon 75, 2003, 453-4; P. A. Perotti,<br />

Latomus 62, 2003, 926-8].<br />

Meier, Michael (1983): “Lexikalische Neologismen und Wortbildung in Virgils Aeneis”,<br />

Actes du Colloque sur la néologie et la formation des mots, 11-12 novembre 1982. Trav.<br />

neuchâtelois de ling. 5 (Neuchâtel), 29-32.<br />

Meijer, F. J. (1988): “Types of Ship in the Regatta in Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong> (V, 114-243)”, Latomus<br />

47, 94-7.<br />

Meixueiro Rei, Miguel Anxo (2001): “Contra iussa monent Heleni …: notas criticas a<br />

Virgilio Aen. III 648-686”, in Alvar Ezquerra/García Jurado (edd.): Actas del X Congreso<br />

español de estudios clásicos (21-25 de septiembre de 1999). II: Lingüistica latina,<br />

literatura latina, filologia clásica (Madrid), 597-603.<br />

Mellinghoff-Bourgerie, Viviane (1990): Les incertitudes de Virgile. Contribution épicurienne<br />

à la théologie de l’Éneide. Préface de Pierre Grimal. Collection Latomus 210 (Bruxelles)<br />

[A. Borgo, BStudLat 22, 1992, 68-70; W. Erdt, Gymnasium 99, 1992, 354-5; R. Lesueur,<br />

REL 70, 1992, 311-12; A. Wankenne, LEC 60, 1992, 286-7; A. Traina, RFIC 121, 1993,<br />

86-9; S. Viarre, AC 62, 1993, 317-8; F. Gasti, Athenaeum 82, 1994, 282-3; J.-Y. Maleuvre,<br />

RBPh 71, 1993, 155-7].<br />

– (2000): “Vitam excoluere per artes: la dimora dei beati nel VI libro dell’Eneide e l’‘acqua<br />

della fonte della vita’ nell’Apocalisse”, in Multas per gentes. Studi in memoria di Enzo<br />

Cadoni (Sassari), 217-23.<br />

Merguet, Hugo (1912): Lexicon zu Vergilius mit Angabe sämtlicher Stellen (Leipzig); repr.<br />

Hildesheim, 1960.<br />

Merkelbach, Reinhold (1951): “Eine orphische Unterweltsbeschreibung auf Papyrus”, MH 8,<br />

1-11.<br />

Merriam, Carol U. (2002): “Storm Warnings: Ascanius’ Appearances in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Latomus<br />

61, 852-60.<br />

Messina, Marco Tullio (2000): “Due note su Virgilio in Girolamo”, in Gualandri, Isabella<br />

(ed.): Tra IV e V secolo. Studi sulla cultura latina tardoantica (Milano), 119-39.<br />

Mette, Hans Joachim (1960): “‘Roma’ (Augustus) und Alexander”, Hermes 88, 458-62.<br />

Meurant, Alain (1998): “La valeur du thème gémellaire associé aux origines de Tibur”, RBPh<br />

76, 37-73<br />

Michalopoulos, Andreas N. (2003): “The Intertextual Fate of a Great Homeric Hero:<br />

Diomedes in Vergil (Aen. 11.252-93) and Ovid (Rem. 151-67)”, AAntHung 43, 77-86.<br />

Michel, Alain (1983): “Lettura del ottavo libro dell’Eneide”, in Gigante (1983), 269-98.<br />

– (1991): “Poésie et sagesse chez Virgile”, in Gadoffre, Gilbert (1991; ed.): Les sagesses du<br />

monde: un colloque interdisciplinaire (Paris), 27-41 = BAGB 1992, 307-19.<br />

Michels, Agnes Kirsopp (1981): “The insomnium of Aeneas”, CQ 31, 140-6.<br />

– (1997/8): “The Many Faces of Aeneas”, CJ 92, 399-416.<br />

Miguet, Thierry (1987): “Sept et cercle dans Virgile”, BFLM 15, 135-49.<br />

73


– (1998): “Le quatrième chant de l’Énéide, poème pythagoricien”, in Ternes, Charles-Marie<br />

(1998; ed.): Le pythagorisme en milieu romain. Actes du colloque. Études<br />

luxembourgeoises d’histoire et de littérature romaine 2 (Luxembourg), 89-105.<br />

Miles, Gary B. (1976): “Glorious Peace: The Values and Motivation of Virgil’s Aeneas”,<br />

CSCA 9, 133-64.<br />

– (1999): “The <strong>Aeneid</strong> as Foundation Story”, in Perkell (1999a), 231-50.<br />

– /Allen, Archibald W. (1986): “Vergil and the Augustan Experience”, in Bernard (1986),<br />

13-41.<br />

Miller, Dean A. (2000): The Epic Hero (Baltimore) [B. Clarot, LEC 69, 2001, 452-3; P.<br />

Gainsford, BMCRev 2001.10.21; B. D. A. Tipping, JRS 92, 2002, 223-4; J. Wissmann,<br />

Gnomon 74, 2002, 193-6].<br />

Miller, John F. (1993): “The Shield of Argive Abas at <strong>Aeneid</strong> 3.286”, CQ 43, 445-50.<br />

– (1994a): “Arruns, Ascanius, and the Virgilian Apollo”, ColbyQ 30, 171-232.<br />

– (1994b): “Virgil, Apollo, and Augustus”, in Solomon, J. (1994; ed.): Apollo, Origins and<br />

Influence (Tucson), 99-112.<br />

– (2000): “Triumphus in Palatio”, AJPh 121, 409-22.<br />

– (2004): “Propertian Reception of Virgil’s Actian Apollo”, MD 52, 73-84.<br />

Miller, Paul Allan (1989): “Sive deae seu sint dirae obscaenaeque volucres”, Arethusa 22, 47-<br />

79.<br />

– (1995): “The Minotaur Within: Fire, the Labyrinth, and Strategies of Containment in<br />

<strong>Aeneid</strong> 5 and 6”, CPh 90, 225-40.<br />

– (2004): “The Parodic Sublime: Ovid’s Reception of Virgil in Heroides 7”, MD 52, 57-72.<br />

Mills, Donald H. (1978): “Vergil’s Tragic Vision: The Death of Priam”, CW 72, 159-66.<br />

– (1983): “Sacred Space in Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Vergilius 29, 34-46.<br />

Mitchell, Robin N. (1991): “The Violence of Virginity in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Arethusa 24, 219-38.<br />

Mitchell-Boyask, Robin N. (1996): “Sine fine: Virgil’s Masterplot”, AJPh 117, 289-307.<br />

Möhler, Gabriele (1989): Hexameterstudien zu Lukrez, Vergil, Horaz, Ovid, Lukan, Silius<br />

Italicus und der Ilias Latina. Studien zur klassischen Philologie 35 (Frankfurt am Main,<br />

etc.).<br />

Möllendorff, Peter von (2000): “Aeneas und Odysseus. Die ‘Tore des Schlafs’ in Aen. 6, 893-<br />

99”, in Schwindt, J. P. (2000; ed.): Zwischen Tradition und Innovation (München und<br />

Leipzig), 43-66.<br />

Moles, John L. (1983): “Virgil, Pompey, and the Histories of Asinius Pollio”, CW 76, 287-8.<br />

– (1984a): “Aristotle and Dido’s hamartia”, G&R 31, 48-54 = McAuslan/Walcot (1990),<br />

142-8.<br />

– (1984b): “Brutus and Dido Revisited”, LCM 9, 156.<br />

– (1987): “The Tragedy and Guilt of Dido”, in Whitby, Michael/Hardie, Philip,<br />

Whitby/Mary (edd.): Homo Viator: Classical Essays for John Bramble (Bristol), 153-61.<br />

Molyneux, John H. (1986): “Sinon’s Narrative in <strong>Aeneid</strong> II”, Latomus 45, 873-7.<br />

Molyviati-Toptsis, Urania (1994): “Vergil’s Elysium and the Orphic-Pythagorean Ideas of<br />

After-Life”, Mnemosyne 47, 33-46.<br />

– (1995): “Sed falsa ad caelum mittunt insomnia Manes (<strong>Aeneid</strong> 6.896)”, AJPh 116, 639-52.<br />

– (2000): “Narrative Sequence and Closure in <strong>Aeneid</strong> XII, 931-952”, AC 69, 165-77.<br />

Monaco, Giusto ( 2 1972): Il libro dei ludi. Biblioteca di cultura moderna 43 (Palermo) [ W.<br />

Wimmel, Gnomon 33, 1961, 47; R. E. H. Westendorp Boerma, Mnemosyne 28, 1975, 440;<br />

G. Cambier, Latomus 35, 1976, 442-3].<br />

– (1979): “Hydrum non vidit”, in Studi su Varrone, sulla retorica, storiografica e poesia<br />

latina. Scritti in onore di Benedetto Riposati (Milano), 319-23.<br />

– (1981): “La Sicilia di Virgilio”, in Paratore (1981b), 159-77.<br />

– (1983): “Lettura del quinto libro dell’Eneide”, in Gigante (1983), 163-83.<br />

– (1983/4): “Il viaggio di Enea”, Sandalion 6/7, 21-32.<br />

74


Montanari, E. (1994): “Il concetto di religione in Virgilio”, in Bianchi, Ugo (1994; ed.): The<br />

Notion of ‘Religion’ in Comparative Research (Roma), 311-7.<br />

Monteleone, C. (1976): “Catullo e ‘l’Odissea’ dell’Eneide”, RSC 24, 190-210.<br />

– (1977): “Eneide 7, 37. L’invocazione ad Erato come segnale”, AC 46, 184-91.<br />

Montenegro Duque, Angel (1991): “La presencia de Hiberia en el Lacio primitivo de Virgilio<br />

como prefiguración de la hermandad de pueblos del Imperio romano”, HAnt 15, 303-43.<br />

Monti, Richard C. (1981): The Dido Episode and the <strong>Aeneid</strong>. Roman Social and Political<br />

Values in the Epic. Mnemosyne Supplementum 66 (Leiden) [I. DuQuesnay, G&R 29,<br />

1982, 201; R. Dunkle, CO 60, 1983, 103; M. C. J. Putnam, CPh 79, 1984, 72-6; A.<br />

Wlosok, Gnomon 59, 1987, 106-10].<br />

– (1991): “The Topographical and Literary Evidence for the Identification of the Sibyl’s<br />

Cave at Cumae”, Vergilius 37, 39-59.<br />

– (1994): “The Identification of Vergil’s Cave of the Cumaean Sibyl in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 6”, Vergilius<br />

40, 19-34.<br />

Moorton, Richard F. (1988): “The Genealogy of Latinus in Virgil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, TAPhA 118,<br />

253-59.<br />

– (1989a): “Dido and Aeetes”, Vergilius 35, 48-54.<br />

– (1989b): “The Innocence of Italy in Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, AJPh 110, 105-30.<br />

– (1990): “Love as Death: The Pivoting Metaphor in Vergil’s Story of Dido”, CW 83, 153-<br />

166.<br />

Moretti, Gabriella (1991): “Aen. 7, 543: il volo di Aletto”, SIFC 9, 112-20.<br />

– (1996): “Cydonia mala (per l’interpreatazione di Aen. 10.324-325, con una nota su Theocr.<br />

5, 94-95)”, QUCC 52, 159-69.<br />

Morford, Mark M. P. (1987): “The <strong>Aeneid</strong> as a Roman Poem”, AugAge 6, 15-30.<br />

Morgan, Gareth (1994): “Dido the Wounded Deer”, Vergilius 40, 67-8.<br />

Morgan, Llewelyn (1998): “Assimilation and Civil War: Hercules and Cacus: <strong>Aeneid</strong> 8”, in<br />

Stahl (1998b, 175-198.<br />

– (2000): “The Autopsy of C. Asinius Pollio”, JRS 90, 51-69.<br />

Morwood, James H. W. (1985): “Aeneas and Mount Atlas”, JRS 75, 51-9.<br />

– (1991): “Aeneas, Augustus, and the Theme of the City”, G&R 38, 212-23.<br />

– (1998): “Virgil’s Pious Man and Menenius Agrippa: A Note on <strong>Aeneid</strong> 1.148-53”, G&R<br />

45, 195-8.<br />

Moseley, N. (1926): Characters and Epithets: A Study of Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong> (New Haven).<br />

Moskalew, Walter (1982): Formular Language and Poetic Design in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>. Mnemosyne<br />

Supplementum 73 (Leiden) [I. LeM. DuQuesnay, G&R 30, 1983, 91; N. Horsfall, CR 33,<br />

1983, 320; E. Zaffagno, Sandalion 6/7, 1983/4, 291-3; E. Kraggerud, Gnomon 57, 1985,<br />

226-9; R. R. Schlunk, AJPh 106, 1985, 135-8; S. J. Harrison, JRS 76, 1986, 319-20; M.<br />

Wigodsky, Vergilius 33, 1987, 111-3].<br />

– (1988): “The Cyclops, Achaemenides, and the Permutations of the Guest-Host<br />

Relationship in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 1-4”, Vergilius 34, 25-34.<br />

– (1990): “Myrmidons, Dolopes, and Danaans: Wordplay in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 2”, CQ 40, 275-9.<br />

Most, Glenn W. (1992): “Il poeta nell’Ade: catabasi epica e teoria dell’epos tra Omero e<br />

Virgilio”, SIFC 85, 1014-26.<br />

– (2001): “Memory and Forgetting in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Vergilius 47, 148-70 = “Memoria e oblio<br />

nell’Eneide”, in Citroni, Mario (ed.): Memoria e identità. La cultura romana costruisce la<br />

sua immagine (Firenze, 2003), 185-212.<br />

Moya del Baño, Francisca (1990): “La ambigüedad en Virgilio (Aen. IV 107-115): a propósito<br />

de incerta feror si Iuppiter ... velit”, CFC 24, 99-109.<br />

Moyaers, Geneviève (1977): “Énée et Lavinium à la lumière des decouvertes archéologiques<br />

récentes”, RBPh 55, 21-50.<br />

75


Muecke, Frances (1983): “Foreshadowing and Dramatic Irony in the Story of Dido”, AJPh<br />

104, 134-55.<br />

– (1984): “Turning Away and Looking down: Some Gestures in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, BICS 31, 105-<br />

12.<br />

Mütherich, Florentine (1982): “Die illustrierten Vergil-Handschriften der Spätantike”, WJA 8,<br />

205-21.<br />

Murgia, Charles E. (1987): “Dido’s Puns”, CPh 82, 50-9.<br />

– (1988): “Aen. 9.236 – an Unrecognized <strong>Vergilian</strong> Variation”, Hermes 116, 493-99.<br />

– (2002): “The Dating of Servius Revisited”, CPh 98, 45-69.<br />

– (2003): “The Date of the Helen Episode”, HSPh 101, 405-26.<br />

Mynors, R. A. B. (1969): Vergili Maronis opera, recognovit brevique adnotatione critica<br />

instruxit R. A. B. M. (Oxford; mit Verbesserungen 2 1972) [W. Morel, Gymnasium 77,<br />

1970, 328-9].<br />

Nadeau, Yvan (1982): “Caesaries Berenices (or the Hair of the God)”, Latomus 41, 101-3.<br />

– (1985): “Traduction and the Censors (Juvenal II, 159; VIII, 17; VII, 16; XI, 31 and Virgil<br />

Aen. VI, 697ff.)”, LCM 10, 44-8.<br />

– (2000): “The Death of Aeneas – Vergil’s Vision (and Ovid’s): An Insight Into the Politics<br />

of Vergil’s Poetry”, Latomus 59, 289-316.<br />

– (2004) Safe and Subsidized. Vergil and Horace Sing Augustus.<br />

Collection Latomus 285 (Bruxelles).<br />

Nagle, Betty Rose (1983): “Open-ended Closure in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 2”, CW 76, 257-63.<br />

Nagore, J./Pérez, E. (1981): “El episodio de Hércules y Caco en cuatro autores latinos”, Argos<br />

5, 35-51.<br />

Namia, Giacinto (1992): “Il proemio dell’Eneide e il modello omerico: L’inversione del<br />

rapporto poeta-Musa”, in Fores, Enrico [et al.] (1992; edd.): Miscellanea di studi in onore<br />

di Armando Salvatore. Pubblicazioni del Dipartimento di Filologia classica dell’Università<br />

degli Studi Federico II 7 (Napoli), 45-56.<br />

Nannini, Simonetta (1996): “La ‘vita’ … indignata’ di Camilla e di Turno: fra umana<br />

sumpáqeia e tensione filosofica”, Lexis 14, 117-20.<br />

Narducci, Emmanuele (1983): “Due note ciceroniane. 1. Una reminiscenza enniana in Cicero<br />

e in Virgilio?”, Maia 35, 19-21.<br />

Nasta, M. (2002): “La relation mimétique et les anaphonies dans la poésie de Virgile”, in<br />

Defosse, Pol (2002; ed.): Hommages à Carl Deroux. I: Poésie. Collection Latomus 266<br />

(Bruxelles), 385-97.<br />

Nazzaro, Antonio V. (1983; ed.): Omaggio Sannita a Virgilio (S. Giorgio del Sannio).<br />

Negri, Angela Maria (1978): “‘Teodicea del lavoro’, ‘etica del dolore’ e filosofia della cultura<br />

in Virgilio”, GIF 9, 47-56.<br />

– (1984): Gli psiconimi in Virgilio. Ricerche di storia della lingua latina 19 (Roma) [U.<br />

Carratello, GIF 38, 1986, 150-1; M. Squillante Saccone, BStudLat 16, 1986, 109; C.<br />

Ratkowitsch, WS 100, 1987, 333-5; A. Novara, REL 66, 1988, 307-8; A. M. Piredda, Maia<br />

40, 1988, 333-4; I. Marneffe, Latomus 49, 1990, 256-8].<br />

– (1988): “Sunt lacrimae rerum et mentem mortalia tangunt”, SFIC 6, 240-58.<br />

– (1992): “La psyché chez Virgile”, BAGB 1992, 273-94.<br />

– (1999): “Turno e personaggi del teatro greco”, SFIC 3a ser. 17, 220-52.<br />

Negri, Monica (2002): “Su una nuova edizione degli Scholia Vergilii Veronentia; note criticotestuali”,<br />

Athenaeum 90, 554-63.<br />

Nelis, Damien P. (1991): “Apollonius Rhodius, Argonautica 4.12”, CQ 41, 250-1.<br />

– (1995): “Broken Voices on the Shore: A Note on <strong>Aeneid</strong> 3.556”, REA 97, 627-31.<br />

76


– (2001a): “Apollonius and Virgil”, in Papanghelis, Theodore/Rengakos, Antonios (edd.): A<br />

Companion to Apollonius Rhodius. Mnemosyne Supplementum 217 (Leiden, etc.), 237-59.<br />

– (2001b): “L’Énéide et les origines de Rome: l’épopée étiologique”, in Fromentin,<br />

Valérie/Gotteland, Sophie (edd.): Origines gentium (Paris), 223-40.<br />

– (2001c): Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong> and the Argonautica of Apollonius Rhodius. ARCA. Classical and<br />

Medieval Texts, Papers and Monographs 39 (Leeds) [V. Panoussi, BMCR 2002.11.19; A.<br />

Barchiesi, CJ 98, 2002/3, 89-91; S. Casali, JRS 93, 2003, 369-70; W. Kofler, Gymnasium<br />

110, 2003, 586-8; C. R. Beye, CW 97, 2003/4, 450-1; G. de Callataÿ, Latomus 63, 2004,<br />

739-40; J. J. O’Hara, CR 54, 2004, 374-6].<br />

Németh, Béla (1981/2): “Ariadne, Dido, Ariadne. Interpretationsgedanken über ein<br />

dramatisches Triptychon”, ACD 17/8, 149-59.<br />

– (1984): “Vergil-Interpretationen”, in Tar 1984b, 107-18.<br />

Nenadic, R./Pozzi, M. (1999): “El movimento y la luz en el libro 3 de la Eneida”, Argos 23,<br />

41-52.<br />

Nenci, G. (1978): “Drepani ... inlaetabilis ora (Verg. Aen. III, 707-708)”, in Gasperini, L.<br />

(1978; ed.): Scritti storico-epigrafici in memoria di Marcello Zambelli (Roma), 257-60.<br />

– (1980): “Humilemque videmus Italiam (Verg. Aen. III, 522-523)”, NAC 9, 193-6.<br />

Néraudau, Jean-Pierre (1993): “La fama dans la Rome antique”, Médiévales 24, 27-34.<br />

Nesselrath, Heinz-Günther (1992): Ungeschehenes Geschehen. ‘Beinahe-Episoden’ im<br />

griechischen und römischen Epos. Beiträge zur Altertumskunde 27 (Stuttgart).<br />

Nethercut, William R. (1976): “Foreshadowing in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 1.751-752?”, Vergilius 22, 30-3.<br />

– (1978): “Varium et mutabile semper femina”, CW 72, 101-3.<br />

– (1986a): Aeneis 5.105: The Horses of Phaethon”, AJPh 107, 102-8.<br />

– (1986b): “American Scholarship on Vergil in the Twentieth Century”, in Bernard (1986),<br />

303-30.<br />

– (1987a): “The <strong>Aeneid</strong> as Augustan Literature”, AugAge 6, 142-60.<br />

– (1987b): “Vergil’s Use of the Iliad in Shaping the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, AugAge 6, 123-41.<br />

– (1987c): “Vergil’s Use of the Odyssey in Shaping the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, AugAge 6, 108-22.<br />

– (1992): “Gilbert Highet’s Raising of Italy: <strong>Aeneid</strong> 3.523-524”, in Wilhelm/Jones (1992),<br />

229-36.<br />

Newman, John Kevin (1967): Augustus and the New Poetry. Collection Latomus 88<br />

(Bruxelles).<br />

– (1986): The Classical Epic Tradition (Madison/London), 157-87 [K. W. Gransden, CR 36,<br />

1986, 47-50; J. E. Rexine, Vergilius 31, 1986, 101-2].<br />

– (2001): “Altae Romae”, ICS 26, 131-2.<br />

– (2002): “Hercules in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>: The Dementia of Power”, in Defosse, Pol (2002; ed.):<br />

Hommages à Carl Deroux. I: Poésie. Collection Latomus 266 (Bruxelles), 398-411.<br />

– /Newman, Frances S. (2005): Troy’s Children: Lost Generations in Virgil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>.<br />

Spudasmata 101 (Hildesheim, etc.).<br />

Newman, Robert J. (1988): “The Smile of Fate: The Use of the Smile Formula in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”,<br />

in Hadlich, Roger L./Ellsworth, J. D. (1988; edd.): East Meets West: Homage to Edgar C.<br />

Knowlton, Jr. (Honululu), 214-21.<br />

Newton, Francis L. (1957): “Recurrent Imagery in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 4”, TAPhA 88, 31-43.<br />

Nicastri, Luciano (1992): “Sentieri virgiliani tra speranza, storia, ideologia, I”, in Fores,<br />

Enrico [et al.] (1992; edd.): Miscellanea di studi in onore di Armando Salvatore.<br />

Pubblicazioni del Dipartimento di Filologia classica dell’Università degli Studi Federico II<br />

7 (Napoli), 7-34.<br />

Nickel, Rainer (1985): “Vom Nutzen der Zwei-Stimmen-Theorie für die Vergillektüre in der<br />

Schule”, in Bayer, Karl [et al.] (1995; edd.): Die Antike und ihre Vermittlung. Festschrift<br />

für Friedrich Maier zum 60. Geburtstag (München), 119-23.<br />

– (1993): “Vergleichendes Interpretieren”, AU 36.4-5, 37-53.<br />

77


Nicoll, W. S. M. (1985): “Chasing Chimaeras”, CQ 35, 134-9.<br />

– (1988): “The Sacrifice of Palinurus”, CQ 38, 459-72.<br />

– (2001): “The Death of Turnus”, CQ 51, 190-200.<br />

Niederbudde, Anke (1991): “Der Mensch in der Gewalt der Natur. Ein Vergleich von Homer,<br />

Od. V 291-399, Verg. Aen. I 81-156 und Lucan, Bell Civ. V 560-677”, Anregung 37, 153-<br />

67.<br />

Niehl, Rüdiger (2002): Vergils Vergil. Selbstzitat und Selbstdarstellung in der Aeneis. Ein<br />

Kommentar und Interpretationen. Studien zur klassischen Philologie 134 (Frankfurt am<br />

Main, etc.) [A. Fritsch, Forum Classicum 45, 2002, 224-5; S. Casali, JRS 94, 2004, 241-2].<br />

Nielson, Kristina P. (1983): “The tropaion in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Vergilius 29, 27-33.<br />

– (1984): “Aeneas and the Demands of the Dead”, CJ 79, 200-6.<br />

Niemeyer, Hans Georg (1993): “Die Stadt Karthago in Vergils Aeneis”, AU 36.2, 41-50.<br />

Nikitinski, Oleg (1996): “Zu Vergil Aen. 10, 366”, RhM 139, 191-2.<br />

Nimis, Stephen A. (1987): Narrative Semiotics in the Epic Tradition: The Simile<br />

(Bloomington/Indianapolis) [T. J. Winnifrith, CR 39, 1989, 397].<br />

Nisbet, R. G. M. (1978): “Aeneas Imperator: Roman Generalship in an Epic Context”, PVS<br />

18, 50-61 = AugAge 3, 1983/4, 55-72 = Robertson (1988), 224-34 = S. J. Harrison (1990b),<br />

378-89 = id. (1996; ed. S. J. Harrison): Collected Papers on Latin Literature (Oxford),<br />

132-44 = Hardie (1999b), iv, 254-64.<br />

Noll, Rudolf (1982): “Unerkannte Szenen aus der Aeneas-Dido-Sage auf koptischen Stoffen<br />

in Düsseldorf und Wien”, AAWW 119, 260-70.<br />

Noonan, John D. (1993): “Daunus/Faunus in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 12”, ClAnt 12, 111-25.<br />

– (1997): “The Iapyx Episode of <strong>Aeneid</strong> 12 and Medical Tales in Myth and Mythography”,<br />

Phoenix 51, 374-92.<br />

– (2003): “Re-valuing Values at the End of the <strong>Aeneid</strong>: dignitas, libertas and maiestas”, CB<br />

79, 33-45.<br />

Norden, Eduard (1901): “Vergils Aeneis im Lichte ihrer Zeit”, NJA 7, 249-82. 313-34 = id.<br />

Kleine Schriften (Berlin, 1966), 358-421 = “L’Eneide di Virgilio alla luce del suo tempo”,<br />

Lexis 17, 1999, 259-302 = “Virgil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong> in the Light of Its Own Time”, in Hardie<br />

(1999b), iii, 114-72.<br />

– (1915): Ennius und Vergilius. Kriegsbilder aus Roms großer Zeit (Leipzig/Berlin; repr.<br />

Darmstadt, 1966).<br />

– ( 3 1927): P. Vergilius Maro: Aeneis Buch VI. Erklärt von –. Sammlung wissenschaftlicher<br />

Kommentare (Leipzig; repr. Stuttgart, 9 1995).<br />

Northrup, M. D. (1978): “‘Like Dreams that Delude the Sleeping Senses’: Aeneas’ Moral<br />

Failure and Vergil’s Imagery of the Insubstantial”, Ramus 7, 26-37.<br />

Novara, Antoinette (1986): Poésie virgilienne de la mémoire. Questions sur l’histoire dans<br />

l’Énéide 8. Vates 1 (Clermont-Ferrand) [D. Nardo, Paideia 42, 1987, 288-9; M. Squillante<br />

Saccone, BStudLat 17, 1987, 132-3; A. Wankenne, LEC 55, 1987, 223; P. Heuzé, REL 66,<br />

1988, 308-10; P. Heuzé, RPh 62, 1988, 362-4; A. Traina, RFIC 116, 1988, 127-8; P.<br />

Tordeur, AC 57, 1988, 397; G. Zecchini, Aevum 62, 1988, 143-4; H. Bardon, Latomus 48,<br />

1989, 718; R. J. Clark, EMC 33, 1989, 398-401; S. J. Harrison, CR 39, 1989, 390-1; R.<br />

Lesueur, BABG 1991, 89-91].<br />

– (1987a): “Illustrations de l’Élysée virgilien, ou le défi du poète à l’illustrateur”, ALMArv<br />

14, 75-90.<br />

– (1987b): “Les imagines de l’Élysée virgilien”, in Hinard, François (1987; ed.): La mort,<br />

les morts et l’au-delà dans le monde romain. Actes du colloque de Caen, 20-22 novembre<br />

1985 (Caen), 321-49.<br />

– (1988): “Tantaene animis caelestibus irae? Virgile relu par Sénèque”, in Hommages à<br />

Henri Bonniec. Res sacrae. Collection Latomus 201 (Bruxelles), 342-51.<br />

78


– (1990): “Virgile illustré”, in Martin, Henri-Jean/Vezin, Jean (1990; edd.): Mise en page et<br />

mise en texte du livre manuscrit (Paris), 154-60.<br />

– (1992): “Poésie virgilienne de la mémoire. Questions sur l’histoire dans l’Énéide 8”, BAGB<br />

1992, 89-91.<br />

– (1993a): “Alcune osservazioni su versi incompiuti nell’Eneide di Virgilio: cenni sul lavoro<br />

di Virgilio tragico”, Aevum 67, 37-53.<br />

– (1993b): “Nella predizione di Anchise sugli Eneadi brani di una risposta all’opposizione<br />

antiaugustea?”, in Sordi, Marta (1993; ed.): La profezia nel mondo antico. Pubblicazioni<br />

dell’Università Cattolica del Sacro Cuore. Scienze storiche 53. Contributi dell’Istituto di<br />

storia antica 19 (Milano), 199-231.<br />

– (1996): “Les vers inachevés d’Ilionée ou Le travail de Virgile en cours”, BAGB 1996, 261-<br />

88.<br />

Nugent, S. Georgia (1992): “Vergil’s ‘Voice of the Women’ in <strong>Aeneid</strong> V”, Arethusa 25, 255-<br />

92.<br />

– (1999): “The Women of the <strong>Aeneid</strong>: Vanishing Bodies, Lingering Voices”, in Perkell<br />

(1999a), 251-70.<br />

Nuñes Torrão, Joao Manuel (1993): “Camila a virgem guerreira”, Humanitas 45, 113-36.<br />

Nussbaum, G. B. (1976): “Empathy and Reticence: Some Thoughts on <strong>Aeneid</strong> 4.437-49”,<br />

LCM 1, 141-6.<br />

– (1986a): “The Punctuation of <strong>Aeneid</strong> 1.1-7”, G&R 33, 188-91.<br />

– (1986b): Vergil’s Metre: A Practical Guide for Reading Latin Hexameter Poetry (Bristol).<br />

Nuttall, Anthony David (1992): Openings: Narrative Beginnings from the Epic to the Novel<br />

(Oxford).<br />

Obbink, Dirk (2002): “Vergil, Philodemus, and the Lament of Iuturna”, in Miller, John<br />

F./Damon, Cynthia/Myers, K. Sara (edd.): Vertis in usum. Studies in Honor of Edward<br />

Courtney. Beiträge zur Altertumskunde 161 (München und Leipzig), 90-113.<br />

– (2004): “Vergil’s De pietate: From Ehoiae to Allegory in Vergil, Philodemus, and Ovid“,<br />

in Armstrong/Fish/Johnston/Skinner (2004), 175-209.<br />

Öberg, Jan (1987): “Some Interpretative Notes on Virgil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>, Book VI”, Eranos 85, 105-<br />

9.<br />

Önnerfors, Alf (1998): “Vergil und das Schicksal”, in id., Classica et Mediaevalia. Kleine<br />

Schriften zur lateinischen Sprache und Literatur der Antike und des Mittelalters Spolia<br />

Berolinensia 10 (Hildesheim), 1-20.<br />

Östenberg, Ida (1999): “Demonstrating the Conquest of the World: The Procession of Peoples<br />

and Rivers on the Shield of Aeneas and the Triple Triumph of Octavian in 29 B. C. (Aen.<br />

8.722-728)”, ORom 24, 155-62.<br />

Offermann, Helmut (1971): “Vergil, Aeneis V 847 und die Palinurusepisode”, Hermes 99,<br />

164-73.<br />

O’Hara, James J. (1989): “Messapus, Cycnus, and the Alphabetical Order of Vergil’s<br />

Catalogue of Italian Heroes”, Phoenix 43, 35-8.<br />

– (1990a): Death and the Optimistic Prophecy in Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong> (Princeton, NJ) [J. Farrell,<br />

BMCRev 1.2.10; N. Horsfall, Vergilius 36, 1990, 133-4; W. W. Briggs, NECN 18, 1990/1,<br />

40-1; D. Fowler, G&R 38, 1991, 241-2; S. J. Harrison, CR 41, 1991, 327-8; A. Novara,<br />

REL 69, 1991, 251; J. P. Holoka, CW 85, 1991/2, 128; L. Voit, Gymnasium 99, 1992, 175-<br />

7; M. Geymonat, Gnomon 64, 1992, 721-2; B. W. Boyd, AJPh 113, 1992, 467-70; P.-J.<br />

Dehon, AC 61, 1992, 378-80; F. Gasti, Athenaeum 81, 1993, 341-3; R. Lesueur, Latomus<br />

52, 1993, 429-31; A. Schiesaro, CPh 88, 1993, 258-65; A. Traina, RFIC 121, 1993, 337-<br />

40].<br />

79


– (1990b): “Etymological Wordplay in Apollonius of Rhodes, <strong>Aeneid</strong> 3, and Georgics 1”,<br />

Phoenix 44, 370-6.<br />

– (1990c): “Homer, Hesiod, Apollonius, and Neritos ardua at <strong>Aeneid</strong> 3.271”, Vergilius 36,<br />

31-4.<br />

– (1990d): “The Significance of Vergil’s Acidalia mater, and Venus Erycina in Catullus and<br />

Ovid”, HSPh 93, 335-42.<br />

– (1991/2): “<strong>Vergilian</strong> Similes, ‘Tresspass’, and the Order of <strong>Aeneid</strong> 10.707-18”, CJ 87, 1-8.<br />

– (1993a): “Dido as ‘Interpreting Character’ at <strong>Aeneid</strong> 4.56-66”, Arethusa 26, 99-114.<br />

– (1993b): “Medicine for the Madness of Dido and Gallus: Tentative Suggestions on <strong>Aeneid</strong><br />

4”, Vergilius 39, 12-24.<br />

– (1993c): “A Neglected Conjecture at <strong>Aeneid</strong> 12.882”, RhM 136, 371-3.<br />

– (1994a): “Temporal Distortions, ‘Fatal’ Ambiguity, and Iulius Caesar at <strong>Aeneid</strong> 1.286-96”,<br />

SO 69, 72-82.<br />

– (1994b): “They Might Be Giants: Inconsistency and Indeterminacy in Vergil’s War in<br />

Italy”, ColbyQ 30, 206-26.<br />

– (1996a): True Names: Vergil and the Alexandrian Tradition of Etymological Wordplay<br />

(Ann Arbor) [H. W. Stubbs, Vergilius 42, 1996, 136-40; S. J. Harrison, EMC 16, 1997,<br />

520-3; A. Sharrock, G&R 44, 1997, 223-4; R. J. Schork, NECN 25, 1997/8, 20-1; J. Van<br />

Sickle, CJ 93, 1997/8, 211-6; P. R. Bleisch, AJPh 119, 1998, 300-3; L. Morgan, CR 48,<br />

1998, 27-9; J. Wills, BMCRev 97.12.16; R. Cormier, RPh 73, 1999, 325-6; P. Hardie, IJCT<br />

6, 1999, 284-6; W. Kißel, Gnomon 72, 2000, 455-7; R. Cormier, Latomus 60, 2001, 195-<br />

6].<br />

– (1996b): “An Unconvincing Argument About Aeneas and the Gates of Sleep”, Phoenix 50,<br />

331-4.<br />

– (1997): “Virgil’s Style”, in Martindale (1997a), 241-58.<br />

– (2000/1): “Callimachean Influence on <strong>Vergilian</strong> Etymological Wordplay”, CJ 96, 369-400.<br />

O’Higgins, Dolores (1995): “The Emperor’s New Clothes: Unseen Images on Pallas’<br />

Baldric”, Hermathena 158, 61-72.<br />

Oksala, Teivas (1986): “Zum Gebrauch der griechischen Lehnwörter bei Vergil, III: Gibt es<br />

homerische Lehnwörter in der Aeneis?”, Arctos 20, 131-44.<br />

– (1990): “Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong> as Homeric, National and Universal Epic“, in Honko, L. (1990;<br />

ed.): Religion, Myth and Folklore in the World’s Epics (Berlin/New York), 49-71.<br />

– (1991): “Zum Gebrauch der griechischen Lehnwörter bei Vergil. IV: Interpretationen zu<br />

der Aeneis”, Arctos 25, 81-95.<br />

Olbrich, Wilfried (1992): “Nox erat ... – Lyrische Variationen eines Vergilmotivs”, Anregung<br />

38, 375-82.<br />

Oliensis, Ellen (1997): “Sons and Lovers: Sexuality and Gender in Virgil’s Poetry”, in<br />

Martindale (1997a), 294-311.<br />

– (2001): “Freud’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Vergilius 47, 39-63.<br />

O’Neal, William (1977): “The Form of the Simile in Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, CB 53, 76-9.<br />

O’Nolan, K. (1984): “A Half-line in Virgil”, Maynooth Review 10, 63-6.<br />

Opelt, Ilona (1987): “Fidus Achates”, GB 14, 187-98.<br />

Oppermann, Hans (1962): Wege zu Vergil. Drei Jahrzehnte Begegnungen in Dichtung und<br />

Wissenschaft. Wege der Forschung 19 (Darmstadt; 2. Auflage 1975).<br />

Orban, M. (1979): “Fallait-il vraiment qu’Hécube intervînt? Virgile, Aen., II, 518-525”, LEC<br />

47, 11-26.<br />

Oroz Reta, José (1982a; ed.): Bimilenario de Virgilio. Simposio internacional. Salamanca 16-<br />

18 de Marzo, 1982. Biblioteca Salmanticensis. Estudios 56 (Salamanca).<br />

– (1982b): “Virgilio, el gran poeta de la latinidad”, Helmantica 33, 449-74.<br />

– (1990): Virgilio: vida, obras y fortuna. Bibliotheca Salmanticensis. Estudios 135<br />

(Salamanca) [A. Marcos Casquero, Helmantica 42, 1991, 362-4].<br />

80


– (1999): “In primis venerare deos: Estudio sobre la religion de Virgilio”, Mayeutica 60,<br />

323-8.<br />

Ortega Carmona, Alfonso (1982): “Fatum y unidad en la obra de Virgilio”, Helmantica 33,<br />

475-94.<br />

O’Sullivan, James N. (1977): “An Unnoticed Reminiscence of Homer in Virgil”, AJPh 98, 1-<br />

2.<br />

O’Sullivan, Neil (1993/4): “Allusions of Grandeur? Thoughts on Allusion-hunting in Latin<br />

Poetry”, ElectronAnt 1.5.<br />

Otis, Brooks (1963): Virgil: A Study in Civilized Poetry (Oxford; repr. Ann Arbor, 1995<br />

[preface by W. W. Briggs]) [L. P. Wilkinson, CR 15, 1965, 182-5; A. Wlosok, Gnomon 42,<br />

1970, 450-63; A. Wlosok, Gymnasium 80, 1973, 142-3].<br />

– (1976): “Virgilian Narrative in the Light of Its Precursors and Successors”, SPh 73, 1-28.<br />

Otón Sobrino, Enrique (1998): “El conflicto de Eneas”, CFC(L) 15, 133-7.<br />

– (1999): “La significación profunda de las palabras”, in Της φιλίας τάδε δωρα: miscelánea<br />

léxica en memoria de Conchita Serrano. Manuales y Anejos de Emerita 41 (Madrid), 659-<br />

63.<br />

Ott, Wilhelm (1973-86): Metrische Analysen zu Vergil, Aeneis Buch I-XII. Materialien zu<br />

Metrik und Stilistik 2.1.3–21 (Tübingen) [D. Korzeniewski, Gnomon 47, 1975, 514-5;<br />

Cole, CPh 72, 1977, 268-71; E. J. Kenney, CR 28, 1978, 164; J. Hellegouarc’h, REL 57,<br />

1979, 430-1; R. Lesueur, REA 86, 1984, 362; E. Liénard, Latomus 43, 1984, 699; I. Opelt,<br />

Gymnasium 91, 1984, 356; P. Tordeur, AC 53, 1984, 410-1; J. Hellegouarc’h, REL 63,<br />

1985, 263; R. Lesueur, REA 90, 1988, 273-4].<br />

Paardt, Rudi van der (1995): “Keinen Vater auf dem Rücken. Vergilische Motivik in dem<br />

Roman ‘Rituale’”, in Certens, D. (1995; ed.): Der Augenmensch Cees Nooteboom<br />

(Frankfurt am Main), 97-110.<br />

– (2003): “Vergilius in de Nederlandse literatuur. Vier recente Aeneis-gedichten”, Lampas<br />

36, 91-102.<br />

Pace, Nicola (1990): “Sollecitazioni letterarie e storiche nella figura di re Latino nell’Eneide”,<br />

RIL 124, 285-340.<br />

Pagán, V. E. (2002): “Actium and Teutoburg: Augustan Victory and Defeat in Vergil and<br />

Tacitus”, in Levene, D. S./Nelis, D. P. (2002; edd.): Clio and the Poets: Augustan Poetry<br />

and the Traditions of Ancient Historiography. Mnemosyne Supplementum 224 (Leiden,<br />

etc.), 45-59.<br />

Page, T. E. (1894-1900): The <strong>Aeneid</strong>. 2 Bde. (London).<br />

Pagliara, Alessandro (2000): “Gli Ausoni e il popolamento del Lazio preromano in Dionigi<br />

d’Alicarnasso, Virgilio e Plinio”, MediterrAnt 3, 143-64.<br />

Palmucci, Alberto (1988): “La virgiliana città di Corito”, AVM 56, 29-56.<br />

– (1990): “Il ruolo della città di Corito-Tarquinia nell’Eneide”, AVM 58, 89-103.<br />

– (1991): “Analisi della mitologia propedeutica alla figura di Dardano e alla città di Corito-<br />

Tarquinia nell’Eneide”, AVM 59, 165-212.<br />

– (1992): “Ancora sugli antecedenti mitologici della figura di Dardano e della città di Corito-<br />

Tarquinia nell’Eneide”, AVM 60, 37-97.<br />

– (1993): “Corito-Tarquinia e il Porto dei Ceretani”, AVM 61, 19-35.<br />

– (1994a): “Tarconte e Mantova: Virgilio e Corito-Tarquinia”, AVM 62, 69-99.<br />

– (1994b): “Virgilio e i Etruschi: il ruolo degli Etruschi e della città di Corito-Tarquinia<br />

nell’Eneide (risvolti scholastici)”, Aufidus 8, 125-50.<br />

Pane, Roberto (1981/2): Virgilio e i Campi Flegrei (Napoli).<br />

Panoussi, Vassiliki (2002): “Vergil’s Ajax: Allusion, Tragedy, and Heroic Identity in the<br />

<strong>Aeneid</strong>”, ClAnt 21, 95-134.<br />

81


– (2003): “Virgil and Epic Topoi in Lucan’s Massilia”, in Thibodeau, Philip/Haskell, Harry<br />

(2003; edd.): Being There Together: Essays in Honor of Michael C. J. Putnam on the<br />

Occasion of His Seventieth Birthday (Afton, Minnesota), 222-239.<br />

Paolella, E. (1982): Virgilio e la Daunia. La matrice dauna della stirpe latina, le isole<br />

Diomedee (Napoli) [M. Lombardi, BStudLat 18, 1988, 129-30].<br />

– (1983): La via dauno-irpinia di Enea (Napoli).<br />

Paolucci, Paola (2002): “Modelli oltre il fonte: Ovidio e Stazio nel centone virgiliano<br />

Hippodamia (A. L. 11 R.)”, GIF 54, 197-209.<br />

Papaïoannou, Sophia (2000): “<strong>Vergilian</strong> Diomedes Revisited: The Re-evaluation of the Iliad”,<br />

Mnemosyne 53, 193-217.<br />

– (2002): “Transformation and Abandonment: Defining the Immigrant Experience in Two<br />

<strong>Vergilian</strong> Metamorphoses”, Scholia 11, 34-43.<br />

– (2003): “Founder, Civilizer and Leader: Vergil’s Evander and His Role in the Origins of<br />

Rome”, Mnemosyne 56, 680-702.<br />

Papanghelis, Theodore D. (1993): “A Note on <strong>Aeneid</strong> 8.514-517”, CQ 43, 339-41.<br />

– (1995): Η κλασικότητα της Αβγουστείας ποίησης“, EEThess(philol) 5, 45-56.<br />

– (1999): “Relegens errata litora: Virgil’s Reflexive ‘Odyssey’”, in Kazazis, N./Rengakos,<br />

Antonios (edd.): Euphrosyne. Studies in Ancient Epic and Its Legacy in Honor of Dimitris<br />

N. Maronitis (Stuttgart), 275-90.<br />

Pappa, Panagiota (2002): “Erat Beroe (Ov. Met. III 278): βιργιλιάνες επιδράσεις”, Dodone<br />

(philol) 31, 263-78.<br />

Paratore, Ettore (1977): “Virgilio e Cuma”, Atti del Convegno internationale I campi flegrei<br />

nell’archeologia e nella storia (Roma), 9-39.<br />

– (1978): “Caieta in Virgilio”, AAP 27, 313-21.<br />

– (1978-83; ed.): Virgilio, Eneide. Trad. di Canali, Luca. I: Libri I-II (1978) [R. Lesueur,<br />

REL 56, 1978, 494-6; E. Malcovati, Athenaeum 56, 1978, 381-3; B. Stenuit, LEC 46, 1978,<br />

383; J. Perret, RPh 53, 1979, 169-72; G. Piccaluga, SSR 3, 1979, 383-5; M. Squillante<br />

Saccone, BStudLat 9, 1979, 135]; II: Libri II-IV (1978) [R. Lesueur, REL 56, 1978, 494-6];<br />

III: Libri V-VI (1979) [J. Perret, 54, 1980, 369-71; R. Lesueur, REL 58, 1980, 515;<br />

Nichita, StudClas 20, 1981, 125-6; R. E. H. Westendorp Boerma, Mnemosyne 34, 1981,<br />

175-9; Wikarjakówna, Eos 72, 1984, 228-30]; VII-VIII (1981); IX-X (1982); XI-XII<br />

(1983) [Pittalis, Sandalion 6/7, 1983/4, 296-300; F. Della Corte, Paideia 39, 1984, 97-101;<br />

F. Robertson, G&R 31, 1984, 211; P. Venini, Athenaeum 62, 1984, 691-2; M. Tartari<br />

Chersoni, RFIC 113, 1985, 208-13; Crispini, Orpheus 7, 464-; T. Oksala, Arktos 20, 1986,<br />

255; G. Senis, Maia 39, 1987, 84-5].<br />

– (1979a): “Ad Aen. VI, 289”, in Studi su Varrone, sulla retorica, storiografica e poesia<br />

latina. Scritti in onore di Benedetto Riposati (Milano), 331-7.<br />

– (1979b): “Sull’episodio di Laocoonte in Virgilio”, in Studi di poesia latina in onore di<br />

Antonio Traglia. Storia e lett. Racc. di studi e testi 141. 142 (Roma), 405-30.<br />

– (1981a; ed.): Itinerari virgiliani. Raccolta di saggi promossa dal Comitato nazionale per le<br />

celebrazioni del bimillenario virgiliano (Milano).<br />

– (1981b): “Virgilio cantore della guerra in rapporto con Omero”, C&S 20, 9-22.<br />

– (1982a): “Entro e fuori Troia?”, in Lanternari, V./Massenzio, M./Sabbatucci, D. (1982;<br />

edd.): Scritti in memoria di Angelo Brelich. R&C 3 (Bari), 431-49.<br />

– (1982b): “Virgilio e Lazio”, in id. (1982; ed.): Il Lazio nell’antichità romana. Lunario<br />

Romano 12 (Roma), 3-20.<br />

– (1983a): “L’assenza e il ritorno di Turno”, in Zehnacker, H./Hentz, G. (1983; ed.):<br />

Hommages à Robert Schilling. Collection d’Études Latines. Série Scientifique 37 (Paris),<br />

375-82.<br />

– (1983b): “Lo spirito di Virgilio”, Helmantica 33, 495-530.<br />

– (1983/4): “La scomparsa e il ritorno di Turno”, Sandalion 6/7, 9-19.<br />

82


– (1984): “Il problema dei versi monchi dell’Eneide”, BollClass 3.5, 169-77.<br />

Pardini, Alessandro (1989): “La colpa di Aiace e la poesia augustea”, MD 22, 201-6.<br />

Parente, A. (1979): “Ancora di Croce e dell’Enea virgiliano”, RStudCroc 16.4, 372-82.<br />

Parker, Grant (1989): “The Divine Machinery of the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Akroterion 34, 181-90.<br />

Parker, R. (1983): “A Note on <strong>Aeneid</strong> 7, 649-653“, LCM 8, 160.<br />

Parmeggiani La Rocca, Gina (1983): “La figura di Enea”, in Accademia ... (1983), 73-92.<br />

Parodi Scotti, F. (1982): Il calori nell’Eneide. Significanti e significati (Torino) [M. Squillante<br />

Saccone, BStudLat 12, 1982, 256-8].<br />

– (1987): “Sistema e funzioni delle similitudini nel IV dell’Eneide”, in Studi di retorica oggi<br />

in Italia. Coll. Forme della cultura (Bologna), 117-29.<br />

Parri, Lucia (1996): “La Chimera, Turno ed Enea”, AFLS 17, 71-82.<br />

Parry, Adam (1963): “The Two Voices of Virgil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Arion 2, 66-80 = Commager<br />

(1966), 107-23 = Bloom (1986), 41-53 = Bloom (1987), 57-73; Hardie (1999b), iii, 49-64<br />

= S. Quinn (2000), 155-67 [A. Wlosok, Gymnasium 80, 1973, 141-2].<br />

Pascal, C. Bennett (1990): “The Dubious Devotion of Turnus”, TAPhA 120, 251-68.<br />

Paschalis, Michael (1984): “The Affair Between Venus and Anchises and the Birth of Aeneas<br />

in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Dodone 13, 25-40.<br />

– (1986a): “Atlas and the Mission of Mercury (<strong>Aeneid</strong> 4, 238-258)”, PLLS 5, 109-29.<br />

– (1986b): “The Unifying Theme of Daedalus’ Sculptures on the Temple of Apollo Cumanus<br />

(Aen. 6.20-33)”, Vergilius 32, 33-41.<br />

– (1986c): “Virgil and the Delphic Oracle”, Philologus 130, 44-68.<br />

– (1987): “Virgil’s Actium – Nicopolis”, in Nicopolis I. Proceedings of the First<br />

International Symposium on Nicopolis (23-29 Sept. 1984) (Preveza), 57-69.<br />

– (1997): Virgil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>: Semantic Relations and Proper Names (Oxford) [J. Dangel, REL<br />

76, 1998, 335-6; M. Gale, G&R 45, 1998, 241; Parroni, RFIC 126, 1998, 254-5; E. E.<br />

Batinsky, CO 76, 1998/9, 150-1; W. W. Briggs, CW 92, 1998/9, 578-9; M. C. J. Putnam,<br />

CJ 94, 1998/9, 203-6; R. Maltby, JRS 89, 1999, 239-40; J. Thomas, Latomus 58, 1999,<br />

682-4; J. Dingel, Gnomon 73, 2001, 354-7].<br />

– (2003): “Names, Semantics, and Narrative in Ovid’s Polydorus and Polyxena Episode and<br />

Their Intertexts (Euripides’ Hecuba and Virgil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>)”, SFIC 4a ser. 96, 142-59.<br />

Pascucci, Giovanni (1991): “Verg. Aen. 5, 329”, in Studi di filologia classica in onore di<br />

Giusto Monaco (Palermo), ii, 981-6.<br />

Pasini, Gian Franco (1986): “Per una tipologia del chiasmo in Virgilio. Ipotesi di<br />

classificazione”, in Calboli, G. (1986; ed.): Papers on Grammar II (Bologna), 149-67.<br />

– (1987): “Alcuni chiasmi multipli in Virgilio”, in Studi di retorica oggi in Italia. Coll.<br />

Forme della cultura (Bologna), 131-6.<br />

– (1991): Grammatica del chiasmo in Virgilio. Università degli studi di Bologna.<br />

Dipartimento di filologia classica e medioevale. Papers on Rhetoric 2 (Bologna) [P. Fedeli,<br />

Aufidus 16, 1992, 153; P. V. Cova, Paideia 48, 1993, 311-12; J. Dangel, Latomus 53,<br />

1994, 425-7].<br />

– (1993): “Tecniche della metafora in Virgilio”, in Calboli Montefusco, Lucia (1993; ed.):<br />

Papers on Rhetoric I. Università degli studi di Bologna Dipartimento di filologia classica e<br />

medioevale 3 (Bologna), 75-94.<br />

Pasqualini, A. (1998): “Diomede nel Lazio e le tradizioni leggendarie sulla fondazione di<br />

Lanuvio”, MEFR 110, 663-79.<br />

Pasquier, Bernadette (1992): Virgile illustré de la Renaissance à nos jours en France et Italie.<br />

Préf. de Raymond Chevallier. Textes et images de l’antiquité 2 (Paris).<br />

Patimo, Valeria Maria (2002): “Il gubernator di Lica e il Palinuro virgiliano: un exemplum di<br />

degradazione satirica”, Aufidus 48, 45-58.<br />

Pavan, Massimiliano (1989): “Imperium sine fine dedi (Aen. 1, 279)”, in L’infinito dei Greci e<br />

dei Romani. Pubb. del D. AR. FI. CL. ET. 126 (Genova), 107-20.<br />

83


Pavlock, Barbara (1985): “Epic and Tragedy in Vergil’s Nisus and Euryalus Episode”, TAPhA<br />

115, 207-24.<br />

– (1990): Eros, Imitation, and the Epic Tradition (Ithaca, NY/London) [O. Desbordes,<br />

Latomus 50, 1991, 885-6; G. Vessey, CR 41, 1991, 495; J. E. Rexine, Vergilius 38, 1992,<br />

158-61].<br />

– (1992): “The Hero and the Erotic in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 7-12”, Vergilius 38, 72-87.<br />

Pavlovskis, Zoja (1976): “<strong>Aeneid</strong> V. The Old and the Young”, CJ 71, 193-205.<br />

– (1989): “Proba and the Semiotics of the Narrative <strong>Vergilian</strong> Cento”, Vergilius 35, 70-84.<br />

Pearce, T. E. V. (1983): “The Tomb by the Sea: The History of a Motif”, Latomus 42, 110-5.<br />

– (1987): “Virgil, <strong>Aeneid</strong> 8.588”, Mnemosyne 40, 154-7.<br />

Pease, A. S. (1935): Publi Vergilii Maronis <strong>Aeneid</strong>os Liber Quartus (Cambridge, MA; repr.<br />

Darmstadt, 1967).<br />

Peduto, Maria Dolores (1991): “Analisi sintagmatica degli elementi etnotoponomastici in<br />

Virgilio”, AION(ling) 13, 99-106.<br />

Pelliccia, Hayden (1990): “Aeschylean αµέγαρτος and Virgilian inamabilis”, ZPE 84, 187-<br />

194.<br />

Pendas de Buzón, A. M./Schniebs de Rossi, A. (1991): “La metapoética virgiliana”, Emérita<br />

59, 133-42.<br />

Penwill, John L. (1995): Two Essays on Virgil: Intertextual Issues in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 6 and Georgics<br />

4. Studies in Western Traditions. Occasional Papers 2 (Bendigo) [P. A. Johnston, BMCRev<br />

96.9.14; W. J. Dominik, CO 74, 1996/97, 44; A. Loupiac, Latomus 57, 1998, 920-2].<br />

Peraki-Kyriakidou, Eleni (2002/3): “Η translatio του Σερβίου όρος και πρακτική, in<br />

Επιστηµονική επητερίδα της φιλοσοφικής Σχολής του Αριστοτελείου Πανεπιστηµίου<br />

Θεσσαλονίκης. Πρακτικά ζ’ Πανελληνίου Συµποσίου Λατινικών Σπουδώv. Τεύχος<br />

τµήµατος Φιλολογίας. Τόµος δέκατος (Thessaloniki), 254-64.<br />

– (2003/4): “Το όνοµα ως ετυµολογικό κέντρο: η τεχνική στον Βεργίλιον και οι Ελληνικές<br />

της προϋποθέσεις”, Archaiognosia 12, 91-110.<br />

Perelli, Antonella (1992): “Il paradigma di Elena e un’allusione in Giovenale”, Euphrosyne<br />

20, 187-210.<br />

Perkell, Christine G. (1981): “On Creusa, Dido, and the Quality of Victory in Virgil’s<br />

<strong>Aeneid</strong>”, in Foley, Helen P. (1981; ed.): Reflections of Women in Antiquity (New York,<br />

etc.), 355-77.<br />

– (1994): “Ambiguity and Irony: The Last Resort?”, Helios 21, 63-74.<br />

– (1997): “The Lament of Juturna: Pathos and Interpretation in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, TAPhA 127,<br />

257-86.<br />

– (1999a; ed.): Reading Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>: An Interpretive Guide. Oklahoma Series in<br />

Classical Culture (Norman) [A. Barchiesi, CJ 95, 1999/2000, 285-7; D. M. Hooley,<br />

Vergilius 46, 2000, 167-72; Irby-Massie, CO 78, 2000, 43-4; M. L. La Fico Guzzo,<br />

Minerva 14, 2000, 313-6; J. S. C. Eidinow, CR 52, 2002, 60-1].<br />

– (1999b): “<strong>Aeneid</strong> 1: An Epic Programme”, in Perkell (1999a), 29-49.<br />

– (2002): “The Golden Age and Its Contradictions in the Poetry of Vergil”, Vergilius 48, 3-<br />

39.<br />

– (2004): “Irony in the Underworlds of Dante and Virgil: Readings of Francesca and<br />

Palinurus”, MD 52, 127-42.<br />

Perotti, Pier Angelo (1990): “Il libro di Didone: una tragedia nell’Eneide”, Prometheus 16,<br />

238-44.<br />

– (1991): “Dorica castra, alius Achilles (Aen. VI 88-90)”, Maia 43, 195-8.<br />

– (1997): “La presenza di Ottaviano nell’Eneide una messa a punto”, Rudiae 9, 1997, 191-<br />

219.<br />

– (1998/9): “Virgilio misogreco”, Orpheus 19/20, 106-21.<br />

– (2000): “Eurialo e Niso: fides e perfidia”, Minerva 14, 71-85.<br />

84


– (2002a): “Noterelle virgiliane”, in Defosse, Pol (2002; ed.): Hommages à Carl Deroux. I:<br />

Poésie. Collection Latomus 266 (Bruxelles), 412-32.<br />

– (2002b): “La rivincità dei Troiani”, Latomus 61, 628-42.<br />

Perret, Jacques (1952): Virgile. L’homme et l’œuvre (Paris; 2 1965).<br />

– (1984): “L’ordre de succession des vers dans l’Énéide 6,602-620”, RPh 58, 19-33.<br />

– (1985): “Les dieux de l’Énéide”, AFLNice 50, 331-7.<br />

Perrone, G. (1985): “Virgilio Aen. VI 740-742”, CCC 6, 33-41.<br />

Perutelli, Alessandro (1977): “La similitudine nella narrazione virgiliana”, RCCM 19, 597-<br />

607.<br />

– (1979): “Registri narrativi e stile indiretto libero in Virgilio (a proposito di Aen. 4, 279<br />

sgg.)”, MD 3, 69-82.<br />

– (1982): “Aequo discrimine (Verg. Aen. 5, 154)”, MD 8, 171-4.<br />

– (1999): “Celeber/celebro = celer/celero”, MD 42, 187-97.<br />

– (2000): La poesia epica latina. Dalle origini all’età dei Flavi (Roma) [Ficca, BStudLat 30,<br />

690-5].<br />

Petecel, Stella (1984): “Eneide VII, 8-36. Osservazioni su carattere polifonico della tecnica<br />

poetica virgiliana”, StudClas 22, 45-9.<br />

Petringa, Maria Rosaria (1996): “Verg. Aen. 6, 520 e Cypr. Gall. Gen. 349”, Orpheus 17,<br />

108-25.<br />

Petrini, Mark (1997): The Child and the Hero: Coming of Age in Catullus and Vergil (Ann<br />

Arbor) [M. Gale, G&R 45, 1998, 241; P. Hardie, CR 48, 1998, 303-5; C. J. Nappa,<br />

BMCRev 9.3, 1998; C. J. Perkell, AJPh 120, 1999, 464-8].<br />

Petrochilos, Nicholas (1989/90): “Nisus and Euryalus (and Dolon)”, Archaiognosia 6, 101-7.<br />

Petter, Gerald J. (1994a): “Desecration and Expiation as a Theme in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Vergilius<br />

40, 76-84 = S. Quinn (2000), 211-9.<br />

– (1994b): “Laocoon’s Fate According to Virgil”, in Deroux, Carl (1994; ed.): Studies in<br />

Latin Literature and Roman History 7. Collection Latomus 227 (Bruxelles), 327-37.<br />

Pfligersdorffer, Georg (1998): “Anchises, Aeneas und Augustin”, in Collatz, Christian-<br />

Friedrich (1998; ed.): Dissertatiunculae criticae. Festschrift für Günther Christian Hansen<br />

(Würzburg), 287-97.<br />

Pfundstein, James M. (1997): “Per astra ad aspera: <strong>Aeneid</strong> 6.725”, Vergilius 43, 22-30.<br />

Phillips, Charles Robert (1976): “A Note on Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong> 5, 744”, Hermes 104, 247-9.<br />

– (1978/9): “Landscape in Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>: Theory and Practice”, Helios 6.2, 63-74.<br />

Phillips, Darryl A. (1997): “Seeking New Auspices: Interpreting Warfare and Religion in<br />

Virgil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Vergilius 43, 45-55.<br />

Phillips, Jane E. (1977): “Juno in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 4.693-705”, Vergilius 23, 30-33.<br />

– (1983): “Tum breviter Dido vultum demissa profatur (<strong>Aeneid</strong> 1.561)”, CB 59, 4-6.<br />

Phillips, Oliver (1980): “Aeole, namque tibi”, Vergilius 26, 18-26.<br />

Pianezzola, Emilio (1978): “Versaque iuuencum/terga fatigamus hasta (Verg. Aen. 9, 609<br />

sg.)”, in Livrea, E./Privitera, G. A. (1978; edd.): Studi in onore di Anthos Ardizzoni.<br />

Filiogia e Critica 25 (Roma), 689-99.<br />

Piccaluga, Giulia (1996): “Un personaggio sbiadito: Aventinus”, SMSR 20, 395-9.<br />

Picón García, Vicente (1994): “El libro II de la Eneida: un análisis del punto de vista”, in<br />

Actas del VIII Congreso español de estudios clásicos (Madrid, 23-28 de septiembre de<br />

1991) (Madrid), ii, 805-11.<br />

Pietsch, Wolfgang (1980): “Laokoon. Bemerkungen zur Episode in der Äneis, zur<br />

Wirkungsgeschichte und zur unterrichtlichen Behandlung eines antiken Mythologems”,<br />

Anregung 26, 158-75.<br />

Pigón, Jakub (1991): “Dido, Diana, and Penthesilea: Observations on the Queen’s First<br />

Appearance in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Eos 79, 45-53.<br />

85


Pike, D. (1993): “Venus nefanda: Dido and Pasiphae in Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Aktroterion 38, 98-<br />

103.<br />

Pinkster, Harm (1999): “The Present Tense in Virgil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Mnemosyne 52, 705-17.<br />

Pirovano, L. (2003): “Si gener externa petitur de gente Latinis: tracce di ambiguitas nel<br />

responso di Fauno (Verg. Aen. 7, 367-372)”, in Gasti, Fabio (ed.): Grammatica e<br />

grammatici latini: Teoria ed esegesi. Atti della I Giornata ghisleriana di filologia classica<br />

(Pavia, 5-6 aprile 2001) (Pavia), 161-82.<br />

Pitcher, R. A. (1989): “Intremere omnem Trinacriam: <strong>Aeneid</strong> III, 581-582: A Note”,<br />

Mnemosyne 42, 497-8.<br />

Pizzolato, Luigi F. (1991): “Il discorso di Turno dopo la metamorfosi delle navi di Enea<br />

(Aeneis IX 123-158)”, Aevum(ant) 4, 255-63.<br />

– (1995): “Fortunati ambo: per Niso ed Eurialo”, in Belloni, Luigi/Milanese, Guido/Porro,<br />

Antonietta (1995; edd.): Studia classica Johanni Tarditi oblata. Biblioteca di Aevum<br />

antiquum 7 (Milano), 265-83.<br />

Poe, Joe Park (1965): “Success and Failure in the Mission of Aeneas”, TAPhA 96, 321-36.<br />

Pöschl, Viktor (1950): Die Dichtkunst Virgils. Bild und Symbol in der Äneis (Innsbruck/Wien;<br />

3., überarbeitete und erweiterte Auflage Berlin/New York, 1977); engl. Übers.: The Art of<br />

Vergil: Image and Symbol in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>. Translated by Gerda Seligson (Ann Arbor, 1962).<br />

– (1950-79): “Vergil”, AAHG 3, 1950, 68-80; 6, 1953, 1-14; 12, 1959, 193-218; 21, 1968,<br />

193-220; 22, 1969, 1-38; 32, 1979, 1-20.<br />

– (1952): “Das Zeichen der Venus und die Gestalt des Aeneas”, in Ερµηνεία. Festschrift<br />

Otto Regenbogen zum 60. Geburtstag am 14. Februar 1951, dargebracht von Schülern und<br />

Freunden (Heidelberg), 135-43 = Pöschl 1950, 2. Aufl. (Darmstadt, 1964), 99ff.<br />

– (1975): “Die Tempeltüren des Dädalus in der Aeneis (VI 14-33), WJA 1, 119-23 = Pöschl<br />

(1995), 121-7.<br />

– (1977): “Virgil und Augustus. Dichtung im politischen Kampf”, in Chaumartin, F. R.<br />

(1977; ed.): Mélanges offerts à Léopold Sédar Senghor. Les Nouvelles Éditions Africaines<br />

(Dakar), 375-84 = Kunst und Wirklichkeitserfahrung in der Dichtung. Abhandlungen und<br />

Aufsätze zur römischen Poesie. Kleine Schriften I. Herausgegeben von Liebermann, Wolf-<br />

Lüder Liebermann. Bibliothek der klassischen Altertumswissenschaften Neue Folge, 2.<br />

Reihe, 66, Heidelberg 1979, 110-19.<br />

– (1978): Virgile et la tragédie, in Chevallier (1978), 73-9 = Virgil und die Tragödie, in<br />

Kunst und Wirklichkeitserfahrung in der Dichtung. Abhandlungen und Aufsätze zur<br />

römischen Poesie. Kleine Schriften I. Herausgegeben von Liebermann, Wolf-Lüder<br />

Liebermann. Bibliothek der klassischen Altertumswissenschaften Neue Folge, 2. Reihe,<br />

66, Heidelberg 1979, 120-5.<br />

– (1980): “Der Zweikampf zwischen Aeneas und Turnus”, in Krinzinger, Fritz [et al.] (1980;<br />

edd.): Forschungen und Funde. Festschrift Bernhard Neutsch. Innsbrucker Beiträge zur<br />

Kulturwissenschaft 21 (Innsbruck), 349-55 = Pöschl (1995), 128-35.<br />

– (1981a): “Vergil als universaler Dichter”, AAWW 118, 321-35 = Pöschl (1995), 73-89.<br />

– (1981b): “Virgil und Augustus”, ANRW ii 31.2, 709-727 = Pöschl (1995), 53-72.<br />

– (1983a): “Das Befremdende in der Aeneis”, in Pöschl (1983b), 175-88 = Pöschl (1995),<br />

90-106.<br />

– (1983b; ed.): 2000 Jahre Vergil. Ein Symposion. Vorträge gehalten anläßlich des 11.<br />

Wolfenbütteler Symposions vom 5. bis 7. Oktober 1982 in der Herzog August Bibliothek.<br />

Wolfenbütteler Forschungen 24 (Wiesbaden) [N. Horsfall, CR 37, 1987, 101].<br />

– (1984): “Enea e altri eroi nella letteratura prima e dopo di lui”, in Atti del Convegno<br />

mondiale (1984), 38-46 = “Aeneas und andere Helden in der Literatur vor und nach ihm”,<br />

= Pöschl (1995), 136-42.<br />

– (1989): “Die Aeneis und die heutige westliche Welt”, Mitteilungen für Lehrerinnen und<br />

Lehrer der Alten Sprachen, 16/17, 7-17 = Pöschl (1995), 107-20.<br />

86


– (1991): “Fides bei Vergil”, in Studi di filologia classica in onore di Giusto Monaco<br />

(Palermo), ii, 897-900 = Pöschl (1995), 143-6.<br />

– (1995): Lebendige Vergangenheit. Abhandlungen und Aufsätze zur Römischen Literatur<br />

und ihrem Weiterwirken. Kleine Schriften. III. Herausgegeben von Wolf-Lüder<br />

Liebermann. Bibliothek der klassischen Altertumswissenschaften Neue Folge, 2. Reihe, 92<br />

(Heidelberg).<br />

Pötscher, Walter (1977): Vergil und die göttlichen Mächte: Aspekte seiner Weltanschauung.<br />

Spudasmata 35 (Hildesheim, etc.).<br />

– (1983): “Motivationsprobleme bei Vergil”, in Händel Paul/Meid, Wolfgang (1983; edd.):<br />

Festschrift für Robert Muth zum 65. Geburtstag am 1. Januar 1981 dargebracht von<br />

Freunden und Kollegen. Innsbrucker Beiträge zur Sprachwissenschaft (Innsbruck), 361-74<br />

= id. (1988): Hellas und Rom. Beiträge und kritische Auseinandersetzung mit der<br />

inzwischen erschienenen Literatur. Collectanea 21 (Hildesheim, etc.), 593-606.<br />

Poirier de Narçay, L. (1985): “La nature des lieux dans le vestibule des Enfers (Virgile,<br />

Énéide VI, 273-95)”, AFLD 15, 81-96.<br />

Poliakoff, Michael B. (1985): “Entellus and Amycus: Vergil, Aen. 5.362-484”, ICS 10, 227-<br />

31.<br />

– (1992): “Vergil and the Heart of Darkness: Observations on a Recurrent Theme”, Arion<br />

2.1, 73-97.<br />

Polk, Gail Cecilia (1996): “Vergil’s Penelope: The Diana Simile in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 1.498-502”,<br />

Vergilius 42, 38-49.<br />

Pollard, John (1982): Vergil and the Sibyl (Exeter).<br />

Pollmann, Karla (1993): “Etymologie, Allegorese und epische Struktur. Zu den Toren der<br />

Träume bei Homer und Vergil”, Philologus 137, 232-51.<br />

Pomathios, Jean-Luc (1985): “Rois et peuples dans l’Eneide de Virgile”, IL 37, 69-74.<br />

– (1987): Le pouvoir politique et sa répresentation dans l’Énéide de Virgile. Collection<br />

Latomus 199 (Bruxelles) [Orsini, BStudLat 18, 1988, 128-9; A. Wankenne, LEC 56, 1988,<br />

319; Debinski, RD 67, 1989, 659-60; D. Fowler, G&R 36, 1989, 104-5; P. Hardie, CR 39,<br />

1989, 26-7; C. Renger-Zorn, Gymnasium 96, 1989, 82-3; P. Tordeur, AC 58, 1989, 334-5;<br />

A. Traina, Paideia 46, 1991, 71-4].<br />

Pontes, Herman Rego (1996): “Vergilius Rhetor, Aeneas Orator: A Question of Method in<br />

<strong>Aeneid</strong> 6.122-123”, Vergilius 42, 66-82.<br />

– (1998): “Cracking the Stateliest Measure: Vergil’s Broken Cadence in <strong>Aeneid</strong> I & IV”,<br />

Bews, Janet P./Storey, Ian C./Boyne, Martin R. (1998; edd.): Celebratio: Thirtieth<br />

Anniversary Essays at Trent University (Ontario) (Peterborough, ON), 76-85.<br />

– (1999): “The ‘Broken’ Heroic Clausula in the Aeneas Narrative (<strong>Aeneid</strong> 2 and 3)”,<br />

Vergilius 45, 39-47.<br />

Porto de Farias, N. (1983): “Conciencia moral en los personajes de la Eneida”, CLit 2, 79-90.<br />

Potz, Erich (1992): “Pius furor und der Tod des Turnus”, Gymnasium 99, 248-62.<br />

– (1993): “Fortunati ambo. Funktion und Bedeutung der Nisus/Euryalus-Episode in Vergils<br />

‘Aeneis’”, Hermes 121, 325-34.<br />

Poucet, J. (1989): “Denys d’Halicarnasse et Varron: le cas des voyages d’Énée”, MEFR 101,<br />

63-95.<br />

– (1992): “Troie, Lavinium, Rome et les Penates”, AC 61, 260-7.<br />

Poulle, Bruno (1991): “Temps du récit et temps du voyage dans l’Énéide”, in La route:<br />

mythes et réalités antiques. Actes du colloque organisé par l’ARELAD dans le cadre de la<br />

MAFPEN (Dijon), 65-74.<br />

Powell, Anton (1992): “The <strong>Aeneid</strong> and the Embarrassments of Augustus”, in id. (1992; ed.):<br />

Roman Poetry and Propaganda in the Age of Augustus (Bristol), 141-74.<br />

– (1998): “The Peopling of the Underworld: <strong>Aeneid</strong> 6.608-27”, in Stahl (1998b), 85-100.<br />

87


Poznanski, L. (1981): “Sequimur te sancte deorum quisquis es (Aen. IV, 576-7)”, RBPh 59,<br />

85-90.<br />

Pralon-Julia, D. (2002): “Mézence, le contemptor divum”, in Dorival, Gilles/Pralon, Didier<br />

(edd.): Nier les dieux, nier Dieu. Études réunis. Actes du Colloque organisé par le Centre<br />

Paul-Albert Février (UMR 6125) à la Maison méditerranéenne des sciences de l’homme<br />

les 1 er et 2 avril 1999. Textes et documentations de la méditerranée antique et médiévale<br />

(Aix-en-Provence), 93-107.<br />

Préaux, J. (1978): “Les sept premiers vers de l’Énéide et les découvertes de Lavinium”, in<br />

Cambier, G. (1978; ed.): D’Eschyle à nos jours. Leçons d’archéologie, de littérature, de<br />

philologie classiques (Bruxelles), 73-96.<br />

Prenner, A. (2002): “Riecheggiamenti virgiliani e siliani in una metamorfosi dell’In Rufinum<br />

di Claudiano”, BStudLat 32, 82-96.<br />

Primmer, Adolf (1980): “Zu Thema und Erzählstruktur der Aeneis”, WS 14, 83-101.<br />

– (1986): “Juppiters Gerechtigkeit (Dichtung und Philosophie in der Aeneis)”, in<br />

Koskenniemi, Heikki/Jäkel, Siegfried/Pyykkö, Vappu (1986; edd.): Literatur und<br />

Philosophie in der Antike. Turun Yliopiston Julkaisuja. Annales Universitatis Turkuensis,<br />

Ser. B 174 (Turku), 81-98.<br />

– (1994/5): “Das Tischprodigium im Rahmen der Aeneis”, WS 107/8, 397-416.<br />

Privitera, Tiziana (1989): “In margine alla cultura scientifica augustea. A proposito di un libro<br />

recente (P. Hardie, Virgil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>. Cosmos and Imperium, Oxford 1986)”, L’astronomia<br />

a Roma nell’età augustea. Univ. degli studi di Lecce Dip. filol. class. & medioevale. Testi<br />

& studi 2 (Lecce), 121-32.<br />

Puccioni, Giulio (1977): “Il paesaggio virgiliano”, RCCM 19, 645-63 = Puccioni (1985a),<br />

155-74.<br />

– (1980): “Elementi arcaici nel terzo libro dell’Eneide virgiliana”, Orpheus 1, 251-68 =<br />

Puccioni (1985a), 91-105.<br />

– (1981a): “Croce e l’Enea virgiliano”, RStudCroc 18.1, 67-74.<br />

– (1981b): “Il libro di Didone”, CCC 2, 707-27 = Puccioni (1985a), 107-36.<br />

– (1983): “Lettura del undicesimo libro dell’Eneide”, in Gigante (1983), 365-87 = Puccioni<br />

(1985a), 137-53.<br />

– (1985a): Saggi virgiliani. Edizioni e saggi universitari di filologia classica 35 (Bologna)<br />

[R. Lesueur, REL 64, 1986, 279; M. Squillante Saccone, BStudLat 16, 1986, 109-11; H.<br />

Bardon, Latomus 46, 1987, 899; Bonelli, A&R 32, 1987, 181-2; A. Wankenne, LEC 56,<br />

1988, 127-8].<br />

– (1985b): “Virgilio poeta nel suo tempo”, in Puccioni (1985a), 9-19.<br />

– (1985c): “Virgilio poeta della pace”, in Puccioni (1985a), 21-31.<br />

Putnam, Michael C. J. (1965): The Poetry of the <strong>Aeneid</strong> (Ithaca/London; 2 1988 [M. v.<br />

Albrecht, Gnomon 38, 1966, 564-8; V. Pöschl, AAHG 22, 1969, 6; A. Wlosok, Gymnasium<br />

80, 1973, 143].<br />

– (1970): “<strong>Aeneid</strong> VII and the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, AJPh 91, 408-30 = Putnam (1982), 288-310 =<br />

Putnam (1995d), 100-20 = Hardie (1999b), iv, 244-62.<br />

– (1972): “The Virgilian Achievement”, Arethusa 5, 53-70 = Putnam (1982), 329-46 =<br />

Putnam (1995d), 9-26.<br />

– (1980): “The Third Book of the <strong>Aeneid</strong>: From Homer to Rome”, Ramus 9, 1-21 = Putnam<br />

(1982), 267-87 = Putnam (1995d), 50-72.<br />

– (1981): “Pius Aeneas and the Metamorphosis of Lausus”, Arethusa 14, 139-56 = Putnam<br />

(1982), 311-28 = Bloom (1986), 157-71 = Putnam (1995d), 134-51.<br />

– (1982): Essays on Latin Lyric, Elegy, and Epic (Princeton, NJ).<br />

– (1984): “The Hesitation of Aeneas”, in Atti del Convegno nazionale (1984), ii, 233-52 =<br />

Putnam (1995d), 152-71 = Hardie (1999b), iv, 414-32.<br />

88


– (1985a): “Possessiveness, Sexuality and Heroism in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Vergilius 31, 1-21 =<br />

Putnam (1995d), 27-49.<br />

– (1985b): “Romulus tropaeophorus (<strong>Aeneid</strong> 6.779-80), CQ 35, 237-40.<br />

– (1987): “Daedalus, Virgil, and the End of Art”, AJPh 108, 173-198 = Putnam (1995d), 73-<br />

99 = [“Daedalus’ Sculptures”] Putnam (1998c), 75-96 = S. Quinn (2000), 220-40.<br />

– (1988): “Virgil’s Inferno”, MD 20-1, 165-202 = Putnam (1995d), 286-315.<br />

– (1989a): “Catullus 11 and Virgil Aen. 6.786-7”, Vergilius 35, 28-30.<br />

– (1989b): “Virgil and Tacitus, Ann. 1.10”, CQ 39, 563-4.<br />

– (1990a): “Anger, Blindness and Insight in Virgil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, in Nussbaum, Martha C.<br />

(1990; ed.): The Poetics of Therapy: Hellenistic Ethics in Its Rhetorical and Literary<br />

Context. Apeiron 23.4 (Edmonton), 7-40 = Putnam (1995d), 172-200.<br />

– (1990b): “Virgil’s Lapiths”, CQ 40, 562-6.<br />

– (1992a): “Virgil’s Tragic Future: Senecan Drama and the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, in La storia, la<br />

letteratura e l’arte a Roma da Tiberio a Domiziano. Atti del Convegno 63-5058, 231-91 =<br />

Putnam (1995d), 246-85.<br />

– (1992b): “Umbro, Nireus and Love’s Threnody”, Vergilius 38, 12-23 = Putnam (1995d),<br />

121-33.<br />

– (1994): “Virgil’s Danaid Ekphrasis”, ICS 19, 171-89 = [“The Baldric of Pallas”] Putnam<br />

(1998c), 189-207.<br />

– (1995a): “Ganymede and Virgilian Ekphrasis”, AJPh 116, 419-440 = [“The Cloak of<br />

Cloanthus”] Putnam (1998c), 55-74.<br />

– (1995b): “The Lyric Genius of the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Arion 3.2, 81-101 = S. Quinn (2000), 255-66.<br />

– (1995c): “Silvia’s Stag and Virgilian Ekphrasis”, MD 34, 107-33 = [“Silvia’s Stag”]<br />

Putnam (1998c), 97-118.<br />

– (1995d): Virgil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>: Interpretation and Influence (Chapel Hill und London) [C. R.<br />

Beye, Vergilius 41, 1995, 139-41; A. Videau, RPh 69, 396-8; R. V. Albis, NECN 23,<br />

1995/6, 78-9; R. F. Glei, Gymnasium 103, 1996, 470-2; P. Hardie, CR 46, 1996, 239-41; D.<br />

F. Kennedy, G&R 43, 1996, 88-9; E. A. Schmidt, MH 53, 1996, 322; S. Viarre, AC 65,<br />

1996, 330; V. J. Cleary, CO 74, 1996/7, 79-80; A. G. McKay, IJCT 3, 1996/7, 518-20; P.<br />

Properzio, CW 90, 1996/7, 455-6; G. Williams, CJ 92, 1996/7, 185-9; A. Traina, RFIC<br />

125, 1997, 225-7; J. R. Amiott, Argos 23, 1999, 138-41; A. Barchiesi, Gnomon 71, 1999,<br />

262-4; P. Heuzé, Latomus 60, 2001, 516-7].<br />

– (1995e): Wrathful Aeneas and the Tactics of Pietas in Virgil, Ovid, and Lucan”, in Putnam<br />

(1995d), 201-45.<br />

– (1998a): “Dido’s Murals and Virgilian Ekphrasis”, HSPh 98, 243-75 = [“Dido’s Murals”]<br />

Putnam (1998c), 23-54.<br />

– (1998b): “The Shield of Aeneas”, in Putnam (1998c), 119-88.<br />

– (1998c): Virgil’s Epic Designs: Ekphrasis in the <strong>Aeneid</strong> (New Haven und London) [M.<br />

Lowrie, Vergilius 45, 1999, 111-20; S. Bartsch, CR 50, 2000, 47-8; A. S. Becker, AJPh<br />

121, 2000, 324-8; P. Hardie, JRS 90, 2000, 239-40; J.-Y. Maleuvre, LEC 68, 2000, 260; S.<br />

Casali, CJ 96, 2000/1, 99-101; G. De Callataÿ, Latomus 60, 2001, 226-7; P. Schenk,<br />

AAHG 54, 2001, 22-31].<br />

– (1999a): “<strong>Aeneid</strong> 12: Unity in Closure”, in Perkell (1999a), 210-30.<br />

– (1999b): “Turnus, Homer, and Heroism”, Literary Imagination 1, 61-78.<br />

– (2001a): “The Ambiguity of Art in Virgil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Proceedings of the American<br />

Philosophical <strong>Society</strong> 145, 162-83.<br />

– (2001b): “The Loom of Latin”, TAPhA 131, 329-39.<br />

– (2001c): “Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>: The Final Lines”, in Spence (2001b), 86-104.<br />

– (2002a): “Turnus’ Phalarica (Aen. IX, 705)”, in Defosse, Pol (2002; ed.): Hommages à<br />

Carl Deroux. I: Poésie. Collection Latomus 266 (Bruxelles), 433-42.<br />

89


– (2002b): “Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong> and the Evolution of Augustus”, in Anderson/Quartarone<br />

(2002), 114-22.<br />

– (2003): “Two Ways of Looking at the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, CW 96, 177-184.<br />

Putz, Martin (1996): “Symmetrien in Vergil, Äneis II 3-56 (‘Trojanisches Pferd’)”, Anregung<br />

42, 235-7.<br />

Quartarone, Lorina N. (2002a): “Materials”, in Anderson/Quartarone (2002), 3-33.<br />

– (2002b): “Pietas, Furor, and Ecofeminism in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, in Anderson/Quartarone (2002),<br />

147-58.<br />

Quinn, Kenneth (1963a): “The Tempo of Virgilian Epic”, in id. (1963): Latin Explorations:<br />

Critical Studies in Roman Literature (London), 198-238.<br />

– (1963b): “Virgil’s Tragic Queen”, in id. (1963): Latin Explorations: Critical Studies in<br />

Roman Literature (London), 29-58.<br />

– (1968): Virgil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>: A Critical Description (Chapel Hill und London) [V. Pöschl,<br />

AAHG 22, 1969, 5-6; M. v. Albrecht, Gnomon 42, 1970, 94-5; A. Wlosok, Gymnasium 80,<br />

1973, 144-6].<br />

– (1981): ‘But the Queen –’: Conceptual Fields in Virgil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong> (Exeter).<br />

– (1984): “The Conceptual Framework of the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, in Atti del Convegno nazionale<br />

(1984), ii, 180-7.<br />

Quinn, Stephanie (2000; ed.): Why Vergil? A Collection of Interpretations. With a Foreword<br />

by Michael C. J. Putnam (Wauconda, Ill.) [J. M. Higgins, BMCRev 2000.07.17; S. Casali,<br />

JRS 91, 2001, 239-40; P.-J. Dehon, LEC 69, 2001, 103-4; J. S. C. Eidinow, CR 51, 2001,<br />

398-9; P. Toohey, Phoenix 55, 2001, 433-4; Mastrangelo, CJ 97, 2001/2, 89-93].<br />

Quint, David (1982): “Painful Memories: <strong>Aeneid</strong> III and the Problem of the Past”, CJ 78, 30-8<br />

[> Quint (1993), 53-65].<br />

– (1989): “Epic and Empire”, CompLit 41, 1-32 [~ Quint (1993), 21-46].<br />

– (1991): “Repetition and Ideology in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, MD 24, 9-54 = Hardie (1999b), iv, 117-<br />

57 [~ Quint (1993), 50-96].<br />

– (1993): Epic and Empire: Politics and Generic Form from Virgil to Milton (Princeton) [C.<br />

Kallendorf, Vergilius 39, 1993, 83-6; E. Haan, JRS 84, 1994, 202-3].<br />

– (2001): “The Brothers of Sarpedon: Patterns of Homeric Imitation in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 10”, MD 47,<br />

35-66.<br />

– (2004): “The Virgilian Coordinates of Paradise Lost”, MD 52, 177-97.<br />

Quiter, Raimund J. (1984): Aeneas und die Sibylle. Die rituellen Motive im sechsten Buch der<br />

Aeneis. Beiträge zur klassischen Philologie 162 (Königstein, Ts.) [Frassinetti, Athenaeum<br />

64, 1886, 550; F. Graf, Gnomon 58, 1986, 360-3; K. Olstein, CW 79, 1986, 279-80; A.<br />

Deremetz, Latomus 49, 1990, 180-4].<br />

Raabe, Hermann (1974): Plurima mortis imago. Vergleichende Interpretationen zur<br />

Bildersprache Vergils. Zetemata 59 (München) [H. Marti, MH 34, 1977, 257-8; D. A.<br />

West, CR 27, 1977, 275; R. E. H. Westendorp Boerma, Mnemosyne 32, 1979, 192-3; M. v.<br />

Albrecht, Gnomon 53, 1981, 601-2].<br />

Rabel, Robert J. (1978): “The Iliadic Nature of <strong>Aeneid</strong> 9”, Vergilius 24, 37-44.<br />

– (1981a): “The Composition of <strong>Aeneid</strong> IX”, Latomus 40, 801-6.<br />

– (1981b): “Vergil, Tops, and the Stoic View of Fate”, CJ 77, 27-31.<br />

– (1985): “The Harpies in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, CJ 80, 317-25.<br />

Radke, Gerhard (1957): “Fachbericht: Vergil (Auswahl)”, Gymnasium 64, 161-92.<br />

– (1959): “Auswahlbericht zur augusteischen Dichtung”, Gymnasium 66, 319-47.<br />

– (1964): “Fachbericht Augusteische Dichtung (Auswahl)”, Gymnasium 71, 72-108.<br />

90


Radke, Gyburg (2003): “Symbolische Aeneis-Interpretationen. Differenzen und<br />

Gemeinsamkeiten in der modernen Vergilforschung”, A&A 49, 90-112.<br />

Ramires, Giuseppe (1988): “Aen. XI.895: ardent/audent, una variante d’autore in Servio?”,<br />

AAPel 64, 143-60.<br />

– (2000): “Tradizione e fortuna di una variante virgiliana (Aen. 9, 189 e 236)“, in Gioseffi,<br />

Massimo (2000; ed.): E io sarà tua guida: raccolta di saggi su Virgilio e gli studi virgiliani<br />

(Milano), 101-18.<br />

– (2002): “Esegesi e critica del testo: qualche esempio da Servio, Aen. VII”, in Gasti, Fabio<br />

(ed.): Grammatica e grammatici latini: Teoria ed esegesi. Atti della I Giornata ghisleriana<br />

di filologia classica (Pavia, 5-6 aprile 2001) (Pavia), 183-94.<br />

Ramírez de Verger, Antonio (1999): “La prueba atlética en la Eneida (V 286-361) de<br />

Virgilio”, Humanística 11, 1999, 51-8.<br />

Ramminger, Johann (1991): “Imitation and Allusion in the Achaemenides Scene (Vergil,<br />

<strong>Aeneid</strong> 3.588-691)”, AJPh 112, 53-71.<br />

Rand, Edward Kenneth (1906): “Catullus and the Augustans”, HSPh 17, 15-30.<br />

Randall, John G. (1982): “The Sacrifice of Nisus and Euryalus”, Latin Teaching 36, 21-31.<br />

Rapallo, Umberto (1998/9): “Convergenze linguistiche ed eteroglosse testuali in Virgilio”,<br />

ASGM 39/40, 115-30<br />

Ratkowitsch, Christine (1983): “Die Unterweltsgötter in der foedus-Szene Aen. 12, 175ff.”,<br />

WS 17, 75-88.<br />

– (2001): “Eine historische Lücke in der vergilischen Schildbeschreibung (Aen. 8, 626-<br />

728)“, WS 114, 233-49.<br />

Rauk, John (1991): “Androgeos in Book Two of the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, TAPhA 121, 287-95.<br />

Recio Muñiz, Santiago (1996): “Sintaxis narrativa dramática en la Eneida de Virgilio”, ÉClas<br />

38, 37-48.<br />

Reckford, Kenneth J. (1961): “Latent Tragedy in <strong>Aeneid</strong> VII, 1-285”, AJPh 82, 252-69.<br />

– (1981): “Helen in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 2 and 6”, Arethusa 14, 85-99.<br />

– (1995/6): “Recognizing Venus. I, Aeneas Meets His Mother”, Arion 3, 1-42<br />

Reed, Jay (2001): “Anchises Reading Aeneas Reading Marcellus”, SyllClass 12, 146-68.<br />

Reed, Joseph D. (1995): “A Further Note on Supplementum Hellenisticum 949: An Imitation<br />

by Vergil?”, ZPE 106, 94-9.<br />

– (1998): “The Death of Osiris in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 12.458”, AJPh 119, 399-418.<br />

Reeker, Hans-Dieter (1971): Die Landschaft in der Aeneis. Spudasmata 27 (Hildesheim) [C.<br />

Segal, Gnomon 45, 1973, 824-6].<br />

Rees, Roger (1996): “Revisiting Evander at <strong>Aeneid</strong> 8.363”, CQ 46, 583-6.<br />

– (2004; ed.): Romane memento: Vergil in the fourth Century (London).<br />

Reeve, Michael D. (1987): “The Future in the Past”, in Whitby, Michael/Hardie,<br />

Philip/Whitby, Mary (edd.): Homo Viator: Classical Essays for John Bramble (Bristol),<br />

319-22.<br />

Rehm, Bernhard (1932): Das geographische Bild des alten Italiens in Vergils Aeneis.<br />

Philologus, Supplementband 24.2 (Leipzig).<br />

Reinhold, Meyer (1987): “The Americanization of Aeneas, from Colonial Times to 1882”,<br />

AugAge 6, 207-18 = S. Quinn (2000), 316-24.<br />

Reinke, E. C. (1986): “Onomatopoetic Alliteration in Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>, Book I-IV”, CB 62, 37-<br />

42 = S. Quinn (2000), 46-51.<br />

Reitz, Christiane (2001): “Randnote, Glosse, Kommentar? Der Vergiltext des François<br />

Guyet”, in Wendel, Hans Jürgen/Bernard, Wolfgang/Müller, Sven (edd.): Wechsel des<br />

Mediums. Zur Interdependenz von Form und Inhalt. Rostocker Studien zur<br />

Kulturwissenschaft 5 (Rostock), 17-36.<br />

Rengakos, Antonios (1993): “Zum Griechenbild in Vergils Aeneis”, A&A 39, 112-24.<br />

91


Renger, Cornelia (1985): Aeneas und Turnus. Analyse einer Feindschaft. Studien zur<br />

klassischen Philologie 11 (Frankfurt am Main) [D. Fowler, G&R 33, 1986, 89; S. J.<br />

Harrison, CR 36, 1986, 40-4; D. Feeney, JRS 86, 1987, 250-1; E. Kraggerud, Gnomon 59,<br />

1987, 61-2].<br />

Reynen, Hans (1965): “Ewiger Frühling und goldene Zeit. Zum Mythos des goldenen<br />

Zeitalters bei Ovid und Vergil”, Gymnasium 72, 415-33 [V. Pöschl, AAHG 21, 1968, 200].<br />

Richmond, John A. (1976): “Symbolism in Virgil: Skeleton Key or Will-o-the-Wisp?”, G&R<br />

23, 142-58 = McAuslan/Walcot (1990), 24-38.<br />

Ricottilli, Licinia (1992): “Tum breviter Dido voltum demissa profatur (Aen. 1, 561):<br />

individuazione di un cogitantis gestus e delle sue funzioni e modalità di rappresentazione<br />

nell’Eneide”, MD 28, 179-227.<br />

– (2000): Gesto e parola nell’Eneide. Testi e manuali per l’insegnamento universitario del<br />

latino 63 (Bologna) [F. Boldrer, Eikasmos 11, 2000, 476-80; É. Delbey, REL 78, 2000,<br />

299; V. Viparelli, BStudLat 30, 2000, 690-5; S. Copello, Maia 53, 2001, 788-90; F.<br />

Rosiello, Vichiana 4a ser. 3, 2001, 315-7; J. Thomas, Latomus 62, 2003, 923-6].<br />

Rieker, Jörg (2001): “Quid multa? Ein Virgilius in prosa im Excidium Troiae-Gewand”, in<br />

Korenjak, Martin/Töchterle, Karlheinz (edd.): Pontes I: Akten der Ersten Innsbrucker<br />

Tagung zur Rezeption der Klassischen Antike. Comparanda 2 (Innsbruck), 108-118.<br />

Rieks, Rudolf (1981a): “Die Gleichnisse Vergils”, ANRW ii 31.2, 1011-1110.<br />

– (1981b): “Vergils Dichtung als Zeugnis und Deutung der römischen Geschichte”, ANRW ii<br />

31.2, 728-868<br />

– (1983): “Affekt und Struktur in Vergils Aeneis”, Gymnasium 90, 144-70.<br />

– (1989): Affekte und Strukturen: Pathos als ein Form- und Wirkprinzip von Vergils Aeneis.<br />

Zetemata 86 (München) [F. Graf, MH 47, 1990, 256-7; R. Lesueur, REL 68, 1990, 211-2;<br />

P. Hardie, CR 41, 1991, 52-3; B. Rochette, LEC 59, 1991, 368-9; A. Novara, RPh 66,<br />

1992, 178-9; A. Pérez Vega, Emérita 60, 1992, 348-9].<br />

Riganti, Elisabetta (1995): “Virgilio e l’epica postclassica”, in Mattioli, Umberto (1995; ed.):<br />

Senectus: la vecchiaia nel mondo classico. II (Bologna), 53-84.<br />

Ripoll, François (2000a): “Réécritures d’un mythe homérique à travers le temps: le<br />

personnage de Pâris dans l’épopée de Virgile à Stace”, Euphrosyne n. s. 28, 83-112.<br />

– (2000b): “Variations épiques sur un motif d’ecphrasis: l’enlèvement de Ganymède”, REA<br />

102, 479-500.<br />

– (2002): “Les scènes d’ornithomancie dans les épopées latines d’époque flavienne”,<br />

Latomus 61, 929-60.<br />

Ritoók, Zsigmond (1984): “Ter quaterque beati”, in Tar 1984b, 75-84.<br />

Rivoltella, Massimo (2002): “La morte di Creusa e Didone nell’Eneide ed il motivo del<br />

‘seguito amoroso’”, Aevum 76, 81-100.<br />

Robaey, J. (1983): “La sentenza e la chiusa epica (Virgilio e Omero). Prove per<br />

l’enjambement”, QUCC 43, 113-28.<br />

Robertson, Fred (1988; ed.): Meminisse iuvabit: Selections from the Proceedings of the Virgil<br />

<strong>Society</strong> (Bristol) [N. Horsfall, CR 40, 1990, 155-6].<br />

Rocca, Silvana (1983): Etologia virgiliana. Pubblicazioni dell’Ististuto di filologia classica e<br />

medioevale 80 (Genova) [A. Saccone, BStudLat 14, 1984, 130; P. Tordeur, AC 53, 1984,<br />

408-10; H. Bardon, Latomus 44, 1985, 666-7; P. A. Johnston, Vergilius 31, 1985, 92; A.<br />

Novara, REL 63, 1985, 321; J.-C. Richard, REL 63, 1985, 321-2; W. Richter, Gnomon 57,<br />

1985, 221-6; N. Horsfall, CR 37, 1987, 100].<br />

– (1996): “Personaggi virgiliani”, Aufidus 29, 7-25.<br />

Rochette, Bruno (1999): “Écrire en deux langues: remarques sur le mixage des écritures<br />

grecque et latine d’après les papyrus littéraires bilingues d’auteurs classiques”, Scriptorium<br />

53, 325-34.<br />

92


Rodgers, Robert H. (1991/2): “Quique sui memores alios fecere merendo: The Roman<br />

Reward for Public Service”, NECN 19, 24-7.<br />

Rodón, Eulalia (1983): “Psychological Characterization of Vergil’s Aeneas”, LF 106, 29-32.<br />

– (1984): “Configuraciones icónicas en la poetica virgiliana”, EClás 88, 243-6.<br />

Rodríguez Adrados, Jesús-Victor (2001): “Una errata en Virgilio, Aen. II 434”, in Alvar<br />

Ezquerra, Antonio/García Jurado, Francisco (edd.): Actas del X Congreso español de<br />

estudios clásicos (21-25 de septiembre de 1999). II: Lingüistica latina, literatura latina,<br />

filologia clásica (Madrid), 615-16.<br />

Römisch, Egon (1976): “Die Achaemenides-Episode in Vergils Aeneis”, in Görgemanns,<br />

Herwig/Schmidt, Ernst A. (1976; edd.): Studien zum antiken Epos. Beiträge zur<br />

klassischen Philologie 72 (Meisenheim am Glan), 208-27.<br />

Rogerson, A. (2002): “Dazzling Likeness: Seeing Ekphrasis in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 10”, Ramus 31, 51-72.<br />

Romanelli, P. (1981): “Riflessi virgiliani dei rapporti tra Roma el’Africa”, in id. (1981): In<br />

Africa e a Roma. Scripta minora selecta (Roma), 609-30.<br />

Romaniello, Giuseppe Salvatore (1975): Interpolazioni e contraddizioni nel testo dell’Eneide.<br />

Aretusa. Coll. di filologia classica e archeologia 40 (Roma) [M. v. Albrecht, Gymnasium<br />

84, 1977, 63-5; E. J. Kenney, Gnomon 49, 1977, 624-5; J. Perret, RPh 51, 1977, 332].<br />

Romano, Domenico (1993/4): “I muscoli di Entello e un’ipotesi sul primo Lucrezio”, AAPal<br />

5a. ser. 14, 27-36.<br />

Romano, E. (1978): “Struttura didascalica del discorso di Anchise nel libro VI dell’Eneide”,<br />

Pan 5, 91-9.<br />

Romeuf, J. (1983): “Sexe fort et sexe faible dans l’Eneide”, ALMArv 10, 7-22.<br />

– (1984): “Le bouclier d’Énée (Aen. VIII, 626-731). Imagination picturale et création<br />

littéraire”, REL 62, 143-65.<br />

Rondholz, Anke (2004): “Nec moritura tenet crudeli funere Dido?”, Hermes 132, 237-40.<br />

Rosati, Gianpiero (1979): “Punto di vista narrativo e antichi esegeti di Virgilio”, Annali della<br />

Scuola Normale Superiore di Pisa 3.9, 539-62.<br />

– (1987): “Gellio, Servio e il colore di un diaspro (Verg. Aen. IV, 261)”, Maia 39, 139-41.<br />

Rose, Amy (1982): “Vergil’s Ship-Snake Simile (<strong>Aeneid</strong> V, 270-81)”, CJ 78, 115-21.<br />

Rose, Herbert Jennings (1948): Aeneas Pontifex. Virgilian Essays 2 (London).<br />

Rosenberg, Donald M. (1981): Oaten Reeds and Trumpets: Pastoral and Epic in Virgil,<br />

Spenser, and Milton (Lewisburg).<br />

Rosivach, Vincent J. (1980): “Latinus’ Genealogy and the Palace of Picus (<strong>Aeneid</strong> 7.45-9,<br />

170-91)”, CQ 30, 140-52.<br />

Ross, David O. (1998): “Images of Fallen Troy in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, in Knox, Peter/Foss, Clive<br />

(1998; edd.): Style and Tradition: Studies in Honor of Wendell Clausen. Beiträge zur<br />

Altertumskunde 92 (Stuttgart und Leipzig), 121-9.<br />

Rossi, Andreola (1997): “Reversal of Fortune and Change in Genre in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 10”, Vergilius<br />

43, 31-44 [~ 2004, 54-69].<br />

– (2002): “The Fall of Troy: Between Tradition and Genre”, in Levene, D. S./Nelis, D. P.<br />

(2002; edd.): Clio and the Poets: Augustan Poetry and the Traditions of Ancient<br />

Historiography. Mnemosyne Supplementum 224 (Leiden, etc.), 231-51 [~ 2004, 17-53.<br />

– (2004): Contexts of War: Manipulation of Genre in Virgilian Battle Narrative (Ann Arbor)<br />

[S. Harrison, BMCRev 2004.11.09].<br />

Rossini, Antonio (2000): “Cultural History in <strong>Aeneid</strong> VIII 407-15: The Assessment of an<br />

‘Ideology’ and of Its Influence on the Work of Virgil”, RCCM 42, 2000, 29-38.<br />

Roti, Grant C. (1983): “Omnibus unus (<strong>Aeneid</strong> 3.716), CQ 33, 300-301.<br />

Rowell, Henry T. (1941): “Vergil and the Forum of Augustus”, AJPh 62, 261-76.<br />

Rowland, Robert J. (1981/2): “Books of Lists: Observations on Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>, Books VII-<br />

VIII”, AugAge 1, 20-5.<br />

– (1987a): “Aeneas Before Vergil. I&II”, AugAge 6, 155-75.<br />

93


– (1987b): “Vergil’s Aeneas”, AugAge 6, 142-54.<br />

– (1992): “Ductor Rhoeteius: Vergil, <strong>Aeneid</strong> 12.456”, in Wilhelm/Jones (1992), 237-43.<br />

Rubio Sañudo, María Teresa (1994): “Diferentes valores del presente de subjuntivo latino en<br />

Virgilio”, in Actas del VIII Congreso español de estudios clásicos (Madrid, 23-28 de<br />

septiembre de 1991) (Madrid), 739-41.<br />

Rudd, Niall (1976): “Dido’s Culpa”, in id. (1976): Lines of Enquiry: Studies in Latin Poetry<br />

(Cambridge), 32-53 = S. J. Harrison (1990b), 145-66.<br />

– (1983): “The Idea of Empire in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Hermathena 134, 35-50 = Cardwell/Hamilton<br />

(1986), 28-42.<br />

Rudich, V. (2002): “On Pushkin and Virgil”, Arion 3 rd series 10.1, 79-81.<br />

Rüpke, Jörg (1993): “Vergils Laokoon”, Eranos 91, 126-8.<br />

– (1998): Antike Epik. Zur Geschichte narrativer metrischer Großtexte in oralen und<br />

semioralen Gesellschaften (Potsdam), 107-26 [“Vergils Aeneis”].<br />

Ruiz-Funes Torres, María (1996): “Algunas interpretaciones ‘innovadoras’ del P. de la Cerda<br />

sobre la Eneida“, in Aldama, Ana María (ed.): De Roma al siglo XX: Actas del I Congreso<br />

de la Sociedad de Estudios Latinos, celebrado en la Residencia Universitaria de<br />

Jarandilla de la Vera (Cáceres), los dias 26-28 de enero de 1995 (Madrid), 903-11.<br />

Rupprecht, Hermann (1959): “Dido oder Elissa. Eine Vermutung über den Gebrauch dieser<br />

Namen bei Vergil und Ovid”, Gymnasium 66, 246-50 [V. Pöschl, AAHG 12, 1959, 214].<br />

Russi, Angelo (1986): “Virgilio e il Gargano (Aen. 11, 246-247)”, Athenaeum 64, 1986, 226-<br />

30.<br />

Russo, Alessandro (1997): “Verg. Aen. 10, 805”, in Degl’Innocenti, Antonella/Moretti,<br />

Gabriella (1997; edd.): Miscillo Flamine: Studi in onore di Carmelo Rapisarda (Trento),<br />

263-73.<br />

Rutledge, Harry C. (1979): “The Gift-Motif in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, in Lawall (1979), 17-23.<br />

– (1987): “Pius Aeneas: A Study of Vergil’s Portrait”, Vergilius 33, 14-20.<br />

Ruysschaert, José (1993): “Lectures des illustrations du ‘Virgile vatican’ et du ‘Virgile<br />

romain’”, MMAI 73, 25-51.<br />

Sabbadini, Remigio (1888-1920): Aeneis commentata. 6 voll. (Torino) [i = 1-3, 5 1920; ii = 4-<br />

6, 3 1910; iii = 7-9, 2 1908; iv-vi = 10-12, 1888].<br />

Saggioro, Alessandro (1996): “La ‘Sibylla Cumana’: un personaggio virgiliano tra mito e<br />

storia”, SMSR 20, 481-90.<br />

Salanitro, Giovanni (1992): “Contributi critico-textuali ai centoni virgiliani”, in Fores, Enrico<br />

[et al.] (1992; edd.): Miscellanea di studi in onore di Armando Salvatore. Pubblicazioni del<br />

Dipartimento di Filologia classica dell’Università degli Studi Federico II 7 (Napoli), 213-9.<br />

Salanitro, Maria (1995): “Il sacrificium di Laocoonte in Virgilio e in Petronio”, MDAI(R) 102,<br />

291-4.<br />

– (1997): “Il vischio virgiliano”, RPL 20, 49-53.<br />

Salat, Pierre (1982): “Phlégyas et Tantale aux Enfers. À propos des vers 601-627 du sixième<br />

livre de l’Énéide”, in Études de littérature ancienne, II: Questions de sens (Paris), 13-29.<br />

– (1983): “Un maître-mot chez Virgile, l’adjectif ingens”, ALMArv 10, 71-84.<br />

– (1985-8): “Mots clés et mots évités chez Virgile”, ALMArv 12, 65-78; 15, 1988, 77-90.<br />

Salvatore, Armando (1982): “Struttura e funzionalità delle similitudini virgiliane”, Vichiana<br />

11, 264-83.<br />

– (1983): “Lettura del secondo libro dell’Eneide”, in Gigante (1983), 31-97.<br />

– (1985): “Virgilio e Callimaco”, Vichiana 14, 3-23.<br />

– (1988): “Elementi di originalità nelle similitudini virgiliane”, in Boldrini, Sandro [et al.]<br />

(1988; edd): Filologia e forme letterarie. Studi offerti a Francesco Della Corte (Urbino),<br />

ii, 457-79.<br />

94


– (1990): Letture di Virgilio: aspetti e problemi (Napoli).<br />

– (1991): “La similitudine della trottola in Callimaco e Virgilio”, in Studi di filologia<br />

classica in onore di Giusto Monaco (Palermo), ii, 395-400.<br />

– (1997): Virgilio. Studi Latini 24 (Napoli) [A. De Vivo, BStudLat 28, 1998, 28; U.<br />

Zuccarelli, Paideia 53, 1998, 347-51; F. Corsaro, Orpheus 21, 2000, 321-5].<br />

Salem, Jean (1988): De la tragédie à l’Histoire. Une introduction à la lecture de l’Énéide<br />

Coll. Repères (Paris) [R. Martin, REL 74, 1996, 352].<br />

Sammartano, Roberto (1998): “Per una rilettura della gara del pugilato nel V libro<br />

dell’Eneide”, PP 53, 115-30.<br />

Sanchez Muñoz, B. (1976): “La heniadis en Virgilio”, EClás 20, 45-7.<br />

Sandbach, F. H. (1965/6): “Anti-Antiquarianism in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, PVS 5, 26-38 = S. J. Harrison<br />

(1990b), 449-65.<br />

Sangmeister, Ursula (1978): Die Ankündigung direkter Rede im ‘nationalen’ Epos der Römer.<br />

Beiträge zur klassischen Philologie 86 (Meisenheim).<br />

Sansone, David (1991): “Cacus and the cyclops: An Addendum”, Mnemosyne 44, 171.<br />

– (1996), <strong>Aeneid</strong> 5.835-6”, CQ 46, 429-33.<br />

Santini, Carlo (1996): “Il comitato di Enea”, in Santini, Carlo/Zurli, Loriano (1996; edd.): Ars<br />

narrandi. Scritti di narrativa antica in memoria di Luigi Pepe (Napoli), 209-24.<br />

– (1998): “Etnici e filologia”, GIF 50, 3-22.<br />

Saravi, S. (1999): “Juno supplicante”, Auster 4, 63-84.<br />

Sarkissian, John (1985): “The Idea of imperium at <strong>Aeneid</strong> 1.50-296”, AugAge 4, 51-6.<br />

Sauer, Hans (1997): “Vergil im Mittelalter”, in Lexikon des Mittelalters 8, 1522-9.<br />

Sauvage, A. (1979): “Les éléments du prestige, le fonctionnement et la nature du pouvoir<br />

d’Énée”, REL 57, 204-30.<br />

Saylor, Charles F. (1974): “The Magnificent Fifteen: Vergil’s Catalogues of the Latin and<br />

Etruscan Forces”, CPh 69, 249-57.<br />

– (1979): “Horace, c. 1.2 and Vergil’s Storm (Aen. 1.81ff.)”, Vergilius 25, 20-5.<br />

– (1982/3): “<strong>Aeneid</strong> 10. The Book of Phantoms”, AugAge 2, 48-59.<br />

– (1986): “Some Stock Characteristics of the Roman Lover in Vergil, <strong>Aeneid</strong> IV”, Vergilius<br />

32, 73-7.<br />

– (1990): “Groups vs. Individual in Virgil <strong>Aeneid</strong> IX”, Latomus 49, 88-94.<br />

Scaffai, Marco (2000): “Lunae labores e solis labores in Virgilio e oltre”, Paideia 57, 448-65.<br />

Scafoglio, Giampiero (1997/8): “Forme e funzioni delle figure di suono nell’Eneide”, RAAN<br />

67, 309-40.<br />

– (2000): “La scena di Elena tramandata da Servio: discussione filologica”, Vichiana 4a ser.<br />

2, 181-200.<br />

– (2001a): “La tragedia di Eschilo nel libro II dell’Eneide”, AC 70, 70, 69-86.<br />

– (2001b): “La tragedia di Euripide e la mediazione romana arcaica nel libro II dell’Eneide”,<br />

Vichiana 4a ser. 3, 187-212.<br />

– (2002): “L’apparizione onirica di Ettore nel libro II dell’Eneide: intertestualità e<br />

mediazione filosofica”, Philologus 146, 299-308.<br />

– (2003): “Il confronto di Enea col passato. Palinuro, Didone, Deifobo nell’Ade virgiliano”,<br />

A&A 49, 80-9.<br />

– (2004a): “A proposito di alcuni temi virgiliani”, Vichiana 4a ser. 6, 127-35.<br />

– (2004b): “L’episodio di Deifobo nell’Ade virgiliano”, Hermes 132, 167-85.<br />

Scanlan, Richard T. (1982/3): “Topics for the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, CJ 78, 350-9.<br />

Scarcia, Riccardo (1991): “Magicas accingier artis (Aen. 4, 493f.)”, Gallo, Italo/Nicastri,<br />

Luciano (1991; edd.): Cultura, poesia, ideologia nell’opera di Ovidio. Pubblicazioni<br />

dell’Università degli Studi di Salerno Sezione Atti, convegni, miscellanee 33 (Napoli),<br />

229-41.<br />

– (1992): “Romolo e la seconda casa”, Euphrosyne 20, 107-30.<br />

95


– (2003): “Il commento di Servio al libro IX dell’Eneide”, Scholia 5.1, 101-17.<br />

– (2004): “Il Sallustio di Virgilio nella glossia serviana”, Scholia 6.1,<br />

Scargliarini Corlaita, D. (1989): “Modi di rappresentazione dell’architettura in Virgilio” , in<br />

Mnemosynum. Studi in onore di Alfredo Ghiselli. Ed. & saggi univ. di filologia class.<br />

(Bologna), 497-506.<br />

Scarpat, Giuseppe (1988): “Un omerismo virgiliano (secto elephanto, Aen. 3, 464)”, in<br />

Boldrini, Sandro [et al.] (1988; edd): Filologia e forme letterarie. Studi offerti a Francesco<br />

Della Corte (Urbino), ii, 481-6.<br />

Scarth, Alwyn (1999/2000): “The Volcanic Inspiration of Some Images in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, CW<br />

93, 90-115.<br />

Schäublin, Christoph (1996): “Ennius, Vergil und Livius”, MH 53, 148-55.<br />

Schaller, Dieter (1987): “Vergil und die Wiederentdeckung des Epos im frühen Mittelalter”,<br />

Medioevo & Rinascimento 1, 75-100.<br />

Schauenburg, Konrad (1960): “Aeneas und Rom”, Gymnasium 67, 176-91.<br />

– (1969): AINEIAS KALOS, Gymnasium 76, 42-53.<br />

Schenk, Peter (1984): Die Gestalt des Turnus in Vergils Aeneis. Beiträge zur klassischen<br />

Philologie 164 (Königstein/Ts.) [S. J. Harrison, CR 36, 1986, 40-4; E. Kraggerud, Gnomon<br />

59, 1987, 61-2; R. Lesueur, Latomus 47, 1988, 685-7; P. H. Schrijvers, Mnemosyne 41,<br />

1988, 435-6; N. Horsfall, SCI 11, 1991/2, 194-5].<br />

Schetter, Willy (1978): Das römische Epos. Athenaion Studientexte 4 (Wiesbaden).<br />

Schiesaro, Alessandro (2001): “Virgil in Bloomsbury”, PVS 24, 31-47.<br />

Schilling, Robert (1980a): “Penatibus et magnis dis (Virgile, Énéide III, 12 et VIII, 679)”, in<br />

Fontana, M. J./Piraino, M. T./Rizzo, F. P. (1980; edd.): Φιλίας χάριν. Miscellanea di studi<br />

classici in onore di Eugenio Manni (Roma), vi, 1963-78.<br />

– (1980b): “Tradition et innovation dans le chant VI de l’Énéide de Virgile”, JS 1980, 193-<br />

210.<br />

– (1981): “Virgile poète total”, REL 59, 177-92.<br />

– (1982): “Romanité et ésotérisme dans le chant VI de l’Énéide”, RHR 199, 363-80 = Atti del<br />

Convegno vergiliano di Brindisi (1983), 17-31.<br />

Schlerath, B. (1981): “Culinaria Romano-Germanica”, in Geckeler, H. [et. al.] (1981): Logos<br />

semantikos. Studia linguistica in honorem Eugenio Coseriu 1921-1981 (Berlin/Madrid), iii,<br />

269-87.<br />

Schlunk, Robin R. (1974): The Homeric Scholia and the <strong>Aeneid</strong>: A Study of the Influence of<br />

Ancient Literary Criticism on Vergil (Ann Arbor) [A. Barchiesi, RFIC 105, 1977, 349-55;<br />

J. Foster, CR 27, 1977, 22-3; R. A. Hornsby, CW 70, 1977, 480-1; N. Horsfall, JRS 66,<br />

1976, 277; E. C. Kopff, CJ 72, 1976, 279-80; P. N. Lockhart, Vergilius 22, 1976, 51-3; N.<br />

C. Wilson, Gnomon 48, 1976, 716-7; B. C. Fenik, CPh 73, 1978, 65-6].<br />

– (1984): “The Wrath of Aeneas: Two Myths in <strong>Aeneid</strong> X”, in Bright, David F./Ramage,<br />

Edwin S. (1984; edd.): Classical Texts and Their Traditions. Studies in Honour of C. R.<br />

Trahman. Scholars Press Homage Series (Chico, CA), 223-9.<br />

Schmid, Walter (1983): Vergil-Probleme. Göppinger Akademische Beiträge 120 (Göppingen)<br />

[N. Horsfall, CR 35, 1985, 186; R. Rieks, Gnomon 57, 1985, 508-12; A. Novara, RPh 60,<br />

1986, 148-9].<br />

Schmidt, Ernst August (1997): “Vergil und episches Holzfällen: Zu einer unerkannten<br />

Technik poetischer Verdichtung”, Hyperboreus 3, 57-81.<br />

– (2000/1): “The Meaning of Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>: American and German Approaches”, CW 94,<br />

145-171.<br />

– (2001a): “Vergil: die Tragödie der karthagischen Königin Dido als Anfrage an den Sinn<br />

der römischen Geschichte”, in id. (2001): Musen in Rom. Deutung von Welt und<br />

Geschichte in großen Texten der römischen Literatur (Tübingen), 119-32.<br />

96


– (2001b): “Vergils Aeneis als augusteische Dichtung”, in Rüpke, Jörg (ed.): Von Göttern<br />

und Menschen erzählen. Formkonstanzen und Funktionswandel vormoderner Epik.<br />

Potsdamer Altertumswissenschaftliche Beiträge 4 (Stuttgart), 65-92.<br />

– (2003): Augusteische Literatur, System in Bewegung. Schriften der philosophischhistorischen<br />

Klasse der Heidelberger Akademie der Wissenschaften 28 (Heidelberg) [M.<br />

Dinter, JRS 94, 2004, 242-3].<br />

Schmidt, Ernst Günther (1983): “Achilleus – Odysseus – Aeneas. Zur Typologie des<br />

vergilischen Helden”, LF 106, 24-8.<br />

– (1988): “Vergil und die Odyssee. Strukturfragen der Aeneis”, in id. (1988; ed.):<br />

Erworbenes Erbe. Studien zur antiken Literatur und ihrer Nachwirkung. Reclams<br />

Universal-Bibliothek 1259 (Leipzig), 306-18.<br />

Schmidt, Jens-Uwe (1991): “Junos Versöhnung durch Jupiter und das Ende der Aeneis”,<br />

W&D 21, 81-113.<br />

– (1994): “Die schneeweißen Arme der Venus. Zur Homer-Imitation in Vergils Aeneis”,<br />

RhM 137, 101-17.<br />

Schmidt, Paul Gerhard (1982): “Wandlungen Vergils im Mittelalter”, WJA 8, 105-16.<br />

Schmiel, Robert (1979): “A <strong>Vergilian</strong> Formula”, Vergilius 25, 37-9.<br />

Schmit-Neuerburg, Tilman (1999): Vergils Aeneis und die antike Homerexegese:<br />

Untersuchungen zum Einfluß ethischer und kritischer Homerrezeption auf imitatio und<br />

aemulatio Vergils. Untersuchungen zur antiken Literatur und Geschichte 56 (Berlin/ New<br />

York) [R. Lamberton, BMCRev 2001.08.37; K. Volk, Gymnasium 108, 2001, 542-3; D. P.<br />

Nelis, JRS 92, 2002, 240-1].<br />

Schmitthenner, Walter (1983): “Die Zeit Vergils. Von der späten Republik zur augusteischen<br />

Monarchie”, Gymnasium 90, 1-16.<br />

Schmitzer, Ulrich (1994): “Turnus und die Danaiden. Mythologische Verstrickung und<br />

personale Verantwortung”, GB 20, 109-26.<br />

Schmoll, Edward A. (1981): “Turnus: A Diachronic Hero”, CB 57, 34-8.<br />

Schneider, Bernd (1982): Vergil. Handschriften und Drucke der Herzog Augustus Bibliothek.<br />

Ausstellung in der Bibliotheca Augusta 5. Oktober 1982 bis 27. März 1983 [mit Beiträgen<br />

von Susanne Netzer und Heinrich Rumphorst, eingeleitet von Bernhard Kytzler].<br />

Ausstellungskataloge der Herzog August Bibliothek 37 (Wolfenbüttel) [Neuheuser, AAHG<br />

41, 1988, 101-3; W. Suerbaum, Gnomon 65, 1984, 208-28].<br />

– (1983): “‘Virgilius pictus’ – Sebastian Brants illustrierte Vergilausgabe von 1502 und ihre<br />

Nachwirkung. Ein Beitrag zur Vergilrezeption im deutschen Humanismus”, Wolfenbütteler<br />

Beiträge 6, 202-62.<br />

Schnepf, Hermann (1959): “Das Herculesabenteuer in Vergils Aeneis (VIII 184f.)”,<br />

Gymnasium 66, 250-68 [V. Pöschl, AAHG 12, 1959, 214].<br />

Schnur, Harry C. (1978): “Again Varium et mutabile semper femina”, CW 72, 103.<br />

Schoder, Raymond V., S. J. (1980): “Vergil’s Human Message”, Thought 55, 65-80.<br />

– (1983): “Vergil’s Vision of Life”, Journal of Ultimate Reality and Meaning 1983, 205-20.<br />

Schönberger, Otto (1993): “Der Sänger beim Gastmahl (Vergil, Aeneis 1,723f.)”, RhM 136,<br />

298-307.<br />

Scholz, Udo W. (1975): “Eine Vergil-Szene im Lichte der Forschung (Aen. 4, 238ff.)”, WJA<br />

1, 125-36.<br />

– (1999): “Drances”, Hermes 127, 455-66.<br />

Schork, R. Joseph (1986): “The Final Simile in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>: Roman and Rutulian Ramparts”,<br />

AJPh 107, 260-70.<br />

– (1996): “Acoustic Intratexts in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 7.122 and 4.408”, CPh 91, 61-2.<br />

Schrijvers, Piet Herman (1995): “Slechte tijden, goede tijden: de Aeneis als feest van het<br />

vertellen”, Lampas 28, 67-81.<br />

97


Schroeder, Frederic M. (2004): “Philodemus: avocatio and the Pathos of Distance in<br />

Lucretius and Vergil” in Armstrong/Fish/Johnston/Skinner (2004), 139-56.<br />

Schubert, Werner (1991): “Zur Sage von Hercules und Cacus bei Vergil (Aen. 8, 184-279)<br />

und Ovid (Fast. 1, 543-586)”, JAC 6, 37-60.<br />

– (1996): “Primusque Machaon. Zu Vergil, Aen. 2, 259-264”, RhM 139, 363-5.<br />

Schuchard, Margret (1984): “Der theatralische Aeneas: Transformationen einer klassischen<br />

Gestalt”, in Zimmermann, Hans-Joachim (1984; ed.): Antike Tradition und Neuere<br />

Philologien. Symposion zu Ehren des 75. Geburtstages von Rudolph Sühnel. SBHeid<br />

Suppl. 1, 1983 (Heidelberg), 57-70.<br />

Schuller, Moritz Heinrich Wladimir (2001): “The Fascinating Temple of Juno in <strong>Aeneid</strong> I”, in<br />

Tylawsky, Elizabeth/Weiss, Charles (2001; edd.): Essays in Honor of Gordon Williams:<br />

Twenty-five Years at Yale (New Haven, Conn.), 249-61<br />

Schwarz, Franz Ferdinand (1983): “Fumat Neptunia Troia. Feuerzeichensprache im zweiten<br />

Buch der Aeneis”, in Händel Paul/Meid, Wolfgang (1983; edd.): Festschrift für Robert<br />

Muth zum 65. Geburtstag am 1. Januar 1981 dargebracht von Freunden und Kollegen.<br />

Innsbrucker Beiträge zur Sprachwissenschaft (Innsbruck), 443-61.<br />

Schweizer, Hans Jörg (1967): Vergil und Italien. Interpretationen zu den italischen Gestalten<br />

der Aeneis (Aarau) [P. T. Eden, Gnomon 41, 1969, 92-3; C. Gnilka, Gymnasium 76, 1969,<br />

119-21; V. Pöschl, AAHG 23, 1969, 12].<br />

Scott, James M. (2004): “The <strong>Aeneid</strong> as a Philosophical Guide: ‘To Turn Arms Against the<br />

Turks’”, Vergilius 50, 63-95.<br />

Scuderi, P. (1978): “Il mito eneico in età augustea. Aspetti filoestruschi e filoellenici”, Aevum<br />

52, 88-99.<br />

Scully, Stephen P. (1988): “Cities in Italy’s Golden Age”, Numen 35, 69-78.<br />

– (2000): “Refining Fire in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 8”, Vergilius 46, 93-113.<br />

– (2003): “Eros and Warfare in Virgil’s ‘<strong>Aeneid</strong>’ and Homer’s ‘Iliad’, in Thibodeau,<br />

Philip/Haskell, Harry (2003; edd.): Being There Together: Essays in Honor of Michael C.<br />

J. Putnam on the Occasion of His Seventieth Birthday (Afton, Minnesota), 181-97.<br />

Sebesta, Judith Lynn (1993/4): “Costume in the Vatican Vergil Codex”, CW 87, 27-33.<br />

Seel, Otto (1965): “Das Strenge und das Zarte: Vergil”, in id. (1965): Weltdichtung Roms.<br />

Zwischen Hellas und Gegenwart (Berlin), 298-338.<br />

– (1969): “Um einen Vergilvers (Aeneis, VI 468)”, in Bibauw, J. (1969; ed.): Hommages à<br />

Marcel Renard I. Collection Latomus 101 (Bruxelles), 677-88 = id., Verschlüsselte<br />

Gegenwart (Stuttgart, 1972), 95-110.<br />

– (1973): “Vergil der Dichter”, Neue Deutsche Hefte 140, 26-62.<br />

Segal, Charles (1965/6): “Aeternum per saecula nomen: The Golden Bough and the Tragedy<br />

of History”, Arion 4, 617-57; 5, 34-72 [V. Pöschl, AAHG 22, 1969, 24-6].<br />

– (1968): “The Hesitation of the Golden Bough: A Reexamination”, Hermes 96, 74-9.<br />

– (1971): “The Song of Iopas in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Hermes 99, 336-49.<br />

– (1973/4): “‘Like Wings and Winged Dream’: A Note on Virgil’s Development”, CJ 69,<br />

97-102.<br />

– (1974): “Vanishing Shades: Virgil and Homeric Repetitions”, Eranos 72, 34-52.<br />

– (1981a): “Art and the Hero: Participation, Detachment, and Narrative Point of View in<br />

<strong>Aeneid</strong> 1”, Arethusa 14, 67-83 = Hardie (1999b), iv, 42-58 = S. Quinn (2000), 387-400.<br />

– (1981b): “Iopas Revisited (Aeneis I 740ff.)”, Emérita 49, 17-25.<br />

– (1984): “Iopas Again”, Emérita 52, 77-82.<br />

– (1990): “Dido’s Hesitation in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 4”, CW 84, 1-12 = S. Quinn (2000), 90-100.<br />

Segena Romas, Bartolomé (1982): “El símil de la épica (Iliada, Odisea, Eneida)”, Emérita 50,<br />

175-97.<br />

Segura Ramos, Bartolomé (1995): “Repetición léxica como abandono y repetición léxica<br />

como recurso estilístico”, Minerva 9, 153-63.<br />

98


Seider, Richard (1976): “Beiträge zur Geschichte und Paläographie der antiken<br />

Vergilhandschriften”, in Görgemanns, Herwig/Schmidt, Ernst A. (1976; edd.): Studien zum<br />

antiken Epos. Beiträge zur klassischen Philologie 72 (Meisenheim am Glan), 129-72.<br />

Sellar, William Young (1877): The Roman Poets of the Augustan Age: Virgil (Oxford).<br />

Senés Rodríguez, Gema (1997): “Consideraciones sobre la caracterisación de Dido en<br />

Virgilio”, AMal 20, 133-47.<br />

Senfter, Reinhard (1979): “Vergil, Aen. 8, 589-91: Konnotationsraum und Funktionalisierung<br />

eines Vergleichs”, MD 2, 1979, 171-4.<br />

Sens, Alexander (1995): “The dementia of Dares: <strong>Aeneid</strong> 5.465-7”, Vergilius 41, 49-54.<br />

Seret-Dereau, Claude-Brigitte (2001): “Le personnage d’Énée dans la littérature française”,<br />

BAGB 2001, 195-238.<br />

Serpa, Franco (1987): Il punto su Virgilio. Universale Laterza 712 (Roma/Bari) [F. Della<br />

Corte, Maia 40, 1988, 214-7; N. Horsfall, CR 38, 1988, 411; G. Polara, BStudLat 18, 1988,<br />

127-8; S. J. Harrison, JRS 79, 1989, 204-5; H. Bardon, Latomus 49, 1990, 177-8; J.-P.<br />

Brisson, Latomus 54, 1995, 891-2].<br />

Setaioli, Aldo (1983): “Lettura del settimo libro dell’Eneide”, in Gigante (1983), 233-67.<br />

– (1993): “Il libro VI dell’Eneide”, in Amato, Biagio (1993; ed.): Cultura e lingue classiche,<br />

3: 3 o convegno di aggiornamente e di didattica: Palermo, 29 ottobre-1 novembre 1989<br />

(Roma), 323-34.<br />

– (1995): “Ulisse nell’Eneide”, in Rossi Cittadini, M. (1995; ed.): Presenze classiche nelle<br />

letterature occidentali. Il mito dall’età antica all’età moderna e contemporanea (Perugia),<br />

167-86.<br />

– (1997a): “Évidence et évidenciation: le message de Virgile et son explicitation par Servius<br />

(ad Æneidem 6, 703)”, in Lévy, Carlos/Pernot, Laurent (1997; edd.): Dire l’évidence<br />

(philosophie et rhétorique antiques) (Paris/Montréal), 59-73.<br />

– (1997b): “Palinuro: genesi di un personaggio poetico”, BStudLat 27, 56-81.<br />

– (1998) Si tantus amor... Studi virgiliani. Testi e manuali per l’insegnamento universitario<br />

del latino 53 (Bologna) [G. Danesi Marioni, QCTC 12, 1994, 160-1; A. Minarini, BStudLat<br />

29, 1999, 642-6; A. Novara, REL 77, 1999, 343-4; E. Otón Sobrino, CFC(L) 16, 1999,<br />

498-9; L. Parra García, EClás 42, 175-7; C. Mordeglia, Maia 53, 2001, 266-8].<br />

Sguazzini, C. (2003): “Il complesso dialogo tra umano e divino, tra menzogna e realtà: studio<br />

su una similitudine (Virgilio, Eneide, 2, 223-24)”, Università degli Studi di Torino.<br />

Quaderni del dipartimento di filologia, linguistica e tradizione classica ‘Augusto Rostagni’<br />

n. s. 2, 133-48.<br />

Shackleton Bailey, D. R. (1986): “Tu Marcellus eris”, HSPh 90, 199-205.<br />

Shea, John (1977): “Lucretius, Lightning, and Lipari”, CPh 72, 136-8.<br />

Shiffman, Mark G. (2001): “A Platonic Reading of Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Modern Age 43, 211-21.<br />

Sider, David (1988): “Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong> and Hesiod’s Theogony”, Vergilius 34, 15-24.<br />

Sienkewicz, Thomas J. (1991): The Classical Epic: An Annotated Bibliography. The Magill<br />

Bibliographies (Pasadena, CA/Englewood Cliffs, NJ) [Ascher, CW 86, 1992/3, 69-70].<br />

Simon, Erika (1982): “Vergil und die Bildkunst”, Maia 34, 203-17.<br />

Simonetti Abbolito, Giuseppina (1983): “Sensi diversi del termine fama in Virgilio”, Orpheus<br />

4, 364-9.<br />

– (1987): “Effetti fonici in Virgilio”, Orpheus 8, 235-63.<br />

Singerman, Jerome E. (1986): Under Clouds of Poesy: Poetry and Truth in French and<br />

English Reworkings of the <strong>Aeneid</strong>, 1160-1513 (New York/London).<br />

Sini, Francesco (1991): ‘Bellum nefandum’: Virgilio e il problema del ‘diritto internazionale<br />

antico’. Seminario di Diritto Romano, Università degli Studi di Sassari, Dipartimento di<br />

scienze giuridiche 7 (Sassari) [N. Scivoletto, GIF 49, 1997, 138-9].<br />

Sirago, Vito A. (1994): “Cartagine nella descrizione di Virgilio”, in Mastino, Attilio/Ruggeri,<br />

Paola (1994; edd.): L’Africa romana. Atti del X Convegno di studio: Oristano, 11-13<br />

99


dicembre 1992. Pubblicazioni del Dipartimento di Storia dell’Università degli Studi di<br />

Sassari 25 (Sassari), ii, 627-34.<br />

Skinner, Marilyn B. (1983): “The Last Encounter of Dido and Aeneas. Aen. 6.450-476”,<br />

Vergilius 29, 12-18 = S. Quinn (2000), 101-7.<br />

– (2004): “Carmen inane: Philodemus’ Aesthetics and Vergil’s Artistic Vision”, in<br />

Armstrong/Fish/Johnston/Skinner (2004), 231-44.<br />

Sklenář, Robert John (1990): “The Death of Priam: ‘<strong>Aeneid</strong>’ 2.506-558”, Hermes 118, 67-75.<br />

Skulsky, Susan (1985): “Invitus, regina …: Aeneas and the Love of Rome”, AJPh 106, 447-<br />

55.<br />

– (1987): “The Sibyl’s Rage and the Marpessan Rock”, AJPh 108, 56-80.<br />

Skutsch, Otto (1981): “Virgil, A. 5.320”, LCM 6, 217.<br />

– (1982): “Catullus 1.9 and Vergil, Aen. 6.394”, LCM 7, 90.<br />

– (1985): “Virgil, <strong>Aeneid</strong> 12.790”, LCM 10, 32.<br />

Slavitt, David (1991): Virgil. Hermes Books (New Haven, Conn.) [J. E. Rexine, Vergilius 38,<br />

1992, 147-8; D. Fowler, G&R 40, 1993, 86-7; N. Horsfall, CR 43, 1993, 171-2; C.<br />

Nappa/S. C. Smith, CJ 88, 1992/3, 292-5; S. F. Wiltshire, CW 86, 1992/3, 523-4; P. L.<br />

Smith, EMC 38, 1994, 84-7].<br />

Small, Carolinne Dermot (1986): “Virgil, <strong>Aeneid</strong> 7. 620-2”, CQ 36, 278-80.<br />

Smets, M. (1977): “Wanneer Vergilius Homerus imiteert”, Kleio 7, 173-6.<br />

Smith, Derek R. (2000): “Nero’s Equestrian Interpretation of Virgil (5.545-605)”, AncW 31,<br />

183-96.<br />

Smith, P. L. (1982): “Enclitic Rhythm in the <strong>Vergilian</strong> Hexameter”, Phoenix 36, 124-43.<br />

Smith, Riggs Alden (1993): “A Lock, and a Promise: Myth and Allusion in Aeneas’ Farewell<br />

to Dido in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 6”, Phoenix 47, 305-12.<br />

– (1997): Poetic Allusion and Poetic Embrace in Ovid and Virgil (Ann Arbor) [A. Keith,<br />

Vergilius 44, 1998, 141-5; Y. Nadeau, BMCRev 98.5.27; M. Gale, G&R 46, 1999, 85-6;<br />

D. Nelis, JRS 89, 1999, 240-1; S. L. James, BMCRev 1999.03.14; B. Gibson, CR 50, 2000,<br />

602-3; S. J. Harrison, CW 94, 2001, 197-9].<br />

– (2002/3): “Dido as Vatic Diva: A New Voice for the Persona of the Lost Lover”, CJ 98,<br />

433-6.<br />

Smith, Rebekah M. (1999): Deception and Sacrifice in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 2.1-249”, AJPh 120, 503-23.<br />

– (2000/1): “<strong>Aeneid</strong> 10.515: A Flash of Vision”, CW 94, 47-52.<br />

Smith, Richard Upsher (2000): “The Pythagorean Letter and Virgil’s Golden Bough”,<br />

Dionysius n. s. 18, 7-24.<br />

Smith, Stephen C. (1999): “Remembering the Enemy: Narrative, Focalization, and Vergil’s<br />

Portrait of Achilles”, TAPhA 129, 225-62.<br />

Smolenaars, Johannes Jacobus Louis (1993): “De dood van Pallas en van Turnus in Vergilius’<br />

Aeneis (X en XII): de sturende invloed van het Homerische model”, Lampas 26, 332-55.<br />

– (1995): “Schrijvers en intertextualiteit”, Lampas 28, 176-84.<br />

– (1999): “Landschapen poezie: Vergilius Aeneis 6, 1-242”, Lampas 32, 179-97.<br />

– (2002): “‘Troje’ in Vergilius’ Aeneis. De constructie van de Trojaanse herkomst van het<br />

imperium romanum”, Hermeneus 74, 299-311.<br />

– (2004a): “A Disturbing Scene from the Marriage of Venus and Vulcan: <strong>Aeneid</strong> 8.370-415”,<br />

Vergilius 50, 96-107.<br />

– (2004b): “Een verontrustende scène uit het huwelijk van Venus en Vulcanus: Vergilius<br />

Aen. 8.370-415”, Lampas 37, 242-9.<br />

Soave, Cristina (1987): “Osservazioni sul linguaggio del libro I dell’Eneide, I & II”, CCC 8,<br />

17-37. 171-198.<br />

Soler Merenciano, Alice (1998): “En torno a la psicología de Dido”, in IX Congreso español<br />

de estudios clásicos: Madrid 27 al 30 de septiembre de 1995. 3, Lingüistica latina<br />

(Madrid), 187-91<br />

100


Solmsen, Friedrich (1972): “The World of the Dead in Book 6 of the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, CPh 67, 31-41<br />

= S. J. Harrison (1990b), 208-23.<br />

– (1986): “Aeneas Founded Rome with Odysseus”, HSPh 90, 93-110.<br />

Somville, P. (2004): “Virgile et la source grecque. Le rôle des quatre éléments dans le sixième<br />

livre de l’Énéide”, in Capdeville, Gérard (ed.): L’eau et le feu dans les religions antiques.<br />

Actes du premier colloque international d’histoire des religions organisé par l’École<br />

Doctorale Les Mondes de l’Antiquité. Paris, 18-20 mai 1995, Université de Paris IV-<br />

Sorbonne, École Normale Supérieure. De l’archéologie à l’histoire (Paris), 149-54.<br />

Spaltenstein, F. (1991): “Deux lectures antiques de Virgile (à propos de vers 1, 42 and 8, 731<br />

de l’Énéide)”, Études de lettres 1991, 27-41.<br />

Sparrow, John (1931): Half-lines and Repetitions in Virgil (Oxford; repr. New York/London,<br />

1977).<br />

Spence, Sarah (1988): Rhetorics of Reason and Desire. Vergil, Augustine, and the<br />

Troubadours (Ithaca, NY) [C. Kallendorf, Helios 18, 1991, 77-8].<br />

– (1991): “Cinching the Text: The Danaids and the End of the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Vergilius 37, 11-9.<br />

– (1999a): “The Polyvalence of Pallas in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Arethusa 32, 149-63.<br />

– (1999b): “Varium et mutabile: Voices of Authority in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 4”, in Perkell (1999a), 80-95.<br />

– (2001a): “Pallas/Athena in and out of the <strong>Aeneid</strong>“, in Deacy, Susan/Villing, Alexandra<br />

(2001; edd.): Athena and the Classical World (Leiden, etc.), 331-47.<br />

– (2001b; ed.): Poets and Critics Read Vergil (New Haven) [Keane, CML 21, 2001, 121-7;<br />

R. Thomas, BMCRev 2001.12.22; R. Hexter, CO 79, 2002, 171; D. Hill, G&R 49, 2002,<br />

114-5; P. Toohey, Phoenix 57, 2003, 168-71].<br />

– (2002a): “Meta-textuality: The Boat-race as Turning Point in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 5, NECJ 29, 69-81.<br />

– (2002b): Pietas and Furor: Motivational Forces in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, in Anderson/Quartarone<br />

(2002), 46-52.<br />

Speranza, F. (1981): “Palinuro”, in Paratore (1981a), 133-6.<br />

Springer, Carl P. E. (1987): “The Last Line of the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, CJ 82, 310-13.<br />

Squillante Saccone, Marisa (1978): “Appunti sull’uso dell’epiteto nell’Eneide di Virgilio”,<br />

BStudLat 8, 3-27.<br />

– (1981): “Intorno ad alcuni recenti studi sul personaggio nell’Eneide di Virgilio”, BStudLat<br />

11, 1981, 42-52.<br />

– (1985): Le Interpretationes <strong>Vergilian</strong>ae di Tiberio Claudio Donato (Napoli).<br />

Stabryła, Stanisław (1970): Latin Tragedy in Virgil’s Poetry. Polska Akademia Nauk-Oddzial<br />

w Krkowie. Prace Komisij Filologii Klasycznej 10 (Wrocław/Warszawa/Krakow) [P. T.<br />

Eden, Gnomon 45, 1973, 617-9].<br />

Stärk, Ekkehard (1998): Antrum Sibyllae Cumanae und Campi Elysii. Zwei vergilische Lokale<br />

in den Phlegräischen Feldern. Abhandlungen der Sächsischen Akademie der<br />

Wissenschaften zu Leipzig. Philologisch-Historische Klasse 75.3 (Stuttgart) [L. Voit,<br />

Gymnasium 104, 1997, 183-5; R. Chevallier, REL 76, 1998, 408-9; K. Zelzer, WS 112,<br />

1999, 254-6].<br />

Stahl, Hans-Peter (1981): “Aeneas – an ‘Unheroic’ Hero?”, Arethusa 14, 157-86.<br />

– (1990): “The Death of Turnus: Augustan Vergil and the Political Rival”, in Raaflaub, Kurt<br />

A./Toher, M. (1990; edd.): Between Republic and Empire: Interpretations of Augustus and<br />

His Principate (Berkeley, etc.), 174-211.<br />

– (1998a): “Political Stop-overs on a Mythological Travel Route: from Battling Harpies to<br />

the Battle of Actium: <strong>Aeneid</strong> 3.268-93”, in Stahl (1998b), 37-84.<br />

– (1998b; ed.): Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>: Augustan Epic and Political Context (London) [J. Farrell,<br />

Vergilius, 44, 1998, 115-25; M. Gale, G&R 46, 1999, 85; A. Novara, REL 77, 1999, 341-3;<br />

U. Schmitzer, Gymnasium 107, 2000, 542-4; A. M. Bowie, JRS 91, 2001, 238-9; A. Laird,<br />

CR 53, 2003, 100-2].<br />

101


– (1999): “Griechenhetze in Vergils Aeneis: Roms Rache für Troja”, in Vogt-Spira, Gregor,<br />

Rommel, Bettina (edd.): Rezeption und Identität. Die kulturelle Auseinandersetzung Roms<br />

mit Griechenland als europäisches Paradigma(Stuttgart), 249-73.<br />

Staley, Gregory A. (1990): “Aeneas’ First Act: 1.180-194”, CW 84, 25-38 = S. Quinn (2000),<br />

52-64.<br />

– (2002): “Vergil’s Daedalus”, CO 79, 137-43.<br />

Stanford, William B. ( 2 1963): The Ulysses Theme: A Study in the Adaptability of a<br />

Traditional Hero (Oxford).<br />

Starks, John H. (1998/9): “Fides Aeneia: The Transference of Punic Stereotypes in the<br />

<strong>Aeneid</strong>”, CJ 94, 255-83.<br />

Starr, Raymond J. (1991): “The Law and Tiberius’ Claudius Donatus’ Interpretationes<br />

<strong>Vergilian</strong>ae”, Vergilius 37, 3-10.<br />

– (1992): “Silvia’s Deer (Vergil, <strong>Aeneid</strong> 7.479-502): Game Parks and Roman Law”, AJPh<br />

113, 435-9.<br />

– (1997): “Aeneas as the Flamen Dialis?: Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong> and the Servian Exegetical<br />

Tradition”, Vergilius 43, 63-70.<br />

– (2003): “Aeneas the Rhetorician: <strong>Aeneid</strong> IV, 279-295”, Latomus 62, 36-46.<br />

Steiner, Hans Rudolf (1952): Der Traum in der Aeneis. Noctes Romanae 5 (Bern) [V. Pöschl,<br />

AAHG 12, 1959, 213].<br />

Steinkühler, Martina (1989): Macht und Ohnmacht der Götter im Spiegel ihrer Reden.<br />

Wissenschaftliche Beiträge aus europäischen Hochschulen 5.3 (Ammersbek bei Hamburg).<br />

Stephens, Viola G. (1990): “Like a Wolf on the Fold: Animal Imagery in Vergil”, ICS 15,<br />

107-30.<br />

Stevenson, Thomas B. (1983): Miniature Decoration in the Vatican Virgil: A Study in Late<br />

Antique Iconography (Tübingen) [B. Schneider, Gnomon 57, 1985, 205-8].<br />

Stief, Angela (1986): Die Aeneisillustrationen von Girodet-Trioson. Künstlerische und<br />

literarische Rezeption von Vergils Epos in Frankreich um 1800. Europäische<br />

Hochschulschriften, Reihe 28: Kunstgeschichte, 68 (Bern, etc.).<br />

Stocker, Arthur F. (1980): “Vergil in the Service of Augustus”, Vergilius 26, 1-9.<br />

Stoffelen, Veerle (1994): “Vergil’s Circe: Sources for a Sorceress”, AC 63, 121-35.<br />

Stok, Fabio (1983): “Iapyx Iasides”, in Atti del Convegno vergiliano di Brindisi (1983), 191-<br />

8.<br />

– (1988): Percorsi dell’esegesi virgiliana. Due ricerche sull’Eneide. Testi e studi di cultura<br />

classica 2 (Pisa) [C. Formicola, Vichiana 18, 1989, 383-8; N. Horsfall, RFIC 117, 1989,<br />

206-9; Pugliarello, CCC 10, 1989, 505-6; A. Perelli, GIF 41, 1989, 317-26; C. M. N.<br />

Abranches, Euphrosyne 18, 1990, 484-6; P. Tordeur, AC 59, 1990, 360; J. Velaza,<br />

Faventia 12/3, 1990/91, 495-6; R. Perrelli, Orpheus 12, 1991, 603-5].<br />

– (1989): “Le guance de Turno”, in Seminari sassaresi. Pubblicazioni di Sandalion 4<br />

(Sassari), 29-52.<br />

– (1999): “L’Eneide nordica di Dudone di San Quintino”, IJCT 6, 171-84.<br />

Strand, Mark (2001): “Some Observations on <strong>Aeneid</strong> Book VI, in Spence (2001b), 64-75.<br />

Strasburger, Hermann (1983): “Vergil und Augustus”, Gymnasium 90, 41-76.<br />

Stroh, Wilfried (1999): <strong>Aeneid</strong>os liber IV – Vergils Didobuch. Lateinisch gesprochen von –.<br />

‘Wired for Books’ Ohio University (Ohio) [CD-ROM].<br />

Stroppini, Gianfranco (1996): “L’harmonie cosmique virgilienne et l’œuvre d’Auguste”, RPL<br />

19, 65-95.<br />

– (1997): “Amour, dialogue et unité dans l’œuvre de Virgile (Bucoliques, Géorgiques,<br />

Eneide I-IV)”, LEC 65, 97-115.<br />

– (2003): L’amour dans les livres I-IV de l’Énéide de Virgile ou Didon et la mauvaise<br />

composante de l’âme. Préface de P. Heuzé. Ouverture philosophique (Paris) [B. Clarot,<br />

LEC 71, 2004, 397].<br />

102


Stubbs, H. W. (1997): “Laocoon Again”, Vergilius 43, 3-18.<br />

– (1998a): “In Defense of the Troughs: A Study in <strong>Aeneid</strong> III and V”, Vergilius 44, 66-84.<br />

– (1998b): “Vergil’s Harpies: A Study in <strong>Aeneid</strong> III (with an Addendum on Lycophron,<br />

Alexandra 1250-2)”, Vergilius 44, 3-12.<br />

Suerbaum, Werner (1967): “Aeneas zwischen Troja und Rom. Zur Funktion der Genealogie<br />

und der Ethnographie in Vergils Aeneis”, Poetica 1, 176-204 = Suerbaum (1993a), 194-<br />

222 [V. Pöschl, AAHG 23, 1969, 11-12].<br />

– (1979): “Zur Problematik der Rezeption eines klassischen Werkes in der Forschung und im<br />

Gymnasialunterricht”, in Neukam, Peter (1979; ed.): Erbe, das nicht veraltet. Dialog<br />

Schule – Wissenschaft. Klassische Sprachen und Literaturen 11 (München), 97-141<br />

[~1981b].<br />

– (1980a): “Hundert Jahre Vergil-Forschung: Eine systematische Arbeitsbibliographie mit<br />

besonderer Berücksichtigung der Aeneis”, ANRW ii 31.1, 1-358; ii 31.2, 1359-99.<br />

– (1980b): “Die objektiv und die subjektiv erzählende Göttin. Der Bericht Dianas von der<br />

Jugend Camillas (Verg. Aen. XI 535-586) und die Erzählung der Venus von Hippomenes<br />

und Atalanta (Ovid met. 10, 560-707)”, WJA 6a, 139-60 = Suerbaum (1993a), 287-308.<br />

– (1981a): “Gedanken zur modernen Aeneis-Forschung”, AU 24.5, 67-103 = Suerbaum<br />

(1993a), 309-45 = Riflessioni in margine alla moderna critica dell’Eneide (Trieste, 1985)<br />

[G. Senis, Maia 38, 1986, 278].<br />

– (1981b): Vergils Aeneis. Beiträge zu ihrer Rezeption in Geschichte und Gegenwart.<br />

Auxilia 3 (Bamberg) [B. Kytzler, Gnomon 55, 1983, 164-6; V. Buchheit, Gymnasium 91,<br />

1984, 172-4].<br />

– (1983a): “Die Aeneis als Schultext”, Gymnasium 90, 258-72.<br />

– (1983b): “Ein neuer Aeneis-Zyklus: Darkness Visible”, Anregung 29, 1-25 = Suerbaum<br />

(1993a), 346-70.<br />

– (1984a): “Publikationen zu Vergilausstellungen”, Gnomon 65, 208-28.<br />

– (1984b): “Ut poesis pictura? Bilder zum Titel, zum Anfang und zum Schluß von Vergils<br />

Aeneis, in Neukam, Peter (1984; ed): Tradition und Rezeption. Dialog Schule –<br />

Wissenschaft. Klassische Sprachen und Literaturen 18 (München), 35-55.<br />

– (1984c): “Vergil und der Friede des Augustus“, in Böhme, Wolfgang (1984; ed.): ‚Der du<br />

von dem Himmel bist’. Über Friedensgedichte. Herrenalber Texte 53 (Karlsruhe), 26-44 =<br />

Suerbaum (1993a), 371-91.<br />

– (1985a): “ … dum conderet urbem – inter maria duo. Eine weitere Vorbedingung für die<br />

Gründung der Stadt durch Aeneas in der Origo gentis Romanae”, in id./Maier, Friedrich<br />

(edd.): Festschrift für Franz Egermann (München), 89-104 ~ Suerbaum (1988).<br />

– (1985b): “‘Und der Stern zog ihnen voraus’. Zum Motiv der göttlichen Leitung der Fahrt<br />

des Aeneas bei Vergil und in der vorvergilischen Tradition“, in Maier,<br />

Friedrich/Suerbaum, Werner (1985; ed.): Et scholae et vitae. Humanistische Beiträge zur<br />

Aktualität der Antike für Karl Bayer zu seinem 65. Geburtstag (München), 22-32 =<br />

Suerbaum (1993a), 392-402.<br />

– (1986a): “Das Ille-ego-Proömium der Aeneis und Halbverse Vergils als Schutz vor Plagiat.<br />

Zu einer neuen karolingischen Paraphrase der Servius-Vita Vergils”, in: Kalcyk,<br />

Hansjörg/Gullath, Brigitte/Graeber, Andreas (1986; edd.): Studien zur alten Geschichte.<br />

Siegfried Lauffer zum 70. Geburtstag am 4. August 1981 dargebracht von Freunden,<br />

Kollegen und Schülern. 3 voll. Historica 2 (Roma), 969-988.<br />

– (1986b): “Die Suche nach der antiqua mater in der vorvergilischen Annalistik: Die<br />

Irrfahrten des Aeneas bei Cassius Hemina, in Altheim-Stiehl, Ruth/Rosenbach, Manfred<br />

(1986; edd.): Beiträge zur altitalischen Geistesgeschichte. Festschrift Gerhard Radke zum<br />

18. Februar 1984 (Münster), 269-97.<br />

– (1987a): “Muse (Musae)”, in EV 3, 625-41 = “Musae (bei Vergil)”, in Suerbaum (1993a),<br />

432-57.<br />

103


– (1987b): “Vergil Nineteen Eighty-Four: Anstöße der ‘Aeneis’-Interpretation”, in<br />

Glücklich, H.-J. (1987; ed.): Lateinische Literatur, heute wirkend. Kleine Vandenhoeck-<br />

Reihe 1530 (Göttingen), ii, 81-109 = Suerbaum (1993a), 403-31.<br />

– (1988): “Zwei neue Punkte auf der Karte der Aeneas-Sage: Lavinium inter maria duo”, in<br />

Boldrini, Sandro [et al.] (1988; edd): Filologia e forme letterarie. Studi offerti a Francesco<br />

Della Corte (Urbino), ii, 487-506 ~ Suerbaum (1985a).<br />

– (1992): “Aeneis picturis narrata – Aeneis versibus picta. Semiotische Überlegungen zu<br />

Vergil-Illustrationen oder Visuelles Erzählen. Buchillustrationen zu Vergils Aeneis”, SIFC<br />

10, 271-334.<br />

– (1993a): “Der Aeneas Vergils – Mann zwischen Vergangenheit und Zukunft”, Gymnasium<br />

100, 419-47.<br />

– (1993b): In Klios und Kalliopes Diensten. Kleine Schriften. Herausgegeben von Döpp,<br />

Siegmar und Leidl, Christoph (Bamberg).<br />

– (1995): “Ein heidnischer Klassiker als ‘Dünger’ christlicher Bildung. Quellen und<br />

Bedeutung des Vergil-Bildes bei Ermenrich von Ellwangen (um 850)”, in Wacht, Manfred<br />

(1995; ed.): Panchaia. Festschrift für Klaus Thraede. Jahrbuch für Antike und<br />

Christentum. Ergänzungsband 22 (Münster), 238-50.<br />

– (1998a): “Odyssee für Rom: Vergils ‘Aeneis’”, Zeitschrift für Kultur- und<br />

Bildungswissenschaften 6, 9-26.<br />

– (1998b): “Si fata paterentur. Gedanken an alternatives Handeln in Vergils Aeneis”, in<br />

Radke, Anna Elissa (1998; ed.): Candide Iudex. Beiträge zur augusteischen Dichtung.<br />

Festschrift für Walter Wimmel zum 75. Geburtstag (Stuttgart), 353-74.<br />

– (1998c; ed.): Vergil visuell. Beihefte zur Münchner Vergil-Ausstellung 1998. 5 voll.<br />

(München).<br />

– (1999): Vergils Aeneis. Epos zwischen Geschichte und Gegenwart. Universal-Bibliothek<br />

17618 (Stuttgart) [A. Kohl, Anregung 46, 2000, 124-5; P. Tordeur, AC 70, 2001, 305; F.<br />

Schaffenrath, AAHG 55, 2002, 119-120].<br />

– (2000): “Vergils Aeneis: die Erschließung eines geistigen Raums”, in Hose, Martin (2000;<br />

ed.): Meisterwerke der antiken Literatur. Von Homer bis Boethius (München), 103-23.<br />

Sullivan, Francis A. (1959): “The Spiritual Itinerary of Virgil’s Aeneas”, AJPh 80, 150-61 [V.<br />

Pöschl, AAHG 22, 1969, 16-7].<br />

Sullivan, John Patrick (1992): “Dido and the Representation of Women in Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>”,<br />

in Wilhelm/Jones (1992), 64-73.<br />

Svensson, L.-H. (2000): “<strong>Aeneid</strong>ens slut som intertext”, in Jonsson, Arne/Piltz, Anders (2000;<br />

edd.): Sprekets spelingar. Festskrift till Birer Bergh (Anegelholm), 177-86.<br />

Swanepoel, J. (1995): “Infelix Dido: Vergil and the Notion of the Tragic”, Akroterion 40, 30-<br />

46.<br />

Swiatala, W. J. (1981): “A Comparison of Alliteration in Vergil, Horace, and Propertius”, CB<br />

67, 59-61.<br />

Syed, Yasmin (2004): Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong> and the Roman Self: Subject and Nation in Literary<br />

Discourse (Ann Arbor) [D. Lowe, BMCRev 2005.08.25].<br />

Szádecky-Kardoss, Sámuel (1984): “Picti Agathyrsi (Vergilius, Aeneis, 4, 146)”, in Tar<br />

1984b, 119-25.<br />

Taegert, Werner (1982; Hrsg.): Vergil 2000 Jahre. Rezeption in Literatur, Musik und Kunst.<br />

Ausstellung der Universitätsbibliothek Bamberg und der Staatsbibliothek Bamberg 1982-<br />

1983 (Bamberg) [W. Suerbaum, Gnomon 56, 1984, 208-28].<br />

Taliercio, A. (1985): “Alcuni aspetti dell’etiologia in età augustea”, RCCM 27, 13-21.<br />

Tar, Ibolya (1983): “Der Mythos bei Vergil”, LF 106, 7-12.<br />

– (1984a): “Der Pax-Gedanke in Vergils Aeneis”, in Tar 1984b, 137-44.<br />

104


– (1984b; ed.): Symposium <strong>Vergilian</strong>um. Acta Universitatis de Attila Jozsef nominatae 25<br />

(Szeged) [Delarue, RPh 60, 1986, 322-3].<br />

Tarleton, N. (1989): “Pastoralem praefixa cuspide myrtum (<strong>Aeneid</strong> 7.817)”, CQ 39, 267-70.<br />

Tarrant, Richard J. (1982): “Aeneas and the Gates of Sleep”, CPh 77, 51-5.<br />

– (1997a): “Aspects of Virgil’s Reception in Antiquity”, in Martindale (1997a), 56-72.<br />

– (1997b): “Poetry and Power: Virgil’s Poetry in Contemporary Context”, in Martindale<br />

(1997a), 169-87.<br />

– (1998): “Parenthetically Speaking (in Virgil and Other Poets)”, in Knox, Peter/Foss, Clive<br />

(1998; edd.): Style and Tradition: Studies in Honor of Wendell Clausen. Beiträge zur<br />

Altertumskunde 92 (Stuttgart und Leipzig), 141-57.<br />

Tartari Chersoni, Marinella (2001): “More parentum (Catull. 101, 7; Verg. Aen. VI 223)“,<br />

Maia 53, 21-5.<br />

Tatum, James (1984): “Allusion and Interpretation in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 6.440-76”, AJPh 105, 434-52.<br />

Ternes, Charles-Marie (1992): “From Vergil to Ausonius: Poets on World-Politics”, in<br />

Wilhelm/Jones (1992), 392-407.<br />

Thaniel, G. (1976): “Nodum informis leti”, AClass 19, 75-81.<br />

Theodorakopoulos, Elena (1997): “Closure: The Book of Virgil”, in Martindale (1997a), 155-<br />

65.<br />

Thill, Andrée (1980): “Hector dans l’Énéide ou la succession homérique”, BAGB 1980, 36-<br />

48.<br />

Thomas, Joël (1981): Structures de l’imaginaire dans l’Éneide. Collection d’études anciennes<br />

(Paris) [H. Bardon, Latomus 41, 1982, 865-7; I. LeM. DuQuesnay, G&R 29, 1982, 201; J.<br />

Perret, REL 60, 1982, 414-6; N. Fick, RBPh 61, 1983, 168-71; G. Radke, Gymnasium 90,<br />

1983, 312-3; P. Tordeur, AC 52, 1983, 372-3; L. Zurli, GIF 35, 1983, 251-3; de Carvalho,<br />

Euphrosyne 12, 1983/4, 309-11; A. Traina, RFIC 112, 1984, 244-50; V. Pöschl, Gnomon<br />

57, 1985, 229-34].<br />

– (1983/4): “Étude de quelques images de l’Énéide dans leurs rapports avec une symbolique<br />

générale”, Euphrosyne 12, 131-54.<br />

– (1984): “Voyage initiatique et quête de l’absolu dans l’Énéide”, Pallas 31, 41-61. 189-90.<br />

– (1985): “Personnalités féminines et quête initiatique dans l’Énéide”, Latomus 44, 546-60.<br />

– (1986): Le dépassement du quotidien dans l’Énéide, les Métamorphoses d’Apulée et le<br />

Satiricon. Essai sur trois univers imaginaires. Collection d’Études anciennes (Paris) [W.<br />

Kißel, Gnomon 61, 1989, 742-4].<br />

– (1987): “L’espace du héros ou les destins croisés”, Eranos-Jb 56, 1987, 133-77.<br />

– (1988): “Épopée et initiation. Le sens du voyage et le “tissage” de l’espace-temps du héros<br />

dans l’Énéide”, L’imaginaire de l’espace et du temps chez les Latin. Cahiers de l’Univ. de<br />

Perpignan 5 (Perpignan), 37-74.<br />

– (1989a): “De l’ordalie à l’initiation. Le voyage d’Énée”, Latomus 48, 36-44.<br />

– (1989b): “L’Énéide et le ‘Rêve éveillé’ de R. Desoille. Épopée initiatique et<br />

psychothérapie”, Euphrosyne 17, 245-54 = L’Eneide e il ‘sogno ad occhi aperti’ di R.<br />

Desoille: epopea iniziatica e psicoterapia”, L’immaginale 10, 1994, 91-9.<br />

– (1991): “Le sens symbolique de la bataille d’Actium (Énéide VIII, 671-728)”, Euphrosyne<br />

19, 303-8.<br />

– (1992a): “Les deux lauriers de l’Énéide”, in id. (1992; ed.): Les imaginaires des Latins.<br />

Actes du Colloque international de Perpignan (12-13-14 novembre 1991). Coll. Études<br />

Perpignan (Perpignan), 49-60.<br />

– (1992b): “L’Énéide, récit initiatique”, in Moreau, Alain (1992; ed.): L’initiation. Actes du<br />

Colloque international de Montpellier, 11-14 avril 1991 (Montpellier), i, 251-60.<br />

– (1992c): “L’espace de l’Énéide ou la quête du sens”, BAGB 1992, 252-61.<br />

– (1993): “La violence transformée”, Europe (Paris) 71. 765-6, 54-61.<br />

105


– (1994a): “De l’Énéide au Satiricon et à la Pharsale ou La modification des chemins”,<br />

Uranie 4, 79-94.<br />

– (1994b): “Rom oder die verwandelte Gewalt. Der Mythos der Regeneration bei den<br />

Römern”, in Schabert, Tilo/Hornung, Erik (1994; edd.): Strukturen des Chaos. Eranos N.<br />

F. 2 (München), 49-87<br />

– (1994c): “Virgile et l’imaginaire du pouvoir”, in Balland, André/Dubois, Claude-Gilbert<br />

(1994; edd.): Imperium Romanum: images romaines du pouvoir. Eidôlon 43 (Bordeaux),<br />

41-54.<br />

– (1995): “À propos du symbolisme zodiacal de l’Énéide”, Latomus 54, 86-91.<br />

– (1999): “La truie blanche et les trente gorets dans l’Énéide de Virgile”, in Walter, Philippe<br />

(1999; ed.): Mythologie du porc. Actes du Colloque de Saint-Antoine l’Abbaye (Isère), 4 et<br />

5 avril 1998 (Grenoble), 51-72.<br />

– (2002): “La culpabilité dans l’Énéide”, in Defosse, Pol (2002; ed.): Hommages à Carl<br />

Deroux. I: Poésie. Collection Latomus 266 (Bruxelles), 464-72.<br />

– /Gallais, Pierre (1989): “L’Arbre et la Forêt dans l’Énéide et l’Énéas: de la psyché antique<br />

à la psyché médiévale”, Prisma 5, 17-46. 157-84.<br />

Thomas, Richard F. (1982): Lands and Peoples in Roman Poetry: The Ethnographical<br />

Tradition. Proceedings of the Cambridge Philological <strong>Society</strong>. Supplementary Volume 7<br />

(Cambridge) [A. M. Tupet, Gnomon 55, 1983, 652-4; N. Horsfall, CR 34, 1984, 133-4; F.<br />

Ahl, CPh 80, 1985, 186-9; H. B. Evans, CJ 80, 1985, 265-7; A. Polaček, Gymnasium 92,<br />

1985, 246-7; P. H. Schrijvers, Mnemosyne 40, 1987, 206-9].<br />

– (1983): “Virgil’s Ekphrastic Centerpieces”, HSPh 87, 175-84 = Hardie (1999b), i, 27-36.<br />

– (1986): “From recusatio to Commitment: The Evolution of the <strong>Vergilian</strong> Program”, PLLS<br />

6, 61-73 = Thomas 1999, 101-113.<br />

– (1988): “Tree Violation and Ambivalence in Virgil”, TAPhA 118, 261-73.<br />

– (1990): “Past and Future in Classical Philology”, CLS 27, 66-74.<br />

– (1991): “Furor and Furiae in Virgil”, AJPh 112, 261.<br />

– (1992): „The Old Man Revisited: Memory, Reference and Genre in Virg., Georg. 4, 116-<br />

48“, MD 29, 35-70 = Thomas 1999, 173-205.<br />

– (1998): “The Isolation of Turnus: <strong>Aeneid</strong>, Book 12”, in Stahl (1998b), 271-302.<br />

– (1999): Reading Virgil and His Texts: Studies in Intertextuality (Ann Arbor) [M. Gale,<br />

G&R 47, 2000, 242; D. Meban, BMCRev 2000.08.30; S. Casali, JRS 91, 2001, 239-40; A.<br />

Zissos, CR 51, 2001, 251-3; F. Cairns, CJ 97, 2001/2, 86-9; W. Briggs, Phoenix 56, 2002,<br />

166-8; E. A. Schmidt, Gnomon 74, 2002, 362-3].<br />

– (2000): “A Trope by Any Other Name: ‘Polysemy’, Ambiguity, and significatio in Virgil”,<br />

HSPh 100, 381-407.<br />

– (2001): Virgil and the Augustan Reception (Cambridge) [S. McGill, BMCR 01.08.23; S. J.<br />

Harrison, CR 52, 2002, 292-4; D. H. Hill, G&R 49, 2002, 114; C. Rea, CO 79, 2002, 161;<br />

C. Walde, MH 59, 2002, 259; S. N. Byrne, CB 79, 2003, 243-8; G. K. Galinsky, Arion 10,<br />

2003, 143-69; W. Kißel, Gnomon 75, 2003, 733-5; R. Lyne, Vergilius 49, 2003, 184-9; U.<br />

Schmitzer, Gymnasium 110, 2003, 615-8].<br />

– (2004): “‘Drowned in the Tide’: the Nauagika and Some ‘Problems’ in Augustan Poetry”,<br />

in Acosta-Hughes, Benjamin/Baumbach, Manuel/Kosmetatou, Elizabeth (edd.): Labored<br />

in Papyrus Leaves: Perspectives on an Epigram Collection Attributed to Poseidippus (P.<br />

Mil. Vogl. VIII 309) (Cambridge, MA), 259-75.<br />

Thome, Gabriele (1979): Gestalt und Funktion des Mezentius bei Vergil – mit einem Ausblick<br />

auf die Schlußszene der Aeneis. Europäische Hochschulschriften 15. Reihe: Klassische<br />

Philologie und Literatur 14 (Frankfurt am Main, etc.) [E. Liénard, AC 49, 1980, 398-9; J.<br />

Oroz Reta, Helmantica 32, 1981, 275-7; J. Perret, Latomus 42, 1983, 178-9].<br />

106


– (1986): “Die Begegnung Venus-Aeneas im Wald von Karthago (Aen. 1, 314-417). Ein<br />

Beitrag zur vergilischen Venus-Konzeption: Stammutter und/oder Liebesgöttin?”, Latomus<br />

45, 43-68. 284-310.<br />

– (1993a): “Tanton placuit concurrere motu,/Iuppiter, aeterna gentis in pace futuras? (Aen.<br />

12, 503f.) – Der Krieg in Vergils Aeneis”, AClass 36, 65-81.<br />

– (1993b): Vorstellungen vom Bösen in der lateinischen Literatur. Begriffe, Motive,<br />

Gestalten (Stuttgart) [F.-R. Chaumartin, Gnomon 68, 1996, 68-70; U. Eigler, Gymnasium<br />

104, 1997, 573-5].<br />

– (2000): “Vergil als alexandrinischer Dichter”, Philologus 144, 90-115.<br />

Thompson, David (1970): “Allegory and Typology in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Arethusa 3, 147-53.<br />

Thompson, Graves H. (1979): “<strong>Aeneid</strong> sans Gods”, in Lawall (1979), 24-32.<br />

Thornton, Agathe (1976): The Living Universe: Gods and Men in Virgil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>.<br />

Mnemosyne Supplementum 46 (Leiden) [N. Horsfall, JRS 69, 1979, 231-4; W. Pötscher,<br />

Mnemosyne 32, 1979, 428-30; M. C. J. Putnam, CW 73, 1979, 40-1; G. B. Townend, CR<br />

29, 1979, 35-7; R. Lesueur, Latomus 39, 1980, 225-7; J. R. Fears, CPh 76, 1981, 241-3; A.<br />

Wlosok, Gnomon 53, 1981, 751-62].<br />

– (1984): “The Problem of Free Will in Virgil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, AUMLA 61, 5-19.<br />

Thornton, Mary K. (1985): “The Adaptation of Homer’s Artemis-Nausicaa Simile in the<br />

<strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Latomus 44, 615-22.<br />

– (1992): “Damage-Control in the <strong>Aeneid</strong> or Rescuing the Military Reputation of Augustus”,<br />

Latomus 51, 566-70.<br />

– (1996): “Vergil’s Injured Deer Motif in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Latomus 55, 389-93.<br />

Tieffemberg, S. (1985/6): “El subcampo semantico verbal de la muerte en los doce libros de<br />

la Eneida”, Argos 9/10, 119-36.<br />

Tilly, Bertha (1947): Vergil’s Latium (Oxford) [V. Pöschl, AAHG 6, 1953, 12-14].<br />

– (1977): “Some Excursions Into Vergil’s Faliscan Country: In Search of Fescennium”,<br />

Vergilius 23, 39-49.<br />

Timpanaro, Sebastiano (1981): “Serv. Daniel. ‘ad Aen’ IV 219”, GIF 12, 99-105.<br />

– (1986): Per la storia della filologia virgiliana antica. Quaderni di ‘Filologia e critica’<br />

(Roma) [G. D’Anna, RCCM 28, 1986, 169-72; N. Horsfall, CR 37, 1987, 177-80; H. D.<br />

Jocelyn, Gnomon 60, 1988, 199-202; S. Grimaudo, QCTC 9, 1991, 133].<br />

– (1988): “Virgilio, Aen. 10, 543-52”, MD 20/1, 91-118.<br />

– (1989a): “Ancora su alcuni passi di Servio e degli scolii danielini al terzo dell’Eneide”,<br />

MD 22, 123-82.<br />

– (1989b): “Servio Danielino ad Aen. 10, 8”, ASNP 19, 1267-81.<br />

– (2001): <strong>Vergilian</strong>isti antichi e tradizione indiretta. Accademia toscana di scienze e lettere<br />

‘La Colombaria’ (Firenze) [O. Vox, Belfagor 56, 2001, 767; M. Giovini, Maia 54, 2002,<br />

445-50; J. E. Zetzel, BMCRev 2002.02.09; C. Baschera, Latomus 62, 2003, 454-7; N.<br />

Horsfall, CR 53, 2003, 102-4; N. Scivoletto, GIF 55, 2003, 145-7; A. Ferenczi, Gnomon<br />

76, 2004, 638-41].<br />

Tissol, Garth (1992): “An Allusion to Callimachus’ Aetia 3 in Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong> 11”, HSPh 94,<br />

263-8.<br />

Todd, R. W. (1980): “Lavinia Blushed”, Vergilius 26, 27-33.<br />

Toll, Katharine (1989): “What’s Love Got to Do with It? The Invocation to Erato, and<br />

Patriotism in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, QUCC n. s. 33, 107-18.<br />

– (1991): “The <strong>Aeneid</strong> as an Epic of National Identity: Italiam laeto socii clamore salutant”,<br />

Helios 18, 3-14.<br />

– (1997): “Making Roman-ness and the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, ClAnt 16, 34-56.<br />

Toohey, Peter (1992): Reading Epic: An Introduction to the Ancient Narratives (London/New<br />

York) [J. Farrell, BMCRev 94.02.09].<br />

107


Toporov, Vladimir Nicolaevic (1995): “‘In che direzione navigheremo noi?’: interrogazioneinvestigazione:<br />

Itinerario. Formazione dell’uomo”, in Rosa, Fabio/Zambon, Francesco<br />

(1995; edd.): Pothos: il viaggio, la nostalgia (Trento), 47-59.<br />

Torregeray Pagola, Elena (2002): “Contribución al estudio de la memoria como instrumento<br />

en Historia Antigua: la transmisión de la memoria de los Cornelii Scipiones”, Latomus 61,<br />

285-311.<br />

Torzi, Ilaria (1998): “Laviniaque venit litora (Verg. Aen. 1.2): tra variante testuale e scelta<br />

retorica”, Lexis 16, 201-22.<br />

Townend, G. R. (1989): “Some Animal-similes in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, in Bonanno, Anthony/Vella,<br />

H. C. R. (1989; edd.): Laurea Corona: Studies in Honour of Edward Coleiro (Amsterdam),<br />

84-8.<br />

Tracy, S. V. (1977): “Catullan Echoes in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 6.333-36”, AJPh 98, 20-3.<br />

– (1987): “Laocoon’s Guilt”, AJPh 108, 451-4.<br />

Traglia, Antonio (1983): “Lettura del quarto libro dell’Eneide”, in Gigante (1983), 129-162.<br />

Traill, David A. (1993): “Between Scylla and Charybdis at <strong>Aeneid</strong> 3.684-86: A Smoother<br />

Passage”, AJPh 114, 407-12.<br />

– (2001): “Boxers and Generals at Mount Eryx”, AJPh 122, 405-13.<br />

Traina, Alfonso (1979): “Da Virgilio a D’Anunzio: ambiguità di un predicativo”, MD 2, 175-<br />

81.<br />

– (1984): “L’universo immaginario di Virgilio. L’Énéide fra psicocritica e mitocritica”,<br />

RFIC 112, 244-50.<br />

– (1986): “Note virgiliane. Un modulo ritmico-sintattico: epos e pathos”, in Stache, Ulrich<br />

Justus/Maaz, Wolfgang/Wagner, Fritz (1986; edd.): Kontinuität und Wandel. Lateinische<br />

Poesie von Naevius bis Baudelaire. Franco Munari zum 65. Geburtstag (Hildesheim), 35-<br />

42.<br />

– (1988): “Audentes fortuna adiuvat (Verg. Aen. 10, 284): per la storia di un proverbio“, in<br />

Bonincontro, Marilia (1988; ed.): Catalogo d’un disordine amoroso: l’alphabet des astres<br />

(Chieti), 293-7<br />

– (1989): “Ambiguità virgiliana. Monstrum infelix (Aen. 2, 245) e alius Achilles (Aen. 6,<br />

89)”, in Mnemosynum. Studi in onore di Alfredo Ghiselli. Ed. & saggi univ. di filologia<br />

class. (Bologna), 547-55.<br />

– (1990): “Le troppe voci Virgilio”, RFIC 118, 490-9.<br />

– (1991): “Soror alma (Verg. Aen. X, 439)”, Maia 43, 3-7.<br />

– (1992): “Ancora alius Achilles (Verg. Aen. 6, 88-90)”, Maia 44, 159.<br />

– (1994): “Il libro XII dell’Eneide”, AVM 62, 19-36.<br />

– (1996a): “Latino e gli dei in fuga” (Verg. Aen. XII 285s.)”, Eikasmos 7, 255-9.<br />

– (1996b): “Una variante sottovaluatata (Virgilio Aen. 12, 641)”, BStudLat 26, 504-8.<br />

– (1997): L’utopia e la storia. Il libro XII dell’Eneide e antologia delle opere. Testi e<br />

crestomazie. Collana di autori greci e latini (Torino) [R. Lesueur, REL 75, 1997, 325-6; A.<br />

De Vivo, BStudLat 28, 1998, 230-1; P. Fedelei, Aufidus 12.34, 1998, 167-8; S. Casali, CJ<br />

94, 1998/9, 93-6; P.-J. Dehon, AC 68, 1999, 402-3; L. Deschamps, REA 101, 1999, 233-4;<br />

L. Landolfi, Lexis 17, 1999, 398-404; P. Tordeur, Latomus 58, 1999, 919].<br />

– (2002): “Il Virgilio di Nicholas Horsfall”, AVM n. s. 70, 63-75.<br />

Trapp, J. B. (1986): “Virgil and the Monuments”, PVS 18, 1-17.<br />

Treu, Max (1954): “Die neue ‘orphische’ Unterweltsbeschreibung und Vergil”, Hermes 82,<br />

24-51 [V. Pöschl, AAHG 12, 1959, 215-6].<br />

Trisoglio, Francesco (1991): “Virgilio e i tragici greci”, Orpheus 12, 165-70.<br />

Tronson, Adrian (1998): “Vergil, the Augustans, and the Invention of Cleopatra’s Suicide:<br />

One Asp or Two?”, Vergilius 44, 31-50.<br />

108


Trundle, M. (2003): “Camilla and the Volscians: Historical Images in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 11”, in<br />

Davidson, John/Pomeroy, Arthur (edd.): Theatres of Action: Papers for chris Dearden.<br />

Prudentia Suppl. (Auckland, New Zealand), 165-186.<br />

Tschiedel, Hans Jürgen (1987): “Anchises und Aeneas. Die Vater-Sohn-Beziehung im Epos<br />

des Vergil”, in Neukam, Peter (1987; ed.): Exempla Classica. Dialog Schule –<br />

Wissenschaft. Klassische Sprachen und Literaturen 21 (München), 141-67.<br />

– (1995): “Lavinias Erröten (Vergil Aen. XII 64-69)”, in Belloni, Luigi/Milanese,<br />

Guido/Porro, Antonietta (1995; edd.): Studia classica Johanni Tarditi oblata. Biblioteca di<br />

Aevum antiquum 7 (Milano), 285-97.<br />

Tueller, Michael A. (2000): “Well-Read Heroes: Quoting the Aetia in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 8”, HSPh 100,<br />

361-80.<br />

Tupet, A. M. (1979): “Despectus Iarbas”, in Farenga Ussani, G. (1979; ed.): Africa e Roma:<br />

Acta omnium gentium ac nationum Conventus Latinis litteris linguaeque fovendis (Dakar,<br />

13-16 avril 1977), Leopold Sedar Senghor dicatum (Roma), 147-52.<br />

Turcan, R. (1956): “La catabase orphique du papyrus de Bologne”, Revue de l’histoire des<br />

religions 150, 136-72.<br />

Uhl, Anne (1998): Servius als Sprachlehrer. Zur Sprachrichtigkeit in der exegetischen Praxis<br />

des spätantiken Grammatikerunterrichts. Hypomnemata 117 (Göttingen).<br />

Universidad de Murcia. Sección de filologia clásica: Simposio Virgiliano. Commemorativo<br />

del Bimilenario de la muerte de Virgilio (Murcia, 1984) [Inhalt: Gnomon 56, 1984, 77].<br />

Unte, Wolfhart (1994): “Die Gestalt Apollos im Handlungsablauf von Vergils Aeneis”,<br />

Gymnasium 101, 204-57.<br />

Vaccaro, Alberto J. (1980): “Estudio del adjectivo en el libro VI de la Eneida de Virgilio”,<br />

Argos 4, 11-25.<br />

– (1985/6): “De Lucrecio a Virgilio. Evoluçion del hexametro”, Argos 9/10, 137-42.<br />

Valgiglio, Ernesto (1985): “Il finale dell’Eneide”, Sileno 11 (= Studi in onore di Adelmo<br />

Barigazzi II), 249-54.<br />

– (1988): “Alius Latio iam partus Achilles”, in Boldrini, Sandro [et al.] (1988; edd):<br />

Filologia e forme letterarie. Studi offerti a Francesco Della Corte (Urbino), ii, 507-15.<br />

Vance, Eugene (1981): “Sylvia’s Pet Stag: Wildness and Domesticity in Virgil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>”,<br />

Arethusa 14, 127-38 = Hardie (1999b), iv, 263-73.<br />

Van den Berg, D. P. (1977): “Aeneas se toespraak in Boek IV van die Aeneis”, Akroterion<br />

22.2, 10-12.<br />

Van Nortwick, Thomas (1980): “Aeneas, Turnus, and Achilles”, TAPhA 110, 303-14.<br />

– (1992): Somewhere I Have Never Travelled: The Second Self and the Hero’s Journey in<br />

Ancient Epic (New York/Oxford) [K. Galinsky, Vergilius 38, 1992, 156-8; Gentilcore,<br />

NECN 20, 1992, 37-8; M. J. Clarke, CR 43, 1993, 68-70; S. Spence, CO 71, 1994, 68;].<br />

Vanotti, Gabriella (1995): L’altro Enea. La testimonianze di Dionigi di Alicarnasso. Problemi<br />

e ricerche di storia antica 17 (Roma) [G. Vanotti, CR 47, 1997, 285-6; J.-C. Richard, REL<br />

75, 1997, 343-4].<br />

Van Ryneveld, L. F. (1992): “Inleidende atmosfeerskepping in Vergilius se Aenëis en Dante<br />

se Inferno”, Scholia 1, 79-84.<br />

Van Selms, A. (1982): “Celaeno se doemwoud en die vervulling daarvan”, AClass 25, 141-4.<br />

Van Zijl, D. J./Rix, S./Pauw, F./Zeitsman, J. C. (1979): “Trojan Adventures in Sicily”,<br />

Akroterion 24, 8-14.<br />

Vásquez Munera, Fulgencio (1988): “La montaña en la obra de Virgilio”, Helmantica 39,<br />

153-73.<br />

109


Vasaly, Ann (2002): “The Structure of Livy’s First Pentad and the Augustan Poetry Book”, in<br />

Levene, D. S./Nelis, D. P. (2002; edd.): Clio and the Poets: Augustan Poetry and the<br />

Traditions of Ancient Historiography. Mnemosyne Supplementum 224 (Leiden, etc.), 275-<br />

90.<br />

Vedoya de Guillen, C. (1983): “Dos héros, dos destinos. Odiseo, Eneas”, CLit 2, 59-78.<br />

Velaza, Javier (2001): Itur in antiquam silvam: un estudio sobre la tradición antigua del texto<br />

de Virgilio. Studien zur klassischen Philologie 123 (Frankfurt am Main).<br />

Venier, Matteo (2001): Per una storia del testo di virgilio nella prima età del libro a stampa<br />

(1469-1519). Collezione IFIS – Fürstenberg. Nuove tesi (Udine) [A. Cozzolino, BStudLat<br />

31, 2001, 631-4; M. Davies, CR 52, 2002, 403-4; C. Kallendorf, Vergilius 48, 2002, 175-7;<br />

E. Magnelli, Prometheus 30, 2004, 95-6].<br />

Venini, Paola (1981): “Nota virgiliana (Aen. 1, 81-86)”, Athenaeum 59, 489-92.<br />

– (1983): “Ingenti … umbra tegit (Aen. 10, 541)”, Athenaeum 61, 266-9.<br />

Vera Bustamente, Francisco (1997/8): “Comentario a Virgilio, Eneida IX, 473-502”,<br />

ExcPhilol 7/8, 297-318.<br />

Verstraete, Beert C. (1980): “The Implication of the Epicurean and Lucretian Theory of<br />

Dreams for falsa insomnia in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 6.896”, CW 74, 7-10.<br />

Vessey, G. (1991): “Through a Glass Darkly – Reality and Virgil”, PVS 20, 76-89.<br />

Viarre, Simone (1995): “L’enfant Amour dans la poésie augustéenne”, in Auger, Danièle<br />

(1995; ed.): Enfants et enfances dans les mythologies. Actes du VIIe Colloque du Centre<br />

de recherches mythologiques de l’Université de Paris-X (Chantilly, 16-18 septembre 1992)<br />

(Paris), 197-215.<br />

Vicenzi, R. (1985): “Cartagine nell’Eneide”, Aevum 59, 97-106.<br />

Vidal, José Luis (2000): “Historia, poesía y angustia en La Eneida”, in Crespo, Emilio/Barrios<br />

Castro, José (2000; ed.): Actas del X Congreso español de estudios clásicos (21-25 de<br />

septiembre de 1999). I: Sesiones de inauguración y clausura, lingüistica griega, literatura<br />

griega (Madrid), 21-32.<br />

Vielberg, Meinolf (1994): “Zur Schuldfrage in Vergil’s Aeneis”, Gymnasium 101, 408-28.<br />

Vilatte, Sylvie (1991): “Pensée et esthétique chez Virgile: le bouclier d’Énée”, LEC 59, 307-<br />

22.<br />

Villegas Guillén, Salvador (1988): “Virgilio (Aen. I, 50-63) y la ecuación de estado de los<br />

gases perfectos”, in Pociña, Andrés/García González, Jesús (1988; edd.): Studia<br />

Graecolatina Carmen Sanmillán in memoriam dicata (Granada), 427-33.<br />

Villers, R. (1976): “Durus Ulixes”, REL 54, 1976, 214-21.<br />

Virgilio e noi. None giornate filologiche genovesi (23-24 febrraio 1981). Pubblicazioni del<br />

Istituto di filologia classica & medioevale 74 (Genova, 1982).<br />

Vitale, M. T. (1984): “Osservazioni sull’uso dei verbi frequentativi-intensivi in Virgilio”,<br />

SRIC 6, 85-110.<br />

Vögler, Gudrun (1981): “Gleichnisse und Bilder in der Dido-Episode von Vergils Aeneis”,<br />

AU 24.5, 48-66.<br />

Vogt, Ernst (2003): “Von den Möglichkeiten der Dichtung und den Aufgaben der Philologie.<br />

Zu Dagmar Nicks Gedicht ‘Ich bin nicht Äneas’”, in Schauer, Markus/Thome, Gabriele<br />

(2003; ed.): Altera Ratio. Klassische Philologie zwischen Subjektivität und Wissenschaft.<br />

Festschrift für Werner Suerbaum zum 70. Geburtstag (Wiesbaden), 162-70.<br />

Vogt-Spira, Gregor (1994): “Ars oder Ingenium? Homer und Vergil als literarische<br />

Paradigmata”, Literaturwissenschaftliches Jahrbuch 35, 9-31.<br />

– (2002): „Warum Vergil statt Homer? Der frühneuzeitliche Vorzugsstreit zwischen Homer<br />

und Vergil im Spannungsfeld von Autorität und Historisierung“, Poetica 34, 323-44.<br />

Voisin, J. L. (1979): “Le suicide d’Amata”, REL 254-66.<br />

Vretska, Karl (1977): “Vergil, Aeneis 1, 1-7”, AU 20.4, 5-13.<br />

110


Wacht, Manfred (1996): Concordantia <strong>Vergilian</strong>a. Alpha-Omega A 154. (Hildesheim, etc.).<br />

Walde, Christine (2001): Die Traumdarstellungen in der griechisch-römischen Dichtung<br />

(München/Leipzig) [C. Hartmann, Gnomon 75, 2003, 316-20; G. Weber, CR 53, 2003,<br />

342-4].<br />

– (2004): “Nach der Katastrophe: Zum Verhältnis von Erinnerung und Innovation in Vergils<br />

Aeneis”, in Müller, Achatz von/Ungern-Sternberg, Jürgen (Hgg.): Die Wahrnehmung des<br />

Neuen in Antike und Renaissance. Colloquia Raurica 8 (München/Leipzig), 41-66.<br />

Waldherr, Gerhard H. (2000): “Punica fides – Das Bild der Karthager in Rom“, Gymnasium<br />

107, 193-222.<br />

Wallace-Hadrill, Andrew (1982): “The Golden Age and Sin in Augustan Ideology”, P&P 95,<br />

19-36.<br />

Walsh, P. G. (1977): “Introduction” in Fordyce 1977, xi-xxx.<br />

Walter, Hermann (1990): “Aeneas am Scheideweg (Verg. Aen. 8, 362-365)”, in Prete, Sesto<br />

(1990; ed.): Memores tui. Studi di letteratura classica ed umanistica in onore di Marcello<br />

Vitaletti (Sassoferrato), 197-209.<br />

Wandhoff, Haiko (1996): “Gemalte Erinnerung. Vergils Aeneis und die Troja-Bilddenkmäler<br />

in der deutschen Artusepik”, Poetica 28, 66-96.<br />

Ward, Scott/Meltzer, Gary S. (2002): “Appreciating the Poetry of the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, in<br />

Anderson/Quartarone (2002), 168-75.<br />

Warden, John (1999/2000): “Ripae ulterioris amore: Structure and Desire in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 6”, CJ<br />

95, 349-61.<br />

– (2000): “Patria praecepta: Lucretius and Vergil in the Underworld”, Vergilius 46, 83-92.<br />

Warren, Rosanna (2001): “The End of the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, in Spence (2001b), 105-17.<br />

Warwick, Henrietta Holm (1975): A Vergil Concordance (Minneapolis).<br />

Weadon, Mark P. (1981): “A Note on <strong>Aeneid</strong> 12.766”, CB 57, 70-1.<br />

Webb, N. C. (1978/80): “Direct Contact Between the Hero and the Supernatural in the<br />

<strong>Aeneid</strong>”, PVS 17, 39-49.<br />

Weber, Clifford (1978): “Gallus’ Grynium and Vergil’s Cumae”, ARCM 1, 45-76.<br />

– (1987): “Metrical Imitatio in the Proem to the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, HSPh 91, 261-71.<br />

– (1990): “Some Double Entendres in Ovid and Vergil”, CPh 85, 209-14.<br />

– (1995): “The Allegory of the Golden Bough”, Vergilius 41, 3-34.<br />

– (1998/9): “Dido and Circe ‘dorées’: Two Golden Women in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 1.698 and 7.190, CJ<br />

94, 317-27.<br />

– (2002): “The Dionysus in Aeneas”, CPh 97, 322-43.<br />

Weber, Thomas (1988): Fidus Achates. Der Gefährte des Aeneas in Vergils Aeneis. Studien<br />

zur klassischen Philologie 37 (Frankfurt am Main) [J. Mazas, Augustinus 37, 1992, 441].<br />

Wellesley, Kenneth (1980): “Virgilian Places”, in Marshall, Bruce (1980; ed.): Vindex<br />

humanitatis. Essays in Honour of John Huntly Bishop (Armidale), 146-69.<br />

Wells, Colin M. (1992): “Aeneas in Purgatory”, in Wilhelm/Jones (1992), 179-88.<br />

Werner, Shirley (2002): “‘Frigid Indifference’ or ‘Soaked Through and Through with<br />

Feeling’? Portrayal of Character in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, in Anderson/Quartarone (2002), 60-8.<br />

Wessels, H. A. (1987): “Vertrekpunt en bestimming in die Aeneis”, in Cilliers, L./Snyman, A.<br />

H. (1987; edd.): Varia studia in honorem W. J. Richards (Bloemfontein), 328-35.<br />

West, David Alexander (1969): “Multiple-correspondence Similes in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, JRS 59, 40-<br />

9 = S. J. Harrison (1990b), 429-44 = Hardie (1999b), iii, 384-99.<br />

– (1970): “Virgilian Multiple-correspondence Similes and Their Antecedents”, Philologus<br />

114, 262-75.<br />

– (1974): “The Deaths of Hector and Turnus”, G&R NS 21, 21-31 = McAuslan/Walcot<br />

(1990), 14-23 = Hardie (1999b), iv, 381-91.<br />

111


– (1975/6): “Cernere erat: The Shield of Aeneas”, PVS 15, 1-6 = Robertson (1988), 215-23<br />

= S. J. Harrison (1990b), 295-304.<br />

– (1979): “Herculis clava. Virgil and His Models”, Acta philol. Aeneipont. 4, 77-9.<br />

– (1987): The Bough and the Gate. Jackson Knight Memorial Lecture (Exeter) [D. Fowler,<br />

G&R 36, 1989, 103-4] = S. J. Harrison (1990b), 224-38.<br />

– (1989): “The <strong>Aeneid</strong> and the Translator”, Vergilius 35, 31-46.<br />

– (1993a): “The Pageant of the Heroes as Panegyric (Virgil, Aen. 6.760-886)”, in Jocelyn, H.<br />

D. (1993; ed.): Tria Lustra (Liverpool), 283-96.<br />

– (1993b): “On Serial Narration and on the Julian Star”, PVS 21, 1-16.<br />

– (1994a): “In the Wake of Aeneas (<strong>Aeneid</strong> 3.274-88, 3.500-5, 8.200-3)”, G&R 41, 57-61.<br />

– (1994b): “Me, You or Us”, Vergilius 40, 35-6.<br />

– (1998): “The End and the Meaning: <strong>Aeneid</strong> 12.791-842”, in Stahl (1998b), 303-18.<br />

West, Grace Starry (1979): “Vergil’s ‘Helpful’ Sisters: Anna and Juturna in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”,<br />

Vergilius 25, 10-19 = Lawall (1979), 33-44.<br />

– (1980a): “Caeneus and Dido”, TAPhA 110, 315-24.<br />

– (1980b): “The Significance of Vergil’s Eriphyle (<strong>Aeneid</strong> 6.445-6)”, Vergilius 26, 52-4.<br />

– (1983): “Andromache and Dido”, AJPh 104, 257-67.<br />

– (1985): “Chloreus and Camilla”, Vergilius 31, 22-9.<br />

West, Stephanie (2003): “Crete in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>: Two Intertextual Footnotes”, CQ 53, 302-8.<br />

Westendorp Boerma, R. E. H. (1958): “Vergil’s Debt to Catullus”, AClass 1, 51-63.<br />

Wetmore, Monroe Nichols (1911): Index verborum <strong>Vergilian</strong>us (New Haven, etc.); repr.<br />

Hildesheim/Darmstadt, 1961.<br />

Wheeler, Stephen M. (1993): “Lost Voices: Vergil, <strong>Aeneid</strong> 12.718-19”, CQ 43, 451-4.<br />

Whitfield, John Humphreys (1969): “Virgil Into Dante”, in Dudley (1969), 94-118.<br />

Whitman, Jon (1987): Allegory: The Dynamics of an Ancient and Medieval Technique<br />

(Oxford).<br />

Wifstrand Schiebe, Marianne (1981): Das ideale Dasein bei Tibull und die<br />

Goldzeitkonzeption Vergils. Acta Universitatis Upsaliensis. Studia Latina Upsaliensia 13<br />

(Uppsala).<br />

– (1983): “Der Black-out des Aeneas. Zur Frage der Diskrepanz zwischen zweitem und<br />

drittem Buch der Aeneis”, Eranos 81, 113-16.<br />

– (1986): “The Saturn of the Aeneis – Tradition or Innovation?”, Vergilius 32, 43-60.<br />

– (1997): Vergil und die Tradition von den römischen Urkönigen. Hermes Einzelschriften 76<br />

(Wiesbaden) [I. E. M. Edlund-Berry, BMCRev 97.11.15; M. Fox, JRS 88, 1998, 195; G. K.<br />

Galinsky, Vergilius 44, 1998, 125-8; S. Koster, AAHG 51, 1998, 39-41; J. Poucet,<br />

Latomus 58, 1999, 927-8; H. Heckel, Gymnasium 107, 2000, 255-6; Eibach, HZ 270, 2000,<br />

721-2; C. Martín Puente, Emerita 68, 2000, 204; F. Stok, IJCT 7, 2000/1, 113-4; R.<br />

Granobs, Gnomon 73, 2001, 398-402].<br />

Wigodsky, Michael (1972): Vergil and Early Latin Poetry. Hermes Einzelschriften 24<br />

(Wiesbaden) [V. Buchheit, Gymnasium 82, 1975, 100-4].<br />

– (2004): “Emotions and Immortality in Philodemus On the Gods 3 and the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, in<br />

Armstrong/Fish/Johnston/Skinner (2004), 211-28.<br />

Wilhelm, Michelle Pach (1987a): “Arrival in Latium: New Loyalties and Preparations”,<br />

AugAge 6, 62-79.<br />

– (1987b): “Venus, Diana, Dido and Camilla in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Vergilius 33, 43-48.<br />

– (1992): “Minerva in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, in Wilhelm/Jones (1992), 74-81.<br />

Wilhelm, Robert McKay (1983/4): “The Chariot/Ship. Vehicle of Augustan Ideology”,<br />

AugAge 3, 73-94.<br />

– (1987): “Aeneas and Dido: The Search for a New City”, AugAge 6, 31-61.<br />

– (1988): “Cybele: The Great Mother of Augustan Order”, Vergilius 34, 77-101.<br />

112


– (1992): “Dardanus, Aeneas, Augustus and the Etruscans”, in Wilhelm/Jones (1992), 129-<br />

45.<br />

– /Jones, Howard (1992; ed.): The Two Worlds of the Poet: New Perspectives on Vergil<br />

(Detroit) [A. Wankenne, LEC 61, 1993, 374; R. Moorton, NECN 21, 1993/4, 130-1; J.<br />

Glazewski, CW 88, 1994/5, 141; C. Perkell, Virgilius 43, 1997, 144-55].<br />

Wilkinson, L. P. (1959): “The Language of Virgil and Horace”, CQ n. s. 9, 181-92 = S. J.<br />

Harrison (1990b), 413-28 = Hardie (1999b), iv, 26-41 [V. Pöschl, AAHG 23, 1969, 31].<br />

Willcock, Malcolm M. (1983): “Battle Scenes in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, PCPhS n. s. 29, 87-99.<br />

– (1988): “Homer’s Chariot Race and Virgil’s Boat Race”, PVS 19, 1-13.<br />

Williams, Gordon (1968): Tradition and Originality in Roman Poetry (Oxford).<br />

– (1980): “The Importance of Aspect in Virgilian Similes”, in Marshall, Bruce (1980; ed.):<br />

Vindex hunamitatis. Essays in Honour of John Huntly Bishop (Armidale), 177-95.<br />

– (1983): Technique and Ideas in the <strong>Aeneid</strong> (New Haven und London) [J. H. Dee, CW 77,<br />

1983, 58-9; J. E. Rexine, Vergilius 29, 1983, 78-80; R. Mayer, CR 34, 1984, 31-3; J.<br />

Perret, Latomus 43, 1984, 461-3; M. C. J. Putnam, AJPh 105, 1984, 228-31; F. Robertson,<br />

G&R 31, 1984, 86-7; P. Burnell, EMC 29, 1985, 189-91; J. Warden, Phoenix 39, 1985,<br />

172-4; Frassinetti, Athenaeum 65, 1987, 286-7; Ramírez de Verger, Emerita 55, 1987, 366-<br />

7; P. H. Schrijvers, Mnemosyne 41, 1988, 432-5].<br />

Williams, Mary Frances (1993): “Turnus, the Chimaera, and Aeetes: A Note on <strong>Aeneid</strong> 7.785-<br />

88”, Vergilius 39, 31-6.<br />

– (1997): “The Cyzicus Episode (Ap. Rh., Arg. I, 936-1158) and <strong>Aeneid</strong> V: Cybele and<br />

Ritual”, in Deroux, Carl (1997; ed.): Studies in Latin Literature and Roman History 8.<br />

Collection Latomus 239 (Bruxelles), 5-28.<br />

– (2003): “Lawgivers and the Rule of Law in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, in Deroux, Carl (1997; ed.):<br />

Studies in Latin Literature and Roman History 11. Collection Latomus 272 (Bruxelles),<br />

208-43.<br />

Williams, Robert Deryck (1960a): “The Pictures on Dido’s Temple (<strong>Aeneid</strong> 1.450-93)”, CQ<br />

n. s. 10, 145-51 = S. J. Harrison (1990b), 37-45 [V. Pöschl, AAHG 22, 1969, 21.<br />

– (1960b): P. Vergili Maronis <strong>Aeneid</strong>os Liber Quintus. Edited with a Commentary (Oxford)<br />

[V. Pöschl, AAHG 22, 1969, 4].<br />

– (1962): P. Vergili Maronis <strong>Aeneid</strong>os Liber Tertius. Edited with a Commentary (Oxford)<br />

[V. Pöschl, AAHG 22, 1969, 4].<br />

– (1963): “Virgil and the Odyssey”, Phoenix 17, 266-74.<br />

– (1964): “The Sixth Book of the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, G&R 11, 48-63 = S. J. Harrison (1990b), 191-<br />

207.<br />

– (1965/6): “The Opening Scenes of the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, PVS 5, 14-23.<br />

– (1967a): “The Purpose of the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Antichthon 1, 29-41 = S. J. Harrison (1990b), 21-36.<br />

– (1967b): Virgil. Greece & Rome: New Surveys in the Classics 1 (Oxford; 2 nd edition with<br />

addenda 1979) [M. v. Albrecht, Gnomon 41, 1969, 509-11; C. Gnilka, Gymnasium 76,<br />

1969, 117-19; A. Wlosok, Gymnasium 80, 1973, 144].<br />

– (1969): “Changing Attitudes to Virgil: A Study in the History of Taste from Dryden to<br />

Tennyson”, in Dudley (1969), 119-38.<br />

– (1972/3): The <strong>Aeneid</strong> of Virgil. Edited with Introduction and Notes. 2 voll. (London) [D. A.<br />

West, CR 26, 1976, 34-5].<br />

– (1978/80): “Virgil and Rome”, PVS 17, 1978-80, 1-9 = AugAge 3, 1983/84, 95-108.<br />

– (1980): “Virgil and Homer”, in Marshall, Bruce (1980; ed.): Vindex humanitatis: Essays in<br />

Honour of John Huntly Bishop (Armidale), 170-6.<br />

– (1981a): “The Shield of Aeneas”, Vergilius 27, 8-11.<br />

– (1981b): “Virgil, Aen. 6.304”, CQ 31, 469-70.<br />

– (1984): “The Poetic Intention of Virgil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, in Martindale (1984), 25-35.<br />

– (1985): The <strong>Aeneid</strong> of Vergil. A Companion to the Translation of C. Day Lewis (Bristol).<br />

113


– (1987): The <strong>Aeneid</strong>. Unwin Critical Library [N. Horsfall, CR 38, 1988, 410-11; H. H.<br />

Huxley, PVS 19, 1988, 30-1; Smith, Hermathena 145, 1988, 66-7; G. D’Anna, Gnomon<br />

61, 1989, 626-7; H. V. Bender, CW 83, 1989-90, 71; R. J. Clark, EMC 34, 1990, 85-7; P.<br />

Hardie, JRS 80, 1990, 268; J. H. Molyneux, Latomus 49, 1990, 178-80]<br />

– /Carter, C. J. (1974): “Critical Appreciations II: Virgil, <strong>Aeneid</strong> xii.843-86”, G&R 21, 165-<br />

77 = McAuslan/Walcot (1990), 167-79.<br />

– /Pattie, T. S. (1982): Virgil. His Poetry through the Ages (London) [B. C. Barker-Benfield,<br />

CR 33, 1983, 321; I. McAuslan, G&R 30, 1983, 216; A. G. McKay, Phoenix 37, 1983, 91-<br />

2; W. Suerbaum, Gnomon 56, 1984, 208-28].<br />

Williams, Rose (2003): The Labors of Aeneas: What a Pain It Was to Found the Roman Race<br />

(Wauconda, IL).<br />

Wills, Jeffrey (1987): “Scyphus – a Homeric Hapax in Virgil”, AJPh 108, 455-7.<br />

– (1996): Repetition in Latin Poetry: Figures of Allusion (Oxford) [A. Sharrock, G&R 44,<br />

1997, 224; D. P. Nelis, BMCRev 98.5.17; R. G. M. Nisbet, CR 48, 1998, 298-300; J.<br />

O’Hara, JRS 88, 1998, 197; M. C. J. Putnam, AJPh 119, 1998, 295-300; B. Vine, CJ 94,<br />

1998/9, 195-200; J. Zetzel, CPh 94, 1999, 103-11; J. Dangel, Latomus 59, 2000, 149-52].<br />

– (1997): “Homeric and Virgilian Doublets: The Case of <strong>Aeneid</strong> 6.901”, MD 38, 185-202.<br />

– (1998): “Divided Allusion: Virgil and the Coma Berenices”, HSPh 98, 277-305.<br />

Wilson, C. H. (1979): “Jupiter and the Fates in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, CQ 29, 361-71.<br />

Wiltshire, Susan Ford (1979): “Aeneas in America”, Vergilius 25, 2-9.<br />

– (1982): “Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>: Poetry and the Public Realm”, in McKay (1982), 118-44.<br />

– (1984): “Self-distancing in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Vergilius 30, 25-31.<br />

– (1989): Public and Private in Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong> (Amherst); 38-55 [R. J. Clark, Phoenix 43,<br />

1989, 378-81; D. Fowler, G&R 36, 1989, 236-7; W. S. Anderson, CW 83, 1989/90, 545; R.<br />

Moorton, NECN 17, 1989/90, 42-3; S. J. Harrison, CR 40, 1990, 27-8; S. Mack, AJPh 111,<br />

1990, 570-73; C. Perkell, Vergilius 36, 1990, 143-5; C. Kallendorf, Helios 18, 1991, 73-4.<br />

80-2; B. W. Boyd, CJ 87, 1991-2, 186-9; R. Lesueur, Latomus 51, 1992, 427-9; J. Rexine,<br />

CB 69, 1993, 118-21; J. Rexine, Platon 45, 1993, 168-70].<br />

– (1992): “War and Peace in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 10”, in Wilhelm/Jones (1992), 189-205.<br />

– (1999): “The Man Who Was not there: Aeneas and Absence in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 9”, in Perkell<br />

(1999a), 162-77.<br />

– /Krickel, A. H. (1982): “Diomedes and Aeneas: A <strong>Vergilian</strong> Paradox”, CB 58, 73-7.<br />

Wimmel, Walter (1973): ‘Hirtenkrieg’ und arkadisches Rom: Reduktionsmedien in Vergils<br />

Aeneis. Abhandlungen der Marburger Gelehrten Gesellschaft 1972.1 (München); 109-29 =<br />

id., Collectanea. Augusteertum und späte Republik. Herausgegeben von Klaus Kubusch<br />

(Stuttgart, 1987), 219-39 [H. Koch, Gymnasium 78, 1971, 483-4; K. Vretska, Gymnasium<br />

81, 1974, 558-60; E. Christmann, Gnomon 48, 1976, 32-6; M. C. J. Putnam, CPh 71, 1976,<br />

283-6].<br />

Winkler, Martin M. (1987): “‘Tuque optime vates’: Musaeus in Book Six of the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”,<br />

AJPh 108, 655-60.<br />

Winterbottom, Michael (1993): “Aeneas and the Idea of Troy”, PVS 21, 17-34.<br />

Wirshbo, E. (1979): “On Mistranslating Vergil: <strong>Aeneid</strong> 1.203”, CW 73, 177-8.<br />

Wiseman, T. P. (1984): “Cybele, Virgil and Augustus”, in Woodman, Tony/West, David<br />

(1984; edd.): Poetry and Politics in the Age of Augustus (Cambridge), 117-28.<br />

Wistrand, Erik (1984): “Aeneas and Augustus in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Eranos 82, 195-8.<br />

Witek, Franz (2006): Vergils Landschaften: Versuch einer Typologie literarischer Landschaft.<br />

Spudasmata 111. Hildesheim.<br />

Wlosok, Antonie (1967): Die Göttin Venus in Vergils Aeneis (Heidelberg) [V. Pöschl, AAHG<br />

23, 1969, 10-12].<br />

– (1973): “Vergil in der neueren Forschung”, Gymnasium 80, 129-51.<br />

114


– (1976): “Vergils Didotragödie. Ein Beitrag zum Problem des Tragischen in der Aeneis”, in<br />

Görgemanns, Herwig/Schmidt, Ernst A. (1976; edd.): Studien zum antiken Epos. Beiträge<br />

zur klassischen Philologie 72 (Meisenheim am Glan),, 228-50 = “The Dido Tragedy in<br />

Virgil: A Contribution to the Question of the Tragic in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, in Hardie (1999b), iv,<br />

158-81.<br />

– (1978): “Vater und Vatervorstellungen in der römischen Kultur”, in Tellenbach, H. (1978;<br />

ed.): Das Vaterbild im Abendland. I: Rom, Frühes Christentum, Mittelalter, Neuzeit,<br />

Gegenwart (Stuttgart), 18-54. 192-200 = Wlosok (1990b), 35-83.<br />

– (1982): “Der Held als Ärgernis: Vergils Aeneas”, WJA 8, 9-21.<br />

– (1983a): “Et poeticae figmentum et philosophiae veritatem. Bemerkungen zum 6.<br />

Aeneisbuch, insbesondere zur Funktion der Rede des Anchises (724ff.)”, LF 106, 13-19 =<br />

Wlosok (1990b), 384-91.<br />

– (1983b): “Vergil als Theologe: Iuppiter – pater omnipotens”, Gymnasium 90, 187-202 [=<br />

Virgilio teologo. Iuppiter-Pater omnipotens”, in Atti del Convegno mondiale (1984), ii, 89-<br />

102] = Wlosok (1990b), 368-83.<br />

– (1985a): “Bimillennarium <strong>Vergilian</strong>um 1981/1982 (1983). Wissenschaftliche Kongresse,<br />

Symposien, Tagungen, Vortragsreihen, Jubiläumsbände. Ein Überblick”, Gnomon 57, 127-<br />

34.<br />

– (1985b): “Zur Funktion des Helden (Aeneas) in Vergils Aeneis”, Klio 67, 216-23.<br />

– (1986): “Gemina doctrina: On Allegorical Interpretation”, PLLS 5, 75-84 = Hardie<br />

(1999b), iii, 244-53 ~ “Gemina doctrina? Über Berechtigung und Voraussetzungen antiker<br />

Aeneisinterpretation”, in Boldrini, Sandro [et al.] (1988; edd): Filologia e forme letterarie.<br />

Studi offerti a Francesco Della Corte (Urbino), ii, 517-27 = Wlosok (1990b), 392-402.<br />

– (1990a): “Aeneas Vindex: Ethischer Aspekt und Zeitbezug”, in Wlosok (1990b), 419-36.<br />

– (1990b): Res humanae – Res divinae: Kleine Schriften. Herausgegeben von Heck,<br />

Eberhard und Schmidt, Ernst A. (Heidelberg) [N. Horsfall, Vergilius 40, 1994, 133-5].<br />

– (1990c): “Vergils politische Botschaft”, in Wlosok (1990b), 499-501.<br />

– (1990d): “Zur Geltung und Beurteilung Vergils und Homers in Spätantike und früher<br />

Neuzeit” in Wlosok (1990b), 476-98 = Schmidt, Ernst Günther (1996; ed.): Griechenland<br />

und Rom. Vergleichende Untersuchungen zu Entwicklungstendenzen und –höhepunkten<br />

der antiken Geschichte, Kunst und Literatur (Tbilissi, Erlangen, Jena), 529-55.<br />

– (1992a): “Diva creatrix. Das Zeichen der Venus (Aen. 8, 523ff.) in einer Illustration des<br />

15. Jahrhunderts (ms. Richardson 38)”, in Froning, Heide/Hölscher, Tonio/Mielsch, Harald<br />

(1992; edd.): Kotinos. Festschrift für Erika Simon (Mainz), 440-9.<br />

– (1992b): “Gemina pictura: Allegorisierende Aeneisillustrationen in Handschriften des 15.<br />

Jahrhunderts”, in in Wilhelm/Jones (1992), 408-32.<br />

– (1992c; ed.): Publius Vergilius Maro, Bucolica, Georgica, Aeneis: Valéncia, Biblioteca<br />

General i Histórica de la Universitat, Ms. 837. Einleitung und Beschreibung der<br />

Miniaturen von –. Codices illuminati medii aevi 23 (München) [U. Bauer-Eberhardt,<br />

Gnomon 67, 1995, 411-15].<br />

– (1997/8): “Illustrated Vergil Manuscripts: Reception and Exegesis”, CJ 93, 355-82.<br />

– (1998): “Rezeption und Exegese in illustrierten Vergilhandschriften von der Spätantike bis<br />

zur Renaissance”, in Tar, Ibolya (1998; ed.): Epik durch die Jahrhunderte. Internationale<br />

Konferenz Szeged 2.-4. Oktober 1997. Acta antiqua et archaeologica 27 (Szeged), 117-41.<br />

– (2000): “Freiheit und Gebundenheit der augusteischen Dichter”, RhM 143, 75-88.<br />

– (2001; ed.): P. Vergilius Maro, Bucólicas – Geórgicas – Eneida. Comentario al facsímil<br />

del códice de Virgilio MS. 837 de la Biblioteca de la Universitat de Valéncia. Edición a<br />

cargo de –, con la colaboración de Carmen Morenilla Talens (Valéncia) = P. Vergilius<br />

Maro, Bucolica – Georgica – Aeneis. Kommentar zum Faksimile des Vergilcodex MS. 837<br />

der Universitätsbibliothek in Valencia (Valéncia/Münster).<br />

115


– (2002): “Vergils Unterwelt (Aeneis VI) in der Buchmalerei von der Spätantike zur<br />

Renaissance”, in Dummer, J./ Vielberg Meinolf (2002; edd.): Leitbilder aus Kunst und<br />

Literatur. Altertumswissenschaftliches Kolloquium 5 (Stuttgart), 95-153.<br />

Wofford, Susanne Lindgren (1999): “Epics and the Politics of the Original Tale: Virgil, Ovid,<br />

Spenser, and Native American Aetiology”, in Tylus, Jane/Wofford, Susanne (1999; edd.):<br />

Epic Traditions in the Contemporary World: The Poetics of Community (Berkeley, etc.),<br />

239-69.<br />

Woodman, A. J. (1989): “Virgil the Historian: <strong>Aeneid</strong> 8.626-62 and Livy”, in Diggle, J./Hall,<br />

J. B./Jocelyn, H. D. (1989; edd.): Studies in Latin Literature and Its Tradition in Honour of<br />

C. O. Brink. Cambridge Philological <strong>Society</strong> Supplementary Volume 15 (Cambridge), 132-<br />

45.<br />

Wooley, Allan (1997/8): “Ideographic Imagery in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 4 and Vergil’s Philosophizing”,<br />

NECN 25, 114-30.<br />

Worstbrock, Franz Josef (1963): Elemente einer Poetik der Aeneis. Untersuchungen zum<br />

Gattungsstil <strong>Vergilian</strong>ischer Epik. Orbis antiquus 21 (Münster) [V. Pöschl, AAHG 22,<br />

1969, 7-8].<br />

– (1996): “Vergil”, in Die deutsche Literatur des Mittelalters: Verfasserlexikon 10, 247-84.<br />

Worthington, Ian (1984): “<strong>Aeneid</strong> 8.728: Did Augustus Bridge the Araxes?”, LCM 9, 48.<br />

– (1986): “Should <strong>Aeneid</strong> 8.727 and 728 Be Transposed?”, Eranos 84, 167-9.<br />

Wright, David H. (1993): The Vatican Vergil: A Masterpiece of Late Antique Art<br />

(Berkeley/Los Angeles) = Der Vergilius Vaticanus. Ein Meisterwerk spätantiker Kunst.<br />

Aus dem Englischen übersetzt von Ulrike Bauer-Eberhardt (Graz).<br />

– (2001): The Roman Vergil and the Origins of Medieval Book Design (London) = Der<br />

Vergilius Romanus des mittelalterlichen Buches. Übersetzt von Reiner Zerbst (Stuttgart).<br />

Wright, M. R. (1997): “Ferox virtus: Anger in Virgil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, in Morton Braund, Susanna,<br />

Gill/Christopher (1997; edd.): The Passions in Roman Thought and Literature<br />

(Cambridge), 169-84.<br />

Wright, Neil (2001): “‘Semper honos nomen tuum laudesque manebunt’: Virgil and Twelfth-<br />

Century Epic?”, PVS 24, 11-29.<br />

Wyke, Maria (1992): “Augustan Cleopatras: Female Power and Poetic Authority”, in Powell,<br />

Anton (1992; ed.): Roman Poetry and Propaganda in the Age of Augustus (Bristol), 98-<br />

140 = id. (2002): The Roman Mistress: Ancient and Modern Representations (Oxford),<br />

195-243 [“Meretrix regina: Augustan Cleopatras”].<br />

Yardley, J. C. (1981a): “Evander’s altum limen: Virgil Aen. 8.461-2”, Eranos 79, 147-8.<br />

– (1981b): “Menelaus amans: Vergil, Aen. VI 525-6”, Emérita 49, 65-6.<br />

Zabughin, Vladimiro (1921-3): Virgilio nel rinascimento italiano da Dante a Torquato Tasso:<br />

fortuna, studi, imitazioni, traduzioni e parodie, iconografia. Vol. I: Il trecento ed il<br />

quattrocento. Introduzione di Augusto Campana. Vol II: Il cinquecento Reperti. A cura di<br />

Carrai, Stefano e Cavarzere, Alberto. Introduzione di Campana, Augusto. Collana di<br />

Dipartimento di Scienze filologiche e storiche 11 (Trento, 2000) [G. Frasso, Aevum 75,<br />

2001, 912-3; R. Mayer, CR 52, 2002, 201; S. Ferrando, Maia 55, 2003, 228-30].<br />

Zaina, Emilio (1998): “Aspectos del tratamiento del cuerpo humano en la Eneida”, Argos 22,<br />

163-70.<br />

Zamboni, O. (1983): “Soledades. Reflexiones en torno a Dido y Eneas, arquetipos humanos”,<br />

CLit 2, 91-102.<br />

Zarker, John W. (1969): “Amata: Vergil’s Other Tragic Queen”, Vergilius 15, 2-24.<br />

– (1972): “The Hercules Theme in the <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, Vergilius 18, 34-48.<br />

116


– (1978): “Vergil’s Trojan and Italian matres”, Vergilius 24, 15-24.<br />

– (1988): “Augustan Art and Architecture in Vergil’s <strong>Aeneid</strong>”, in Winkes, Rolf (1988; ed.):<br />

The Age of Augustus. Interdisciplinary Conference Held at Brown University, April 30-<br />

May 2, 1982. Publications d’histoire de l’art et archéologie de l’Université catholique de<br />

Louvain 44. Archaeologia Transatlantica 5 (Providence, RI/Louvain-la-Neuve), 197-208.<br />

Zetzel, James E. G. (1981): Latin Textual Criticism in Antiquity. Monographs in Classical<br />

Studies (New York) [H. D. Jocelyn, Gnomon 55, 1983, 307-11].<br />

– (1989): “Romane memento: Justice and Judgement in <strong>Aeneid</strong> 6”, TAPhA 119, 263-84.<br />

– (1996): “Natural Law and Poetic Justice: A Carneadan Debate in Cicero and Virgil”, CPh<br />

91, 297-319.<br />

– (1997): “Rome and Its Traditions”, in Martindale (1997a), 188-203.<br />

Zevi, Fausto (1995): “Gli Eubei a Cuma: Dedalo e l’Eneide”, RFIC 123, 178-92.<br />

Zgoll, Christian (2004): Phänomenologie der Metamorphose. Verwandlungen und<br />

Verwandtes in der augusteischen Dichtung. Classica Monacensia 28 (Tübingen).<br />

Zimmermann, Sylvia (2001): “Geschichte und Politik – Mythos und Mythisierung: Kleopatra<br />

im Bild der Augusteischen Dichter”, in De Martino, Francesco/Morenilla, Carmen (2001;<br />

edd.): El fil d’Ariadna: Universidad de Valéncia 3-5 de maig 2000. Studi sul teatro<br />

classico (Bari), 405-22.<br />

Zinn, Ernst (1960): “Elemente des Humors in der augusteischen Dichtung”, Gymnasium 67,<br />

41-56. 152-5 [V. Pöschl, AAHG 21, 1968, 199-200].<br />

Zintzen, Clemens (1979): Die Laokoonepisode bei Vergil. AbhMainz 1979.10 (Wiesbaden)<br />

[P. Venini, Athenaeum 60, 1982, 307-9].<br />

Ziolkowski, Jan M. (1997/8): “Vergil’s Nachleben: From Monograph to Mélange”, IJCT 4,<br />

92-9.<br />

– (1998): “Mnemotechnics and the Reception of the <strong>Aeneid</strong> in Late Antiquity and the<br />

Middle Ages”, in Knox, Peter/Foss, Clive (1998; edd.): Style and Tradition: Studies in<br />

Honor of Wendell Clausen. Beiträge zur Altertumskunde 92 (Stuttgart und Leipzig), 158-<br />

73.<br />

– (2004): “Between Text and Music: The Reception of Virgilian Speeches in Early Medieval<br />

Manuscripts”, MD 52, 107-26.<br />

Ziolkowski, Theodore (1993): Virgil and the Moderns (Princeton) [J. K. Newman, Vergilius<br />

40, 1994, 125-131].<br />

Zoicas, Laurentiu (1989): “Poétique des éléments dans l’Énéide. I: Le feu”, StudClas 26, 5-<br />

10.<br />

– (1991): “Poétique des éléments dans l’Énéide. II: L’eau”, StudClas 27, 39-43.<br />

Zurli, L. (1976): “Come funziona il ‘catalogo’ virgiliano di Aen. VII, 647-817”, MCSN 1,<br />

121-37.<br />

– (1977): “Dira fames (Verg. Aen. III 256)”, GIF 29, 176-80.<br />

– (1984): “Sulla marineria di Verg. Aen. 3, 356-357”, Philologus 128, 105-10.<br />

Zurutusa, H. (1982): “La presencia de la serpiente en la concepción virgiliana”, AHAM 23,<br />

345-9.<br />

Zwierlein, Otto (1999): Die Ovid- und Vergil-Revision in tiberischer Zeit. Band I:<br />

Prolegomena. Untersuchungen zur antiken Literatur und Geschichte 57 (Berlin/New York)<br />

[J. E. G. Zetzel, Vergilius 46, 2000, 181-91; K. Galinsky, Gnomon 74, 2002, 685-7].<br />

– (2000a): Antike Revisionen des Vergil und Ovid. Nordrhein-Westfälische Akademie der<br />

Wissenschaften. Vorträge 368 (Wiesbaden) [B. Rochette, Latomus 62, 2003, 978-80].<br />

– (2000b): “Antike Vergilretraktationen”, in Gärtner, Kurt, Krummacher, Hans-Henrik (edd.;<br />

2000): Zur Überlieferung, Kritik und Edition alter und neuerer Texte. Beiträge des<br />

Colloquiums zum 85. Geburtstag von Werner Schröder am 12. und 13. März 1999 in<br />

Mainz. AbhMainz 2000, 2 (Stuttgart), 99-114.<br />

117


B. Systematische Erschließung<br />

1. Arbeitsmittel<br />

Bibliographien und Forschungsberichte Pöschl 1950-79; G. Radke 1957; G. Radke 1959,<br />

323-34; McKay 1963ff.; G. Radke 1964; R. D. Williams 1967b; Wlosok 1973; Cleary<br />

1976-87; Johnson 1976, 8-16; Donlan 1978; Suerbaum 1979~1981b, 5-45; Suerbaum<br />

1980a; Galinsky 1981, 987-98; Rieks 1981b; Squillante Saccone 1981; Suerbaum 1981a;<br />

Bonfanti 1982ff.; Nethercut 1986b; Lesueur 1987; Serpa 1987; Johnston 1989; Farrell<br />

1990; Glei 1990; S. J. Harrison 1990c; R. Thomas 1990; Glei 1991, 11-41; Horsfall 1991c,<br />

9-11; Kallendorf 1991b; Sienkewicz 1991, 178-257; Vielberg 1994, 409-13; den Boeft<br />

1995; Clausen 1995b; Hardie 1998b; Perkell 1999a, 14-22; Farrell 2001; Lowrie 2001; E.<br />

A. Schmidt 2000/1; Hooley 2002; Quartarone 2002a; Galinsky 2003a; Gy. Radke 2003;<br />

Scafoglio 2004, Kailiweit 2005<br />

Ausgaben<br />

textkritisch Mynors 1969; Geymonat 1973<br />

lateinisch/deutsch Götte 1958; E. Binder/G. Binder 1994ff.<br />

Konkordanzen Wetmore 1911; Merguet 1912; Warwick 1975; Wacht 1996<br />

Kommentare J. Henry 1873-92; Conington/Nettleship/Haverfield 1883-98; Page 1894-1900;<br />

Sabbadini 1888-1920; Ladewig/Schaper/Jahn/Deuticke 1904-15; R. D. Williams 1972/3;<br />

Paratore 1978-83; E. Binder/G. Binder 1994ff. Buch 1 Conway 1935; Austin 1971 Buch 2<br />

Austin 1964; Buch 3 R. D. Williams 1962; Cova 1994 Buch 4 Pease 1935; Austin 1955<br />

Buch 5 R. D. Williams 1960b Buch 6 Norden 3 1927; Austin 1977; Maclennan 2003 Buch<br />

7 Fordyce 1977; Horsfall 2000 Buch 8 Binder 1971; Eden 1975; Gransden 1976; Fordyce<br />

1977; Novara 1986 Buch 9 Hardie 1994; Dingel 1997 Buch 10 S. J. Harrison 1991b Buch<br />

11 Gransden 1991; Horsfall 2003 Buch 12 Maguiness 1953; Traina 1997<br />

Einführungen Sellar 1877; Perret 1952; Brisson 1966; Williams 1967a; Anderson 1969;<br />

Camps 1969; Schetter 1978, 32-43; Burck 1979; Williams/Pattie 1982, 3-67; Wlosok<br />

1982; R. D. Williams 1984; Grimal 1985; R. D. Williams 1985; Giebel 1986; J. Griffin<br />

1986; R. D. Williams 1987; Salem 1988; Gransden 1990; Oksala 1990; Oroz Reta 1990;<br />

Hainsworth 1991, 95-114; Slavitt 1991; Toohey 1992, 121-43; Beye 1993, 219-55; Boyle<br />

1993; Horsfall 1995a; Hardie 1998b; Levi 1998a, 121-222; Rüpke 1998, 107-26;<br />

Suerbaum 1998a; Heuzé 1999; Suerbaum 1999; Cristóbal 2000; Perutelli 2000, 83-114;<br />

Suerbaum 2000; Braund 2002, 1-19<br />

Sammlungen “klassischer” Aufsätze und Buchkapitel Oppermann 1962; Commager 1966;<br />

Bloom 1986; Bloom 1987; Serpa 1987; S. J. Harrison 1990b; McAuslan/Walcot 1990;<br />

Hardie 1999b; S. Quinn 2000<br />

Lineare Interpretationen Otis 1963, 215-382; Putnam 1965 (Buch 2, 5, 8, 12); Klingner<br />

1967; K. Quinn 1968, 99-276; Anderson 1969, 24-100; Di Cesare 1974 (1+4, 2, 3+5, 6-<br />

12); Glei 1991, 114-231; Van Nortwick 1992, 89-182 (bes. 1, 4, 5-7, 12); Horsfall 1995a<br />

Interpretationstheorie La Penna 1981b; Conte 1982a; Conte 1982b; Glei 1991, 11-41; Conte<br />

1992; Galinsky 1992b; Martindale 1993a; Martindale 1993b, 35-54; Perkell 1994<br />

118


2. Forschungsschwerpunkte<br />

Aeneas-Mythos Büchner 1955, 1440-6=420-6; Schauenburg 1960; Galinsky 1968, 178-84;<br />

Schauenburg 1969; Horsfall 1973/4; Galinsky 1974; Scuderi 1978; Burck 1979, 79-80;<br />

Horsfall 1979; Colonna 1980; Galinsky 1981, 1007-9; Bauzá 1982; Castagnoli 1982; Noll<br />

1982; D’Anna 1983; Galinsky 1983; Burian 1985; Solmsen 1986; Grimal (1985=)1987,<br />

184-94; Suerbaum 1985a; Suerbaum 1985b; Horsfall 1986a; Suerbaum 1986b;<br />

Bremmer/Horsfall 1987; Rowland 1987a; Suerbaum 1988; Poucet 1989; Binder 1990, 152-<br />

5; Bocciolini Palagi 1990; Gransden 1990, 25-7; Poucet 1992; Galinsky 1992a; Linderski<br />

1992; Cappelli 1993; Holleman 1995; Vanotti 1995; Binder 1997, 313-7; Pasqualin 1998;<br />

Perkell 1999a, 12-4; Suerbaum 1999, 157-99<br />

Allegorische Interpretation Drew 1927; D. Thompson 1970; Gransden 1973/4; Schlunk<br />

1974, 33-5; Häußler 1976, 288-99; A. Thornton 1976; Rieks 1981b, 805-16; Della Corte<br />

1983/4; Hardie 1986a; Hardie 1986b, 29-32; J. W. Jones 1986; Wlosok 1986; Whitman<br />

1987, 47-57; Bowie 1990; Glei 1991, 24-8; Alessio 1993; Binder 1997, 321-6; Hardie<br />

1998b, 92-4; Schmit-Neuerburg 1999; Gy. Radke 2003<br />

“Archäologie” Italiens Rehm 1932; Tilly 1947; Schweizer 1967; Galinsky 1969; McKay<br />

1970; Moyaers 1977; Tilly 1977; Grandazzi 1979; G. Dury-Moyaers 1981; Edlund 1981;<br />

D’Anna 1982; R. Lefèvre 1982; Magno 1982; Galinsky 1983; D’Anna 1983/4; Horsfall<br />

1990a; Horsfall 1991e; Jocelyn 1991; Briquel 1992; Zetzel 1997; Hardie 1998b, 64-6;<br />

Pagliara 2000; Ando 2002; Marinčič 2002<br />

astrologische Interpretation Lesueur 1975; De Callataÿ 1993; J. Thomas 1995; Lesueur<br />

1996; De Callataÿ 1997; De Callataÿ 2001<br />

Augustus s. Geschichtsbild und Zeitbezug<br />

Einheit des Lebenswerkes Klingner 1930; Büchner 1955, 1457-8. 1460-1=437-8. 440-1;<br />

Otis 1963; Albrecht 1983a; Stroppini 1997; Theodorakopoulos 1997; Levi 1998b;<br />

Stroppini 2003<br />

Entstehungsgeschichte (s. a. Halbverse) Heinze 1915, 86-99. 260-4; Büchner 1955, 1361-<br />

4=341-4; 402-8; Otis 1963, 415-20; Buchheit 1964b; K. Quinn 1968, 59-64; Camps 1969,<br />

127-36; Romaniello 1975; Häußler 1976, 239-56; Burck 1979, 56-60; Berres 1982; Conti<br />

1982; G. Williams 1983, 245-85; Wifstrand Schiebe 1983; Paratore 1984; Grimal<br />

(1985=)1987, 166-83; A. H. F. Griffin 1989; Grimal 1989; Kehoe 1989; Jocelyn 1990;<br />

Hainsworth 1991, 88-95; Horsfall 1991c, 91-102; Berres 1992; Garbarino 1992, 3-9;<br />

Baldwin 1993; Lesueur 1993; Novara 1993a; Günther 1996a; Suerbaum 1999, 92-3. 100-<br />

21; D’Anna 2003<br />

Gattung<br />

Gattungstradition Conte 1978b; J. K. Newman 1986; Garbarino 1992, 19-31; Kennedy<br />

1997b; Conte 1999; Deremetz 2000; Marino 2000; Markus 2000<br />

Gattungskreuzung Anderson 1980<br />

Bukolik Anderson 1968; Anderson 1980; Rosenberg 1981, 43-54; Hardie 1998b, 60<br />

Elegie U. Hübner 1968; Saylor 1986; Cairns 1989, 129-150; Hardie 1998b, 61<br />

Epigraphik Horsfall 1986b<br />

Historiographie Rossi 1997; Rossi 2002; Rossi 2004<br />

Komödie Anderson 1980<br />

Lehrgedicht Grilli 1995<br />

Lyrik Cairns 1989, 151-76<br />

119


Tragödie Pöschl 1950, 120-52; Büchner 1955, 1371-2=351-2; K. Quinn 1963b; K.<br />

Quinn 1968, 323-49; Albrecht 1970a; Wigodsky 1972, 76-97; Rudd 1976; Wlosok 1976;<br />

Pöschl 1978; Anderson 1980; Muecke 1983; Moles 1984a; Moles 1987; S. J. Harrison 1988a,<br />

59-63; E. L. Harrison 1989; Hardie 1991; Marchetti/Marin 1991; Trisoglio 1991;<br />

Mazzocchini 1992; Gharbi 1997; Hardie 1997b; Mazzocchini 1997/8; Hardie 1998b, 62-3;<br />

Lesueur 1998; Albrecht 1999, 120-2; Deremetz 2000; Krummen 2001; Scafoglio 2001a;<br />

Scafoglio 2001b; Engar 2002; Fernandelli 2002b; La Penna 2002a; Panoussi 2002; Galinsky<br />

2003b; Hughes 2003; Krummen 2004; Rossi 2004, 44-53<br />

gendered reading Zarker 1978; Perkell 1981; Spence 1988; P. A. Miller 1989; Wiltshire<br />

1989, 38-55; Averna 1991; Nugent 1992; J. P. Sullivan 1992; Fleißner 1993; C. Clark<br />

1993/4; Oliensis 1997, 303-11; Hardie 1998b, 84-6; Nugent 1999; Keith 2000a; Beck-<br />

Chauvard 2001; Hallett 2002; James 2002; Quartarone 2002b<br />

Geschichtsbild Klingner 1943; Knoche 1952, 334-5; C. Koch 1952; Büchner 1955,<br />

1457=437; Buchheit 1963; Albrecht 1967; Buchheit 1973; Horsfall 1973/4; Horsfall<br />

1976b; Girod 1978; Basson 1979b; Rieks 1981b, 785-804; Binder 1990, 152-5; Binder<br />

1995; Zetzel 1997; Glei 1998, 125-7; Hardie 1998b, 69-71; Dopico Caínzos 1999; E. A.<br />

Schmidt 2001a<br />

Gleichnisse s. Narrative Technik<br />

Götter (s. a. Motive: fatum) Heinze 1915, 291-318; Bailey 1935; Büchner 1955, 1453-<br />

5=433-5; Boyancé 1963; K. Quinn 1968, 300-7; 316-20; Camps 1969, 41-50; E. L.<br />

Harrison 1970b; Fauth 1971; Kühn 1971; Häußler 1976, 268-76; Johnson 1976, 161-3 A.<br />

41; A. Thornton 1976; R. B. Lloyd 1976/7, 251-3; Pötscher 1977; Webb 1978/80; Burck<br />

1979, 99-111; M. O. Lee 1979, 23-29; G. H. Thompson 1979; Block 1981; Coleman<br />

1982; Fasciano 1983; G. Williams 1983, 17-39; Traina 1984; Perret 1985; J. Thomas 1985;<br />

Lyne 1987, 61-99; Pomathios 1987, 259-354; R. D. Williams 1987, 128-36; Lesueur 1988;<br />

Cairns 1989, 25-8; G. Parker 1989; Steinkühler 1989; Feeney 1991, 129-87; Herzog 1993,<br />

82-4; A. Barchiesi 1994b, 110-2=1999, 325-7; Horsfall 1995a, 138-43; Braund 1997;<br />

Hardie 1998b, 95-8; Schmit-Neuerburg 1999, 244-82; Suerbaum 1999, 242-62; E. A.<br />

Schmidt 2000/1, 167-8; E. A. Schmidt 2002, 71-<br />

Aeolus Bertman 1983<br />

Allecto Pöschl 1950, 47-56; Duhn 1957; Buchheit 1963, 101-2; W. Hübner 1970, 34-42;<br />

Fauth 1971, 69-72; Johnson 1976, 138-41. 144-9; Edgeworth 1983b; Lyne 1987, 13-9. 24-7;<br />

Feeney 1991, 162-72; Hardie 1992a, 63-6; Forsyth 1999/2000; Keith 2000a, 72-5<br />

Amor D’Anna 1987; Viarre 1995<br />

Apollo E. L. Harrison 1981, 214-7; Paschalis 1986c; J. H. Bishop 1988, 282-9; J. F. Miller<br />

1994a; J. F. Miller 1994b; Unte 1994; De Callataÿ 1995; Köves-Zulauf 1998<br />

Cybele Wiseman 1984; R. M. Wilhelm 1988; M. F. Williams 1997<br />

Diana M. P. Wilhelm 1987b; De Grummond 1997; J. T. Dyson 2001, 148-67<br />

Dirae W. Hübner 1970; Fauth 1971, 72-3; W. Hübner 1994; Hershkowitz 1998, 112-24<br />

Harpyien W. Hübner 1970, 61-73; Rabel 1985<br />

Iris Fauth 1971, 65-9<br />

Juno Buchheit 1963, 11-150; Wlosok 1967, 112-6; Buchheit 1974; Lesueur 1975, 48-67;<br />

Pötscher 1977, 139-57; Burck 1979, 105-8; Della Corte 1983; Pomathios 1987, 293-304;<br />

Carney 1988; Spence 1988, 22-51; Gransden 1990, 88-93; Feeney 1991, 130-5; Herzog 1993,<br />

81-2; Hershkowitz 1998, 95-124; Johnston 1998; Saravi 1999; Keith 2000a, 112-3; J. T.<br />

Dyson 2001, 125-30; Johnston 2002; Niehl 2002, 176<br />

Jupiter Canali 1976, 47-57; Wlosok 1978, 46-8 = 73-7; Wilson 1979; Wlosok 1983b, 191-<br />

202; Primmer 1986; Lyne 1987, 71-99; Pomathios 1987, 316-31; Cairns 1989, 25-6; Mackie<br />

1990; Feeney 1991, 137-55; Alvis 1995, 139-266; Hershkowitz 1998, 95-124<br />

120


Merkur Fauth 1971, 63-5; E. L. Harrison 1982b<br />

Minerva E. Henry 1989, 90-107; M. P. Wilhelm 1992; Spence 1999a; Spence 2001a;<br />

Niehl 2002, 176-8<br />

Saturnus Johnston 1977; Wifstrand Schiebe 1986; Scully 1988; Wifstrand Schiebe 1997<br />

Tiberinus Buchheit 1963, 180-2; Worstbrock 1963, 40-2; J. T. Dyson 2001, 50-73<br />

Venus Wlosok 1967; Burck 1979, 108-11; Lyne 1987, 13-27; Pomathios 1987, 304-15; M.<br />

P. Wilhelm 1987b; Greenwood 1989; Leach 1997/8<br />

Halbverse Sparrow 1931; Berres 1982; Berres 1992, 99-178; Baldwin 1993; Novara 1993a;<br />

Clark 1995; Günther 1996a; Novara 1996; Zwierlein 1999, 187-233<br />

Humor Zinn 1960, 47-9; Macleod 1964/5, 59-67; Antony 1976; R. B. Lloyd 1976/7; Maróti<br />

1987; Toohey 1992, 139-42<br />

Intertextualität Burck 1979, 80-3; G. Williams 1983, 82-119; Cova 1984a; D’Ippolito 1985;<br />

Lyne 1987, 100-44; Horsfall 1991c; Conte 1992; Boyle 1993, 94-8; Lyne 1994; A.<br />

Barchiesi 1995; Grilli 1995; Penwill 1995; Schrijvers 1995; Smolenaars 1995; Wills 1996;<br />

Farrell 1997; R. A. Smith 1997; Wills 1997; Wills 1998; Perkell 1999a, 7-12; Edmunds<br />

2001; Manzoni 2002<br />

Accius Wigodsky 1972, 80-97; Galli 1999; La Penna 2002<br />

Aischylos Hardie 1991; Scafoglio 2001a<br />

Alexandrinische Fußnote Horsfall 1990b; Horsfall 1991c, 117-33<br />

Alkaios Clausen 2002, 50-1<br />

Apollonios von Rhodos Büchner 1955, 1448-9=428-9; B. E. Levy 1961; Otis 1963, 62ff.;<br />

De Grummond 1977; Briggs 1981, 958-78; P. E. Knox 1984; Poliakoff 1985; Feeney 1986a;<br />

Lombardi 1986; Clausen 1987; Hardie 1987b; Bonfanti 1988; Hunter 1989; Moorton 1989a;<br />

Glei 1990, 337-9; Nelis 1991; Hollis 1992, 282-3; Pavlock 1992; Hunter 1993, 170-89;<br />

Papanghelis 1993; M. F. Williams 1997; Fernandelli 1998c; P. Gordon 1998; Hardie 1998b,<br />

59-60; Beye 1999; Conte 1999, 38-40; Jacobson 1999; Casali 2000; Nelis 2001a; Nelis<br />

2001b; Nelis 2001c<br />

Aristoteles Albrecht 1970a; M. R. Wright 1997; Albrecht 1999, 120-2<br />

Calvus Alfonsi 1982<br />

Carmina epigraphica Gómez Pallarèz 1993<br />

Cato M. Barchiesi 1981; Lentini 1989; Hall 1992<br />

Catull Rand 1906, 22-8; Büchner 1955, 1451=431; Westendorp-Boerma 1958, 57-63; E.<br />

L. Harrison 1970a; Ferguson 1971/2; Wigodsky 1972, 126-39; Monteleone 1976; Tracy 1977;<br />

Schmiel 1979; Németh 1981/2; Nadeau 1982; Arkins 1986; Johnston 1987; Putnam 1989a;<br />

Lyne 1992, 261-9; Hamilton 1993; Lyne 1994, 187-93; Putnam 1995b; Wills 1996, 26-30;<br />

Petrini 1997; Fernandelli 1998c; Hardie 1998b, 58-9; Wills 1998; Bleisch 1999, 212-8;<br />

Feldherr 1999, 107-11; Konstan 2000; Armstrong 2002, 331-4<br />

Choirilos von Samos Hollis 2000<br />

Cicero Büchner 1955, 1451=431; Wigodsky 1972, 109-14; Lamacchia 1964; Narducci<br />

1983; Goldberg 1995, 143-4. 150. 168; Penwill 1995, 18-22; Nadeau 2000<br />

Ennius Norden 1915; Norden 3 1927, 365-75; Fraenkel 1945, 271-6; Büchner 1955, 1448-<br />

9=428-9; Buchheit 1963, 82-4. 144-5; Klingner 1967, 367-82. 523-6. 579-81; Wigodsky<br />

1972, 15-25. 40-79.; Albrecht 1977, 32-7; Burck 1980; Narducci 1983; Feeney 1984; Leeman<br />

1985b; Hardie 1986b, 76-83; Garbarino 1992, 139-48; Albis 1993; Hickson 1993, 27-8;<br />

Krevans 1993, 266-71; Cloud 1993; Goldberg 1995, 21-5. 83-4. 107. 155; Hardie 1998b, 53-<br />

4; Hinds 1998, 11-14; Khan 1998; Fernandelli 1999a; Suerbaum 1999, 150-2; J. Reed 2001;<br />

Kofler 2003, 76-88<br />

Epischer Kyklos Kopff 1981; A. Barchiesi 1994b, 117-8=1999, 333-4<br />

121


Euripides Pavlock 1985; Casadio 1986/7; Jacobson 1987; Albis 1993; Fernandelli 1996b;<br />

Scafoglio 2001b; Burzacchini 2002; Engar 2002; Fernandelli 2002a; Hughes 2003<br />

Furius Antias Broccia 1990<br />

Gallus O’Hara 1993b<br />

Hellenistische Dichtung Hügi 1952; Cova 1963; J. K. Newman 1967, 207-60; Wimmel<br />

1973; Clausen 1987; Hollis 1992; Thome 2000<br />

(Ps.-)Hesiod Feeney 1986a, 74; Sider 1988; Faber 2000<br />

Homer Heinze 1915, passim; Pöschl 1950, passim; Büchner 1955, 1446-8=426-8;<br />

Anderson 1957; Kühn 1957; Mackay 1957; B. E. Levy 1961; Cova 1963; Otis 1963, 5-61.<br />

215-382; R. D. Williams 1963; Knauer 1964a; Knauer 1964b; K. Quinn 1968, 284-8; Camps<br />

1969, 75-83; La Penna 1971; Wimmel 1973; Segal 1974; D. A. West 1974; Johnson 1976;<br />

Albrecht 1977, 32-7; Kopff 1977; J. O’Sullivan 1977; Smets 1977, Rabel 1978; A. Barchiesi<br />

1980; Block 1980; Burck 1980; Lossau 1980; R. Williams 1980; E. L. Harrison 1981; Knauer<br />

1981; Paratore 1981b; King 1982; Albrecht 1983b; Bettini 1983; Lausberg 1983; Willcock<br />

1983; A. Barchiesi 1984; K. Quinn 1984; Bonfanti 1985; Jenkyns 1985; Leeman 1985b;<br />

Pavlock 1985; Deremetz 1987; Lyne 1987; Nethercut 1987b; Nethercut 1987c; Scarpat 1988;<br />

E. G. Schmidt 1988; Willcock 1988; Cairns 1989, 177-248; Grebe 1989, 17-73; Jacobson<br />

1989; Gransden 1990, 24-35; Lonsdale 1990; S. J. Harrison 1991b, xxviii-xxxi; Garbarino<br />

1992, 33-124; Berres 1993; Garabino 1993; Herzog 1993, 85-7; Hickson 1993, 28-31;<br />

Smolenaars 1993; Hardie 1994, 6-10; Vogt-Spira 1994; Di Benedetto 1995; Horsfall 1995a,<br />

181-4; Hughes 1997; Wills 1997; P. Gordon 1998; Hardie 1998b, 54-7; Wills 1998; Barnes<br />

1999; Bleisch 1999, 203-12; Conte 1999; Schmit-Neuerburg 1999; Suerbaum 1999, 141-9;<br />

Adrados 1999/2000; Ferenczi 2000; Nadeau 2000; Deremetz 2001; Nelis 2001c; Quint 2001;<br />

Anderson/Quartarone 2002, 201-24; Barnes 2002; E. A. Schmidt 2002, 65-73; Galinsky<br />

2003b, 280-3; Rossi 2004<br />

Homerische Hymnen A. Barchiesi 1994b, 116-7=1999, 332-3<br />

Homer-Kommentare Schlunk 1974; Grafton/Swerdlow 1986; Erler 1992, 122-4; Hardie<br />

1998b, 56-7; Barnes 1999; Fucecchi 1999; Schmit-Neuerburg 1999<br />

Horaz Buchheit 1963, 145-50; Saylor 1979; Feeney 1984<br />

Kallimachos George 1974; Salvatore 1985; Mayer 1988; Salvatore 1991; Hollis 1992,<br />

270-5; Tissol 1992; Geymonat 1993; Heyworth 1993; A. Barchiesi 1994a; Bleisch 1996;<br />

Hardie 1998b, 60; Tueller 2000; O’Hara 2000/1; Bertalozzi 2002<br />

Leonidas von Tarent Casadio 1986/7<br />

Livius Burck 1980; Woodman 1989; S. J. Harrison 1997<br />

Livius Andronicus Wigodsky 1972, 16-21<br />

Lucilius Wigodsky 1972, 105-8<br />

Lukrez Büchner 1955, 1452=431; Farrington 1963; Reynen 1965; D. A. West 1970;<br />

Wigodsky 1972, 126-39; Shea 1977; Barigazzi 1982; Hardie 1984; Hardie 1986a; Hardie<br />

1986b, 157-240; Grimal 1986; Currie 1988; Lucherini 1989; Mellinghoff-Bourgerie 1990,<br />

173-93; Hardie 1992a, 64-5; Hamilton 1993; D. Romano 1993/4; Lyne 1994, 193-6; Penwill<br />

1995, 23-5; C. Weber 1995; J. T. Dyson 1997b; Farrell 1997, 233-6; Gale 1997, 181-2. 186-7;<br />

Fernandelli 1998c; Giesecke 2000, 59-94; Warden 2000<br />

Lykophron Mascialino 1982; Gigante Lanzara 1999<br />

mythologische Anspielungen/Erfindungen Horsfall 1991d; Horsfall 1993c<br />

Naevius Büchner 1955, 1449=429; Buchheit 1963, 23-57; Klingner 1967, 367-82;<br />

Wigodsky 1972, 22-39; Horsfall 1973/4; Luck 1983; Goldberg 1995, 54-5. 74-5. 161;<br />

Horsfall 1999; Suerbaum 1999, 152-6<br />

Nikander Hollis 1992, 283-5<br />

Orphische Theologie Merkelbach 1951; Treu 1954; Turcan 1956; Lloyd-Jones/Parsons<br />

1978; Habinek 1989, 232-3; Horsfall 1993e<br />

Pacuvius Wigodsky 1972, 80-97<br />

122


Parthenios Clausen 1976; Horsfall 1991d<br />

Philodem von Gadara Erler 1992; Indelli 2001; Indelli 2004; Johnston 2004; Obbink<br />

2004; Schroeder 2004; Skinner 2004; Wigodsky 2004<br />

Platon Miguet 1987; Leclercq 1993; Penwill 1995, 13-8; Shiffman 2001<br />

Plautus R. B. Lloyd 1992<br />

Polybios Traill 2001<br />

Römisches Epos Wigodsky 1972, 98-104<br />

Römische Tragödie Stabryła 1970; Wigodsky 1972, 76-97; Galinsky 2003b, 290-3<br />

Sallust Ash 2002, 256-7; Horsfall 2002<br />

Sophokles Holford-Strevens 1999<br />

Terenz R. B. Lloyd 1992<br />

Varius Rufus Dewar 1988b; Gigante 1996; Hollis 1996; Galli 1999<br />

Varro Horsfall 1980; Horsfall 1981b; Deschamps 1986; Horsfall 1991c, 112-5<br />

Intratextualität (Buc.↔Georg.↔Aen.) Wimmel 1973; Crabbe 1978-80; Briggs 1980;<br />

Briggs 1981/2; Moskalew 1982; Anderson 1984; Anderson 1986; Gale 1997; Niehl 2002<br />

Kommentatoren, antike Georgii 1871; Camps 1969, 111-20; Rosati 1979; Zetzel 1981;<br />

Timpanaro 1986; Kaster 1988, 169-96; Glei 1990, 321-3; Jocelyn 1990; Jones 1996; P. E.<br />

Knox 1997; Zwierlein 1999, 86-137; Keith 2000a, 18-35; Timpanaro 2001<br />

Berner Scholien Lentini 1998<br />

Donatus, Aelius Daintree 1990<br />

Donatus, Tiberius Claudius Squillante Saccone 1985; Starr 1991; Estefanía Álvarez 1998<br />

kommentierende Bemerkungen bei antiken Autoren Görler 1979; Jocelyn 1981;<br />

Costanza 1990; Barabino/Nazzaro/Scivoletto 1991-2000; Timpanaro 2001<br />

Probus Jocelyn 1984; Delvigo 1985; Delvigo 1987; Jocelyn 1989; Gioseffi 1991<br />

Servius Anderson 1981; Lazzarini 1984; Rosati 1987; Lazzarini 1989; Jocelyn 1989;<br />

Timpanaro 1989a; R. B. Lloyd 1992; Eigler 1994; Dietz 1995; D. Fowler 1997b; Marshall<br />

1997; Starr 1997; Uhl 1998; Gasti 2002; Murgia 2002; Peraki-Kyriakidou 2002/3; Ramires<br />

2003; Scarcia 2003; McDonough/Prior/Stansbury 2004; Scarcia 2004<br />

Servius Danielis Jocelyn 1981; Timpanaro 1981; Jocelyn 1989; Timpanaro 1989a;<br />

Timpanaro 1989b; Baschera 2000b<br />

Veroneser Scholien Baschera 1999; Abbamonte 2000; Baschera 2000a; Baschera 2000b;<br />

M. Negri 2002<br />

Leser und Hörer Farron 1983; Block 1986; Farron 1986; Hexter 1989/90; S. J. Harrison<br />

1991b, xxi-xxii; Horsfall 1991c, 55-66; Farron 1993 passim; Schrijvers 1995; Smolenaars<br />

1995; Laird 1997, 287-93; R. A. Smith 1997; Markus 2000; Campbell 2001<br />

Metrik Norden 3 1927, 363-458; Maguinness 1953, 20-36; Büchner 1955, 1429-37=409-17;<br />

K. Quinn 1968, 415-23; Duckworth 1969; Ott 1973-86; P. Eden 1975, 193-201; Fortassier<br />

1979; Collart 1980; Fourcade 1980; Giesche 1980; Greenberg 1981; Kollmann 1982; P. L.<br />

Smith 1982; Dangel 1983; Robaey 1983; Chênerie 1984; Dangel 1985a; Vaccaro 1985/6;<br />

Nussbaum 1986b; Hellegouarc’h 1987; Huxley 1987; C. Weber 1987; De Neubourg 1989;<br />

Möhler 1989; Maris 1990/1; S. J. Harrison 1991a; Goold 1992; Huxley 1993; Horsfall 1995d;<br />

Chausserie-Laprée 1996; Pontes 1998; Flores Gomez 1999a; Flores Gomez 1999b; Pontes<br />

1999; Campbell 2001, 46-56; Fry 2002; Goold 2002; Burgersdijk 2003<br />

Motive, Themen und Begriffe<br />

admiratio Heuzé 1990<br />

Ägeis und Inseln Doubellis 2001<br />

Ärzte Lentini Merlino 1989<br />

123


Aitien Binder 1971; Rieks 1981b, 817-29; Rocca 1983; Taliercio 1985; Binder 1988;<br />

Horsfall 1991a; Binder 1995, 94-5; Franchi 1995; Wofford 1999; Tueller 2000<br />

Alter Riganti 1995<br />

Altitalien Rehm 1932; Canali 1976, 85-94; Moorton 1989b; Wifstrand Schiebe 1997;<br />

Zetzel 1997; Hardie 1998b, 64-6<br />

Anachronismen Sandbach 1965/6<br />

anima, mens, etc. Negri 1992<br />

Armut La Penna 2004<br />

ars Bartsch 1998<br />

augurium Ripoll 2002<br />

Baum und Wald J. Thomas/Gallais 1989; Gallais/Thomas 1997<br />

Bauwerke Rowell 1941; E. Henry 1986; Trapp 1986; Zarker 1988; Scargliarini Corlaita<br />

1989; Jaeger 2002<br />

Berge Vásquez Munera 1988; Geymonat 2000<br />

Betrug Bandini 1987<br />

Bienen Leach 1977<br />

Blendung C. A. Gibson 1999<br />

Blumensymbolik Edgeworth 1983a<br />

Blut Barabino 1989<br />

condere James 1995<br />

conubium R. P. H. Green 1986<br />

Corythus E. L. Harrison 1976; Horsfall 1976a; Palmucci 1988; Palmucci 1990, Palmucci<br />

1991; Palmucci 1992; Palmucci 1993; Palmucci 1994a; Palmucci 1994b; Dingel 1995<br />

Cumae R. J. Clark 1991<br />

cunctari J. H. Bishop 1988, 251-5<br />

decorum Clausen 1995a; Clausen 2000, 1-25<br />

Delphisches Orakel Paschalis 1986c<br />

dignitas Noonan 2003<br />

dolor Negri 1978; Pötscher 1983<br />

dolus Abbot 2000<br />

duritia McGushin 1964<br />

Eid Callaway 1994<br />

Eintracht/Zwietracht Cairns 1985 ~Cairns 1989, 85-108. 207-8. 236ff.<br />

Erinnerung s. memoria und Vergessen<br />

Eros Canali 1976, 73-84; Briggs 1977; Gillis 1983; Buisel de Sequeiros 1985/6;<br />

Makowski 1989/90; Saylor 1986; Cairns 1989, 54-7. 147-9; Wiltshire 1989, 108-115; Pavlock<br />

1990; Pavlock 1992; Gale 1997, 177-82; Oliensis 1997, 303-11; Stroppini 1997; C. Lloyd<br />

1999; Binder 2000a, 136-9. 140-2; Loupiac 2002; Scully 2003<br />

Etrusker Palmucci 1988; Palmucci 1990, Briquel 1991; Palmucci 1991; Palmucci 1992;<br />

R. M. Wilhelm 1992; Palmucci 1994a; Palmucci 1994b; Kobakhidze 2003<br />

externus Horsfall 1991b<br />

Fahrt Lesueur 1981; J. Thomas 1984<br />

Fanatismus Dion 1996b<br />

Farben Worstbrock 1963, 240-4; Maselli 1976/7; Edgeworth 1978; Edgeworth 1979a;<br />

Edgeworth 1979b; Parodi Scotti 1982; Edgeworth 1983a; Edgeworth 1987; Edgeworth 1992<br />

fatum Bailey 1935, 204-34; Büchner 1955, 1348-9. 1458-60=328-9. 438-40; K. Quinn<br />

1968, 320-3; Camps 1969, 41-50; Kühn 1971, 97-101; Canali 1976, 47-57; Lebrun 1976;<br />

Liebermann 1976; A. Thornton 1976, 150-8; Halperin 1977; Pötscher 1977; Burck 1979, 101-<br />

5; Wilson 1979; Commager 1981b; Haury 1981; Rabel 1981b; Ortega Carmona 1982; G.<br />

Williams 1983, 3-16; Fasciano 1984; A. Thornton 1984; Lyne 1987, 71-5; Wessels 1987;<br />

Gransden 1990, 96-100; Herzog 1993, 82-4; Önnerfors 1998; Suerbaum 1999, 337-9<br />

124


feruidus J. H. Bishop 1988, 270-5<br />

Feuer Schwarz 1983; Battegazzore 1983/4; Zoicas 1989; Scully 2000<br />

fides Mackie 1988; Pöschl 1991<br />

Flora Maggiulli 1995<br />

Fortuna Kristol 1990<br />

Fremdvölker Glei 1991, 342-5<br />

Furcht Dion 1990b<br />

furor A. Thornton 1976, 159-63; Korpanty 1985; Cairns 1989, 82-4; Putnam 1990a; R.<br />

Thomas 1991; Erler 1992; Galinsky 1994; M. R. Wright 1997; Herskowitz 1998; Spence<br />

2002b; Adler 2003, 77-101<br />

Gastfreundschaft Wiltshire 1989, 83-106; R. K. Gibson 1999; Khan 2002b<br />

Gebet Jeanneret 1973; Anderson 1993; Hickson 1993; La Bua 1999, 146-58; Dingel 2000<br />

Geschenke Rutledge 1979; Heuzé 1985a; E. Henry 1989, 18-42; Frangoulidis 1992<br />

Geschlechterrollen Glei 1991, 345-56<br />

Gesetzgeber und Gesetz M. F. Williams 2003<br />

Gewissen Porto de Farias 1983<br />

Glück, Lust und Freude Rieks 1989, 195-211; Dion 1990a<br />

Gold Crookes 1984<br />

Goldenes Zeitalter Reynen 1965; Wifstrand Schiebe 1981, 41-53; Wallace-Hadrill 1982;<br />

Kubusch 1986, 91-147; Brisson 1992; Fabre-Serris 1998, 32-5; Perkell 2002, 28-36; Adler<br />

2003, 147-66<br />

Grausiges und Ekelhaftes Fuhrmann 1968, 37-41; Donaldson 1988<br />

Griechen J. H. Bishop 1988, 50-73; Rengakos 1993; Hardie 1998b, 70-1; Perotti 1998/9;<br />

Stahl 1999; Perotti 2002b<br />

Gründungsmythen C. P. Jones 1995; Cancik 2004<br />

Gründungsprodigien E. L. Harrison 1986b; Horsfall 1989a<br />

Heilsprophetie De Witt 1923<br />

„Heimkehr“ Cairns 1977; Wiltshire 1989, 66-82; Cairns 1989, 109-28; Suerbaum 1993a,<br />

429-33<br />

heros Breuker 2002<br />

historische Kontinuität Horsfall 1991a<br />

Hochzeit Khan 1986<br />

Hoffnung und Begierde Rieks 1989, 162-75<br />

Identifikationsangebot Schrijvers 1995<br />

ingens Salat 1983; Keith 1991<br />

iustitia Pötscher 1983<br />

Jagd Dunkle 1973; Glei 1991, 316-24; Hardie 1998b, 91<br />

Jugend und Alter Elftmann 1979; De Rosalia 1984<br />

Kampfszenen Heinze 1915, 194-236; Pöschl 1950, 169ff.; Fuhrmann 1968, 39-41; Kühn<br />

1971, 142-7; Gaßner 1972, 73-5; Raabe 1974, 126-32. 166-142; Krischer 1979, 147-53; E. A.<br />

McDermott 1980; Köhnken 1981; Willcock 1983; Bonfanti 1985, 31-84; Hardie 1986b, 285-<br />

91; Horsfall 1987; S. J. Harrison 1988a, 54-8; Lyne 1989, 100-16; Mazzocchini 1992;<br />

Horsfall 1995a, 179-81; A. Foucher 1997; Mazzochini 1997/8; Schmit-Neuerburg 1999, 300-<br />

27; Esposito 2000; Mazzocchini 2000; Rossi 2004<br />

Karthago und die Karthager E. L. Harrison 1984; Vicenzi 1985; Niemeyer 1993; Sirago<br />

1994; Devallet 1997; Waldherr 2000<br />

Klage Beck Chauvard 2001<br />

Kleidung Bender 1994<br />

Könige Pomathios 1985; Pomathios 1987, 25-83; Cairns 1989, 1-84; Erler 1992, 122-4;<br />

Evans 1992; Fish 2004<br />

Körper Adams 1980; Heuzé 1985b; Bowie 1998; Zaina 1998<br />

125


Kolonisation Horsfall 1989a<br />

Krankheit Dion 1992<br />

Kreta Day 1984; Armstrong 2002; S. West 2003<br />

Krieg und Frieden Basson 1979a; Massaro 1982/3; Lyne 1983b; Tar 1984a; Puccioni<br />

1985b; S. J. Harrison 1988a; Glei 1989; Lana 1989; Glei 1991; Sini 1991; Wiltshire 1992;<br />

Thome 1993a; D. A. Phillips 1997; Currie 1998; Keith 2000b<br />

labor Negri 1978; Pötscher 1983; De Rosalia 1983; Wiltshire 1989, 122-35; Kristol 1990;<br />

Loupiac 1992; Goins 1992/3; Bruck 1993<br />

laetus Lyne 1989, 181-5<br />

Landschaft Pöschl 1950, 231-9; Reeker 1971; Puccioni 1977; C. R. Phillips 1978/9;<br />

Maggiulli 1995; Haß 1998; Witek 2006<br />

libertas Noonan 2003<br />

Licht Deramaix 1994<br />

locus amoenus Haß 1998<br />

Lügengeschichten Casali 2003<br />

maiestas Noonan 2003<br />

Mantua Gasser 1999, 62-73<br />

Meere und Flüsse Canali 1976, 7-22; Castresana 1982<br />

memoria und Vergessen E. Henry 1989; Herzog 1993; Most 2001; Walde 2004<br />

Metamorphose Dauge 1983; Fantham 1990-2; Hardie 1992a, 61-72; Gale 1997, 177-82;<br />

Hardie 1999a, 94-5; Zgoll 2004<br />

militärische Terminologie Malavolta 1996<br />

Mitleid Fourcade 1984<br />

Mond M. O. Lee 1988<br />

monstra Glei 1991, 326-7<br />

Mütter Wiltshire 1989, 38-55<br />

Musen Suerbaum 1987a; Laird 2002a, 126-33; Karamalengou 2003<br />

novissima verba García Zapata 1994<br />

Opfer Hardie 1992b, 57-9; Hardie 1993, 19ff.<br />

Orakel Suerbaum 1999, 254<br />

Periplus Reeker 1971, 82-99<br />

Pflanzenwelt Maggiulli 1995<br />

pietas McLeish 1972; M. O. Lee 1979, 17-23; Sauvage 1979; Pomathios 1987, 213-29;<br />

Mackie 1988; Wiltshire 1989, 135-8; Garrison 1992; Suerbaum 1999, 207-9; Spence 2002b;<br />

Adler 2003, 219-31; Johnston 2004; Obbink 2004<br />

primus J. H. Bishop 1988, 339-40<br />

Prodigien Heinze 1915, 315-7; Grassmann-Fischer 1966; Block 1981, 94-254; Gasparotto<br />

1987; Gasparotto 1989; Mellinghoff-Bourgerie 1990, 59-99; Suerbaum 1999, 259-62<br />

Propheten Lentini Merlino 1989<br />

Prophezeiungen Heinze 1915, 315-7; Kühn 1971, 50-8. 92-101; Mack 1978, 55-84; Block<br />

1981, 94-254; Gasparotto 1987; Reeve 1987; J. H. Bishop 1988, 27-49; E. Henry 1989, 108-<br />

29; Mellinghoff-Bourgerie 1990, 59-99; O’Hara 1990a; Botha 1992; Novara 1993b;<br />

Suerbaum 1999, 252-3; Jouanno 2003<br />

Prunk La Penna 2004<br />

Rache Wlosok 1990a, 425-30; Lassandro 1997<br />

Raum und Zeit J. Thomas 1987; J. Thomas 1988<br />

Rom und Afrika Romanelli 1981<br />

Rüstung Kühn 1957<br />

sacred space Mills 1983<br />

saevus P. E. Knox 1997<br />

salus Brenk 1999b, 122-7<br />

126


sancio Brenk 1999b, 127-31<br />

sane Hansen 1997<br />

Schiffe des Aeneas Estefanía Álvarez 1995b<br />

Schlachtopfer Glei 1991, 311-6<br />

Schmerz A. Barchiesi 1993; A. Barchiesi 1994b<br />

Schuld Rudd 1976; Vielberg 1994; Niehl 2002, 228-32; J. Thomas 2002<br />

Selbstdistanzierung Wiltshire 1984<br />

Speiseszenen Schlerath 1981<br />

spolia Cleary 1982<br />

Stadt Morwood 1991<br />

Stadtgründung Carney 1986; Horsfall 1989a; Miles 1999<br />

Sterne Botha 1991; Gigante 1994<br />

subridens R. J. Newman 1988<br />

superbia Christenson 2002<br />

superbus J. H. Bishop 1988, 256-69<br />

supplicatio Blessington 1998/9<br />

tectum Lázaro García 2001<br />

Tempel Horbury 1999<br />

Tiber Benario 1978a; Jenkyns 1998, 401-2; J. T. Dyson 2001, 50-73<br />

Tibur Meurant 1998<br />

Tod Raabe 1974, 63-241; Gillis 1983; Tieffemberg 1985/6; O’Hara 1990a; Campelo<br />

Issaly/Cardigni Morales 2001<br />

Traum und Prophezeiung Heinze 1915, 313-7; Steiner 1952; Kragelund 1976; Block<br />

1981, 94-254; Mafra 1983/4; Gasparotto 1987; Bouquet 2001, 19-53; Walde 2001, 261-311<br />

Troja, Trojaner, trojanisch Hahn 1984; Wiltshire 1989, 66-82; Cristóbal 1993;<br />

Winterbottom 1993; Mannsperger 1995; Jenkyns 1998, 409ff.; Anderson 2002; Smolenaars<br />

2002<br />

tropaeum Nielson 1983<br />

Tyrus und Sidon Kinsey 1981a<br />

Umarmung Belfiore 1984<br />

Väter und Söhne Bertman 1976; Pavlovskis 1976; Wlosok 1978, 42-8=67-75; M. O. Lee<br />

1979; Block 1980; De Rosalia 1984; Tschiedel 1987; Gransden 1990, 84-8; D. Fowler 1996;<br />

Butler 1996/7; Michels 1997/8; Hardie 1998b, 67-9; C. Lloyd 1999; Kofler 2003, 81-3<br />

vates J. K. Newman 1967, 101-28.<br />

Verantwortung Duclos 1993/4<br />

Verwünschung und Entsühung Petter 1994a<br />

Virginität Mitchell 1991<br />

Vulkanismus Johnston 1996; Scarth 1999/2000<br />

Waffen Heinze 1915, 201-5<br />

Wandel Hornsby 1987<br />

Wasser Zoicas 1991<br />

Wein J. Griffin 1995<br />

Zeit(ebenen) Mack 1978; Wiltshire 1989, 22-37; Luciani 1997<br />

Zorn und Raserei Rieks 1989, 175-95; Cairns 1989, 78-84; Dion 1990c; Wlosok 1990a,<br />

430-5; Erler 1992; Delbey 1996; D. Fowler 1997a; Gill 1997; Indelli 2001; P. Gagliardi 2003;<br />

Gill 2003; Fish 2004; Indelli 2004<br />

Zorn und Zähneknirschen Schmit-Neuerburg 1999, 328-34<br />

„Zwilling“, epischer Hardie 1992b<br />

Nachleben (stark beschränkte Auswahl!) Büchner 1955, 1461-84=441-64; Jackson Knight<br />

1966, 362-98; Dudley 1969; Seel 1973; Chevallier 1978, 81-540; Suerbaum 1981b; Taegert<br />

1982, 11-19; Williams/Pattie 1982, 72-122; Atti 1983; Fabbroni 1983; Atti 1984; Martindale<br />

127


1984; Suerbaum 1984a; Bernard 1986; Cardwell/Hamilton 1986; Gigante 1986; J. Griffin<br />

1986, 107-12; R. D. Williams 1987, 137-61; Gransden 1990, 104-11; Kallendorf 1990;<br />

Burrow 1993; Kallendorf 1993; T. Ziolkowski 1993; Irmscher 1995, 69-167; Albrecht 1997;<br />

Binder 1997, 321-9; J. M. Ziolkowski 1997/8; Suerbaum 1998c; R. Thomas 2001; Kofler<br />

2003, 105-17, Kailuweit 2005<br />

Antike Chevallier 1978, 81-194; Tarrant 1997a<br />

Augusteische Dichtung Jenkyns 1998, 593-630<br />

Außerliterarisch S. Ferraro 1982; Horsfall 1984; Horsfall 1995e<br />

Boethius Goins 2001<br />

Britannia Prouincia Benario 1978b<br />

Centones Bright 1984; Pavlovskis 1989; Kyriakidis 1992; G. Salanitro 1992; Kyriakidis<br />

1994b; Kyriakidis 1994c; McGill 2001; Formica 2002; McGill 2002; Paolucci 2002; McGill<br />

2003<br />

Claudian Gioseffi 1999/2000; Prenner 2002<br />

Epigramme in der Anthologia Latina Klecker 1996<br />

Flavische Epiker Gossage 1969<br />

Frühes Christentum Freund 2000<br />

Augustin MacCormack 1998; Pfligersdorffer 1998<br />

Fulgentius Laird 2001<br />

Hieronymus Messina 2000<br />

Prudentius Lühken 2002<br />

Griechen Irmscher 1985<br />

Griechische Literatur der Kaiserzeit Baldwin 1976<br />

Handschriften Seider 1976<br />

Kunst Gesztelyi 2000<br />

Livius François 2002; Vasaly 2002, 288-90<br />

Lucan Feeney 1986b, 16-9Hardie 1993; Martindale 1993b, 48-53; Barnes 1995, 268-72:<br />

Putnam 1995e; Panoussi 2003<br />

Ovid Barnes 1995, 257-67; Putnam 1995e; Huskey 2002; Keith 2002; Andrae 2003;<br />

Farrell 2004; P. A. Miller 2004<br />

Petron Bodoh 1987; M. Salanitro 1995<br />

Pompeianische Graffiti S. Ferraro 1982<br />

Properz Laird 2000, 151; Miller 2004<br />

Quintus Smyrnaeus Gärtner 2005<br />

Seneca, Tragödien Putnam 1992a<br />

Silius Italicus Hardie 1992b, 66-9; Hardie 1993; Barnes 1995, 287-92; Hardie 2004,<br />

151-3<br />

Spätantike Heck 1990; Wlosok 1990d; J. M. Ziolkowski 1998; Delvigo 2004<br />

Statius Hardie 1992b, 62-6; Hardie 1993; Barnes 1995, 279-86; Feeney 2004<br />

Tabula Iliaca Dognini 2001<br />

Tacitus Putnam 1989b; Ash 2002, 268-72<br />

Tibull Fabre-Serris 2001<br />

Valerius Flaccus Hardie 1993; Barnes 1995, 273-8<br />

Mittelalter Comparetti 1896; Seel 1965, 298-303; Chevallier 1978, 195-278; P. G.<br />

Schmidt 1982; Courcelle/Courcelle 1984; Kaster 1990; Burrow 1993; Sauer 1997; J. M.<br />

Ziolkowski 1998; J. M. Ziolkowski 2004<br />

Byzanz Baldwin 1976, 367-8; Baldwin 1982, 81-8<br />

Deutschland Worstbrock 1996<br />

Ermenrich von Ellwangen Suerbaum 1995; Laird 2001, 50-3<br />

England Singerman 1986; Baswell 1995<br />

128


Laurentius von Durham Daub 2003<br />

Epos Schaller 1987; N. Wright 2001<br />

Frankreich Singerman 1986; Brückner 1987; García Pradas 2004<br />

Italien<br />

Dante Whitfield 1969; Iannucci 1982; Jenkyns 1985; Brückner 1987; Macdonald 1987;<br />

Putnam 1988; Grebe1989, 129-82; Martindale 1993b, 43-8; Laird 2001; Faggiano 2001/2; A.<br />

Heil 2002; Jacoff 2002; Perkell 2004<br />

Petrarca Elwert 1982; Klecker 2001; Hardie 2004, 153-6; Hinds 2004<br />

Neuzeit Chevallier 1978, 279-505; Wlosok 1990d; Burrow 1993; Burrow 1997b; R.<br />

Thomas 2001<br />

17. Jahrhundert Chevallier 1978, 367-82<br />

18. Jahrhundert Chevallier 1978, 383-410<br />

19. Jahrhundert Klingner 1942, 239-42; Seel 1965, 303-10; Chevallier 1978, 411-24;<br />

Fabbroni 1983, 197-210<br />

20. Jahrhundert Johnson 1976, 1-16; Chevallier 1978, 425-505; Suerbaum<br />

(1979~)1981b, 7<br />

Aeneas Seret-Dereau 2001<br />

Deutschland<br />

Romantische Poetik Worstbrock 1963, 20-5<br />

Sebastian Brant Schneider 1983<br />

Hermann Broch Cox 1997; Lowrie 2004<br />

Richard Heinze Klingner 1942, 242-5; Hardie 1995<br />

Dagmar Nick Vogt 2003<br />

Christa Wolf Suerbaum 1987b, 86-7 = 1993a, 408-9<br />

Dido Leube 1969; Farron 1979; R. Martin 1990; Farron 1993, 70-81; Burden 1998;<br />

Binder 2000b, Kailuweit 2005<br />

Drama Schuchard 1984<br />

England McKay 1969; R. D. Williams 1969; Koppenfels 1983; Schuchard 1984;<br />

Singerman 1986<br />

Byron Cardinale 2002<br />

Dryden Koppenfels 1983<br />

Eliot Kennedy 1997a<br />

Golding Jones 2001<br />

Milton Worstbrock 1963, 247-58; Koppenfels 1983; Jenkyns 1985; McDonald 1987;<br />

Grebe 1989, 221-73; Butler 1996/7; Cook 2002; Hardie 2004, 149-53; Quint 2004<br />

Pope Koppenfels 1983<br />

Spenser Hardie 2004, 147-8<br />

Übersetzungen D. A. West 1989; Burrow 1997a; Anderson 1999b; Quartarone 2002a,<br />

4-10<br />

Film/Fernsehen Suerbaum 1983a, 262-3; Lillo Redonet 2003<br />

Frankreich Leube 1969; McKay 1969; Singerman 1986<br />

Maurice Blanchot Lowrie 2004<br />

Michel Butor Suerbaum 1987b, 87-91 = 1993a, 409-13<br />

François Guyet Reitz 2001<br />

Christine de Pizan Bajoni 2002<br />

Jules-César Scaliger Laurens 2001<br />

Übersetzungen Arnstutz 2002<br />

Frühdrucke Acanfora Quintavalle 1981; Schneider 1982; Kallendorf 1991a;<br />

Davies/Goldfinch 1992; Venier 2001<br />

Heldenschau Grebe 1989<br />

Italien Zabughin 1921-3; Leube 1969; Kallendorf 1999a; Kallendorf 1999b<br />

129


Balbi, Girolamo Scott 2004<br />

Colluccio Salutati Laurens 2001<br />

Dudone di San Quintino Stok 1999<br />

Giovanni Pontano Laurens 2001<br />

Tasso Worstbrock 1963, 201-47; Grebe 1989, 191-220; Grebe 2001<br />

Benedetto Croce Parente 1979; Puccioni 1981a<br />

Übersetzungen Kallendorf 1994<br />

Katabasis Laird 2001<br />

Kosmologie Hardie 1986b, 377-86<br />

Kunst Fagiolo 1981; Taegert 1982; Suerbaum 1984b; Pasquier 1992; Liversidge 1997;<br />

Barrow 2001; Bender/Califf 2004<br />

Miniaturen in Hss. Eggenberger 1977; Mütherich 1982; Stevenson 1983; Geyer 1989;<br />

Wlosok 1992a; Wlosok 1992b; Wlosok 1992c; Ruysschaert 1993; D. H. Wright 1993;<br />

Wlosok 1997/8; Wlosok 1998; Kallendorf 2001; Wlosok 2001; Wright 2001; Wlosok 2002<br />

Wandmalereien Wandhoff 1996<br />

Girodet-Trioson Stief 1986<br />

Barry Moser Suerbaum 1983b<br />

Buchillustrationen Suerbaum 1984b; Novara 1990; Suerbaum 1992; Sebesta 1993/4;<br />

Croisille 1994<br />

Musik Taegert 1982; Draheim 1983<br />

Oper Schuchard 1984; K.-D. Koch 1990<br />

Berlioz Fitzgerald 2004<br />

Purcell H. M. Lee 1977; Ketterer 1992a; Lehman 2004<br />

Niederlande Paardt 2003<br />

Nooteboom Paardt 1995<br />

Renaissance Worstbrock 1963, 11-20; Chevallier 1978, 279-365; Kallendorf 1989;<br />

Vogt-Spira 2002<br />

Rumänien Creţia 1998-2000<br />

Russland<br />

Puschkin Rudich 2003<br />

Spanien Leube 1969; Laird 2002b; Laird 2003b<br />

USA Wiltshire 1979; Reinhold 1987<br />

Robert Lowell Johnson 2004<br />

F. Scott Fitzgerald Briggs 1999<br />

Narrative Technik Heinze 1915; Duckworth 1933; Otis 1963, 41-96; K. Quinn 1968, 71-97.<br />

277-349; Albrecht 1970b; Otis 1976; Monaco 1979; Perutelli 1979; Gransden 1984; Bonfanti<br />

1985; Block 1986; Gransden 1990, 66-75; Cova 1992; D. Fowler 1997c; Hardie 1998b, 71-9;<br />

Kyriakidis 1998; Ciccone 2002; Gy. Radke 2003, 103-7<br />

Affekt und Struktur Rieks 1983; Rieks 1989<br />

Apostrophe Block 1982; Effe 1983, 185-6<br />

‘Beinahe-Episoden’ Nesselrath 1992, 74-84<br />

Darstellung Heinze 1915, 355-435<br />

Ekphrasis Heinze 1915, 396-403; Dubois 1982, 28-51; Simon 1982; Geymonat 1989;<br />

Lonsdale 1990; D. Fowler 1991; Boyd 1992; Boyd 1995; A. Barchiesi 1997b; Bartsch 1998;<br />

Hardie 1998b, 75-7; Deuling 1999; Lowrie 1999; Rogerson 2002<br />

Empathie und Sympathie Otis 1963; Conte 1999<br />

Erzählebenen Heinze 1915, 386-96; Ramminger 1991<br />

Erzählerfigur Block 1982; Effe 1983; Block 1986; Laird 1997, 287; Perkell 1999a, 24-6;<br />

Suerbaum 1999, 357-75; Gy. Radke 2003, 103-7Effe 2004, 37-46<br />

Erzählstruktur Ahl 1989<br />

Erzähltempo K. Quinn 1963a<br />

130


Erzählzeit Della Corte 1981; Poulle 1991<br />

Fokalisation Coleiro 1979; Conte 1986, 152-4; D. Fowler 1990; Coleiro 1991; D. Fowler<br />

1991; D. Fowler 1997b, 74-6; D. Fowler 1997c, 266-7; Laird 1997, 285-6; R. A. Smith 1997,<br />

159-71; Hardie 1998b, 75; Conte 1999<br />

freie indirekte Rede Perutelli 1979; D. Fowler 1990; Laird 1997, 286-7; Laird 1999, 167-<br />

83<br />

Gleichnisse Pöschl 1950, 78-9. 99-117. 131-5. 154-5. 166-9. 173-4. 183-4. 197-203. 230.<br />

239-41. 262-4; Duhn 1957; Coffey 1961; Brackert 1962; Hornsby 1964; Anderson 1968; D.<br />

A. West 1969; Hornsby 1970; D. A. West 1970; Segal 1973/4; Canali 1976, 59-71; Johnson<br />

1976, 75-99; Bowie, etc. 1977, 129-30; O’Neal 1977; Perutelli 1977; G. Williams 1980;<br />

Rieks 1981a, 1068-90; Vögler 1981; Salvatore 1982; Segena Romas 1982; G. Williams 1983,<br />

60-7; Albrecht 1984; S. J. Harrison 1986; Nimis 1987, 115-138; Soave 1987; Salvatore 1988;<br />

Cairns 1989, 109-13; Lyne 1989, 63-99. 128-48; Townend 1989; Lonsdale 1990; O’Hara<br />

1991/2; Briggs 1992; Hardie 1998b, 90-1; Albrecht 1999, 129-33; Suerbaum 1999, 273-94;<br />

Niehl 2002, 185-201<br />

Handlungsführung Heinze 1915, 318-54; Andersson 1976, 53-103; Suerbaum 1999, 295-<br />

9<br />

Kataloge Lesky 1970; Reeker 1971, 99-125; Gaßner 1972; Saylor 1974; Basson 1975;<br />

Hollis 1992, 275-7; Mazzocchini 1992; Mazzocchini 1997/8; Mazzocchini 2000; Kyriakidis<br />

2004<br />

Metadiegese A. Barchiesi 1997a<br />

Monologe Heinze 1915, 427-31<br />

point of view Bowie, etc. 1977, 132-7; Rosati 1979; Block 1981; Segal 1981a; Holt 1982;<br />

Bonfanti 1985; D. Fowler 1990; Traina 1990; D. Fowler 1991; S. C. Smith 1999<br />

reader response Block 1986<br />

Redeankündigungen Sangmeister 1978, 10-54<br />

Reden Heinze 1915, 403-35; Highet 1972; Highet 1974; Lundström 1977; Feeney 1983;<br />

Hornsby 1984; Rieks 1989, 39-52; Helzle 1996; Laird 1999, 153-208; Suerbaum 1999, 262-<br />

73; Erdmann 2000; Görler 2002; Ziolkowski 2004<br />

Spiegelung Albrecht 1965; Biow 1994; Albrecht 1995; Hardie 1998b, 88; Niehl 2002,<br />

219-33 und passim<br />

Szenenresponsion Görler 1986<br />

und ‘Autorintention’ Görler 1986<br />

Vorausdeutung Duckworth 1933<br />

Personen<br />

Affekte Rieks 1989<br />

Charakterisierung Heinze 1915, 265-91; Burck 1958, 132-9; K. Quinn 1968, 307-16;<br />

Squillante Saccone 1981; Romeuf 1983; Farron 1989; Laird 1997; Rocca 1996; Hardie 1998b,<br />

80-1; Werner 2002<br />

Ethnische Zuordnung Suerbaum 1967<br />

Gebärden Muecke 1984; Ricottilli 1992; Lobe 1999; Ricottilli 2000<br />

Körpersprache Braund 1998; Lobe 1999<br />

Konstitution J. Griffin 1982<br />

Leidenschaften Dion 1993<br />

Paradoxie Hardie 1996<br />

Persönlichkeit Braund 1998<br />

Acestes Wiltshire 1989, 93-5; Adkin 2001c<br />

Achates Eubanks 1982; Lossau 1987; Opelt 1987; T. Weber 1988; Santini 1996<br />

Achilles Mackay 1957; Camps 1969, 21-30; Van Nortwick 1980; Galinsky 1981, 999-<br />

1001; King 1982; S. C. Smith 1999<br />

131


Aeneas Heinze 1915, 271-80; H. J. Rose 1948; Pöschl 1950, 57-115; Pöschl 1952; Mackay<br />

1957; Burck 1958, 132-9; F. A. Sullivan 1959; Clausen 1964; Poe 1965; Seel 1965, 326-8;<br />

Suerbaum 1967; Kraggerud 1968, 11-105; Camps 1969, 21-30; Kühn 1971, 95-6; Putnam<br />

1972; Galinsky 1974; Binder 1975; Berényi-Révész 1976; Liebermann 1976; Miles 1976;<br />

Foster 1977; H. M. Lee 1977; Conte (1978b=)1986, 172-84; P.-M. Martin 1978; Nisbet 1978;<br />

Burck 1979, 84-90; Parente 1979; Galinsky 1981, 1007-9; Puccioni 1981a; Stahl 1981;<br />

Adamik 1982-5; King 1982; Wlosok 1982; Feeney 1983; Lyne 1983b; Parmeggiani La Rocca<br />

1983; Rodón 1983; E. G. Schmidt 1983; Vedoya de Guillen 1983; Conte 1984a; Nielson<br />

1984; Pöschl 1984; De Castro/Sousa Pimentel 1985; M. Griffith 1985; D. J. Levy 1985;<br />

Wlosok 1985b; Camps 1986; Johnson 1986; Mansilla 1986; J. Thomas 1986; Bandini 1987;<br />

Lyne 1987, 144-206; McKay 1987; Pomathios 1987, 161-258; Rowland 1987b; Rutledge<br />

1987; R. D. Williams 1987, 78-101; J. H. Bishop 1988, 302-26; Hellegouarc’h 1988; Mackie<br />

1988; Valgiglio 1988; Cairns 1989, 29-39. 49-54. 58-84; Fuhrer 1989; O’Hara 1990a, 88-127;<br />

Stahl 1990; Higgins 1991/2; Erler 1992, 110-3; Fleißner 1993; A. H. F. Griffin 1993; Herzog<br />

1993, 87-9; Suerbaum 1993a; Cambronne 1994; Fasciano/Castor 1996; Galinsky 1996, 123-5.<br />

238-9. 248-9; Helzle 1996, 67-82; Michels 1997/8; Braund 1998; Hardie 1998b, 80-2; Otón<br />

Sobrino 1998; Gordesiani 1999; Holoka 1999; Schmit-Neuerburg 1999, 83-161; Suerbaum<br />

1999, 201-9; Heuzé 2000; Köves-Zulauf 2000; Seret-Dereau 2001; Breuker 2002; Chew<br />

2002; Clausen 2002, 59-61. 75-113; Clauss 2002; Lesueur 2002; C. Weber 2002; Werner<br />

2002; Adler 2003, 219-99; Giancotti 2003; R. Williams 2003; Cova 2004<br />

Aiax Pardini 1989; Panoussi 2002<br />

Amata La Penna 1967; Buchheit 1963, 102-8; Schweizer 1967, 22-34; Zarker 1969; Burke<br />

1976; Bowie, etc. 1977, 138-9; Foster 1977; Lyne 1987, 13-27; Carney 1988; Brazouski<br />

1991; Cardinali 1995; Fantham 1998; Schmit-Neuerburg 1999, 210-20; Keith 2000a, 75-6;<br />

Niehl 2002, 171-5<br />

Anchises Büchner 1955, 1358=338; R. D. Williams 1962, 5-6; Gillis 1984; Pomathios<br />

1987, 235-40; Tschiedel 1987; R. D. Williams 1987, 101-5; Fajardo-Acosta 1990; Quint<br />

1993, 60-1<br />

Androgeos Rauk 1991<br />

Andromache G. S. West 1983; Wiltshire 1989, 43-47; Biow 1994, 229-32<br />

Anna G. S. West 1979, 333-7; Castellani 1987; Nelis 2001c, 136-46<br />

Ascanius Moseley 1926, 47-67; Baker 1980; Manson 1981; Suerbaum 1981b, 92-5;<br />

Pomathios 1987, 230-5; J. H. Bishop 1988, 290-301; Lopez de Vega/Granados de Arena<br />

1998; Laird 1999, 192-6; Dingel 2001; Edgeworth 2001; Merriam 2002<br />

Caieta Brugnoli 1991; Keith 2000a, 47-8<br />

Camilla Heinze 1915, 215-6; De Witt 1924/5; Auerbach 1958; Schweizer 1967, 53-63;<br />

Kepple 1976; Duke 1977; Köves-Zulauf 1978; Arrigoni 1982; Egan 1983; McKay 1983;<br />

Bonfanti 1985, 178-207; G. S. West 1985; Basson 1986; M. P. Wilhelm 1987b; Arrigoni<br />

1988; Carney 1988; Cristóbal 1988/9; Horsfall 1988; La Penna 1988; Spence 1988, 43-7; Glei<br />

1991, 352-6; Mitchell 1991; Hardie 1992b, 60; Boyd 1992; Nuñes Torrão 1993; Cristofoli<br />

1993-5; Hardie 1996, 107-8; Hardie 1997b, 321; T. H. Becker 1997/8; Jenkyns 1998, 564ff.;<br />

Keith 2000a, 27-31; Niehl 2002, 206-13; Horsfall 2003, 465-72; Trundle 2003<br />

Circe Hardie 1992a, 66-9; Stoffelen 1994; Gale 1997, 180-1; Keith 2000a, 48-9<br />

Creusa Briggs 1979; Perkell 1981; Hughes 1997; Keith 2000a, 117-8; Edgeworth 2001;<br />

Niehl 2002, 178-9; González Delgado 2003<br />

Dardanus R. M. Wilhelm 1992; Palmucci 1988; Palmucci 1990, Palmucci 1991; Palmucci<br />

1992; Palmucci 1994a; Palmucci 1994b<br />

Deiphobus Fuqua 1982<br />

Dido De Witt 1907; Pöschl 1950, 99-152; Rupprecht 1959; K. Quinn 1963b; La Penna<br />

1967; G. Williams 1968, 374-87; Camps 1969, 31-5; McLeish 1972; Horsfall 1973/4; Dubois<br />

1976; Rudd 1976; Wlosok 1976; Foster 1977; Kopff 1977; L. Foucher 1978; E. Lefèvre<br />

132


1978b; Burck 1979, 95-9; Farron 1979; G. S. West 1979; Bianco 1980; G. S. West 1980a;<br />

Monti 1981; Perkell 1981; Vögler 1981; Adamik 1982-5; Muecke 1983; G. S. West 1983;<br />

Zamboni 1983; Bono 1984; Moles 1984a; Bonfanti 1985, 85-159; Cowherd 1986; Bandini<br />

1987; Clausen 1987, 106-7; Jacobson 1987; Lyne 1987, 13-27. 45-9; Moles 1987; Murgia<br />

1987; M. P. Wilhelm 1987b; R. M. Wilhelm 1987; R. D. Williams 1987, 105-18; Carney<br />

1988; Cairns 1989, 39-54. 129-50; E. L. Harrison 1989; Matt 1989; Moorton 1989a; R.<br />

Martin 1990; Moorton 1990; Pavlock 1990, 72-87; Daviault 1991; Marchetti/Marin 1991;<br />

Hexter 1992; J. P. Sullivan 1992; Farron 1993, 70-145; Fleißner 1993; Hamilton 1993; Hunter<br />

1993, 175-82; Biow 1994; McKay 1994; Estefanía Álvarez 1995a; Mazzini 1995; Swanepoel<br />

1995; J. T. Dyson 1996a; Helzle 1996, 49-66; Gharbi 1997; Hardie 1997b, 321-2; Senés<br />

Rodríguez 1997; Bowie 1998; Jenkyns 1998, 391-2; Soler Merenciano 1998; Flores Gomez<br />

1999a; Schmit-Neuerburg 1999, 103-31; Suerbaum 1999, 211-36; Bertman 2000; Binder<br />

2000b; Drake 2000; Erdmann 2000, 117-87; Keith 2000a, 23-6. 68-9. 112-9; Beck-Chauvard<br />

2001; Krummen 2001; Nelis 2001c, 125-85; E. A. Schmidt 2001a; Armstrong 2002, 329-34;<br />

Bajoni 2002; Clausen 2002, 75-113. 211-2; Hughes 2002; Khan 2002b; Niehl 2002, 171-83;<br />

C. Weber 2002; R. A. Smith 2002/3; Adler 2003, 103-33; Stroppini 1993; B. Hannah 2004,<br />

141-8; Krummen 2004<br />

Diomedes Wiltshire/Krickel 1982; Paolella 1982; Paolella 1983; Wiltshire 1989, 98-105;<br />

Jenkyns 1998, 572ff.; Pasqualini 1998; Papaïoannou 2000<br />

Drances La Penna 1971; Burke 1978; W. C. McDermott 1980; Scholz 1999; Horsfall 2002<br />

Euander Wiltshire 1989, 96-8; Beck-Chauvard 2001; Delcourt 2001; Niehl 2002, 181-2;<br />

Papaïoannou 2003<br />

Euryalus’ Mutter Wiltshire 1989, 47-55; Nugent 1999, 254-60; Beck-Chauvard 2001<br />

Hector Thill 1980; Fuqua 1982<br />

Helena Carbonero 1989; Niehl 2002, 179-80<br />

Hercules Galinsky 1972, 131-49; Zarker 1972; Galinsky 1981, 1004-7; Feeney 1986a;<br />

Hardie 1986b, 213-9; Feeney 1991, 155-62; Glei 1991, 324-32; A. Barchiesi 1994b, 110-<br />

2=1999, 325-7; Huttner 1997; Hardie 1998b, 83; Marinčič 2002; J. K. Newman 2002<br />

Idmon Casali 2000<br />

Ilioneus J. H. Bishop 1988, 20-6<br />

Iuturna G. S. West 1979, 37-41; Castellani 1987; C. Manning 1988; Mitchell 1991; Niehl<br />

2002, 175<br />

Latinus Buchheit 1963, 86-100; Foster 1977; Lesueur 1979; Pomathios 1987, 58-66;<br />

Cairns 1989, 62-66; Wiltshire 1989, 95-6; Pace 1990; Fasciano/Castor 1996<br />

Lausus P. Gagliardi 2003<br />

Lavinia Cairns 1989, 151-176; Keith 2000a, 49-50<br />

Mezentius Heinze 1915, 213-5; Schweizer 1967, 53-63; Dumézil 1976; J. W. Jones 1977;<br />

Conte (1978b=)1986, 165-6; P.-M. Martin 1978; Thome 1979; Farron 1979/80; La Penna<br />

1980; Glenn 1981; La Penna 1981a; Basson 1984a; Gotoff 1984; Bollók 1985; E. L. Harrison<br />

1988; Briquel 1989; Blaive 1990; Blaive 1992; Gaskin 1992, 309ff.; Briquel 1995; Beck-<br />

Chauvard 2001; S. Heil 2001, 230-53; Niehl 2002, 203-6; Pralon-Julia 2002; Cova 2004<br />

Misenus Pearce 1983; McKay 1984; J. T. Dyson 2001, 39-41. 82-4<br />

Neoptolemus Amram 1991/2<br />

Nisus und Euryalus Heinze 1915, 216-9; La Penna 1971; Pavlock 1985~1990, 87-112;<br />

Hardie 1992b, 61; Farron 1993, 1-30; Pizzolato 1995<br />

Numanus Schweizer 1967, 14-22<br />

Odysseus Stanford 2 1963, 128-37; Villers 1976; Galinsky 1981, 1001-4; Setaioli 1995<br />

Orpheus Loupiac 2001<br />

Palinurus Ambrose 1980; Lossau 1980; Speranza 1981; Perace 1983; McKay 1984;<br />

Kinsey 1985; Augello 1988; Laudizi 1988; Nicoll 1988; O’Hara 1990a, 16-24; Horsfall<br />

133


1991c, 100-2; Quint 1991, Herzog 1993, 105-6; Quint 1993, 83-96; Setaioli 1997b; Köves-<br />

Zulauf 1998/9; J. T. Dyson 2001, 67-71. 74-88; Patimo 2002; Adler 2003, 288-91<br />

Pallas Heinze 1915, 216; Gillis 1983, 53-83; P. Gagliardi 2003<br />

Pandarus und Bitias Hardie 1992b, 61<br />

Paris Ripoll 2000a<br />

Priamus Mills 1978<br />

Scylla Zgoll 2004, 72-5. 106-7<br />

Sibylle Pollard 1982; Quiter 1984; Saggioro 1996; Johnston 1998<br />

Sychaeus Fuqua 1982; Dyck 1983<br />

Tarcho Fasciano/Castor 1996<br />

Turnus Heinze 1915, 211-2; Garstang 1950; Pöschl 1950, 153-227; Buchheit 1963, 102-8;<br />

Camps 1969, 35-40; Albrecht 1970a; Kepple 1976; Foster 1977; Demeyere 1978; P.-M.<br />

Martin 1978; Burck 1979, 90-5; Van Nortwick 1980; Schmoll 1981; King 1982; Gillis 1983,<br />

85-115; Paratore 1983a; Rieks 1983, 163-9; Paratore 1983/4; Schenk 1984; Renger 1985;<br />

Galinsky 1987; Pomathios 1987, 66-79; R. D. Williams 1987, 119-27; Valgiglio 1988;<br />

Spence 1988, 47-51; Cairns 1989, 66-84; Mackie 1990; O’Hara 1990a, 61-87; Mitchell 1991;<br />

Erler 1992, 107-10; Gaskin 1992; Helzle 1996, 67-82; Gale 1997; Schmit-Neuerburg 1999,<br />

161-210; R. Thomas 1998; Albrecht 1999, 120-2; Negri 1999; Putnam 1999b; Suerbaum<br />

1999, 236-8; S. Heil 2001, 214-7; J. T. Dyson 2001, 12-24; Nelis 2001c, 365-81; Niehl 2002,<br />

213-7; Cova 2004; B. Hannah 2004, 148-63<br />

Tyrrhus Gagé 1978<br />

Philosophie Haecker 1931; A. Thornton 1976; Lesueur 1978; Negri 1978; Schoder 1980;<br />

Rabel 1981b; Schilling 1981; Paratore 1983b; Schoder 1983; Primmer 1986; Ferguson 1988;<br />

Cairns 1989, 32-9; Rieks 1989, 25-39; Mellinghoff-Bourgerie 1990; Currie 1992; Michel<br />

1991; Leclercq 1993; Alvis 1995, 139-266; Braund 1997; Fabre-Serris 1998, 88-91; Hardie<br />

1998b, 98-100; Wooley 1997/8<br />

Epikureismus Dominici 1985; Ferguson 1988; Putnam 1990a; Erler 1992; Galinsky 1994;<br />

Dion 1996a; J. T. Dyson 1996a; J. T. Dyson 1997b; P. Gordon 1998; Gigante 2001 ~ Gigante<br />

2004, 96-9; Obbink 2002<br />

Kynizismus Cairns 1989, 33-8<br />

Pythagoreismus Miguet 1998<br />

Stoa Bowra 1933/4; Pöschl 1950, 89-94; M. W. Edwards 1960; Dominici 1985; Cairns<br />

1989, 32-3; E. Henry 1989, passim; Rieks 1989, 28-39; Alberte 1993; Fladerer 1998; Laycock<br />

1999<br />

Poetik Pendas de Buzón/Schniebs de Rossi 1991; Most 1992; Boyle 1993, 99-104; Deremetz<br />

1995, 156-71; Suerbaum 1999, 364-6; Deremetz 2000; Deremetz 2001; Kofler 2003<br />

Psychologische/psychoanalytische Interpretation Fahr 1983; J. Thomas 1986; J. Thomas<br />

1989b; Oliensis 2001<br />

Religion (s. a. Götter) Bailey 1935; Boyancé 1963; A. Thornton 1976; Bandera 1981;<br />

Wlosok 1983b; Gasparotto 1987; R. D. Williams 1987, 128-36; Mellinghoff-Bourgerie 1990;<br />

Montanari 1994; Braund 1997; D. A. Phillips 1997; Feeney 1998b; Oroz Reta 1999<br />

Schulautor Laage 1959; Cleary 1976-87; Pietsch 1980; Suerbaum 1979~1981b; Randall<br />

1982, Scanlan 1982/3; Suerbaum 1983a; Glücklich 1984a; Glücklich 1984b; Jahn 1995;<br />

Nickel 1985; Nickel 1993; Anderson/Quartarone 2002; Ward/Meltzer 2002<br />

Sprache und Stil Norden 3 1927, 363-458; Austin 1929; Cordier 1939; Büchner 1955, 1429-<br />

37=409-17; Bömer 1957; Wilkinson 1959; Otis 1963, 41-96; Worstbrock 1963, 122-99;<br />

Bömer 1965; Jackson Knight 1966, 399-418; K. Quinn 1968, 350-440; G. Williams 1968,<br />

134


682-782; Anderson 1969, 101-9; Camps 1969, 61-74; Burkhardt 1971; Clarke 1976; J. D.<br />

Bishop 1979; Brughera 1979; Burck 1979, 112-9; Görler 1979; Kinsey 1979b; Adams<br />

1980; Giesche 1980; Gugliardi 1980; Mack 1980a; Colucci 1981; Edgeworth 1981;<br />

Colucci 1982; Görler 1982a; Görler 1982b; Oroz Reta 1982b; Dangel 1983; Meier 1983;<br />

Dion 1984; Losada 1984; Lyne 1984; Negri 1984; Vitale 1984; Dales 1985; Dangel 1985a;<br />

Dangel 1985b; Habinek 1985; Facchini Tosi 1985/6; Salat 1985-8; Ceccarelli 1986; J.<br />

Griffin 1986, 68-75; Oksala 1986; Traina 1986; Soave 1987; Lyne 1989; Dubrocard 1990;<br />

Gransden 1990, 50-66; Klemke 1990; Oksala 1991; Pasini 1991; Giacomelli 1992; Heuzé<br />

1992; Lyne 1992; Goold 1992; Hickson 1993; Horsfall 1993b; Klause 1993; Horsfall<br />

1995d; Kleywegt 1995; Campbell 1996; Lesueur 1996; Recio Muñiz 1996; Dangel 1997;<br />

O’Hara 1997; Tarrant 1998; Adams/Mayer 1999; Görler 1999; Otón Sobrino 1999;<br />

Pinkster 1999; Facchini Tosi 2000; Campbell 2001; La Penna 2002b<br />

Adjektive Vaccaro 1980<br />

Alliteration Greenberg 1980; Swiatala 1981; Reinke 1986<br />

Bildersprache und Metaphorik B. Knox 1950; Pöschl 1950; Newton 1957; Fenik 1959;<br />

K. Quinn 1968, 431-40; Ferguson 1970/1; Hunt 1973; Raabe 1974; Heuzé 1979a; González<br />

Vázquez 1980; J. Thomas 1981; Vögler 1981; González Vázquez 1981-3; J. Thomas 1983/4;<br />

Rodón 1984; Arkins 1986; González Vázquez 1986/7; Pasini 1993; Hardie 1998b, 91; Scarth<br />

1999/2000; Catrein 2002, 58-66 und passim<br />

Inseln und Meer Doukelis 2001<br />

Jagd Nelis 2001c, 125-35<br />

Tiere Townend 1989; Stephens 1990; Gale 1997<br />

Wagen/Schiff R. M. Wilhelm 1983/4<br />

Chiasmus Pasini 1986; Pasini 1987; Pasini 1991<br />

Eigennamen Rupprecht 1959; Peduto 1991; Gély 1992a; Klause 1993; Paschalis 1997;<br />

Laroche 1998<br />

Epitheta Worstbrock 1963, 168-99; Squillante Saccone 1978; Bonfanti 1985, 208-80;<br />

Etymologien Ambrose 1980; Commager 1981; Egan 1983; O’Hara 1990b; Cockburn<br />

1992; Maltby 1993; A. Barchiesi 1994b, 109 = 1999, 324; O’Hara 1996a; Paschalis 1997;<br />

Bleisch 1998; O’Hara 2000/1; Adkin 2001c; Adkin 2002; McGowan 2002; Kyriakidou 2002;<br />

Peraki-Kyriakidou 2003/4; Boldrer 2004<br />

Hendiadys Sanchez Muñoz 1976<br />

Homoioteleuton Clarke 1972<br />

Hyperbole Hardie 1986b, 241-91<br />

Interjektionen Marchetta 1994<br />

is, ea, id Campbell 1991; Campbell 2001, 107-33.<br />

Konjunktiv Rubio Sañudo 1994<br />

Metonymie V. Ferraro 2000<br />

Neologismen Meier 1983<br />

Oxymoron Hardie 1996<br />

Paradoxon Hardie 1996<br />

Parataxe Klemke 1990<br />

Parenthese Tarrant 1998<br />

Periphrase von Eigennamen Klause 1993<br />

phonetische Effekte Simonetti Abbolito 1987; Scafoglio 1997/8<br />

Polysemie und Ambiguität Perkell 1994; R. Thomas 2000<br />

Psychonyme Negri 1984<br />

Syntax Görler 1982a; Görler 1982b; Recio Muñiz 1996<br />

Tempusgebrauch K. Quinn 1968, 88-97; Albrecht 1970b; Mack 1978, 33ff.; Albrecht<br />

1999, 134-41; Pinkster 1999; Adema 2004<br />

universal expressions Hardie 1986b, 293-335<br />

135


Verba frequentativa Vitale 1984<br />

Vers und Syntax Worstbrock 1963, 122-67<br />

Wortspiele Ahl 1985; Murgia 1987; Moskalew 1990; C. Weber 1990; Paschalis 1997<br />

Wortwahl Salat 1982; Gély 1992b<br />

Wortwiederholungen Segura Ramos 1995<br />

Struktur Heinze 1915, 171-82. 436-65; Conway 1928; Pöschl 1950, 84 A. 1. 279-82; Perret<br />

1952, 111-20 ~ 1965, 113-21; Camps 1954; Duckworth 1954; Büchner 1955, 1437-<br />

40=417-20; Duckworth 1957; Lloyd 1957a; Camps 1959; Fenik 1959; Duckworth 1962;<br />

Otis 1963, 415-20; Worstbrock 1963, 26-121; Duckworth 1967, 141-50; K. Quinn 1968,<br />

64-71; Camps 1969, 51-60; Wimmel 1973; Lesueur 1975; Monteleone 1976; E. L.<br />

Harrison 1977; Burck 1979, 60-3; Giesche 1980; E. L. Harrison 1980; Coleiro 1981;<br />

Moskalew 1982; Coleiro 1983; 76-106; R. Thomas 1983; Bacon 1986, 321-34; Moskalew<br />

1988; E. G. Schmidt 1988; Johnston 1989; Rieks 1989, 14-20; Gransden 1990, 42-50;<br />

Kytzler 1990; Farron 1993, 61-3; Leclercq 1993; Horsfall 1995a, 135-7; Mitchell-Boyask<br />

1996; Dräger 1998; Hardie 1998b, 86-90; Laird 2000, 146-53; E. A. Schmidt 2002, 70-1<br />

Buchmitten Kytzler 1990<br />

Ringkomposition Moskalew 1982, 116-22.<br />

Verswiederholungen Sparrow 1931; Segal 1974; Berres 1982; Moskalew 1982; Brown<br />

1990a; Wills 1996; Wills 1997; Hardie 1998b, 87-8; Zwierlein 1999, 138-44; Niehl 2002<br />

Symbolische Interpretation Cruttwell 1946; Pöschl 1950; Putnam 1965; Gransden 1973/4;<br />

Richmond 1976; Benario 1978a; E. L. Harrison 1979; Rieks 1981b, 805-16; J. Thomas 1981;<br />

J. Thomas 1989a; Glei 1991, 24-8; J. Thomas 1992c; Boyle 1993, 80-3; Gy. Radke 2003<br />

Titel Mantke 1985<br />

Topographie Paratore 1977; Castagnoli 1977; Castagnoli 1981; Monaco 1981; Paratore<br />

1981a; Paratore 1982b; Castagnoli 1983a; Castagnoli 1983b; Horsfall 1985; Mayer 1986<br />

Typologische Interpretation D. Thompson 1970; Binder 1971; Buchheit 1973; Gransden<br />

1973/4; Rieks 1981b, 805-16; J. Griffin 1982; Glei 1991, 24-8; Herzog 1993, 84-7; Binder<br />

1995, 95-7; Hardie 1998b, 92-3<br />

Überlieferung (beschränkte Auswahl) Büchner 1955, 1474-5=454-5; Jackson Knight 1966,<br />

342-61; Seider 1976; Mallon 1979; Courtney 1981; Gigante 1986; Timpanaro 1986;<br />

Delvigo 1987; Geymonat 1987; Kaster 1990; Cormier 1991; Geymonat 1995; Horsfall<br />

1995b; Rochette 1999; Suerbaum 1999, 88-92; Zwierlein 1999, 15-233; Zwierlein 2000a;<br />

Zwierlein 2000b; Velaza 2001; Quartarone 2002a, 10-12<br />

Zahlensymbolik Laroche 2002<br />

Zeitbezug Norden 1901; Norden 1915; Drew 1927, 60-97; Rowell 1941; De Grassi 1945; H.<br />

J. Rose 1948; Bömer 1951; C. Koch 1952; Mette 1960; Buchheit 1963; Parry 1963; K.<br />

Quinn 1968, 23-58; G. Williams 1968, 54ff. 426ff.; Camps 1969, 95-104. 137-43; Binder<br />

1971; La Penna 1971; Galinsky 1972, 131-49; Burck 1975, 19-24; Canali 1976, 35-46;<br />

Häußler 1976, 256-76; Pöschl 1977; Mack 1978, 55-84; R. D. Williams 1978/80;<br />

Suerbaum (1979~)1981b, 19-22; Suerbaum 1981b, 76-95; M. O. Lee 1979, 8-17; Farron<br />

1980b; Stocker 1980; Coleiro 1981; Farron 1981; Johnson 1981; Pöschl 1981b, 722-7;<br />

Rieks 1981b, 829-46; Stahl 1981; Farron 1982; Little 1982, 256-73; Nadeau 1982; Coleiro<br />

1983, 5-36; Fores 1983; E. Lefèvre 1983; 25-40; Rudd 1983; Schmitthenner 1983;<br />

Strasburger 1983, 69-76; G. Williams 1983, 132-56; R. M. Wilhelm 1983/4; Galinsky<br />

1984; J. Griffin 1984; E. L. Harrison 1984;; Suerbaum 1984c; Wiseman 1984; Wistrand<br />

1984; Farron 1985; Nicoll 1985; Puccioni 1985c; Camps 1986; Miles/Allen 1986;<br />

136


Gesztelyi 1987; Kraggerud 1987b; Luisi 1987; Nethercut 1987a; Pomathios 1987; Binder<br />

1988; J. H. Bishop 1988, 7-19. 327-38; D’Anna 1988; Nicoll 1988; R. M. Wilhelm 1988;<br />

Zarker 1988; Cairns 1989 passim; Glei 1989; Grimal 1989; Pöschl 1989; Zetzel 1989;<br />

Binder 1990, 152-5; D’Elia 1990; Koster 1990; Stahl 1990; Wlosok 1990a; Wlosok 1990c;<br />

Glei 1991; Hardie 1991; Montenegro Duque 1991; Morwood 1991; Toll 1991; Vessey<br />

1991; Hardie 1992a; Nicastri 1992; Powell 1992; Ternes 1992; M. K. Thornton 1992; R.<br />

M. Wilhelm 1992; Bauzá 1993; D. A. West 1993b; Cambronne 1994; Erren 1994; Koster<br />

1994; J. F. Miller 1994b; J. Thomas 1994a; J. Thomas 1994b; J. Thomas 1994c; Alvis<br />

1995, 139-266; Binder 1995, 92-97; Feldherr 1995; J. T. Dyson 1995/6; Dognini 1996;<br />

Galinsky 1996; Stroppini 1996; Dognini 1996/7; Desy 1997; Perotti 1997; Tarrant 1997b,<br />

177-86; Zetzel 1997; Adamik 1998; Fabre-Serris 1998, 58-62; Glei 1998; Gottlieb 1998;<br />

Jenkyns 1998, 631-77; McKay 1998; Bell 1999; Loupiac 1999; J. F. Miller 2000; Vidal<br />

2000; Wlosok 2000; J. T. Dyson 2001; Johnson 2001; Klodt 2001, 11-36; Nelis 2001b; E.<br />

A. Schmidt 2001b; R. Thomas 2001, 25-54; Perotti 2002b; Putnam 2002b; C. Weber 2002;<br />

Adler 2003; Evans 2003; Grebe 2004; Nadeau 2004; Syed 2004;<br />

137


3. Analysen von Buchgruppen, einzelnen Büchern und Textabschnitten<br />

1-6 Otis 1963, 215-312; Knauer 1964a, 148-222<br />

1-4 R. M. Wilhelm 1987<br />

1 Pöschl 1950, 270-2; Büchner 1955, 1337-45=317-25; Otis 1963, 227-41; Knauer 1964a,<br />

148-80. 371-8; H. Koch 1966; Klingner 1967, 383-409; K. Quinn 1968, 99-112; Anderson<br />

1969, 24-32; Austin 1971, ix-xviii; Horsfall 1973/4; Di Cesare 1974, 1-18; Andersson<br />

1976, 54-68 (Szenenführung); Bowie, etc. 1977, 137-8; M. O. Lee 1979, 30-6; Monti<br />

1981; Segal 1981a; Camps 1983; Coleiro 1983, 37-41; Lausberg 1983; Rieks 1983, 146-<br />

51; J. Griffin 1986, 77-82; Binder 1988, 269-70. 285 (Aitien); Soave 1987 (Sprache);<br />

Mackie 1988, 16-44; T. Weber 1988, 33-114 (Achates); Rieks 1989, 201-7 (laetus);<br />

Edgeworth 1992, 21-2 (Farben); Frangoulidis 1992; Garbarino 1992, 45-97 (Homer); Van<br />

Nortwick 1992, 89-107; Garbarino 1993 (Homer); E. Binder/G. Binder 1994; Horsfall<br />

1995c, 101-8; Paschalis 1997, 34-69. 409 (Namensetymologien); Fernandelli 1999d;<br />

Perkell 1999b; Suerbaum 1999, 46-49; La Fico Guzzo 2000b; S. Heil 2001, 92-106; Niehl<br />

2002, 15-25. 128-30 (Selbstzitate)<br />

Ille ego qui ... Camps 1969, 121-3; Goold 1970, 85-9; Austin 1971, 25-27; Schmid 1983,<br />

299-341; La Penna 1985; Suerbaum 1986a; Koster 1988; Gamberale 1991; Nuttall 1992,<br />

17-9; Theodorakopoulos 1997, 160-1; Zwierlein 1999, 31-4; Laird 2003b, 26-7; Maleuvre<br />

2003; Farrell 2004, 46-52; Fontaine 2004<br />

1-476 Möhler 1989, 44-6<br />

1-222 R. D. Williams 1965/6, 14-9; R. D. Williams 1987, 31-4; Feeney 1991, 129-37 (1-156);<br />

Van Ryneveld 1992; Laird 1999, 157-64.<br />

1-11 Pöschl 1950, 257-9; Laage 1959, 546-9 (1-7); Buchheit 1963, 13-20; Worstbrock 1963,<br />

31-2 (1-7); K. Quinn 1968, 40-3 (1-7); G. Williams 1968, 725-6 (16-8); Anderson 1969, 5-<br />

23; Austin 1971, 25-34; Burkhardt 1971, 413 (4); Kühn 1971, 11-3; Albrecht 1972, 7-16;<br />

Galinsky 1974 (1); Raabe 1974, 63-70; Vretska 1977 (1-7); Préaux 1978 (1-7); Block<br />

1981, 31-35; Lebek 1982; Albrecht 1983b; Fredericksmeyer 1984; Nussbaum 1986a (1-7);<br />

C. Weber 1987 (1); Suerbaum 1987a, 446; Novara 1988 (11); Cairns 1989, 190-3;<br />

Kraggerud 1989 (1-7); Froesch 1991 (1); Glei 1991, 119-23; Garbarino 1992, 33-8; Namia<br />

1992; Nuttall 1992, 1-23; Huxley 1993 (1ff.); Dräger 1994; Higgins 1994 (1); Horsfall<br />

1995c, 102-5; Brioso Sánchez 1998; Torzi 1998 (2); Wills 1998, 280-2 (3-6); Albrecht<br />

1999, 75-90; Suerbaum 1999, 16-29. 33-7; Fraga Montero 2000 (2); S. Heil 2001, 88-91; J.<br />

K. Newman 2001 (7); Cavarzere 2002 (8-11); Florio 2002; Fry 2002 (1-17); Spence 2002b<br />

(1); Adler 2003, 3-5; Kofler 2003, 67-8 (1-3); Kraggerud 2003 (1.8)<br />

12-296 Pöschl 1950, 23-56. 259-61; Block 1981, 33-48<br />

12-33 Pöschl 1950, 257-9; Buchheit 1963, 20-57; Austin 1971, 34-39; Kühn 1971, 111-3;<br />

Albrecht 1972, 16-8; Raabe 1974, 63-70; Block 1981, 31-5; Lebek 1982; Currie 1988 (33);<br />

Glei 1991, 119-23; Namia 1992; Nuttall 1992, 23-32; Dräger 1994; Albrecht 1999, 75-90;<br />

S. C. Smith 1999, 226-7 (29-31); Suerbaum 1999, 29-33; S. Heil 2001, 88-91; Florio 2002;<br />

Fry 2002 (1-17); Adler 2003, 5-7; Korenjak 2004 (13-14)<br />

34-656 A. Thornton 1976, 77-86<br />

34-49 Buchheit 1963, 59-62; Wlosok 1967, 55-60 (37-49); Austin 1971, 40-43; Kühn 1971,<br />

13-4; Raabe 1974, 71 (39-45); D. A. West 1979 (42-5); Hardie 1986b, 179-80 (42-5);<br />

Delvigo 1987, 26-34 (44); Jocelyn 1989 (39-45); Rieks 1989, 43-4 (37-49); Steinkühler<br />

1989, 63-70 (37-49); Spaltenstein 1991 (42); Levitan 1993 (37); Fernandelli 1997a; Adler<br />

2003, 78-92 (34-86)<br />

50-296 Sarkissian 1985<br />

138


50-123 Buchheit 1963, 62-70; Putnam 1965, 8-13; Kühn 1971, 15-7 (50-86); D. A. West<br />

1979 (50-80); O. Phillips 1980; Bertman 1983; Villegas Guillén 1988 (50-63); McKay<br />

1989; Adler 2003, 78-92 (34-86)<br />

50-64 Austin 1971, 43-6; Hardie 1983b, 313-5; Hardie 1986b, 90-7. 103-10. 180-3. 237-40<br />

65-80 G. Williams 1968, 373-4 (71-5); Austin 1971, 46-51; Steinkühler 1989, 90-110 (65-75)<br />

81ff. Krischer 1979, 144-7; Niederbudde 1991; E. L. Harrison 1992<br />

81-123 Pöschl 1950, 57-60. 67-8 (94-123); Worstbrock 1963, 136-7 (106-17); Wlosok 1967,<br />

13-20 (92-101); Austin 1971, 51-63; Gaßner 1972, 62 (113-23); Raabe 1974, 74-83 ; De<br />

Grummond 1977 (92-101); Saylor 1979; Stahl 1981, 160-5 (94-101); Venini 1981 (81-6);<br />

Codoñer 1982; Hardie 1983b, 315-7; Ritoók 1984 (94); Gross 1985b (119); Hardie 1986b,<br />

237-40 (81-3); Cristóbal 1988; Calcante 1990 (101-56); O’Hara 1990a, 19-22 (108-10);<br />

Galinsky 1992b, 77 (92-101); Anderson 1993, 167 (92-6); Herzog 1993, 81 (92-101);<br />

Quint 1993, 72-4 (94-101); Recio Muñiz 1996 (81-91); Bleisch 1998 (108-12); S. C. Smith<br />

1999, 227-32 (92-101)<br />

124-156 Austin 1971, 124-71; Kühn 1971, 17-9; G. Williams 1980, 177-8 (148-56); S. J.<br />

Harrison 1986, 102 (148-56); González Vázquez 1987 (148-56); S. J. Harrison 1988b<br />

(148-56); Spence 1988, 11-21 (148-53); Cairns 1989, 93-4; Steinkühler 1989, 38-9 (132-<br />

41); Calcante 1990 (101-56); Galinsky 1996, 20-4; Morwood 1998 (148-53); Schmit-<br />

Neuerburg 1999, 66-71; Spence 2002b, 48-51 (148-53); Adler 2003, 92-3 (148-56); Quint<br />

2004 (148-54)<br />

157-756 Nelis 2001c, 67-124<br />

157-636 Görler 1975<br />

157-222 Cairns 1989, 31-2<br />

157-179 Pöschl 1950, 231-5; Buchheit 1963, 183-5; G. Williams 1968, 637-44; Austin 1971,<br />

71-8; Reeker 1971, 12ff. (159-69); Kehoe 1977 (159-69); E. L. Harrison 1989 (164);<br />

Clausen 1995a (157-64. 168-79); Fernandelli 1998c (170-222); Nelis 2001a, 249-50 (159-<br />

69); Clausen 2002, 3-9<br />

180-207 Pöschl 1950, 68-70 (204-7); Wlosok 1967, 20-5 (198-209); Austin 1971, 78-84;<br />

Gaßner 1972, 62-3 (181-3); Schlunk 1974, 49-55 (198-209); Johnson 1976, 32-6 (180-97);<br />

Wirshbo 1979 (203); Janson 1990 (198); Staley 1990 (180-94); Herzog 1993, 89-90 (198-<br />

207); Clausen 1995a (187-207); Fernandelli 1998c (170-222); Schmit-Neuerburg 1999, 87-<br />

95 (197-209); Clausen 2000, 18-19<br />

208-222 Austin 1971, 84-7; O’Hara 1990a, 7-16 (218). 134-7 (208-9)<br />

223-253 R. D. Williams 1965/6, 19-20; Wlosok 1967, 26-54; Kühn 1971, 19-27; Austin 1971,<br />

87-98; Steinkühler 1989, 110-22 (229-53); O’Hara 1990a, 133-7 (227-56); Dyer 1995/6<br />

(246); Braccesi 1997 (242-9) Capozza 1997 (242-9)<br />

254-296 Halter 1963, 13-29; Putnam 1965, 16-7 (292-6); R. D. Williams 1965/6, 20-23;<br />

Wlosok 1967, 60-73; G. Williams 1968, 426-8 (286-96); Austin 1971, 98-114; Kühn 1971,<br />

19-27; Buchheit 1974 (279-82); Basson 1975, 9-35 (257-96); Basson 1979b; Kinsey 1981b<br />

(286-8); Conti 1982; Labate 1987; Lyne 1987, 72-4 (254-64); R. D. Williams 1987, 35-6;<br />

Pavan 1989 (279); Steinkühler 1989, 36-7 (257-82); O’Hara 1990a, 91-102. 132-63;<br />

Feeney 1991, 137-42; Glei 1991, 123-7; Botha 1992; Kraggerud 1992 (286-96); Cloud<br />

1993, 133-5 (292-6); Kraggerud 1994 (286-96); O’Hara 1994a (286-96); Dobbin 1995<br />

(286); Galinsky 1996, 251-2 (286-91); S. J. Harrison 1996 (286); Zetzel 1997, 196-7;<br />

Bartsch 1998, 324-5 (293-6); De Callataÿ 1998; Gottlieb 1998 (278-91); Jenkyns 1998,<br />

393-6 (267-96)<br />

297-304 Austin 1971, 114-5; Kühn 1971, 27-8; Block 1981, 48-9; E. L. Harrison 1982b, 1-17<br />

305-519 Hardie 1998b, 77-9<br />

305-417 Wlosok 1967, 75-106; Kühn 1971, 28-35; E. L. Harrison 1972/3; Schlunk 1974, 55-<br />

8; Block 1981, 49-58; Thome 1986; T. Weber 1988, 60-78; O’Hara 1990a, 9-14; Glei<br />

1991, 316-8; Schmit-Neuerburg 1999, 99-100; Clausen 2002, 26-9<br />

139


305-334 Austin 1971, 115-24; E. L. Harrison 1979 (314-5), 53-6; E. L. Harrison 1989;<br />

Reckford 1995/6; Jenkyns 1998, 390-2 (314-37); Brucia 2001 (314-7)<br />

335-756 Heinze 1915, 119-25; Muecke 1983; Moles 1987<br />

335-371 Steiner 1952, 23-9 (353-60); Austin 1971, 124-34; Raabe 1974, 83-4 (353-60); E.<br />

Lefèvre 1978a (338-68); Fuqua 1982, 237-8; Huss 1982 (365-8); Cairns 1989, 139-40<br />

(343-52); Rieks 1989, 167-8 (343-62); Horsfall 1991c, 105 (336-7); Mackie 1992/3; Starks<br />

1998/9 (364-8); Bouquet 2001, 19-23 (353-60); Walde 2001, 263-7 (353-60)<br />

372-386 Austin 1971, 135-8; E. Lefèvre 1978a; Foster 1996 (378-9); A. Barchiesi 1997a,<br />

134-5 (372-4); Conte 1999, 29-30 (378-9); Adkin 2001a; Dobbin 2002 (374)<br />

387-401 Austin 1971, 138-142; Hardie 1987a (393-400); O’Hara 1990a, 9-13 (393-400);<br />

Horsfall 1991c, 104-5 (372-3)<br />

402-417 Austin 1971, 142-5; Greenwood 1989 (411-4); Gómez Pallarès/Fernández Martínez<br />

2003 (404-5)<br />

418-756 Monti 1981, 9-29<br />

418-493 Klemke 1990, 93-117 und 209ff. passim; Schmit-Neuerburg 1999, 100-2<br />

418-440 Buchheit 1964a (419-20); Austin 1971, 146-51; Briggs 1980, 71-5 (430-6);<br />

Anderson 1984, 418-20; T. Weber 1988, 78-9; Glei 1991, 127-9; Schmit-Neuerburg 1999,<br />

71-4; Adler 2003, 17-21 (421-9)<br />

441-493 R. D. Williams 1960a (446-93); Buchheit 1964a (441-2); Seel 1965, 333-8 (461-3);<br />

Hunt 1973, 3ff. (446-65); Horsfall 1973/4, 7-8 = 136-7; Johnson 1976, 100-5; Miles 1976<br />

(450-65); Mills 1978 (458. 461. 487); Borghini 1980 (462); Cressey 1981 (455); Vögler<br />

1981, 50-5 (498-502); Dubois 1982, 32-5; R. P. H. Green 1982 (455-6); Simon 1982, 206-<br />

9; Rieks 1983, 149-50 (453-93); R. Thomas 1983, 180-4 (479-82); Funke 1985 (461-2);<br />

Barigazzi 1986 (462); E. L. Harrison 1986b, 131-5 (443-9); Clausen 1987, 103-4 (469-70).<br />

105 (489); Delvigo 1987, 35-40 (441); S. J. Harrison 1987 (479-82); Clay 1988; Leach<br />

1988, 311-9; Negri 1988 (462); T. Weber 1988, 80-90; O’Hara 1990a, 35-9; D. Fowler<br />

1991, 31-3; Glei 1991, 130-2; Hexter 1992, 347ff. (446. 459-63); Herzog 1993, 95-8;<br />

Lowenstam 1993 (453-93); A. Barchiesi 1994b, 114-24=1999, 330-41 (453-93); Boyd<br />

1995, 76-84; Horsfall 1995c, 105-8; Laird 1996, 87-94 (453-67); A. Barchiesi 1997b;<br />

Paschalis 1997, 6-7 (446-7); R. A. Smith 1997, 26-43; A. Barchiesi 1998 (482); Bartsch<br />

1998, 334-8; Egan 1998 (442-5); Fernandelli 1998b (460-6); Putnam 1998a (450-93);<br />

Casali 1999, 208-9; S. C. Smith 1999, 232-41 (456-68); La Penna 2000 (469-93);<br />

Edmunds 2001, 79-81; S. J. Harrison 2001, 87-8; Putnam 2001a (657-60), 171-3;<br />

Ratkowitsch 2001, 248; Schuller 2001 (451-65); Clausen 2002, 29-34. 210; Adler 2003,<br />

21-4<br />

494-519 Pöschl 1950, 99-117 (494-508); D. A. West 1969, 435-6; Austin 1971, 166-71;<br />

Cantilena 1983 (498-502); M. K. Thornton 1985 (496-508); Clausen 1987, 18-23 (498-<br />

504); M. P. Wilhelm 1987b (496-504); T. Weber 1988, 91-4; Cairns 1989, 40-1. 129-4<br />

(496-508); Glei 1990 (498-504); Lonsdale 1990, 17-23 (494-504); Pigón 1991 (494-508);<br />

Polk 1996 (498-502); Fernandelli 1998c (498-504); Schmit-Neuerburg 1999, 103ff. (498-<br />

3); Suerbaum 1999, 285-94 (496-504); Nelis 2001a, 253-57 (494-508); Nelis 2001c, 82-6<br />

(494-508); Clausen 2002, 34-40 (496-504); C. Weber 2002 (498-504); Adler 2003, 25-6;<br />

Krummen 2004, 31-9 (498-504)<br />

520-560 Austin 1971, 171-180; J. H. Bishop 1988, 21-3; Cairns 1989, 29-30. 41-2 (522-58);<br />

Novara 1996 (534. 560); Casali 1999, 207-8; R. K. Gibson 1999, 187-9 (522-58); Boldrer<br />

2004 (533)<br />

561-578 Austin 1971, 180-4; J. E. Phillips 1983 (561); Greenwood 1989 (575-8); Ricottilli<br />

1992 (561); R. K. Gibson 1999, 189-91; Adler 2003, 26-33; Jacobson 2004 (567-8)<br />

579-612 Austin 1971, 184-90; Simon 1982, 212-4 (592-3); Clausen 1987, 26-8 (589-93);<br />

Kraggerud 1987a (603-5); Janko 1988 (607-9); Cairns 1989, 30-1; Greenwood 1989 (579-<br />

140


91); Herzog 1993, 98 (588-9); R. K. Gibson 1999, 191-3 (595-610); Dingel 2000, 291<br />

(597-610) Clausen 2002, 47-9 (588-93)<br />

613-756 R. K. Gibson 1999, 193-5; Schmit-Neuerburg 1999, 114-7; Clausen 2002, 49-58;<br />

Adler 2003,37-40; Bettenworth 2004, 143-78<br />

613-642 Austin 1971, 190-6; P. E. Knox 1984 (613); Adler 2003, 33-7<br />

643-656 Pöschl 1950, 243-4 (648-52); Austin 1971, 196-9; Simon 1982, 210-1 (648-9);<br />

Clausen 2002, 50-1 (647-52)<br />

657-5.603 A. Thornton 1976, 87-101<br />

657-694 Hommel 1954 (675); Wlosok 1967, 139-42 (691-4); U. Hübner 1968, 7-19; K.<br />

Quinn 1968, 109ff.; G. Williams 1968, 374ff.; Austin 1971, 199-209; Kühn 1971, 35-40;<br />

Johnson 1976, 36-45; Block 1981, 58-61; E. L. Harrison 1982c (657-8); Steinkühler 1989,<br />

103-10 (664-76); Dangel 1997 (684-8); Fernandelli 1998c (691-4); Putnam 2001a (657-<br />

60), 174; Khan 2002a<br />

695-722 Austin 1971, 209-16; Kühn 1971, 35-40; Johnson 1976, 36-45 (709-22. 748-9);<br />

Block 1981, 24-31 (707-22); O’Hara 1990d (715-22); Fernandelli 1998c (695-756); C.<br />

Weber 1998/9 (698); Krummen 2004, 39-45<br />

723-756 Pöschl 1950, 246-53 (740-6); Worstbrock 1963, 86-7. 89 (731-4); Knauer 1964b,<br />

410 A. 4 (740-6); Kraggerud 1968, 106-17 (755-6); Austin 1971, 216-27; Segal 1971 (740-<br />

6); Johnson 1976, 36-45 (709-22. 748-9); Nethercut 1976 (751-2); Gaunt 1977 (740-7);<br />

Kinsey 1979c (740-6); E. L. Harrison 1980, 359-61 (758-56); Segal 1981b (740-6);<br />

Narducci 1983 (748); Kinsey 1984a (740-6); Segal 1984 (740-6); Hardie 1986b, 52-66<br />

(740-6); Clausen 1987, 29-31. 108-10; Lyne 1989, 29-31 (749); Brown 1990a (744);<br />

Brown 1990b (740-6); Glei 1991, 132-3; Frangoulidis 1992; Little 1992 (740-6); R.<br />

Hannah 1993 (744); Schönberger 1993; Garbarino 1994 (740-6); J. T. Dyson 1996b (755-<br />

6); Wills 1997, 190-1 (744); Fernandelli 1998c (695-756); Laird 1999, 200-1 (748-56);<br />

Schmit-Neuerburg 1999, 131-43 (742-6); Scaffai 2000 (742); Deremetz 2001; Nelis 2001c,<br />

96-112; Clausen 2002, 53-6; Fernandelli 2002a; Rivoltella 2002; Adler 2003, 9-16 (740-6);<br />

McKay 2004 (740-6)<br />

2 Heinze 1915, 1-81; B. M. W. Knox 1950; Büchner 1955, 1345-56=325-36; Fenik 1959;<br />

Otis 1963, 241-51; Austin 1964, ix-xiii; Knauer 1964a, 378-82; Albrecht 1965, 62-3;<br />

Putnam 1965, 3-63; Klingner 1967, 410-19; K. Quinn 1968, 112-21; Anderson 1969, 33-7;<br />

D. A. West 1969; E. L. Harrison 1970b; Di Cesare 1974, 38-60; Andersson 1976, 68-75<br />

(Szenenführung); M. O. Lee 1979, 36-46; Herter 1982; Coleiro 1983, 41-4; Salvatore<br />

1983; Schwarz 1983; Gransden 1985; Puccioni 1985a, 59-90; J. Griffin 1986, 82-4; Binder<br />

1988, 270-2. 285 (Aitien);Mackie 1988, 45-60; Harries 1989; Lyne 1989, 116-27<br />

(Sprache); Glei 1991, 133-42; Frangoulidis 1992; Kyriakidis 1992; Van Nortwick 1992,<br />

108-111; Cristóbal 1993; E. Binder/G. Binder 1994; Picón García 1994; Horsfall 1995c,<br />

109-117; Paschalis 1997, 70-110. 410 (Namensetymologien); Johnson 1999; Suerbaum<br />

1999, 50-4; Deremetz 2000; Deremetz 2001; Laigneau 2001; Scafoglio 2001a; Scafoglio<br />

2001b; Niehl 2002, 26-33. 130-1 (Selbstzitate); Rossi 2002; Rossi 2004, 17-53<br />

1-249 Hexter 1989/90; R. M. Smith 1999; Adler 2003, 256-63 (13-267)<br />

1-56 Putz 1996<br />

1-20 Austin 1964, 27-38; Villers 1976 (7); E. L. Harrison 1980, 359-61 (1-3); Losada 1983<br />

(15-20); Moskalew 1990 (7); Helzle 1996, 80-2 (3-13); Laird 1999, 201-4; Clausen 2002,<br />

61-2<br />

21-39 Austin 1964, 38-44<br />

40-233 Kleinknecht 1944; Paratore 1979b; Zintzen 1979; Lynch 1980 (40-198); Pietsch 1980;<br />

Block 1981, 255-94; Paratore 1982a; Hardie 1984, 406-9; Krafft 1986; Bodoh 1987;<br />

Clausen 1987, 34-9; Tracy 1987; Andreae 1988; Maurach 1992; Rüpke 1993; Koster 1994;<br />

Petter 1994b; Stubbs 1997; Pontes 1999, 41-3; Clausen 2002, 62-74<br />

141


40-56 Austin 1964, 44-51; Shea 1977 (52-6); Kollmann 1978 (49); J. D. Bishop 1979 (49);<br />

Recio Muñiz 1996 (50-64);Paschalis 1997, 8-33; Suerbaum 1998b, 364 (54-6)<br />

57-198 Raabe 1974, 105-8 (57ff.); Manuwald 1985; Molyneux 1986; Rieks 1989, 49-52;<br />

Klemke 1990, 118-63 und 209ff. passim; Frangoulidis 1992; Stahl 1999, 258-67; Erdmann<br />

2000, 25-116<br />

57-76 Austin 1964, 51-7; Albis 1993 (57-9)<br />

77-104 Austin 1964, 57-67<br />

105-144 Austin 1964, 67-78; Unte 1994, 207-8 (114-9); Kraggerud 1996 (121); Recio Muñiz<br />

1996 (124-36);<br />

145-198 Austin 1964, 78-94; Schlunk 1974, 17-9 (171); D. Fowler 1987b, 193-4 (163-70);<br />

Anderson 1993, 167-8 (152-7); Philipps 1997, 46-9 (176-9); S. C. Smith 1999, 242-3 (195-<br />

8); Hollis 2000 (193-4)<br />

199-227 Austin 1964, 94-108; Grassmann-Fischer 1966, 9-28; Schlunk 1974, 17-9 (226). 37-<br />

43 (203ff.); S. J. Harrison 1987 (225-7); Kleywegt 1995 (199-249); M. Salanitro 1995<br />

(201-24); Fernandelli 1997b (225-40); Sguazzini 2003 (223-4)<br />

228-249 Austin 1964, 108-11; Kleywegt 1995 (199-249); Fernandelli 1997b (225-40)<br />

250-267 Austin 1964, 116-27; Mack 1980b (250-2); Grafton/Swerdlow 1986 (255); P. E.<br />

Knox 1989 (250-2); Barigazzi 1990 (255); Schubert 1996 (259-64); W. Hübner 1997<br />

(250); Albrecht 1999, 90-8 (250-97); Biffi 2003 (261)<br />

268-297 Steiner 1952, 29-37 (268-302); Austin 1964, 127-37; Kühn 1971, 41-3; Raabe 1974,<br />

84-6; Kragelund 1976; Putnam 1981, 141; Fuqua 1982, 235-7; R. J. Clark 1998; Albrecht<br />

1999, 90-8 (250-97); Kyriakou 1999; S. C.Smith 1999, 243-4; Ricottilli 2000, 175-82;<br />

Bouquet 2001, 23-8; Walde 2001, 267-75; Scafoglio 2002; Adler 2003, 263-9<br />

298-317 Austin 1964, 137-43; Anderson 1968, 1-7. 16 (304-8); D. A. West 1969, 429-30<br />

(301-12); Johnson 1976, 75-8 (298-308); Stahl 1981, 165-74 (314-434); Burnell 1982;<br />

Lassandro 1990 (317); Esposito 1993 (314-7); Bliss 1996 (310-2); Chew 2002 (308); Adler<br />

2003, 269-76 (298-633)<br />

318-369 Austin 1964, 143-58; D. A. West 1969, 434 (355-60); Raabe 1974, 113-4 (353-5);<br />

Stahl 1981, 165-74 (314-434); Gardiner 1987 (349-50); Lyne 1987, 212-4 (355-9); Unte<br />

1994, 208-11 (318-35); Abbot 2000 (318-434)<br />

370-401 Austin 1964, 158-67; D. A. West 1969, 433-4 (370-82); Briggs 1980, 61-8 (379-82);<br />

Stahl 1981, 165-74 (314-434); Lyne 1987, 210-2 (379-82); Harries 1989 (400-1); Rauk<br />

1991 (369ff.); Schmit-Neuerburg 1999, 232- (379-82); Abbot 2000 (318-434)<br />

402-452 Austin 1964, 167-78; D. A. West 1969, 430 (413-9); Raabe 1974, 114 (431-4); Stahl<br />

1981, 165-74 (314-434); Pardini 1989 (403-6); Anderson 1993, 168. 170 (405-6);<br />

Callaway 1994, 39 (431-4). 315-33 (424-30); Abbot 2000 (318-434); Rodríguez Adrados<br />

2001 (434)<br />

453-468 Austin 1964, 178-85<br />

469-505 Worstbrock 1963, 137-8 (479-82); Austin 1964, 185-96; D. A. West 1969, 430-1<br />

(469-75. 491-500); Raabe 1974, 124-5 (486-90); E. L. Harrison 1979, 51-2 (471-5);<br />

Kenney 1979; Briggs 1980, 61-8 (471-5); Conte 1999, 20-1 (503)<br />

506-558 K. Quinn 1963a, 229-38; Austin 1964, 196-215; K. Quinn 1968, 3-8; D. A. West<br />

1969, 432-3 (512-7); Mills 1978; Orban 1979 (518-25); E. L. Harrison 1981, 210-1<br />

(525ff.); Moles 1983 (554-8); Lyne 1987, 53-5; Bowie 1990; Sklenář 1990; J. Thomas<br />

1992a (512-7); S. C. Smith 1999, 244-50 (535-43. 547-50); L. Morgan 2000 (554-8);<br />

Berno 2004 (554-8)<br />

559-566 Austin 1964, 215-7; Briggs 1979 (559-633)<br />

567-588 Büchner 1955, 1351-4=331-4; Austin 1964, 217-28; Camps 1969, 123-6; Goold<br />

1970; Fleck 1977; Conte 1978a; J. D. Bishop 1979 (569-70); Briggs 1979 (559-633);<br />

Putnam 1981, 141-4; Reckford 1981, 86-93; Lesueur 1983/4; Basto 1984a; Cova 1984b;<br />

Estefanía 1991; Berres 1992; Formicola 1992; Perelli 1992; Gall 1993; Geymonat 1995,<br />

142


300; Egan 1996; Matthiessen 1997; Zwierlein 1999, 34-45; Scafoglio 2000; Erbse 2001,<br />

431-4; Fish 2004<br />

589-623 Austin 1964, 229-39; W. Hübner 1970, 42-5; Kühn 1971, 44-7; Briggs 1979 (559-<br />

633); Lyne 1987, 76-8 (608-18); D. Fowler 1996 (617-8); François 2002 (596-600)<br />

624-633 Worstbrock 1963, 141-2 (626-31); Austin 1964, 239-42; D. A. West 1969, 431-2<br />

(624-31); Briggs 1979 (559-633); Briggs 1980, 32-5 (624-31); Estevez 1981 (624-31)<br />

634-670 Austin 1964, 242-53; G. Williams 1968, 740-1 (638-49). 261-3 (651-8); Raabe 1974,<br />

114-6 (634-78); Adler 2003, 276-9 (634-804)<br />

671-691 Austin 1964, 253-7; Grassmann-Fischer 1966, 9-28 (679-91); U. Hübner 1968, 20-<br />

34; Kühn 1971, 47-9 (679-704); Borszák 1983 (682ff.); Hardie 1984, 409-12 (679-91)<br />

692-704 Halter 1963, 39-45 (692-8); Austin 1964, 257-60; Kühn 1971, 47-9 (679-704)<br />

705-744 Austin 1964, 261-71; Briggs 1979 (732-804); Perkell 1981, 358-62; Hardie 1986b,<br />

375-6 (721-3); Connors 1992/3 (713-6. 741-6); Gall 1993 (721ff.); Gale 2003, 337-9 (730-<br />

2)<br />

745-775 Austin 1964, 271-9; Raabe 1974, 86-8 (771-95); Briggs 1979 (732-804); Perkell<br />

1981, 358-62; Putnam 1981, 144 (772-3); Gross 1985b (763); Gall 1993; Fernandelli<br />

1996b (768-94); Jenkyns 1998, 402-9 (768-94)<br />

776-804 Austin 1964, 279-92; U. Hübner 1968, 35-43 (771-95); Kühn 1971, 49-50 (771-94);<br />

Segal 1973/4 (790-5); Raabe 1974, 86-8 (771-95); Segal 1974, 35-9 (792-4); Lundström<br />

1977, 7-18 (776-89); Briggs 1979 (732-804); E. L. Harrison 1980, 361-3 (801-4); Putnam<br />

1981, 144 (792-4); Nagle 1983 (801-4); Gall 1993; Fernandelli 1996b (768-94); Jenkyns<br />

1998, 402-9 (768-94); Khan 2001 (780-4)<br />

3 Heinze 1915, 82-114; Büchner 1955, 1356-64=336-344; R. Lloyd 1957a; R. Lloyd 1957b;<br />

R. D. Williams 1962, 1-23; Otis 1963, 251-64; Worstbrock 1963, 73-9; Knauer 1964a,<br />

181-99. 382-5; Klingner 1967, 420-36; Quinn 1968, 121-35; Anderson 1969, 38-43;<br />

Galinsky 1969; Di Cesare 1974, 61-78; Andersson 1976, 75-82 (Szenenführung); M. O.<br />

Lee 1979, 46-50; Puccioni 1980; Putnam 1980; Wellesley 1980; Monti 1981; Quint 1982;<br />

Coleiro 1983, 44-6; Lana 1983; Monaco 1983/4; J. Griffin 1986, 84-5; Gély 1987; Binder<br />

1988, 272-6. 285 (Aitien);Mackie 1988, 61-76; Timpanaro 1989b (Servius); Hara 1990b;<br />

Glei 1991, 142-50; Hershkowitz 1991; Quint 1991; Cova 1992; Van Nortwick 1992, 111-<br />

2; Hunter 1993, 173-5 (Apollonios); Lacroix 1993 (Geographie); Quint 1993, 53-65;<br />

Cova 1994; Chiarini 1995; Horsfall 1995c, 118-22; W. Hübner 1995; Toporov 1995; E.<br />

Binder/G. Binder 1997; Paschalis 1997, 111-48. 410-1 (Namensetymologien); Jenkyns<br />

1998, 425-44; Stahl 1998a, 39-43; Stubbs 1998a, 66-75; Cova 1999; Hexter 1999; La Fico<br />

Guzzo 1999; Nenadic/Pozzi 1999; Papanghelis 1999; Suerbaum 1999, 54-7. 157-5;<br />

Deremetz 2001; S. Heil 2001, 106-19; Nelis 2001c, 22-66; Desy 2002; Niehl 2002, 34-40.<br />

131-3 (Selbstzitate)<br />

1-68 Cova 1994, 25-45; Fernandelli 1996a<br />

1-12 R. D. Williams 1962, 50-5; Worstbrock 1963, 45-8; Kühn 1971, 51 (1-8); E. L. Harrison<br />

1980, 361-3; Schilling 1980a (12); Jenkyns 1998, 425-7; Khan 2001 (1-8)<br />

13-18 R. D. Williams 1962, 55-6; C. A. Gibson 1999<br />

19-68 R. D. Williams 1962, 56-68; Grassmann-Fischer 1966, 92-5 (26ff.); Raabe 1974, 88-<br />

90; Edgeworth 1987 (20-1); R. Thomas 1988, 265-6 (22-9); Unte 1994, 211-2; J. T. Dyson<br />

1997b, 450-1; Stahl 1998a, 43-4; Rapallo 1998/9 (22-68); Cristóbal 1999; Fernandelli<br />

1999b (19-46); C. A. Gibson 1999; Pontes 1999, 43-5; J. T. Dyson 2001, 29-38 (19-46);<br />

Adler 2003, 282-5; Paschalis 2003<br />

69-83 R. D. Williams 1962, 68-72; A. Barchiesi 1994a (73-98); Cova 1994, 46-7<br />

84-120 R. D. Williams 1962, 72-80; Kühn 1971, 51 (84-99); Den Adel 1983 (92-6); Day<br />

1984, 25-7; Heyworth 1993 (84); A. Barchiesi 1994a (73-98); Cova 1994, 47-53; J. F.<br />

143


Miller 1994b, 103-4; Unte 1994, 212-5; Hardy 1996/7 (84-191); S. C. Smith 1999, 250;<br />

Keith 2000a, 46-8 (94-6); Armstrong 2002, 321-3<br />

121-134 R. D. Williams 1962, 80-3; Raabe 1974, 91-2 (131ff.); Day 1984, 27-8; Cova 1994,<br />

54-7; Hardy 1996/7 (84-191); Wills 1997, 187 (130); Armstrong 2002, 323-4<br />

135-191 R. D. Williams 1962, 83-94; Steiner 1952, 37-44 (147-78); Kühn 1971, 52-3 (147-<br />

78); E. L. Harrison 1976 (167); Horsfall 1976a (167); Day 1984, 28; Cova 1994, 57-63;<br />

Unte 1994, 215-8 (135-71); Hardy 1996/7 (84-191); Bouquet 2001, 35-9 (147-78); Walde<br />

2001, 275-80 (147-78); Boldrer 2004 (166)<br />

192-208 R. D. Williams 1962, 94-7; Delvigo 1989 (204); Cova 1994, 64-6; Wills 1997, 189-<br />

90 (192-5)<br />

209-277 R. D. Williams 1962, 94-112; Grassmann-Fischer 1966, 39-53 (255ff.); W. Hübner<br />

1970, 61-73; Kühn 1971, 53-4 (245-58); Reeker 1971, 49-51; Zurli 1977 (256); Van Selms<br />

1982; V. Ferraro 1983 (256); Rabel 1985; E. L. Harrison 1986b (255ff.); O’Hara 1990c<br />

(271); Glei 1991, 312-3; Cova 1994, 66-78; Unte 1994, 218-9 (225-57); D. A. West 1994a<br />

(274-88); Khan 1996b; Stahl 1998a (268-93); Stubbs 1998b; C. A. Gibson 1999 (209-269);<br />

Keith 2000a, 70-2; Nelis 2001c, 32-8; Desy 2002<br />

278-293 R. D. Williams 1962, 112-6; J. F. Miller 1993; Cova 1994, 78-83; Unte 1994, 219-<br />

20; D. A. West 1994a (274-88); Cristóbal 1998 (289-507); Stahl 1998a (268-93)<br />

294-355 R. D. Williams 1962, 116-29; Grimm 1967, 153-9 (300-43); Bright 1981; G. C. West<br />

1983; Deschamps 1990 (334); Herzog 1993, 101-3; Hardie 1993, 15-7; Cova 1994, 83-90;<br />

D. A. West 1994b (311); Bettini 1997; Stahl 1998a, 44-6; S. C. Smith 1999, 250-2 (325-<br />

32); S. Heil 2001, 64-71; Gale 2003, 339<br />

356-373 R. D. Williams 1962, 129-32; Kühn 1971, 54-5 (359-462); Zurli 1984 (356-7)<br />

374-462 R. D. Williams 1962, 132-53; Knauer 1964a, 199-206; Grassmann-Fischer 1966, 39-<br />

63 (389ff. 394); Kühn 1971, 54-5 (359-462); Hardie 1986b, 261-3 (420-3); Cova 1994, 92-<br />

102; Unte 1994, 220-6; J. Thomas 1999 (389-93); J. T. Dyson 2001, 43-6 (433-40); García<br />

Lopez 2001 (396ff.); Nelis 2001c, 38-44; Felgentreu 2002 (420-1)<br />

463-505 R. D. Williams 1962, 153-60; Grimm 1967, 159-62 (482-505); G. C. West 1983;<br />

Scarpat 1988 (464); Hardie 1993, 15-7; Cova 1994, 102-7; D. A. West 1994a (500-5); S.<br />

Heil 2001, 71-5<br />

506-547 R. D. Williams 1962, 160-70; Galinsky 1968, 159-60; Kühn 1971, 55-6 (537-47);<br />

Nenci 1980 (522-3); Bianco 1988 (533); Bonfanti 1988 (508-11); Brown 1990a (516);<br />

Nethercut 1992 (523-4); R. Hannah 1993 (516-7); Cova 1994, 108-12; Wills 1997, 190-1<br />

(516)<br />

548-587 R. D. Williams 1962, 170-80; Galinsky 1968, 160-1; Reeker 1971, 62-4 (570-87);<br />

Van Zijl, etc. 1979 (568-87); Hardie 1986b, 261-3 (564-7). 263-4 (570-82); Pitcher 1989<br />

(581-2); Cova 1994, 113-9; Nelis 1995; Kyriakidis 2001 (556); Nelis 2001c, 45-8; Guzmán<br />

Arias 2003 (570-87);<br />

588-654 R. D. Williams 1962, 180-95; McKay 1966; Galinsky 1968, 161-3; Römisch 1976;<br />

Kinsey 1979a; E. L. Harrison 1986a; Hardie 1986b, 264-7 (619-20); Moskalew 1988;<br />

Ramminger 1991; Herzog 1993, 104-5; Cova 1994, 119-26; Khan 1998; C. A. Gibson<br />

1999; Erdmann 2000, 103-4; Meixueiro Rei 2001 (648-686)<br />

655-691 R. D. Williams 1962, 195-204; Worstbrock 1963, 48-9 (687-718); Römisch 1976;<br />

Van Zijl, etc. 1979; E. L. Harrison 1986a; Hardie 1986b, 264-7; Moskalew 1988;<br />

Ramminger 1991; Herzog 1993, 104-5; Traill 1993 (684-6); Cova 1994, 126-33; R. J.<br />

Clark 1995 (661); Khan 1998; C. A. Gibson 1999 (655-683); Erdmann 2000, 103-4;<br />

Edmunds 2001, 160-1 (658); Meixueiro Rei 2001 (648-686);<br />

692-718 R. D. Williams 1962, 204-12; Worstbrock 1963, 48-9 (687-18); Gaßner 1972, 58-61<br />

(687-708); Nenci 1978 (707-8); E. L. Harrison 1980, 363-5 (714-8); Cressey 1983 (714);<br />

Roti 1983 (716); O’Hara 1990a, 24-39 (709-13); Geymonat 1993; Cova 1994, 134-40;<br />

Fernandelli 1999c (716-8)<br />

144


4 Heinze 1915, 125-44; Pöschl 1950, 120-152; Austin 1955, ix-xvii; Büchner 1955, 1364-<br />

72=344-52; Newton 1957; Fenik 1959; Otis 1963, 62-95. 264-70; Knauer 1964a, 209-18.<br />

385-9; H. Koch 1966; Klingner 1967, 437-66; Anderson 1969, 43-9; Albrecht 1970b, 219-<br />

21; Ferguson 1970/1; Ferguson 1971/2, 29-31; Horsfall 1973/4; Di Cesare 1974, 18-37;<br />

Lesueur 1975, 89-104; Andersson 1976, 82-5 (Szenenführung); Du Bois 1976; Rudd<br />

1976; Wlosok 1976; Estevez 1978/9; M. O. Lee 1979, 50-5; Farron 1980a; Anderson 1981;<br />

Commager 1981; Monti 1981, 30-69; Perkell 1981, 362-70; Puccioni 1981b; Németh<br />

1981/2; Coleiro 1983, 46-50; Farron 1983; Gillis 1983, 37-52; Muecke 1983; Rieks 1983,<br />

151-7; Traglia 1983; G. Williams 1983, 43-6; Bono 1984; Moles 1984a; Tatum 1984, 448-<br />

51; Bonfanti 1985, 85-159; J. Griffin 1986, 85-8; Hardie 1986b, 267-85 (Hyperbole);<br />

Bandini 1987; Clausen 1987, 40-60; Moles 1987; Parodi Scotti 1987 (Gleichnisse); Binder<br />

1988, 277. 285 (Aitien); J. H. Bishop 1988, 73-93; Mackie 1988, 77-93; Cairns 1989, 43-<br />

54; Pavlock 1990, 72-87; Perotti 1990; Glei 1991, 150-9; Marchetti/Marin 1991; Grimal<br />

1992; Ketterer 1992a; Van Nortwick 1992, 112-23; Farron 1993, 70-145; Fleißner 1993;<br />

Herzog 1993, 91-3; Horsfall 1995c, 123-34; Ingallina 1995; Mazzini 1995; E. Binder/G.<br />

Binder 1997; Paschalis 1997, 149-80. 411-2 (Namensetymologien); Braund 1998;<br />

Fernandelli 1998a; Miguet 1998; Flores Gomez 1999b (Metrik); Spence 1999b; Stroh<br />

1999 (lateinisch gesprochen); Suerbaum 1999, 58-9; Erdmann 2000, 117-87; La Fico<br />

Guzzo 2000a; S. Heil 2001, 36-62; Nelis 2001c, 125-85; Clausen 2002, 75-113;<br />

Fernandelli 2002b (Tragödie); Niehl 2002, 41-9. 133-5 (Selbstzitate); Adler 2003, 103-<br />

33; Eidinow 2003; Fernandelli 2003; Krummen 2004, 45-66<br />

1-30 Steiner 1952, 44-6 (9); Austin 1955, 25-34; Worstbrock 1963, 44-5. 49-50 (1-7); E. L.<br />

Harrison 1980, 363-5 (1-7); Lausberg 1983, 231 (13-14); Bocciolini Palagi 1986 (2); E. L.<br />

Harrison 1989; Lyne 1989, 31-3 (17); Kleywegt 1995 (1-19); Bird 2000 (24-9); Deremetz<br />

2001 (14); Walde 2001, 281-2 (9); Marangoni 2003 (19)<br />

31-53 Austin 1955, 34-9; Tupet 1979 (36-7); E. L. Harrison 1989; R. Thomas 2000, 390-1<br />

(33-4)<br />

54-89 Pöschl 1950, 131-5; Austin 1955, 39-50; Anderson 1968, 8-9 (69-73); Johnson 1976,<br />

78-82 (68-73); Schetter 1978, 40-2 (56-73); Briggs 1980, 41-4 (68-73); Vögler 1981, 55-6<br />

(69-73); Day 1984, 29-30; Kinsey 1984b (65-6); M. Martin 1985 (54-83); Lyne 1989, 77-9<br />

(69-73). 172-3 (67); C. Weber 1990, 212-3 (80-3); Nelis 1991 (72); O’Hara 1993a (56-66);<br />

O’Hara 1993b, 13-20 (69-73); G. Morgan 1994 (68-73); Unte 1994, 227-8 (57-60); Keith<br />

2000a, 113-4 (69-73); Armstrong 2002, 329-34 (69-73); Chew 2002 (71);<br />

90-128 Austin 1955, 50-60; Kühn 1971, 58-64; Block 1981, 61-78; Moles 1984b (124);<br />

Konstan 1986; Sider 1988 (127-8); Moya del Baño 1990 (107-15); Estefanía Álvarez 1998<br />

(110-12)<br />

129-278 Gransden 1984, 47-50<br />

129-159 Austin 1955, 60-7; Szádecky-Kardoss 1984 (146); Clausen 1987, 22-5 (138-9. 143-<br />

50); Lyne 1987, 123-5 (143-9); Formicola 1989 (143-4); Segal 1990 (133); Unte 1994,<br />

227-8 (143-50); Kleywegt 1995 (129-72); J. D. Reed 1995 (138-9); Kraggerud 1997 (149);<br />

Wills 1997, 193-4 (129); Clausen 2002, 40-6 (138-9. 143-50); C. Weber 2002 (143-50)<br />

160-172 Austin 1955, 67-70; U. Hübner 1968, 44-8 (170); Fauth 1971, 60-1 (160-8); Johnson<br />

1976, 163 A. 42 (166-72); Moles 1984b (165); Bianco 1986 (172); Clausen 1987, 23-5;<br />

Whitman 1987, 47-57; Cairns 1989, 204-5; Glei 1991, 319-21; Marin 1993 (172);<br />

Kleywegt 1995 (129-72); Bird 2000 (165-72)<br />

173-197 Austin 1955, 70-4; Fauth 1965; Fauth 1971, 62-3; Simonetti Abbolito 1983; Hardie<br />

1986b, 273-80; Dyer 1989; Selden 1992, 341-2; Néraudau 1993; Nickel 1993; Hardie<br />

1999a, 97-100; Clément 2000; Dangel 2002; Hardie 2002b, 78-9; Laird 2003a, 161-2<br />

198-218 Austin 1955, 74-80; U. Hübner 1968, 49-59; Starks 1998/9 (211-4)<br />

145


219-237 Austin 1955, 80-4; Jocelyn 1981 (219); Timpanaro 1981 (219); Estevez 1982 (220);<br />

Kühn 1971, 64-73; Steinkühler 1989, 36-7 (223-37); Foster 1991 (235-6); Kofler 2003,<br />

136-7 (227-37)<br />

238-278 Pöschl 1950, 237-9 (246-51); Austin 1955, 84-92; Fauth 1971, 64-5 (246-51); Kühn<br />

1971, 64-73 (219-82); Scholz 1975; E. Lefèvre 1976 (260-4); E. L. Harrison 1982b, 17-28<br />

(265-76); Basto 1984b (261-2); Lippi 1984 (259); Morwood 1985 (246-51); Closa Farrés<br />

1986 (242-3); Paschalis 1986a (238-58); J. W. Jones 1987; Formicola 1989 (246-7); Lyne<br />

1989, 43-8 (265-7); Rieks 1989, 168-9 (271-321); Traina 1989 (245); Davidson 1992 (246-<br />

51); J. T. Dyson 1997a (254); Feeney 1998a, 111-5; Schmit-Neuerburg 1999, 119ff.;<br />

Kofler 2003, 137-9 (259-64)<br />

279-449 Braund 1998<br />

279-295 Austin 1955, 92-5; Fauth 1971, 65 (279-82); Hunt 1973, 17ff.; Perutelli 1979<br />

(279ff.); Rieks 1989, 168-9 (271-321); Lelièvre 1997 (279-88); Suerbaum 1998b, 363-4;<br />

Laird 1999, 168-70; Erdmann 2000, 120-8; Kofler 2003, 139 (279-82); Starr 2003<br />

296-392 Ricottilli 2000, 86-117<br />

296-330 Austin 1955, 96-105; U. Hübner 1968, 60-83 (305ff.); Cairns 1972, 131-5 (305-30);<br />

Vögler 1981, 56-7 (301-3); Ameye 1983 (298); Gross 1985a, 101-6 (305-30); Maris 1988<br />

(305-61); Rieks 1989, 47-9 (305-30). 168-9 (271-321); C. Weber 1990, 212 (323-4); Foster<br />

1991 (310-1. 327ff.); R. K. Gibson 1999, 196 (305-30); Erdmann 2000, 128-187; La Penna<br />

2002c (298); Rondholz 2004 (308)<br />

331-361 Steiner 1952, 47-8 (351-3); Austin 1955, 105-13; Van den Berg 1977; Feeney 1983;<br />

Németh 1984 (345-6); O’Nolan 1984 (343); Lyne 1987, 164-7; Maris 1988 (305-61);<br />

O’Hara 1993b (345-6), 20-1; Unte 1994, 228-9 (340-7); Helzle 1996, 52-4; Feeney 1998a,<br />

115-6; Suerbaum 1998b, 353-61 (340-4); R. K. Gibson 1999, 196-7; Bouquet 2001, 28-30<br />

(351-3); Walde 2001, 283-4 (351-3)<br />

362-392 Austin 1955, 113-21; Cairns 1972, 131-5 (365-87); Huxley 1983 (372); Farron 1984<br />

(362); Edgeworth 1987 (373); C. Weber 1990, 213-4 (388-92); Khan 1996a (381-7);<br />

Feeney 1998a, 117-8; R. K. Gibson 1999, 197-8; Kakridis 2000 (381-7)<br />

393-415 Austin 1955, 121-7; Briggs 1980, 53-5 (401-7); Putnam 1980, 66-68 (401-5);<br />

Anderson 1984, 423-5 (401-11); Farron 1992 (393-6); Schork 1996 (408); Kraggerud 1997<br />

(412); Conte 1999, 39-40 (412-4); Loupiac 2002 (412)<br />

416-436 Austin 1955, 127-32; González Vázquez 1982 (428); Kinsey 1983b (435-6); Murgia<br />

1987, 54-9 (416-36); Casali 1999/2000 (435-6)<br />

437-449 Pöschl 1950, 75-81 (441-9); Austin 1955, 133-5; D. A. West 1969, 436-7; Nussbaum<br />

1976; Hudson-Williams 1978 (449); Briggs 1980, 35-41 (440-9); Anderson 1984, 425-7;<br />

C. Weber 1995, 5 (441-6)<br />

450-640 Diouf 1985<br />

450-473 Steiner 1952, 48-51 (465-8); Austin 1955, 135-140; W. Hübner 1970, 55-8 (465-73);<br />

Vögler 1981, 57 (469-73); Horsfall 1991c, 105-6 (469-73); Krevans 1993, 266-71 (465-8);<br />

Aretini 1995 (462-3); Khan 1996a (457-73); Feeney 1998a, 118-9; Ricottilli 2000, 86-117;<br />

Bouquet 2001, 51-2 (465-8); Walde 2001, 285-7 (465-88)<br />

474-503 Austin 1955, 140-50; Hardie 1983a (481-2); Basto 1984b (495. 507); Lyne 1989, 24-<br />

8 (474); Scarcia 1991 (493-4); Huxley 1993 (486); O’Hara 1993b, 21-2 (487-91);<br />

Barigazzi 1994; Konstan 2000 (492-3)<br />

504-521 Austin 1955, 151-7; Basto 1984b (495. 507); Goud/Yardley 1988 (507-8)<br />

522-552 Austin 1955, 157-65; Bertoli 1978/79 (522-8); Kinsey 1982 (550-1); Leeman 1985c,<br />

220-1; D. Fowler 1987a; J. G. Griffith 1988 (550-2); M. Dyson 1990b (543); Olbrich 1992<br />

(522-31); Thome 2000, 110-1 (522-31)<br />

553-583 Steiner 1952, 51-3 (554-72); Austin 1955, 165-71; Kühn 1971, 74-5 (554-70);<br />

Haywood 1977 (569-70); Nethercut 1978 (569-70); Schnur 1978 (569-70); Diáz de<br />

Bustamente 1978/9 (554-72); Poznanski 1981 (576-7); E. L. Harrison 1982b, 29-34 (554-<br />

146


70); Basto 1984b (579-80); Clausen 1987, 111-2 (579-80); Lyne 1989, 48-51 (569);<br />

Klemke 1990, 15ff. (571-83); Ferenczi 1996/7 (554-70); Feeney 1998a, 119-23; Bouquet<br />

2001, 39-42 (554-73); Walde 2001, 287-9 (554-73); Clausen 2002, 213-4 (579-80)<br />

584-629 Austin 1955, 171-83; Worstbrock 1963, 89-90 (607-29); Gruen 1980; Murgia 1987,<br />

52-4 (607-29); O’Hara 1990a, 95-113 (612-29); Huxley 1993 (627-9); Wills 1997, 192-4<br />

(584-5); Jacobson 1998a (622-3); Casali 1999 (590-606); Kraggerud 1999 (584ff.)<br />

630-650 Austin 1955, 183-7; Clausen 1976 (645-51); Basto 1984b (647. 664); Perutelli 1999<br />

(641); Keith 2000a, 115-7<br />

651-705 Perkell 1994<br />

651-671 Austin 1955, 187-92; Worstbrock 1963, 90 (667-71); Raabe 1974, 92-6; Basto 1984b<br />

(647. 664)<br />

672-692 Austin 1955, 192-9; Curiazi 1988/9 (690-3)<br />

693-705 Austin 1955, 199-202; Fauth 1971, 65-6; Kühn 1971, 76; Heuzé 1976; Johnson<br />

1976, 66-72; Edgeworth 1977; J. E. Phillips 1977; De Vries/Diom 1979; E. L. Harrison<br />

1980, 365-9; Bocciolini Palagi 1986; Heuzé 1991; Ketterer 1992b; Lyne 1994, 195-6 (704-<br />

5); Perkell 1994; Fontanier 1998; Keith 2000a, 115-7; Konstan 2000; Bertalozzi 2002;<br />

Rivoltella 2002<br />

5-8 M. P. Wilhelm 1987a<br />

5 Drew 1927, 42-59; Büchner 1955, 1372-8=352-8; R. D. Williams 1960b, ix-xxx; Otis<br />

1963, 270-81; Knauer 1964a, 389-93; Putnam 1965, 64-104; Klingner 1967, 467-79;<br />

Galinsky 1968; K. Quinn 1968, 150-9; Anderson 1969, 51-5; Monaco 1972; Wimmel<br />

1973, 22-7; Di Cesare 1974, 79-93; Andersson 1976, 85-9 (Szenenführung); Bertman<br />

1976; Pavlovskis 1976; M. O. Lee 1979, 55-9; Holt 1980; Coleiro 1983, 50-2; Monaco<br />

1983; Bruno 1984; Binder 1988, 278-80. 285 (Aitien); J. H. Bishop 1988, 94-109; Mackie<br />

1988, 94-113; Kehoe 1989; Rieks 1989, 207-11 (laetus); Glei 1991, 159-164; Briggs 1992<br />

(Gleichnisse); Edgeworth 1992, 22-3 (Farben); Nugent 1992; Van Nortwick 1992, 124-<br />

30; Horsfall 1995c, 135-43; Paschalis 1997, 181-208. 412-3 (Namensetymologien); E.<br />

Binder/G. Binder 1998; Stubbs 1998a, 75-81; M. F. Williams 1997; Farrell 1999;<br />

Suerbaum 1999, 60-1; Nelis 2001c, 186-226; Hardie 2002a; Niehl 2002, 50-8. 136-7<br />

(Selbstzitate)<br />

1-7 R. D. Williams 1960b, 33-7; Worstbrock 1963, 50-2; E. L. Harrison 1980, 365-9;<br />

Friedrich 1982<br />

8-41 R. D. Williams 1960b, 38-48; George 1978 (35-41); Gross 1985b (40); Wills 1997, 189-<br />

90 (8-11)<br />

42-71 R. D. Williams 1960b, 48-55; Cairns 1989, 58-9<br />

72-103 R. D. Williams 1960b, 55-66; Halter 1963, 30-3 (94-103); Grassmann-Fischer 1966,<br />

78-96 (84ff.); Zurutusa 1982 (84ff.); S. J. Harrison 1986, 104-5 (84-9)<br />

104-113 R. D. Williams 1960b, 66-8; Nethercut 1986a (105)<br />

114-603 Heinze 1915, 145-70; G. Williams 1968, 644-5; Pomathios 1987, 127-31; Cairns<br />

1989, 215-48; Schmit-Neuerburg 1999, 290-6; McGlashan 2003<br />

114-285 Otis 1963, 51-61; Kraggerud 1968, 117-232; Nicoll 1985; Deremetz 1987; Hardie<br />

1987b, 164-6; Capponi 1988; Meijer 1988; Willcock 1988; A. E. Gordon 1990; Glei 1991,<br />

293-8; Feldherr 1995, 265 A. 48; Delvigo 2001; Spence 2002a; Alvar Ezquerra 2003<br />

(121ff.)<br />

114-150 R. D. Williams 1960b, 68-76<br />

151-182 R. D. Williams 1960b, 76-81; Perutelli 1982 (154)<br />

183-224 R. D. Williams 1960b, 82-90; Capponi 1982 (213-7); Friedrich 1982, 76-81<br />

225-243 R. D. Williams 1960b, 90-3<br />

147


244-285 R. D. Williams 1960b, 93-100; D. A. West 1969, 437-8 (270-81); Briggs 1980, 61-8<br />

(273-80); A. Rose 1982 (270-81); Simon 1982, 211-2 (250-7); Curiazi 1988/9 (268-9);<br />

Bellandi 1991 (250-7); Glei 1991, 298 (250-7); Boyd 1995, 84-9 (250-7); Putnam 1995a<br />

(250-7); A. Barchiesi 1997b, 280 (250-7); Ripoll 2000b (250-7); Hardie 2002a (249-57);<br />

Putnam 2003 (249-57)<br />

286-603 Briggs 1975; Makowski 1989/90 (295-344)<br />

286-361 Glei 1991, 298-301<br />

286-314 R. D. Williams 1960b, 101-5; Gaßner 1972, 63-4 (293-302); Bell 1999, 269 (286-<br />

92); Ramírez de Verger 1999<br />

315-339 R. D. Williams 1960b, 105-12; Otis 1963, 41-51; Schlunk 1974, 14-5 (327ff.);<br />

Köhnken 1981; Skutsch 1981 (320); Pascucci 1991 (329); M. Dyson 1998 (315-9);<br />

Ramírez de Verger 1999<br />

340-361 R. D. Williams 1960b, 113-6; Ramírez de Verger 1999<br />

362-484 Worstbrock 1963, 196-7 (362-460); Poliakoff 1985; Hunter 1989; Glei 1991, 301-5.<br />

311-12; Sammartano 1998; J. T. Dyson 2001, 107-11; Nelis 2001c, 8-21; Feldherr 2002;<br />

McGowan 2002<br />

362-386 R. D. Williams 1960b, 116-20<br />

387-423 R. D. Williams 1960b, 120-6; D. Romano 1993/4 (421-3)<br />

424-460 R. D. Williams 1960b, 126-33; Jacobson 1999 (458-60); McGowan 2002, 85-7 (456-<br />

60); Traill 2001 (437-42)<br />

461-484 R. D. Williams 1960b, 133-6; Matz 1994 (469-70); Sens 1995 (465-7)<br />

485-518 R. D. Williams 1960b, 136-140; Schlunk 1974, 15-7; Capponi 1988 (512)<br />

519-544 R. D. Williams 1960b, 140-5; Grassmann-Fischer 1966, 78-96 (522ff.); Capponi<br />

1988 (525); Lawler 1988 (522-8)<br />

545-603 R. D. Williams 1960b, 145-57; Dinzelbacher 1982 (583-4); Houston 1982; Day<br />

1984, 31-2 (588-93); Binder 1985; Capdeville 1988 (588-95); Cairns 1989, 246-8; Glei<br />

1991, 305-9; Deremetz 1993 (577-603); P. A. Miller 1995 (588-91); Erdmann 1998, 501-4;<br />

Abbot 2000; D. R. Smith 2000<br />

604-7.285 A. Thornton 1976, 102-7<br />

604-778 Babcock 1992; Deremetz 1994<br />

604-663 Steiner 1952, 53-5 (636-8); R. D. Williams 1960b, 157-68; Kraggerud 1968, 106-17<br />

(626); Fauth 1971, 67-9; Kühn 1971, 77-83; Lyne 1989, 173-7 (606-8); Rieks 1989, 236-9;<br />

Curiazi 1988/9 (613-5); P. A. Miller 1995; J. T. Dyson 1996b (626); La Penna 1997 (604-<br />

79); Wills 1997, 187-8 (606); Laird 1999, 178-9 (613-17); Ricottilli 2000, 194-6 (613-6);<br />

Bouquet 2001, 30-1 (636-8); S. Heil 2001, 119-27; Walde 2001, 289-90 (636-8); Pappa<br />

2002 (605ff.); Hughes 2003<br />

664-699 R. D. Williams 1960b, 168-74; Halter 1963, 56-62 (685-99); Rieks 1989, 239-40<br />

(664-79); Anderson 1993, 167 (685-7); P. A. Miller 1995 (664-74); La Penna 1997 (604-<br />

79); S. Heil 2001, 127-31<br />

700-745 Steiner 1952, 55-8 (720-40); R. D. Williams 1960b, 174-183; Halter 1963, 62-9<br />

(719-45); Kühn 1971, 83-90 (721-45); Hunt 1973, 33ff. (700-20); Segal 1973/4 (738-40);<br />

Raabe 1974, 90 (719-45). 116-7 (709-10); Segal 1974, 42-8 (738-45); C. R. Phillips 1976<br />

(744); Bouquet 2001, 32-5; S. Heil 2001, 131-5; Walde 2001, 291-3 (720-40)<br />

746-778 R. D. Williams 1960b, 183-7; Wills 1997, 187 (777)<br />

779-826 R. D. Williams 1960b, 187-97; Kühn 1971, 90-2; Krischer 1979, 143-4 (822-6);<br />

Casadio 1988/9 (816-23); Steinkühler 1989, 79-90 (781-98); S. C. Smith 1999, 252-4 (804-<br />

8); Kyriakidis 2000 (822-6)<br />

827-871 Steiner 1952, 78-85 (838-41); R. D. Williams 1960b, 197-210; Kühn 1971, 90-2<br />

(835-61); Offermann 1971; A. Barchiesi 1979 (870-1); E. L. Harrison 1980, 369-72;<br />

Friedrich 1982; Brenk 1984; Cretia 1984 (835-61); Kinsey 1985; Augello 1988; Brenk<br />

1988; Laudizi 1988; Nicoll 1988; M. Dyson 1990a (858-9); Herzog 1993, 105-6; Quint<br />

148


1993, 83-96; Sansone 1996 (835-6); Deschamps 1997; Hardie 1998b, 104-14; Kyriakidis<br />

1998, 47-74 (861-71); Walde 2001, 293-4 (838-41); R. Thomas 2004, 269-75 (833-71)<br />

6 Büchner 1955, 1378-92=358-72; Otis 1963, 281-305; Knauer 1964a, 107-47. 393-8<br />

(Homer); Segal 1965/6; Klingner 1967, 480-96; K. Quinn 1968, 160-74; Anderson 1969,<br />

55-62; Camps 1969, 84-94; Gaßner 1972, 64-71 (Kataloge); Solmsen 1972; Wimmel<br />

1973, 28-42; Di Cesare 1974, 94-122; A. Thornton 1976, 60ff.; Cressey 1978; Brenk 1979;<br />

R. J. Clark 1979; M. O. Lee 1979, 59-68; Schilling 1980b; Michels 1981; Schilling 1982;<br />

Chambelland 1983; Coleiro 1983, 52-7; D’Elia 1983; G. Williams 1983, 46-58; Wlosok<br />

1983a; Quiter 1984; Leeman 1985a; Boyle 1986, 133-76; J. Griffin 1986, 88-91;<br />

Macdonald 1987; Binder 1988, 280-1. 285 (Aitien); J. H. Bishop 1988, 110-34; Mackie<br />

1988, 114-41; Zetzel 1989; Gransden 1990, 75-84; Mellinghoff-Bourgerie 1990, 171-221;<br />

Glei 1991, 164-8; Edgeworth 1992, 23 (Farben); Most 1992, 1021-3; Van Nortwick 1992,<br />

130-40; Wells 1992; Cretia 1992-4; Houriez 1992; Herzog 1993, 107-13; Houriez 1993;<br />

Hunter 1993, 182-8 (Apollonios); Setaioli 1993; Adamik 1994; Albrecht 1995<br />

(Spiegelungstechnik); Alvis 1995, 144-56; Deremetz 1995, 156-71; Horsfall 1995c, 144-<br />

54; Jahn 1995 (Schullektüre); Penwill 1995; Foss 1997; Paschalis 1997, 209-43. 413<br />

(Namensetymologien); E. Binder/G. Binder 1998; Jenkyns 1998, 445-62; Aretini 1999;<br />

Dion 1999; Leach 1999; Warden 1999/2000; Laird 2001; Nelis 2001c, 227-55; Niehl 2002,<br />

59-66. 137-9 (Selbstzitate); Adler 2003, 291-9; Somville (vier Elemente)<br />

1-242 Smolenaars 1999<br />

1-13 Norden 3 1927, 110-20; Austin 1977, 30-8; E. L. Harrison 1980, 369-72; Bömer 1986<br />

(2); Kinsey 1986 (9-41); Bandini 1991 (1-2); Unte 1994, 229-31; Clausen 1995a (5-13);<br />

Kyriakidis 1998, 36-8 (1-5)<br />

14-41 Norden 3 1927, 120-33; Pöschl 1950, 244-6; Klingner 1967, 495-6; Pöschl 1975;<br />

Christmann 1976, 270-6; Austin 1977, 14-48; Dubois 1982, 35-41 (20-33); Simon 1982,<br />

212-4 (20-34); Day 1984, 32-4; Fitzgerald 1984; Kinsey 1986 (9-41); Paschalis 1986b (20-<br />

33); Clausen 1987, 113-4 (30); Putnam 1987 (14-37); Catto 1988 (20-33); Spence 1988,<br />

38-42 (20-33); M. O. Lee 1992 (20-33); Deremetz 1993; Pike 1993 (24-30); A. Barchiesi<br />

1994b, 114=1999, 329-30; Unte 1994, 231-2; Boyd 1995, 89-90 (28-33); P. A. Miller 1995<br />

(14-33); Zevi 1995 (14-33); Casali 1995/6 (20-33); A. Barchiesi 1997b, 274 (14-33);<br />

Bartsch 1998, 326-7. 335-6; Erdmann 1998; Ratkowitsch 2001, 248-9; Staley 2002; Kofler<br />

2003, 56-7. 134-6<br />

42-76 Norden 3 1927, 133-43; Austin 1977, 48-66; R. J. Clark 1977b; Paratore 1977, C. Weber<br />

1978; Pane 1981/2; Cambronne 1985 (63); Kinsey 1987c (69-70); R. J. Clark 1991; Monti<br />

1991; Monti 1994; Unte 1994, 233-5; R. J. Clark 1996; Stärk 1998; Kofler 2003, 53-61<br />

(69-70)<br />

77-97 Norden 3 1927, 144-152; Austin 1977, 66-72; Kinsey 1979d (88-90); Traina 1989 (89);<br />

Mackie 1991b (89); Perotti 1991 (88-90); Traina 1992 (88-90); Unte 1994, 235-6; C. P.<br />

Jones 1995 (97); Mambwini Kivuila-Kiaku 1997<br />

98-573 Möhler 1989, 47-9<br />

98-123 Norden 3 1927, 152-160; Austin 1977, 72-8; Foster 1996 (99-100); Pontes 1996 (122-<br />

3)<br />

124-155 Norden 3 1927, 160-79; Brooks 1953 (136-48); Segal 1965/6 (136-48); Segal 1968<br />

(143-8); Austin 1977, 78-86; D. A. West 1987 (136-48); R. Thomas 1988, 266-7 (146-7);<br />

R. J. Clark 1992; C. Weber 1995 (136-48); M. O. Lee 1997 (136-48); Mambwini Kivuila-<br />

Kiaku 1997; C. Green 1999/2000 (136-41); R. U. Smith 2000 (136-48); J. T. Dyson 2001,<br />

39-42 (145-55). 133-47<br />

156-182 Norden 3 1927, 179-88; Brooks 1953; Segal 1965/6; G. Williams 1968, 264-5 (179-<br />

82); Austin 1977, 86-95; R. J. Clark 1977a; Burck 1981 (175-84); Narducci 1983 (160);<br />

149


Leeman 1985b (179-82); R. Thomas 1988, 267-8 (179-82); E. A. Schmidt 1997 (179-82);<br />

Hinds 1998, 11-14 (179-82); Thome 2000, 107-9 (179-82) Kofler 2003, 89-90 (179-82)<br />

183-211 Norden 3 1927, 188-94; Brooks 1953 (200-11); Segal 1968 (210-11); D. A. West<br />

1969, 438; Austin 1977, 95-102; Kinsey 1979e (201); D. A. West 1987; R. Thomas 1988,<br />

267 (210-11); Horsfall 1991c, 20-8 (201-11); R. J. Clark 1992; C. Weber 1995; M.<br />

Salanitro 1997 (206-7)<br />

212-235 Norden 3 1927, 194-8; Austin 1977, 102-8; R. J. Clark 1977a (234-5); Tartari<br />

Chersoni 2001 (223)<br />

236-263 Norden 3 1927, 198-207; Luck 1973; Austin 1977, 102-15; Cancik 1980; Clark 1991<br />

264-901 R. D. Williams 1964; Mambwini Kivuila-Kiaku 1997<br />

264-267 Norden 3 1927, 208-10; Johnson 1976, 88-92; Austin 1977, 115-6; Cancik 1980<br />

268-294 Norden 3 1927, 210-19; Steiner 1952, 85-8 (282-4); D. A. West 1969, 438-9 (268-<br />

72); Johnson 1976, 88-92; Austin 1977, 116-24; Paratore 1979a (289); Cancik 1980 (268-<br />

72); Carrara 1980 (280); Barigazzi 1982 (273-81); Poirier de Narçay 1985 (273-95);<br />

Kyriakidis 1993 (268); Foster 1996 (268); J. T. Dyson 1997b, 453-4 (290-4); R. J. Clark<br />

2003 (289)<br />

295-547 Warden 1999/2000<br />

295-336 Norden 3 1927, 219-28; U. Hübner 1968, 84-9 (307); Austin 1977, 124-35; Tracy<br />

1977 (333-6); Brenk 1979, 1-3 (318-20); G. Lee 1981, 5-6 (305-8); R. D. Williams 1981b<br />

(304); Borgogno 1986 (305-12); Casadio 1986/7 (298-304); Lyne 1989, 146-8 (309-12);<br />

R. J. Clark 2000 (298-304); R. J. Clark 2001 (298-304); Giesecke 2002<br />

337-383 Norden 3 1927, 228-36; Austin 1977, 135-43; Ambrose 1980 (362); Friedrich 1982;<br />

Kinsey 1985; Brenk 1987; Laudizi 1988; Brugnoli 1993 (373-6); Herzog 1993, 105-6;<br />

Quint 1993, 83-96; Feldherr 1999, 117-9; Scafoglio 2003; R. Thomas 2004, 269-75;<br />

Perkell 2004<br />

384-416 Norden 3 1927, 236-42; Schlunk 1974, 22-3 (411-4); Austin 1977, 143-51; Gagliardi<br />

1980 (405); D. Fowler 1982 (392-4); Kinsey 1982 (392-4); Skutsch 1982 (394); D. Fowler<br />

1983b (392-4); Kinsey 1983a (392-4); Cormier 1988 (405-7); C. Weber 1995<br />

417-425 Norden 3 1927, 242-4; Austin 1977, 151-4<br />

426-439 Norden 3 1927, 244-7; Treu 1954; Austin 1977, 155-8; Grisé 1980; Öberg 1987, 105-<br />

6 (432-3); Henrichs 1989 (438); Pelliccia 1990 (438); Feldherr 1999, 93-100; Adkin 2002<br />

(432-3)<br />

440-476 Norden 3 1927, 247-57; Knauer 1964a, 108-14; Albrecht 1965, 56-61; U. Hübner<br />

1968, 90-103 (440ff.); Seel 1969 (468); E. L. Harrison 1970a, 445 (460); Ferguson 1971/2,<br />

35-6 (460); Johnson 1976, 82-4; Austin 1977, 158-68; Gijsel 1978 (468); G. S. West 1980a<br />

(448); G. S. West 1980b (445-6); Vögler 1981, 59-60 (453-4); Nadeau 1982 (458-60);<br />

Rieks 1983, 157-60 (467-74); Skinner 1983; Farron 1984 (465-71); Muecke 1984 (467-<br />

74); Tatum 1984; Skulsky 1985 (460); Johnston 1987 (460); Lyne 1987, 171-5 (455-68);<br />

Öberg 1987, 106 (461-3); Skulsky 1987 (471); Deschamps 1988 (453-4); D. Fowler 1990,<br />

52-4 (467-76); M. J. Edwards 1991 (459-61); Glei 1991, 164-5; Ramminger 1991, 61-2<br />

(bes. 458-9); Berres 1993, 346-51; R. A. Smith 1993; Farrell 1993/4 (460); N. O’Sullivan<br />

1993/4 (456-66); Lyne 1994, 187-193 (458-60); R. D. Griffith 1995 (460); Kraggerud<br />

1997 (460); Wills 1998 (460); Albrecht 1999, 123-9 (450-76); Feldherr 1999, 100-15;<br />

Laird 1999, 184-8; Suerbaum 2000, 121-3; Edmunds 2001, 151-2; Scafoglio 2003<br />

477-493 Norden 3 1927, 257-60; Austin 1977, 168-71<br />

494-534 Norden 3 1927, 260-70; Knauer 1964a, 114-7; Austin 1977, 171-8; La Penna 1978;<br />

Falkner 1981; E. L. Harrison 1981, 211 (511ff.); Reckford 1981, 93-97; Yardley 1981b<br />

(525-6); Fuqua 1982, 238-9; Kinsey 1987a (509-34); Laudizi 1992; Petringa 1996 (520);<br />

Bleisch 1999; Erbse 2001; Clausen 2002, 114-24; Scafoglio 2003; Scafoglio 2004<br />

535-547 Norden 3 1927, 270-2; Knauer 1964a, 114-7; Austin 1977, 178-80; La Penna 1978;<br />

Brenk 1979, 3-4 (539); Reckford 1981; Laudizi 1992; Bleisch 1999<br />

150


548-561 Norden 3 1927, 272-8; Austin 1977, 180-2<br />

562-627 Norden 3 1927, 278-93; Treu 1954 (621-4); Knauer 1964a, 117-23; Bollók 1976;<br />

Austin 1977, 182-200; Lundström 1977, 43-60; Brenk 1979, 5-7 (617-8); Della Corte<br />

1982; Salat 1982 (601-27); Perret 1984 (602-20); Hardie 1986b, 183-5 (585-94); Öberg<br />

1987, 106-7 (601-3); Curiazi 1988/9 (586-7); Zetzel 1989, 264-72; Putnam 1990b (601-7);<br />

Berry 1992 (621-4); Horsfall 1993e (623); Hinds 1998, 35-9. 42-5 (625-7); Powell 1998<br />

(608-27); Laird 2003a, 165-8<br />

628-892 Novara 1987a; Novara 1987b<br />

628-636 Norden 3 1927, 294; Austin 1977, 200-2<br />

637-899 Stärk 1998; Warden 1999/2000; Meloni 2000<br />

637-678 Norden 3 1927, 295-301; Treu 1954 (660-4); Austin 1977, 202-12; Winkler 1987<br />

(666-78); Rodgers 1991/2 (664); Horsfall 1993d (658); Molyviati-Toptsis 1994; Unte<br />

1994, 237 (662); Haß 1998, 122-4 (637-59. 666-81); Mellinghoff-Bourgerie 2000; Loupiac<br />

2001 (645-7); Kofler 2003, 90-1<br />

679-899 Knauer 1964a, 123-9; Albrecht 1999, 99-119; Kofler 2003, 75-8<br />

679-702 Norden 3 1927, 301-4; Büchner 1955, 1379-95=409-15; Segal 1973/4 (700-2); Segal<br />

1974, 39-42 (700-2); Austin 1977, 212-16; Tracy 1977, 22-3 (692-3); Nadeau 1985<br />

(697ff.); Conte 1986, 32-9 (692-3); Strand 2001 (699-702)<br />

703-723 Norden 3 1927, 305-10; Austin 1977, 216-20; Briggs 1980, 75-7 (706-9); Bettini<br />

1982 (706-9); Bettini 1983 (706-9); Öberg 1987, 107 (706-9); Setaioli 1997a (703); Kohn<br />

1998 (713-23); Warden 2000 (719-853)<br />

724-751 Norden 3 1927, 310-2; Treu 1954 (740-2); Lamacchia 1964; Johnson 1976, 108-11;<br />

A. Thornton 1976, 35-69; Austin 1977, 220-32; E. L. Harrison 1978; E. Romano 1978;<br />

Brenk 1979, 4 (739-42); Wlosok 1983a; Perrone 1985 (740-2); Hardie 1986b, 69-83; Bews<br />

1989; Catto 1989; Habinek 1989; Quint 1993, 63-5; Kraggerud 1995; Penwill 1995, 13-25;<br />

Braund 1997, 216-8; Pfundstein 1997 (725); Fabre-Serris 1998, 88-9; Fladerer 1998;<br />

Warden 2000 (719-853); Bacon 2001<br />

752-755 Austin 1977, 232<br />

756-853 Norden 3 1927, 312-38; Bömer 1952 (847-8); Eggerding 1952 (847-53); Bömer 1957,<br />

16-19 (847-853); Laage 1959 (752ff.); Mette 1960 (792-805); Halter 1963, 45-52 (777-<br />

807); Knauer 1964a, 206-9 (756-9. 792-4); Lamacchia 1964; Bömer 1965 (847-8);<br />

Albrecht 1967; D. A. West 1969, 439 (781-7); E. L. Harrison 1970a, , 446-7 (845-6);<br />

Burkhardt 1971, 414 (847-8); Basson 1975, 37-93; Christmann 1976, 259ff.; Austin 1977,<br />

232-64; Basson 1979b; Burke 1979; Cambronne 1980; Farron 1980b (826-35); Horsfall<br />

1982; Simon 1982, 205-6 (847-8); Fortuny 1983 (802); E. Lefèvre 1983, 29-33 (815-35);<br />

Wlosok 1983a; Jenkyns 1985, 68-73; Putnam 1985b (779-90); Feeney 1986b; Hardie<br />

1986b, 69-83; Hine 1987 (847-50); Lyne 1987, 214-6 (847-53); Pomathios 1987, 139-44;<br />

R. D. Williams 1987, 36-40; Stok 1988, 5-61 (847-50); Cairns 1989, 60-2 (756-853). 95ff.<br />

(826-35); Grebe 1989; Habinek 1989; Horsfall 1989d (847-53); Putnam 1989a (786-7);<br />

Funke 1990 (851-53); Laudizi 1990b (761); O’Hara 1990a, 91-104. 116-22 (763-6). 167-<br />

70 (847-92); Bender 1991/2; Glei 1991, 168-76; Kraggerud 1991 (852); Botha 1992;<br />

Horsfall 1993a (852); D. A. West 1993a (760-886); Lyne 1994, 193-4 (851); Firpo 1995b<br />

(794-5); Kraggerud 1995; Molyviati-Toptsis 1995, 647-50; Dognini 1996 (815-6);<br />

Galinsky 1996, 96-7; Dognini 1996/7 (826-35); Zetzel 1996 (851-3); Zetzel 1997, 197-8;<br />

De Callataÿ 1998; E. Lefèvre 1998 (815-35); Pfligersdorffer 1998; Fuzier 1999 (802); J.<br />

Henderson 2000 (825); Warden 2000 (719-853); Bacon 2001 (756-83); R. Thomas 2001,<br />

2-7 (791-5). 207-14; Barnes 2002 (826-35); Clausen 2002, 125-52; Torregaray Pagola<br />

2002 (842-3); La Penna 2003a (817-35)<br />

854-892 Norden 3 1927, 338-48; Albrecht 1967; Basson 1975, 37-93; Johnson 1976, 105-7;<br />

Austin 1977, 264-74; Bolkestein 1986 (876); Brenk 1986; Shackleton Bailey 1986 (882-3);<br />

Faessler 1987 (883); Brugnoli 1988 (871); S. J. Harrison 1989 (858-9); Brenk 1990 (883-<br />

151


6); Laudizi 1990a (860-86); O’Hara 1990a, 167-70 (847-92); Goold 1992; 118-22; D. A.<br />

West 1993a (760-886); Kraggerud 1996 (865); Hardie 1997b, 317-9; Martorana 1997<br />

(852); Glei 1998 (860-86); Nadeau 2000; J. Reed 2001; Clausen 2002, 151-2; Jaeger 2002,<br />

132-4 (860-86)<br />

893-901 Norden 3 1927, 348-9; Steiner 1952, 88-96 (893-9); Putnam 1970, 100-2; Christmann<br />

1976; Kopff/Kopff 1976; A. Thornton 1976, 61ff. (893-98); Austin 1977, 274-8; Paratore<br />

1978 (900-1); Verstraete 1980 (896); Michels 1981 (893-8); Tarrant 1982 (893-9); G.<br />

Williams 1983, 46-49 (893-8); Gotoff 1985; Edgeworth 1986b; Öberg 1987, 108-9 (893-<br />

8); D. A. West 1987; Zetzel 1989, 274-5; Brenk 1992; Cockburn 1992; Goold 1992, 122-3;<br />

Hardie 1992a, 68 (893-8); Pollmann 1993 (893-8); Dyer 1995 (900); Feldherr 1995, 265 A.<br />

48; Kilpatrick 1995 (893-8); Molyviati-Toptsis 1995 (893-8); Penwill 1995, 25-7; Dominik<br />

1996 (893-8); Jönsson/Roos 1996 (893-8); O’Hara 1996b (893-8); Kyriakidis 1997 (900-<br />

7.6); Wills 1997 (901); Möllendorff 2000 (893-9); Nadeau 2000 (893-9); J. Reed 2001;<br />

Walde 2001, 296-7 (893-8); Kraggerud 2002 (893-8)<br />

7-12 Heinze 1915, 171-82; Anderson 1957; Otis 1963, 313-82; Knauer 1964a, 223-331;<br />

Primmer 1980; Gransden 1984; Manzoni 2002 (Intertextualität)<br />

7 Norden 1915, 1-40; Fraenkel 1945; Tilly 1947; Pöschl 1950, 273-5; Büchner 1955, 1392-<br />

9=372-9; Buchheit 1963, 71-115; Otis 1963, 319-30; Knauer 1964a, 226-39. 398-402;<br />

Klingner 1967, 497-526; K. Quinn 1968, 174-89; Anderson 1969, 64-70; Putnam 1970;<br />

Wimmel 1973, 43-9. 110-29; Di Cesare 1974, 123-39; Walsh 1977, xi-xxx; M. O. Lee<br />

1979, 68-72; Johnston 1981; Rowland 1981/2; R. Thomas 1982, 100-3; Coleiro 1983, 57-<br />

60; Setaioli 1983; Gransden 1984, 31-87; Fredericksmeyer 1985; J. Griffin 1986, 91-2;<br />

Binder 1988, 281-2. 285 (Aitien); J. H. Bishop 1988, 135-66; Mackie 1988, 142-7; Glei<br />

1991, 178-94; Edgeworth 1992, 23-4 (Farben); Hardie 1992a, 62-6 (Metamorphosen);<br />

Van Nortwick 1992, 140-48; Horsfall 1995c, 155-61; Kyriakidis 1997 (900-7.6); Paschalis<br />

1997, 244-74. 413-4 (Namensetymologien); Jenkyns 1998, 463-514; Lesueur 1998; Mack<br />

1999; Suerbaum 1999, 65-8; Horsfall 2000, xv-xxxvii; E. Binder/G. Binder 2001; Nelis<br />

2001c, 267-326; Niehl 2002, 67-74. 139-41 (Selbstzitate)<br />

1-285 Reckford 1961; Görler 1975; Bowie, etc. 1977, 130-2; Blänsdorf 1982; Cairns 1989,<br />

62-6<br />

1-36 Pöschl 1950, 235-6; Buchheit 1963, 173-87; Worstbrock 1963, 33-43; Segal 1965/6, 56-<br />

62; Reeker 1971, 51-3. 58-62 (25-36); Andersson 1976, 89-91; Cornell 1977; Fordyce<br />

1977, 51-63; Paratore 1978 (1-4); A. Barchiesi 1979 (1-4); E. L. Harrison 1980, 372-6;<br />

Basto 1982 (10); Petecel 1984 (8-36); R. Thomas 1986, 62-8; Kinsey 1989a (8); Hardie<br />

1992a, 67-8; La Penna 1996 (25-36); Gale 1997, 180-1 (5-24); Haß 1998, 57-8 (29-36);<br />

Kyriakidis 1998, 75-117 (1-24). 121-158 (25-36); Horsfall 2000, 45-67; Nelis 2001c, 255-<br />

66; Ciccone 2002 (1-4)<br />

37-45a Basson 1975, 95-116; Conte 1976; Fordyce 1977, 63-6; Monteleone 1977 (37); E. L.<br />

Harrison 1980, 375-7; Mariotti 1981; Fernandelli 1986; R. Thomas 1986, 62-4; Suerbaum<br />

1987a, 446-7; S. J. Harrison 1988a; Toll 1989; Horsfall 1991c, 106-7; Pavlock 1992, 72-4<br />

(37-40); Kyriakidis 1994a (37); Brioso Sánchez 1998; Kyriakidis 1998, 161-75; Horsfall<br />

2000, 67-76; Laird 2000, 146-53; S. Heil 2001, 138-40; Nelis 2001a<br />

45b-106 Steiner 1952, 59-62 (81-105); Buchheit 1963, 86-97; Halter 1963, 34-9 (73-7);<br />

Grassmann-Fischer 1966, 64-77 (64ff. 71ff.); Bowie, etc. 1977, 138-9 (57); Fordyce 1977,<br />

66-80; Briggs 1980, 77-8 (59-70); Rosivach 1980 (45-9); Moorton 1988 (45-51); Horsfall<br />

1991c, 151-4 (81-95); J. Thomas 1992a (59-67); Unte 1994, 237-9 (59-63); Horsfall 2000,<br />

76-110; Laird 2000, 149-53; R. Thomas 2000, 400-1 (96-101); Bouquet 2001, 43-5 (92-<br />

103); Walde 2001, 298-9 (92-103); Garstad 2003<br />

152


107-147 Grassmann-Fischer 1966, 39-53 (112ff.); Kühn 1971, 101-2 (116ff.); Fordyce 1977,<br />

80-91; E. L. Harrison 1986b; Kinsey 1987b (109-34); Primmer 1994/5 (122-7); Schork<br />

1996 (122); Horsfall 2000, 110-33<br />

148-285 Rowell 1941 (170-89); Buchheit 1963, 98-100 (192-4. 253-9); Halter 1963, 70-8<br />

(249-85); Schlunk 1974, 9-11; Fordyce 1977, 91-116; Rosivach 1980 (170-91); J. H.<br />

Bishop 1988, 23-5; Cairns 1989, 205-6 (268ff.); Unte 1994, 239-40 (239-42); Novara 1996<br />

(248); C. Weber 1998/9 (190); Schmit-Neuerburg 1999, 286-90 (286-90); Horsfall 2000,<br />

133-203; Bleisch 2003 (152-93)<br />

286-12.133 A. Thornton 1976, 108-39<br />

286-623 Heinze 1915, 182-93; Pöschl 1950, 47-56; Kühn 1971, 103-7; Feeney 1991, 162-72<br />

(286-539); C. Clark 1993/4; S. Heil 2001, 138-74. 183-5<br />

286-340 Steiner 1952, 76-7 (319-22); Buchheit 1963, 71-7; Knauer 1964a, 151 (286-92);<br />

Fordyce 1977, 116-26; Lundström 1977, 61-3 (293-322); D. Fowler 1987b, 194 (318-9);<br />

Lyne 1987, 49-53. 56-60 (291-320); Rieks 1989, 44 (293-322); Steinkühler 1989, 63-70<br />

(293-316). 90-103 (331-40); C. Weber 1990, 210-2 (328-9); Thome 1993b, 75-129 (323-<br />

40); Fernandelli 1999a (325-6); Fernandelli 1999b (286-92); Horsfall 2000, 203-37; Walde<br />

2001, 299-300<br />

341-571 Rieks 1983, 160-3; Schenk 1984, 288-36; Rieks 1989, 242-51 (341-539); Hardie<br />

1992a, 63-6; Thome 1993b, 130-81<br />

341-372 Duhn 1957, 60-4 (376-84); Schweizer 1967, 22-34; Fordyce 1977, 126-31; Lyne<br />

1987, 13-5 (341-5); Carbonero 1989 (359-64); Lyne 1989, 20-2 (351-3). 161ff. (361-4);<br />

Mackie 1991a (344-7); Fantham 1998; Horsfall 2000, 237-57; Bocciolini Palagi 2001;<br />

Chew 2002 (363); Pirovano 2003 (367-72)<br />

373-405 Duhn 1957, 60-4 (376-84); Schweizer 1967, 22-34; Highet 1976 (392-8); Fordyce<br />

1977, 131-7; Rabel 1981b (378-84); Salvatore 1991 (378-84); Bleisch 1996 (378-84);<br />

Fantham 1998; Laird 1999, 179-80 (385-91); Horsfall 2000, 257-78; Bocciolini Palagi<br />

2001; Burzacchini 2002; Bocciolini Palagi 2004 (385)<br />

406-444 Steiner 1952, 62-6 (413-61); Kühn 1971, 107-14; Kragelund 1976; Fordyce 1977,<br />

137-43; Cretia 1984 (406-76); Schenk 1984, 27-48; O’Hara 1990a, 62-70 (406-74);<br />

Mackie 1991a (413-4); Hollis 1992, 270-3; J. T. Dyson 1997a (412); Horsfall 2000, 278-<br />

301; Bouquet 2001, 45-8 (407-70)<br />

445-474 Pöschl 1950, 153-63; Steiner 1952, 62-6 (413-61); Duhn 1957, 64-79 (460-6);<br />

Worstbrock 1963, 142-3 (461-6); Kühn 1971, 107-14; Kragelund 1976; Fordyce 1977,<br />

143-7; Lundström 1977, 68-74 (467-70); S. J. Harrison 1986, 99-100 (460-6); Foster 1991<br />

(446); Mackie 1991a (446-57); Erler 1992, 109-10; Hardie 1992a, 64-5 (460-6); Hollis<br />

1992, 270-3; R. Thomas 1998, 283-5 (473-4); Schmit-Neuerburg 1999, 340-1 (456-62);<br />

Horsfall 2000, 301-19; Bouquet 2001, 45-8 (407-70)<br />

475-510 Fordyce 1977, 147-54; Vance 1981; Lyne 1987, 198-200; Pavlock 1992, 75-6; Starr<br />

1992 (479-502); Connors 1992/3 (481-9); Cormier 1993; Putnam 1995c; M. K. Thornton<br />

1996; Horsfall 2000, 319-40; Putnam 2001a, 168<br />

511-539 Duhn 1957, 79-83 (528-30); Schlunk 1974, 19-20 (535-9); Fordyce 1977, 154-9; S.<br />

J. Harrison 1986, 100-1 (525-30); R. Thomas 1992, 67-70 (535-9); Cormier 1993; Horsfall<br />

2000, 340-54<br />

540-571 Buchheit 1963, 77-8 (540-60); Fordyce 1977, 159-63; Delvigo 1987, 40-5 (543);<br />

Steinkühler 1989, 45-7 (552-60); Moretti 1991 (543); Caldini Montanari 1993 (543);<br />

Horsfall 2000, 354-76<br />

572-600 Buchheit 1963, 78-80; Fordyce 1977, 163-9; G. Williams 1980, 186-8 (585-90); S. J.<br />

Harrison 1986, 101-2 (586-90); Horsfall 2000, 376-91<br />

601-640 Buchheit 1963, 80-5 (601-22); Fordyce 1977, 169-77; Lassandro 1981/2 (601-23);<br />

D. Fowler 1983a (601-4); Small 1986 (620-2); D. Fowler 1998; Horsfall 2000, 391-414; S.<br />

Heil 2001, 174-5<br />

153


641-817 W. W. Fowler 2 1918; Rehm 1932, 88-96; Kühn 1957, 39-40 (783-92); Auerbach<br />

1958, 135-7 (803-17); Buchheit 1963, 108-15 (783-92); Parry 1963, 49-52 (759-60);<br />

Worstbrock 1963, 54-7 (803-17); Klingner 1967, 521-2 (655-69); G. Williams 1968, 722-<br />

25 (750-60); Lesky 1970; Reeker 1971, 102-13; Gaßner 1972, 5-57; Saylor 1974; Basson<br />

1975, 117-56; Zurli 1976; Fordyce 1977, 177-204; Thome 1979, 14-24 (647-54); E. L.<br />

Harrison 1980, 377-8; Simon 1982, 214-7 (657-8. 789-92); R. Parker 1983 (649-53); Breen<br />

1986 (789-92); Feeney 1986a, 69-70 (655-79); Hardie 1986b, 118-9 (783-8); Clausen<br />

1987, 115-6 (789-92); Delvigo 1987, 45-7 (773); Suerbaum 1987a, 447-8; Courtney 1988;<br />

E. L. Harrison 1988 (647-8); Horsfall 1988 (803-17); Jocelyn 1989 (765-73); Lentini 1989<br />

(648); O’Hara 1989; Tarleton 1989 (812-17); Glei 1991, 28-33; Horsfall 1991c, 107 (641-<br />

6); Keith 1991 (710. 791); Boyd 1992 (803-17); Putnam 1992b (750-60); M. F. Williams<br />

1993 (785-8); Briquel 1994 (723-30); Firpo 1995a (714); Parri 1996 (785); Piccaluga 1996<br />

(655-63); Gale 1997 (783-92). 187-8 (641-817); Malamud 1998 (699-705); R. Thomas<br />

1998, 286-8 (783-92); Horsfall 2000, 414-530; S. Heil 2001, 175-82. 185-9<br />

8 Drew 1927, 6-41; Pöschl 1950, 276-9; Büchner 1955, 1400-4=380-4; Otis 1963, 330-42;<br />

Knauer 1964a, 239-66. 402-6; Albrecht 1965, 63-4; Putnam 1965, 105-50; Galinsky 1966,<br />

18-24; Klingner 1967, 527-42; K. Quinn 1968, 189-98; Anderson 1969, 70-4; Wimmel<br />

1973, 50-73; Di Cesare 1974, 140-157; Eden 1975, xvii-xxv; Gransden 1976, 1-51; Walsh<br />

1977, xxiv-xxx; M. O. Lee 1979, 72-7; Rowland 1981/2; Coleiro 1983, 60-3; Michel 1983;<br />

Gransden 1984, 87-96; J. Griffin 1986, 92-3; Hardie 1986a, 88-90; Novara 1986; Clausen<br />

1987, 61-82; Binder 1988, 282-3. 285 (Aitien); J. H. Bishop 1988, 167-96; Mackie 1988,<br />

148-58; Novara 1992; Van Nortwick 1992, 148-51; Horsfall 1995c, 162-9; Farrell 1997,<br />

224-9 (Intertextualität); Hardie 1997b, 319-20 (Verhältnis Vergangenheit-Gegenwart);<br />

Paschalis 1997, 275-301. 414 (Namensetymologien); Jenkyns 1998, 515-63; Boyle 1999;<br />

Cova 1999; Suerbaum 1999, 69-72; Scully 2000; E. Binder/G. Binder 2001; Clausen 2002,<br />

153-84; Nelis 2001c, 327-364; Marinčič 2002; Niehl 2002, 75-82. 141-2 (Selbstzitate);<br />

Boyd 2006<br />

1-369 Heilmann 1971, 76-86; George 1974; Glei 1991, 197-9; Tueller 2000<br />

1-17 Worstbrock 1963, 57-9; Bömer 1965 (3); Binder 1971, 7-12; Burkhardt 1971, 413-4 (3);<br />

Eden 1975, 3-12; Gransden 1976, 77-81; Fordyce 1977, 205-6; Thome 1979, 14-24 (6-8);<br />

E. L. Harrison 1980, 381; Eden 1986, 431<br />

18-101 Pöschl 1950, 239-41 (22-25); Steiner 1952, 66-72 (26-67); Worstbrock 1963, 143-4<br />

(22-5); Grassmann-Fischer 1966, 54-63 (42ff. 81ff.); E. L. Harrison 1970a (22ff.); Binder<br />

1971, 12-41; Kühn 1971, 114-7 (26-67); Hunt 1973, 53ff, (18-30); Eden 1975, 12-56;<br />

Andersson 1976, 91-3; Gransden 1976, 81-96; Johnson 1976, 84-7 (18-25); Fordyce 1977,<br />

206-217; G. Lee 1981, 6-8 (22-5); Eden 1986, 431-4; Clausen 1987, 61-4 (22-7); Hardie<br />

1987b, 163. 169-71 (91-6); Lyne 1987, 125-32 (18-30); O’Hara 1990a, 31-5 (36-65);<br />

Pavlock 1992, 76-8 (20-7); Beye 1999, 275-6 (22-7); Spence 1999a (51-4); J. Thomas<br />

1999 (42-8. 81-5); Bouquet 2001, 48-51 (26-67); Walde 2001, 304-6 (26-67); Clausen<br />

2002, 153-7 (22-7)<br />

102-189 Binder 1971, 42-75 (102-74); Eden 1975, 56-74; Gransden 1976, 96-106; Fordyce<br />

1977, 217-27; Eden 1986, 434-6; Clausen 1987, 117-8 (102-3). 119-20 (134-42); L. Wills<br />

1998, 305 (144-5); C. Lloyd 1999 (127-74); Schmit-Neuerburg 1999, 282-5 (102ff.);<br />

Clausen 2002, 215-6 (102-3). 217-8 (134-41)<br />

190-305 Schnepf 1959; Buchheit 1963, 116-33; Worstbrock 1963, 103-14 (184-267);<br />

Galinsky 1966; Galinsky 1972, 131-49=287-91; Zarker 1972; Wimmel 1973, 62-6; George<br />

1974, 43-70; Raabe 1974, 122-3 (285-305); Eden 1975, 74-103; Gransden 1976, 106-23;<br />

Fordyce 1977, 227-38; Nagore/Pérez 1981; Eden 1986, 436-8; Hardie 1986b, 110-18;<br />

Heiden 1987 (285-305); Lyne 1987, 31-35; Wills 1987 (278); Jacobson 1989; Lyne 1989,<br />

128-9 (241-6); Lenssen 1990; Lonsdale 1990 (285ff.); Glei 1991, 324-6; Sansone 1991;<br />

154


Schubert 1991; D. A. West 1994a (200-3); L. Morgan 1998 (185-267); Ferenczi 1998/9;<br />

Effe 2002, 168-70; Marinčič 2002<br />

306-369 Reynen 1965, 420-5 (316-27); Binder 1971, 76-149; Eden 1975, 103-16; Gransden<br />

1976, 123-33; Fordyce 1977, 238-47; Wifstrand Schiebe 1981, 42-3 (319-27); R. Thomas<br />

1982, 94-8 (314-36); Narducci 1983 (309); Eden 1986, 439-40; J. H. Bishop 1988, 341-2<br />

(358); Walter 1990 (362-5); Glei 1991, 270-1; Clausen 1995a (310-12); C. Edwards 1996,<br />

31-2 (347-8. 355-65); Galinsky 1996, 96 (319-27); Rees 1996 (363); Adkin 2001b (342-3);<br />

Klodt 2001, 11-36 (337-69); Jaeger 2002, 134-6; Papaïoannou 2003, 696-700 (337-69)<br />

370-453 U. Hübner 1968, 104-15 (370-406); Kühn 1971, 117-8; Eden 1975, 116-34;<br />

Gransden 1976, 133-44; Fordyce 1977, 247-56; Shea 1977 (407-53); Block 1981, 81-5;<br />

Anderson 1984, 420-3 (439-53); Brisson 1985 (424-43); Eden 1986, 440-2; Hardie 1986a,<br />

90-5; Hardie 1986b, 185-7; Delvigo 1987, 48-55 (406); Lyne 1987, 35-44; Maselli 1989<br />

(369-406); Steinkühler 1989, 79-90 (374-86). 54-8 (395-404); Glei 1991, 200-1; Pavlock<br />

1992, 80-1; J. U. Schmidt 1994 (370-406); Kraggerud 1997 (394); Suerbaum 1998b, 362-<br />

3; Schmit-Neuerburg 1999, 248-53; Abbot 2000 (370-406); Rossini 2000 (407-15);<br />

Smolenaars 2004a; Smolenaars 2004b (370-415)<br />

454-584 Pöschl 1952 (520-40); Kühn 1957, 52-9; Grassmann-Fischer 1966, 29-38 (523ff.);<br />

Wlosok 1967, 123-7 (520-40); U. Hübner 1968, 116-23 (558-84); Heilmann 1971, 86-9;<br />

Kühn 1971, 119-22 (520-40); Eden 1975, 135-57; Gransden 1976, 144-56; Fordyce 1977,<br />

256-66; Lundström 1977, 75-86 (532-40); Thome 1979, 24-42 (478-95); A. Barchiesi 1981<br />

~ 1984, 74-90 (520-39); Yardley 1981a (461-2); S. J. Harrison 1984 (572-4); Eden 1986,<br />

442-5; Görler 1986, 291-5 (520-40); Mayer 1988 (573); Kinsey 1990 (497-504); Glei<br />

1991, 201 (537-40); Papanghelis 1993 (514-7); Laird 1999, 189-91; S. Heil 2001, 76-85<br />

(554ff.)<br />

585-625 Kühn 1957, 40-2 (617-25); Kühn 1971, 122-4 (608-16); Eden 1975, 157-63;<br />

Gransden 1976, 157-60; Fordyce 1977, 256-70; Senfter 1979 (589-91); Eden 1986, 445<br />

(587-8); Görler 1986, 285-90 (585-93). 291-5 (597-616); Edgeworth 1987 (622); Pearce<br />

1987 (588); Pavlock 1992, 79. 82-3 (589-91. 622-3); Eigler 1994 (625); Faber 2000 (617-<br />

25); Bacon 2001 (609-30); S. Heil 2001, 82-5 (585-93)<br />

626-728 Halter 1963, 94-107 (671-731); C. Becker 1964; Wlosok 1967, 128-38; G. Williams<br />

1968, 54-56 (675-713). 433-5 (714-28); W. Hübner 1970, 47-52 (700-3); Binder 1971,<br />

150-282; Wimmel 1973, 66-8; Schlunk 1974, 33-5; Eden 1975, 163-92; D. A. West<br />

1975/6; Gransden 1976, 161-87; Johnson 1976, 112-4; Fordyce 1977, 270-88; De Saint-<br />

Denis 1978 (693); Basson 1979b; Lewuillon 1979 (670); Schilling 1980a (679); Horsfall<br />

1981a (652-62); R. D. Williams 1981a; Dubois 1982, 41-8; Manfredi 1982 (682); Simon<br />

1982, 214-7; Hardie 1983b, 317-24; Romeuf 1984; Worthington 1984 (728); Eden 1986,<br />

445-50; Edgeworth 1986b (720-8); Feeney 1986a, 73-4; Gabelmann 1986 (720-8); Hardie<br />

1986a, 86-7; Hardie 1986b, 97-103. 120-5. 336-76; Worthington 1986 (727-8); Clausen<br />

1987, 76-82. 121; Lyne 1987, 207-9; Pomathios 1987, 144-6; R. D. Williams 1987, 41-6;<br />

Clauss 1988 (726); S. W. Manning 1988 (728); Quint 1989 (675-728); Woodman 1989<br />

(626-62); O’Hara 1990a, 173-5; Cristante 1990/1 (694-5); Cohon 1991; Glei 1991, 199.<br />

201-4; J. Thomas 1991 (671-728); Vilatte 1991; Botha 1992; Garbarino 1992, 125-38;<br />

Hardie 1992a, 68-9; Scarcia 1992 (654); Wyke 1992 (671-713); Huxley 1993 (711. 725);<br />

Jenkyns 1993 (726); Quint 1993, 21-46 (675-728); Hinckley/Thorne 1993/4; J. F. Miller<br />

1994b, 100-2 (671-729); Unte 1994, 241-4 (671-729); Alvis 1995, 158-65; Gurval 1995,<br />

209-47; Laird 1996, 77-81; A. Barchiesi 1997b, 275-7; S. J. Harrison 1997; R. A. Smith<br />

1997, 171-88; Toll 1997 (671-728); Zetzel 1997, 198-202; Bartsch 1998, 330-1; De<br />

Callataÿ 1998; Eigler 1998; Gottlieb 1998 (714-23); McKay 1998; Putnam 1998b; Tronson<br />

1998 (696-7); Feldherr 1999, 86-7; Östenberg 1999 (722-8); Faber 2000 (626-73); J. F.<br />

Miller 2000 (714-28); S. J. Harrison 2001, 88-90; Nelis 2001c, 345-59; Ratkowitsch 2001;<br />

155


Zimmermann 2001 (671-713); Clausen 2002, 174-84. 219-20; Grebe 2001; Niehl 2002,<br />

180-1 (709-10); Pagán 2002 (671-728); Miller 2004 (704-6)<br />

729-731 Halter 1963, 94-107 (671-731); Spaltenstein 1991 (731)<br />

9-12 Dutra 1987; J. H. Bishop 1988, 197-250; Rossi 2004, 54-69. 73-196<br />

9 Heinze 1915, 221-4; Büchner 1955, 1404-8=384-8; Otis 1963, 342-51; Knauer 1964a, 266-<br />

80. 406-12; Klingner 1967, 543-65; Anderson 1969, 75-80; Wimmel 1973, 77-83; Di<br />

Cesare 1974, 157-71; Rabel 1978; M. O. Lee 1979, 77-80; Rabel 1981a; Coleiro 1983, 63-<br />

7; La Penna 1983; Gransden 1984, 97-126; J. Griffin 1986, 93-5; R. D. Williams 1987, 61-<br />

8; Mackie 1988, 159; Saylor 1990; Van Nortwick 1992, 151-6; Hardie 1994, 1-34; Dingel<br />

1997, 11-36; Paschalis 1997, 302-29. 414-5 (Namensetymologien); Kraggerud 1998<br />

(Textkritik); Suerbaum 1999, 73-5; Wiltshire 1999; Niehl 2002, 83-92. 142-4<br />

(Selbstzitate); E. Binder/G. Binder 2003<br />

1-24 Fauth 1971, 66-7; Kühn 1971, 124-6; E. L. Harrison 1980, 385-7; Schenk 1984, 48-61;<br />

Görler 1986, 291-5; O’Hara 1990a, 70-3; Hardie 1994, 65-74; Dingel 1997, 37-49; Wills<br />

1997, 187-8 (2); Schmit-Neuerburg 1999, 271-3<br />

25-46 Raabe 1974, 108 (38-46); Heuzé 1979b (34); Görler 1986, 285-90 (25-34); Hardie<br />

1994, 74-9; Dingel 1997, 49-55<br />

47-175 Kühn 1971, 127-9 (77-122); Horsfall 1974 (47-53); G. Williams 1980, 182-4 (57-66);<br />

González Vázquez 1981-3 (47-76); Schenk 1984, 61-72 (107-67); Giardina 1984/5 (172);<br />

Breen 1986 (59-66); Suerbaum 1987a, 448-9; Steinkühler 1989, 110-22 (83-92). 47-54<br />

(94-103); Fantham 1990 (77-122); O’Hara 1990a, 74-8 (107-53); Glei 1991, 204-6 (77-<br />

122). 336-7 (51-3); Pizzolato 1991 (123-58); Hardie 1994, 80-106; E. L. Harrison 1995<br />

(77-122); Brugnoli 1996a (80-102); Kraggerud 1996 (79); Dingel 1997, 55-100; D. A.<br />

Phillips 1997, 49-55 (123-33); Wills 1997, 188-9 (104-6); Laird 1999, 170-1 (66-72); De<br />

Kock 2002 (59-66); Papaïoannou 2002; Zgoll 2004, 263-8 (77-122)<br />

176-449 Heinze 1915, 216-9; Putnam 1965, 48-60; Duckworth 1967; Maurach 1968; G.<br />

Williams 1968, 741-3 (353-449); La Penna 1971, 178-81; Wimmel 1973, 79-81; Raabe<br />

1974, 117-8 (184-7). 220-1 (411-5). 228-31 (431-49); Schlunk 1974, 23-5 (325-8). 59-81;<br />

Canali 1976, 23-34; Dumézil 1976 (315-20); Johnson 1976, 59-66 (433-7. 444-7); A.<br />

Thornton 1976, 164-72; Lennox 1977; J. O’Sullivan 1977 (402ff.); Block 1982, 18-20<br />

(446-9); E. L. Harrison 1982a (240); Randall 1982; R. D. Griffith 1985 (435-7); Pavlock<br />

1985~1990, 87-112; D. Fowler 1987b, 188-9; Murgia 1988 (236); Rieks 1989, 169-70<br />

(182-98); Wiltshire 1989, 47-53 (216-8. 283-92. 296-302. 481-92); Makowski 1989/90;<br />

Petrochilos 1989/90; Lassandro 1990 (401); Glei 1991, 206-9; Farron 1993, 1-30. 155-64;<br />

Potz 1993; Callaway 1994, 39-41 (283-92); Hardie 1994, 25-34. 106-55; La Penna 1994<br />

(427-9); Horsfall 1995c, 170-8; Pizzolato 1995; Cristofoli 1996; Dingel 1997, 100-81;<br />

Farrell 1997, 233-6 (184-5. 224-8); Fucecchi 1999; Laird 1999, 171-2 (394-403); Schmit-<br />

Neuerburg 1999, 23-65; Suerbaum 1999, 316-7. 367-8 (446-9); D. Fowler 2000a;<br />

Mazzocchini 2000, 335-57 (314-50); Perotti 2000; Ramires 2000 (189. 236); Thome 2000,<br />

111-2 (435-6); Bleisch 2001 (387-8); Gasti 2002 (257); J. K. Newman 2002; Niehl 2002,<br />

165-9; Gale 2003, 345-7 (386-9)<br />

450-502 Egan 1980 (481-97); Wiltshire 1989, 47-53 (216-8. 283-92. 296-302. 481-92);<br />

Nugent 1992, 272-3 (473-502); Hardie 1994, 155-67; Kraggerud 1996 (463-4); Dingel<br />

1997, 181-94; Wills 1997, 192-4 (459-60); Vera Bustamente 1997/8 (473-502)<br />

503-589 Raabe 1974, 118-9. 226-7 (545-55). 199-205 (503-20); Thome 1979, 43-8 (521-2.<br />

581-9); G. Williams 1980, 181-2 (549-55); S. J. Harrison 1986, 102-3 (563-6); Kinsey<br />

1988 (578-80); Hardie 1994, 167-85; Jacobson 1994 (566); Dingel 1997, 195-221; Schmit-<br />

156


Neuerburg 1999, 325-7 (556-62); Mazzocchini 2000, 245-71 (544-89); Ash 2002, 263-7<br />

(544-55)<br />

590-671 Schweizer 1967, 14-22; Maurach 1968; Kühn 1971, 129-31 (638-60); Horsfall 1971<br />

(598-620); Pianezzola 1978 (609-10); R. Thomas 1982, 98-100 (598-620); Jenkyns 1985,<br />

66-8; Dickie 1986 (598-620); Lyne 1987, 200-6 (638-62); Cairns 1989, 125-7; Glei 1991,<br />

209-11. 348-50; Hardie 1994, 185-213; J. F. Miller 1994b, 104-8 (638-71); Unte 1994,<br />

245-7 (638-71); Dingel 1997, 221-46; Jenkyns 1998, 414-8 (598-620); Keith 2000a, 19-23<br />

(603-20)<br />

672-755 Putnam 1965, 60-3; Raabe 1974, 227-8 (703-16); Hardie 1986b, 143-6; Hardie 1994,<br />

213-34; Dingel 1997, 246-65; A. Foucher 1997 (691-777); Schmit-Neuerburg 1999, 259-<br />

66 (744-6); Dingel 2000, 292 (737-9); Mazzocchini 2000, 21-37 (696-716); Putnam 2002a<br />

(702)<br />

756-818 Worstbrock 1963, 60-2 (778-818). 123-6 (806-14); Raabe 1974, 214-5 (778-818);<br />

Albrecht 1977, 32-7 (806-14); Glei 1991, 211 (775-7); Hardie 1994, 234-50;<br />

Biville/Dangel/Videau 1997 (806-14); Dingel 1997, 265-79; A. Foucher 1997 (691-777);<br />

Mazzocchini 2000, 21-37 (760-77)<br />

10 Heinze 1915, 225-7; Büchner 1955, 1408-14=388-94; Otis 1963, 351-61; Knauer 1964a,<br />

293-308. 413-20; Benario 1967; Klingner 1967, 566-81; K. Quinn 1968, 212-32; Anderson<br />

1969, 80-6; Wimmel 1973, 84-7; Di Cesare 1974, 172-97; M. O. Lee 1979, 81-93; King<br />

1982, 40-52; Saylor 1982/3; A. Barchiesi 1983 ~ 1984, 55-73; Coleiro 1983, 67-9;<br />

Gransden 1984, 126-54; Schlunk 1984; Bonfanti 1985, 31-84 (Zweikämpfe); J. Griffin<br />

1986, 95-7; Lyne 1987, 88-90 (104-13); R. D. Williams 1987, 68-72; Mackie 1988, 160-<br />

176; S. J. Harrison 1991b, xxi-xl; Wiltshire 1992; Horsfall 1995c, 179-85; Paschalis 1997,<br />

330-57. 415-6 (Namensetymologien); Feeney 1999; Suerbaum 1999, 75-7; Campbell<br />

2001, 136-47 (Struktur); Quint 2001; 93-101; Niehl 2002, 94-101. 144-6 (Selbstzitate);<br />

Rogerson 2002 (Ekphrasen); E. Binder/G. Binder 2003; P. Gagliardi 2004<br />

1-117 Norden 1915, 44ff.; Wlosok 1967, 142-3 (51-3); Kühn 1971, 131-40; E. L. Harrison<br />

1980, 387-90; Block 1981, 78-80. 85-93; Conte 1983 (24); Primmer 1986, 85-90 (100-17);<br />

Lyne 1989, 33-6 (90-3); Rieks 1989, 45-6 (63-95); Steinkühler 1989, 40-6 (6-15). 36-7<br />

(104-13); Timpanaro 1989b (8); Glei 1991, 212-7; S. J. Harrison 1991b, 57-92; Quint<br />

1993, 85-6 (46-62); Günther 1996b (100-17); Wills 1997, 188-9 (113-5)<br />

118-145 J. O’Sullivan 1977 (127-8); Eco 1979 (140); Simon 1982, 212-4 (135-7); S. J.<br />

Harrison 1991b, 92-100; Rossi 1997 (118-22); V. Ferraro 2000 (140)<br />

146-307 Görler 1975, 174-77; Malamud 1998 (185-203); Rossi 2004, 57-<br />

146-162 Hunt 1973, 67ff. (147-62); Hardie 1987b, 168 (156-8); S. J. Harrison 1991b, 100-6<br />

163-214 Pöschl 1950, 242 (209-12); Lesky 1970; Reeker 1971, 113-25; Gaßner 1972, 5-57;<br />

Saylor 1974; Basson 1975, 157-192; Basson 1982a; Basson 1982b (184); Courtney 1988;<br />

Holleman 1989 (165-84); S. J. Harrison 1991b, 106-29; Hollis 1992, 276-7 (185-93)<br />

215-259 Kühn 1971, 141-2 (219-55); Hardie 1987b (217-8. 252-3); Fantham 1990; O’Hara<br />

1990a, 39-51; S. J. Harrison 1991b, 129-142; Brugnoli 1996a (215-45); Wills 1998, 303-4<br />

(230-4)<br />

260-307 Schlunk 1974, 30-3 (267-77); Andersson 1976, 93-5; Briggs 1980, 57-8 (262-6);<br />

Lazzarini 1982 (284); Schenk 1984, 72-7 (260-86); Delvigo 1987, 55-62 (303); Traina<br />

1988 (284); Rieks 1989, 171-3 (262-84); S. J. Harrison 1991b, 142-54; Rossi 1997 (260-<br />

66); Wills 1998, 304 (270-3); Schmit-Neuerburg 1999, 234-40 (260-84); Campbell 2001,<br />

62-6 (258-86)<br />

308-509 Klemke 1990, 164-208 und 209ff. passim<br />

308-361 Raabe 1974, 219-20 (345-9); S. J. Harrison 1991b, 154-66; Unte 1994, 247 (315-7);<br />

Moretti 1996 (324-5); Mazzocchini 2000, 39-66 (310-52); S. Heil 2001, 193-4 (354-61);<br />

Rossi 2004, 138-42 (354-61)<br />

157


362-438 Raabe 1974, 231-3; Burck 1981 (362-79); Schenk 1984, 79-118 (426-509); S. J.<br />

Harrison 1991b, 166-84; Hardie 1992b, 62 (390-6); Firpo 1995a (388-9); Nikitinski 1996<br />

(366); Hendry 1997-2000 (362-8); Mazzocchini 2000, 39-66 (379-425); Colaizzi 2002,<br />

100-1 (433-8)<br />

439-509 Brackert 1962, 166-8 (453-6); Conte 1970~1986, 185-95 (495-9); Raabe 1974, 231-<br />

3; M. O. Lee 1979, 1-7; A. Barchiesi 1980 ~ 1984, 11-52; G. Williams 1980, 180-1 (453-<br />

6); Schenk 1984, 79-118 (426-509); Jenkyns 1985, 65-6 (466-8); Renger 1985, 69-72;<br />

Breen 1986 (497-9); D. Fowler 1987b, 194 (503-4); Lyne 1989, 32-3 (488-9); Steinkühler<br />

1989, 59-62 (467-72); O’Hara 1990a, 43-7 (507-9); Stahl 1990, 199-205; Glei 1991, 350-1<br />

(495-9); S. J. Harrison 1991b, 184-201; Spence 1991 (495-9); Traina 1991 (439); Van<br />

Nortwick 1992, 158-60; A. Barchiesi 1994b, 110-2=1999, 325-7; Putnam 1994 (495-9);<br />

Schmitzer 1994 (495-9); O’Higgins 1995 (497-9); Smolenaars 1995; A. Barchiesi 1997b,<br />

279 (495-9); Gale 1997, 188-9 (495-9); Hendry 1997-2000 (439-48); S. J. Harrison 1998<br />

(495-505); Suerbaum 1998c, v, 37-43; Galli 1999 (443); Dingel 2000, 288-9 (460-3);<br />

Keith 2000a, 77-8 (495-9); Ricottilli 2000, 139-42 (439-51); S. J. Harrison 2001, 90-1<br />

(495-505); Colaizzi 2002, 101-5<br />

510-605 Anderson 1968, 13-4 (602-4); Raabe 1974, 225 (545-9); Farron 1977 (517-560); G.<br />

Williams 1980, 188-9 (565-70); Putnam 1981, 139-40; Venini 1983 (541); G. Williams<br />

1983, 180 (565-70); Renger 1985, 52-69; Farron 1985 (517-20); Farron 1986 (523-33.<br />

554-60. 595-601); Hardie 1986b, 154-6 (565-70); Delvigo 1987, 62-8 (539); Kraggerud<br />

1987b (517-20); Timpanaro 1988 (543-52); Glei 1991, 218-20; S. J. Harrison 1991b, 201-<br />

21; Anderson 1993, 168-9 (595-8); Unte 1994, 248 (537-41); Dingel 2000, 292 (581-3);<br />

Mazzocchini 2000, 67-96; R. M. Smith 2000/1 (515); S. Heil 2001, 194-203<br />

606-688 Kühn 1971, 147-50 (606-642ff.); Raabe 1974, 109 (668-86); Lundström 1977, 64-7<br />

(628-32); Northrup 1978 (636-42); Basson 1982c (655); Gagliardi 1988 (668-79);<br />

Steinkühler 1989, (611-20); S. J. Harrison 1991b, 221-36; Schmit-Neuerburg 1999, 259-66<br />

(606-65)<br />

689-768 Schweizer 1967, 55-63; Fauth 1971, 59-60 (755-61); Raabe 1974, 205-8 (755-7).<br />

213-4 (747-54); J. W. Jones 1977 (707-18); Thome 1979, 48-89. 349-50; González<br />

Vázquez 1979/80; La Penna 1980, 355-6 (763-8); Willcock 1983, 96-7 (747-54); Gotoff<br />

1984; Hardie 1986b, 97 (762-5); Bergh 1987 (762-8); S. J. Harrison 1991b, 236-57;<br />

O’Hara 1991/2 (707-18); Wills 1997, 191-2 (745-6); Mazzocchini 2000, 97-129 (689-746).<br />

203-15 (747-761); S. Heil 2001, 206-8 (755-61). 237-44; Cucchiarelli 2001/2 (748);<br />

Colaizzi 2002, 106 (762ff.)<br />

769-832 Raabe 1974, 132-41 (781-2); Johnson 1976, 63-6 (781-2). 72-5 (821-4); Thome<br />

1979, 89-117; Putnam 1981 (789-832); Block 1982, 20-1 (790-3); Gotoff 1984; Schenk<br />

1984, 79-118 (789-832); Renger 1985, 69-72 (796-832); Block 1986, 162-3 (789-93); D.<br />

Fowler 1987b, 194-5 (815-9); Lyne 1989, 143-6 (803-9); Glei 1991, 220-2 (821-32); S. J.<br />

Harrison 1991b, 257-69; Lieberg 1994 (821-32); Russo 1997 (805); Dingel 2000, 289-90<br />

(774-6); V. Ferraro 2000 (818); Ricottilli 2000, 183-6 (821-32); S. Heil 2001, 203-6 (789-<br />

832). 244-6; Colaizzi 2002, 107-9 (789-832)<br />

833-908 Raabe 1974, 233-5; Heuzé 1976 (828-31); Thome 1979, 117-85; Glenn 1981 (880-<br />

2); Basson 1984b (846-56); Gotoff 1984; Dewar 1988a (850); S. J. Harrison 1991b, 269-<br />

84; Anderson 1993, 169 (844-5); Schäublin 1996 (885ff.); Wills 1997, 191 (842); S. Heil<br />

2001, 246-51; Colaizzi 2002, 109-111 (872-908)<br />

11 Heinze 1915, 227-9; Büchner 1955, 1414-7=394-7; Otis 1963, 361-71; Knauer 1964a,<br />

283-90. 308-15. 420-5; Klingner 1967, 582-8; K. Quinn 1968, 232-52; Anderson 1969, 87-<br />

91; Wimmel 1973, 88-91; Di Cesare 1974, 198-210; M. O. Lee 1979, 93-6; Coleiro 1983,<br />

69-71; Puccioni 1983; Gransden 1984, 154-92; J. Griffin 1986, 97-8; R. D. Williams 1987,<br />

73-5; Mackie 1988, 177-89; Glei 1991, 222-4; Gransden 1991, 1-35; Alessio 1993;<br />

158


Paschalis 1997, 358-79. 416-7 (Namensetymologien); Anderson 1999a; Suerbaum 1999,<br />

77-9; Niehl 2002, 102-9. 146-8 (Selbstzitate); Horsfall 2003, xi-xix; Boyd 2006<br />

1-224 Burck 1981<br />

1-28 Worstbrock 1963, 64-5 (1-11); Rieks 1989, 112-3; Gransden 1991, 69-72; Wills 1997,<br />

192-3 (1); J. T. Dyson 2001, 184-91 (5-16); Horsfall 2003, 49-66<br />

29-99 Farron 1985 (81-2); Kraggerud 1987b (81-4); Lyne 1989, 150-2 (68-71). 186-90 (72-<br />

5); Rieks 1989, 113-5; Gransden 1991, 72-8; Lyne 1992, 261-9 (68-71); Delvigo 1999 (72-<br />

7); Jacobson 2002 (45-8); Horsfall 2003, 66-105<br />

100-224 La Penna 1971, 173 (122ff.); W. C. McDermott 1980, 34 (122-31); Bonfanti 1985,<br />

160-77; E. Henry 1989, 23-6; Rieks 1989, 115-6 (139-81); Gransden 1991, 78-91; E. A.<br />

Schmidt 1997 (134-8); Thome 2000, 107-9 (134-8); Horsfall 2003, 105-64<br />

225-444 Schweizer 1967, 34-53 (336-454); La Penna 1971, 173-8 (336-75); Raabe 1974, 119-<br />

21 (416-8); Burke 1978 (336-467); W. McDermott 1980 (336ff.); Schenk 1984, 119-146<br />

(225-467); Russi 1986 (246-7); Rieks 1989, 41-43 (343-75); O’Hara 1990a, 82-4 (440-4);<br />

Pascal 1990 (440-2); Glei 1991, 194-7 (252-95); Gransden 1991, 91-109; Leigh 1993 (440-<br />

2); Horsfall 1995c, 186-191; Horsfall 1995d, 244-8 (378-91); Hardie 1998a; Suerbaum<br />

1998b, 365-7 (316-29); Fantham 1999 (234-446); Schmit-Neuerburg 1999, 75-6 (296-<br />

301); Scholz 1999 (336-75) Erdmann 2000, 189-263; Papaïoannou 2000; Papaïoannou<br />

2002 (271-4); Michalopoulos 2003 (252-93); Horsfall 2003, 164-272; Zgoll 2004, 115-16<br />

(269-77)<br />

445-497 Kühn 1957, 31-4 (486-97); Schweizer 1967, 34-53 (336-454); Schlunk 1974, 25-30<br />

(486-97); Briggs 1980, 47-8 (492-7); Schenk 1984, 119-146 (225-467); Bonfanti 1985,<br />

160-77; Gransden 1991, 109-112; Hardie 1998a (445-467); Schmit-Neuerburg 1999, 79-82<br />

(446-8); Horsfall 2003, 272-96<br />

498-867 J. H. Bishop 1988, 237-41<br />

498-531 Gransden 1991, 112-5; Horsfall 2003, 296-311<br />

532-596 Heinze 1915, 215-6; De Witt 1924/5; Schweizer 1967, 53-63; Kühn 1971, 150-2;<br />

Raabe 1974, 109- (539-66); Duke 1977; Köves-Zulauf 1978; Suerbaum 1980b (535-86);<br />

Egan 1983; Basson 1986; Steinkühler 1989, 109-10 (535-94); Glei 1991, 353-4; Gransden<br />

1991, 115-21; Capdeville 1992 (539-84); Tissol 1992; Putnam 1995c, 116-8; Horsfall<br />

2003, 311-45<br />

597-647 Raabe 1974, 110-3 (597-611). 208-13 (631-5); Andersson 1976, 96-8 (597-615);<br />

Lassandro 1990 (647); Gransden 1991, 121-4; Horsfall 2003, 345-64<br />

648-867 Heinze 1915, 215-6; De Witt 1924/5; Kühn 1971, 150-2 (836-67); Raabe 1974, 235-<br />

8 (794-835); Schlunk 1974, 12-4 (841-7); Andersson 1976, 98-9 (849-53); Kepple 1976;<br />

Duke 1977; Köves-Zulauf 1978; G. Williams 1980, 184-6 (805-15); Block 1982, 21 (664-<br />

5); Egan 1983; Bonfanti 1985, 178-207; Delvigo 1985 (830); Gagliardi 1985 (831); G. S.<br />

West 1985 (768ff.); Basson 1986; Delvigo 1987, 69-81 (830); D. Fowler 1987b, 195-6<br />

(801-4); Horsfall 1989b (777); Horsfall 1989c (768); Steinkühler 1989, 75-8 (841-9);<br />

Crupi 1991 (703-24); Glei 1991, 354-6; Gransden 1991, 124-41; Boyd 1992; Van<br />

Nortwick 1992, 156-8; J. F. Miller 1994a (783-99); Unte 1994, 248-50 (783-867); Nannini<br />

1996 (831); Santini 1998 (699-719); Schmit-Neuerburg 1999, 228-32 (809-15);<br />

Mazzocchini 2000, 131-57 (648-724); Horsfall 2003, 364-450; Trundle 2003<br />

868-915 Worstbrock 1963, 65-6 (896-915); Bonfanti 1985, 160-77; Ramires 1988 (895);<br />

Gransden 1991, 141-4; Unte 1994, 250-1 (912-4); Horsfall 2003, 450-63; Rossi 2004, 108-<br />

124 (868-95)<br />

12 Heinze 1915, 229-36; Pöschl 1950, 183-227; Büchner 1955, 1417-22=397-402; Otis<br />

1963, 371-82; Knauer 1964a, 290-3. 316-27. 425-31; Putnam 1965, 151-201; Klingner<br />

1967, 589-97; K. Quinn 1968, 252-76; Anderson 1969, 91-100; D. A. West 1970<br />

(Gleichnisse); Wimmel 1973, 92-5; Di Cesare 1974, 210-39; Schlunk 1974, 82-106;<br />

159


Andersson 1976, 99-103 (Szenenführung); M. O. Lee 1979, 96-104; Coleiro 1983, 71-3;<br />

Giancotti 1983; Gransden 1984, 192-217; J. Griffin 1986, 98-102; R. D. Williams 1987,<br />

76-7; Mackie 1988, 190-215; Glei 1991, 224-9; Quint 1991; Edgeworth 1992, 24<br />

(Farben); Garbarino 1992, 99-124 (Homer); Van Nortwick 1992, 162-80; Giancotti<br />

1993b; Quint 1993, 65-83; Traina 1994; Baron 1997; Hardie 1997a, 142-51; Paschalis<br />

1997, 380-408. 417-8 (Namensetymologien); Traina 1997; R. Thomas 1998; Putnam<br />

1999a; Suerbaum 1999, 80-2; S. Heil 2001, 218-28; Niehl 2002, 110-9. 148-9<br />

(Selbstzitate)<br />

1-476 Möhler 1989, 50-2<br />

1-133 Kühn 1957, 34-37 (81-106); Worstbrock 1963, 66-7. 94-5 (1-9); Schweizer 1967, 34-<br />

53 (1-80); Schlunk 1974, 45-7 (1-9); Johnson 1976, 50-9 (1-71). Lundström 1977, 87-94<br />

(72-80); Briggs 1980, 30-1 (59-66); Todd 1980 (64-9); G. Williams 1980, 189-90 (1-9);<br />

Lyne 1983a (64-70); A. Barchiesi 1984, 103-6 (4-9); Schenk 1984, 146-169 (1-107); D.<br />

Fowler 1987b, 190-1 (67-9); Lyne 1987, 114-22 (54-70); Kinsey 1989b (51-3); Lyne 1989,<br />

79-82. 129-31 (65-9); Rieks 1989, 173-5 (55-78); Pavlock 1992, 84-5 (67-9); Tschiedel<br />

1995 (64-9); Danek 1997 (64-9); Jacobson 1998b (67); R. Thomas 1998, 281-2 (101-8).<br />

288-9 (4-9). 293-5 (54-71); Casali 2000 (75-80); Dingel 2000, 290-1 (97-100); Gómez<br />

Pallarèz 2000 (7); Mazzocchini 2000, 217-42 (66-310); Fish 2004, 116-7 (3-9)<br />

134-952 A. Thornton 1976, 140-8<br />

134-310 Albrecht 1970b, 221-3 (238-69); Kühn 1971, 152-6 (134-60. 222-56); Raabe 1974,<br />

123-4 (270ff.). 225-6 (289-96); Schlunk 1974, 85-93 (266ff.); Ratkowitsch 1983 (175ff.);<br />

Kinsey 1984c (242-3); Schenk 1984, 169-76 (161-345); S. J. Harrison 1986, 102-3 (247-<br />

56); J. H. Bishop 1988, 276-81 (276-81); Steinkühler 1989, 90-103 (142-59); Stok 1989<br />

(221); O’Hara 1990a, 85-7 (238-82); Callaway 1994, 41-8 (176-215); Traina 1996a (285-<br />

6); Hickson-Hahn 1997 (176-94); Wills 1997, 191-2 (309-10); Bartsch 1998, 333-4 (208-<br />

11) Hickson-Hahn 1999 (169-74. 213-5); Schmit-Neuerburg 1999, 318-25 (258-67);<br />

Mazzocchini 2000, 217-42 (66-310); Putnam 2001a, 162-8 (206-11);<br />

311-382 D. A. West 1970, 262-4 (331-6); M. O. Lee 1981/2; Anderson 1984, 427-8 (324-40);<br />

Schenk 1984, 169-76 (161-345); Barigazzi 1992 (375); 159-99 (324-82)<br />

383-440 Kühn 1957, 37-39 (430-40); Kühn 1971, 157-8 (411-9); Lundström 1977, 95-111;<br />

Stok 1983 (391-2); Lyne 1987, 8-10. 191-3 (432-40); Stok 1988, 63-181 (397);<br />

Greenwood 1989 (411ff.); S. J. Harrison 1990a (411-9); Hollis 1992, 283-5 (409-19);<br />

Huxley 1993 (419); J. F. Miller 1994b, 108-11 (383-429); Unte 1994, 251-2 (383-424);<br />

Noonan 1997 (391-429); R. Thomas 1998, 295-6 (435-6); Laird 1999, 192-4 (433-42);<br />

Schmit-Neuerburg 1999, 155-61, 296-300; Jacobson 2001 (391-2); Nicoll 2001; Hawkins<br />

2004 (411-24)<br />

441-952 Schlunk 1974, 93-106<br />

441-553 Anderson 1968, 15-6 (521-6); G. Williams 1968, 735-6 (473-8); D. A. West 1970,<br />

264-6 (451-5); Schlunk 1974, 21-2 (542-7). 22-3 (468ff.); Briggs 1980, 60-1 (473-8); Di<br />

Lorenzo 1981 (473-7); Lenoir 1981 (505-67); Suerbaum 1981a, 78-80=320-22 (500-4);<br />

Willcock 1983, 93-5 (500-20. 529-47); Németh 1984 (519-20); Lyne 1987, 4-12 (450-7).<br />

140-4 (473-7); Bettini 1988 (473-7); Rowland 1992 (456); Reed 1998 (458); R. Thomas<br />

1998, 277-81 (500-47). 289-90 (473-8). 296 (450-5); Schmit-Neuerburg 1999, 266-9 (468-<br />

72). 318-25 (460-1); Beare 2000 (473-8); Mazzocchini 2000, 217-42 (458-63). 273-314<br />

(500-53); Campbell 2001, 100-5 (500-53)<br />

554-613 Anderson 1968, 10-13 (587-92); D. A. West 1970, 266-7 (587-92); Johnson 1976,<br />

92-4 (583-92); Thaniel 1976 (593-603); Voisin 1979 (593-613); Briggs 1980, 78-81 (587-<br />

92); Lenoir 1981 (505-67); Delvigo 1985 (605); Renger 1985, 50-2; Delvigo 1987, 81-96<br />

(605); Greenwood 1989 (554-6); Jocelyn 1989 (604-7); Giancotti 1993a (605); Berlin 1998<br />

(554-92); Schmit-Neuerburg 1999, 210ff. (593-603); Carter 2002 (587-8); Chew 2002<br />

(587);<br />

160


614-696 Raabe 1974, 121-2 (646-9); G. Williams 1980, 178-80 (681-90); Schenk 1984, 176-<br />

85 (614-80); O’Hara 1990a, 82-4 (694-5); Traina 1996b (641); Wills 1997, 191 (640);<br />

Hershkowitz 1998, 68-95 (665-71); R. Thomas 1998, 297 (654-6); Lelli 1998/9 (647);<br />

Gehring 2003 (641)<br />

697-952 Albrecht 1970a; D. A. West 1974; Albrecht 1999, 120-2<br />

697-790 Brackert 1962, 168-72 (714-24); Worstbrock 1963, 148-55 (697-765); D. A. West<br />

1970, 267-9 (749-57); Kühn 1971, 158-61 (725-7. 780-7); Krischer 1979, 149-51 (742-65);<br />

Briggs 1980, 41-4 (749-57); G. Williams 1980, 190-3 (746-62); Weadon 1981 (766);<br />

González Vázquez 1981/2 (710ff.); Losada 1984 (782-3); Skutsch 1985 (790); R. Thomas<br />

1988, 269-70 (766-79); Greenwood 1989 (786-90); Hardie 1992b, 59 (710ff.); Noonan<br />

1993 (723-87); Wheeler 1993 (718-9); Brugnoli 1996b (753); Di Benedetto 1996a (749-<br />

55); Gale 1997, 184-5 (715-22); Lelli 1998/9 (743); Schmit-Neuerburg 1999, 253-59. 300-<br />

7; Ferenczi 2000 (766-790); J. T. Dyson 2001, 211-27 (710-952)<br />

791-886 Buchheit 1963, 133-50 (791-868); Halter 1963, 78-93 (791-842); Schweizer 1967, 5-<br />

14 (791-842); Suerbaum 1967, 184-190=202-8. 202=220 (791-842); W. Hübner 1970, 12-<br />

42 (845- 68); Fauth 1971, 72-3 (845-55); Kühn 1971, 162-7; Williams/Carter 1974 (843-<br />

86); Johnson 1976, 94-6 (853-60); A. Barchiesi 1978 (869-86); Conti 1982; Feeney 1984<br />

(791-842); Edgeworth 1986a (845-52); Lyne 1987, 81-3 (833-7). 220-2 (872-83); R. D.<br />

Williams 1987, 46-9; Bettini 1988 (866); C. Manning 1988 (872-84); Lyne 1989, 192-4<br />

(845ff.); Steinkühler 1989, 36-7 (830-40). 40-7 (793-804). 123-30 (808-28). 70-4 (872-84);<br />

O’Hara 1990a, 141-4 (826-40). 114-6 (878-84); Feeney 1991, 147-9; J. U. Schmidt 1991<br />

(791-842); Beyers 1991/2; Hardie 1992b, 59 (710ff.); Mackie 1992 (845-52); O’Hara<br />

1993c (882); Suerbaum 1993a, 436-45; A. Barchiesi 1994b, 112-3 = 327-9 (869-86); W.<br />

Hübner 1994 (845-52); Aretini 1995 (853ff.); J. T. Dyson 1997b, 455-6 (829-31); Perkell<br />

1997 (869-86); Gottlieb 1998 (791-842); Hershkowitz 1998, 112-24; Maurer 1998 (856-9);<br />

D. A. West 1998 (791-842); Wills 1998, 298-302 (807-18); Spence 1999a (863-4); J. T.<br />

Dyson 2001, 211-27 (710-952); Obbink 2002 (872-84)<br />

887-952 Heinze 1915, 211. 234-6; Pöschl 1950, 217-27; Steiner 1952, 72-5 (908-14);<br />

Worstbrock 1963, 67-9 (919-52); Knauer 1964a, 316-27; Beare 1964/5; Albrecht 1965, 61-<br />

2 (933-4. 947-8); Poe 1965, 335-6; Anderson 1969, 101-9 (938-52); D. A. West 1970, 269-<br />

71 (908-12); Putnam 1972, 15-20; Hunt 1973, 83ff. (938-52); Wlosok 1973, 148-50; Raabe<br />

1974, 238-41 (950-2); Segal 1974, 49-52 (951-2); Johnson 1976, 96-9 (908-18). 114-34<br />

(887-52); Kepple 1976; A. Thornton 1976, 159-63; Bowie, etc. 1977, 139-43; Chausserie-<br />

Laprée 1979 (911-23); Thome 1979, 274-347; Traina 1979 (930); Van Nortwick 1980;<br />

Pöschl 1980; G. Williams 1980, 193-4 (903-14); De Grummond 1981 (945-7); Farron<br />

1981; G. Lee 1981, 8-9 (896-900). 9-11 (908-11); Putnam 1981, 145-8; Suerbaum 1981b,<br />

46-125 (930-52); Farron 1982; Pöschl 1983a; Pötscher 1983, 365-6=597-8; A. Barchiesi<br />

1984, 106-122; Putnam 1984; Schenk 1984, 382ff.; Gagliardi 1985 (952); Jenkyns 1985,<br />

73-7; Putnam 1985a; Renger 1985, 72-103 (930-52); Valgiglio 1985; Farron 1986 (930-<br />

52); Feeney 1986c (930-52); Hardie 1986b, 147-54. 177-8 (919-29); Schork 1986 (921-4);<br />

Burnell 1987; Clausen 1987, 83-100; Lyne 1987, 85-99. 135-6. 186-8; Springer 1987<br />

(952); Suerbaum 1987b, 82-5=404-7; J. H. Bishop 1988, 241-50; Galinsky 1988; Cairns<br />

1989, 82-4 (946-7). 212-4; E. Henry 1989, 164-80; Lyne 1989, 192-4 (845ff.); Wiltshire<br />

1989, 138 (946-7); Funke 1990; Putnam 1990a; Stahl 1990; Wlosok 1990a; Spence 1991<br />

(938-47); R. Thomas 1991 (946-7); Hall 1992 (950-52); Hardie 1992b, 59 (710ff.);<br />

Johnson 1992; Poliakoff 1992; Potz 1992; Anderson 1993, 169-70 (930-2. 938-9); Quint<br />

1993, 68-72 (896-927); Thome 1993a, 72-8 (930-52); Galinsky 1994; Gaskin 1994 (931-<br />

7); Petter 1994a, 82-4; Schmitzer 1994 (938-52); Vielberg 1994 (930-52); Di Benedetto<br />

1995; Horsfall 1995c, 192-216; Kleywegt 1995 (919-27); Smolenaars 1995; Di Benedetto<br />

1996a (908-12); Di Benedetto 1996b; Foster 1996 (946-7); Galinsky 1996, 250; Helzle<br />

1996, 74-8 (930-52); Nannini 1996 (952); Braund 1997, 214-6; D. Fowler 1997a (930-52);<br />

161


Gale 1997, 188-91 (930-52); Gill 1997 (930-52); Hardie 1997a, 142-51; Hardie 1997b,<br />

315-7; Korenjak 1997; Laird 1997, 288 (950-2); Tarrant 1997b, 81-2; Theodorakopoulos<br />

1997, 163-4 (952); Braund 1998, 143-4 (938-52); Hardie 1998b, 99-101; Suerbaum 1998b,<br />

368-73; Suerbaum 1998c, v, 37-43; R. Thomas 1998, 290-1 (908-13); Lelli 1998/9 (928-<br />

9); Barnes 1999, 60-3 (919-21). 64-70 (940-2); Huskey 1999 (896-907); Suerbaum 1999,<br />

345-53; T. Harrison 1999/2000; Molyviati-Toptsis 2000 (931-52); Nadeau 2000;<br />

Suerbaum 2000, 119-20; Svensson 2000; Nicoll 2001 (948-9); Putnam 2001b; Putnam<br />

2001c (919-52); E. A. Schmidt 2000/1, 163-7 (938-52); J. T. Dyson 2001, 211-27 (710-<br />

952); S. Heil 2001, 225-8 (930-52); Walde 2001, 301-3 (908-12); Warren 2001 (949);<br />

Boyd 2002 (903-5. 908-12. 932-6. 947-9); Braund 2002, 12-8 (930-52); Clausen 2002,<br />

185-209; Colaizzi 2002, 111-3 (908-52); Cucchiarelli 2002 (941-3); La Penna 2002 (948-<br />

9); Perotti 2002b; Spence 2002b, 51-2 (908-12); Galinsky 2003b, 284-90; Noonan 2003;<br />

Gross 2003/4 (941-9); Rossi 2004, 150-68<br />

162

Hooray! Your file is uploaded and ready to be published.

Saved successfully!

Ooh no, something went wrong!